This is a modern-English version of John Silence, Physician Extraordinary, originally written by Blackwood, Algernon. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

John Silence, Algernon Blackwood
The cover has been created and placed in the public domain by the transcriber using elements from the original cover.
The cover has been created and placed in the public domain by the transcriber using elements from the original cover.

JOHN SILENCE
Physician Extraordinary
Extraordinary Physician


JOHN SILENCE
Physician Extraordinary

JOHN SILENCE
Exceptional Physician

BY
ALGERNON BLACKWOOD
AUTHOR OF
“THE LISTENER” “THE EMPTY HOUSE” ETC.

BY
ALGERNON BLACKWOOD
AUTHOR OF
“THE LISTENER,” “THE EMPTY HOUSE,” ETC.

BOSTON
JOHN W. LUCE & COMPANY
1909

BOSTON
JOHN W. LUCE & COMPANY
1909


TO
M. L. W.
THE ORIGINAL OF JOHN SILENCE
AND
MY COMPANION IN MANY ADVENTURES

TO
M. L. W.
THE ORIGINAL OF JOHN SILENCE
AND
MY PARTNER IN MANY ADVENTURES


CONTENTS

PAGE
CASE I
A Psychical Invasion 1
CASE II
Ancient Sorceries 75
CASE III
The Nemesis of Fire 143
CASE IV
Secret Worship 245
CASE V
The Camp of the Dog 295

CASE I
A PSYCHICAL INVASION


JOHN SILENCE

JOHN SILENCE


CASE I
A PSYCHICAL INVASION

And what is it makes you think I could be of use in this particular case?” asked Dr. John Silence, looking across somewhat sceptically at the Swedish lady in the chair facing him.

And what makes you think I could help with this situation?” Dr. John Silence asked, looking somewhat skeptically at the Swedish woman sitting across from him.

“Your sympathetic heart and your knowledge of occultism——”

“Your caring heart and your understanding of the supernatural——”

“Oh, please—that dreadful word!” he interrupted, holding up a finger with a gesture of impatience.

“Oh, come on—that awful word!” he interrupted, holding up a finger with a gesture of annoyance.

“Well, then,” she laughed, “your wonderful clairvoyant gift and your trained psychic knowledge of the processes by which a personality may be disintegrated and destroyed—these strange studies you’ve been experimenting with all these years——”

“Well, then,” she laughed, “your amazing clairvoyant abilities and your expert understanding of how a personality can break down and be destroyed—these unusual studies you’ve been experimenting with all these years——”

“If it’s only a case of multiple personality I must really cry off,” interrupted the doctor again hastily, a bored expression in his eyes.

“If it’s just a case of multiple personality, I really need to back out,” the doctor interrupted hastily again, a bored look in his eyes.

“It’s not that; now, please, be serious, for I want your help,” she said; “and if I choose my words poorly you must be patient with my ignorance. The case I know will interest you, and no one else could deal with it so well. In fact, no ordinary professional man could deal with it at all, for I know of no treatment or medicine that can restore a lost sense of humour!”

“It’s not that; now, please, be serious, because I really need your help,” she said; “and if I don't express myself well, you have to be patient with my lack of knowledge. The situation I’m talking about will interest you, and no one else could handle it as well. Honestly, no regular professional could manage it at all, because I don’t know any treatment or medicine that can bring back a lost sense of humor!”

“You begin to interest me with your ‘case,’” he replied, and made himself comfortable to listen.

“You're starting to pique my interest with your ‘case,’” he replied, getting comfortable to listen.

Mrs. Sivendson drew a sigh of contentment as she watched him go to the tube and heard him tell the servant he was not to be disturbed.

Mrs. Sivendson let out a satisfied sigh as she watched him head to the tube and heard him tell the servant not to bother him.

“I believe you have read my thoughts already,” she said; “your intuitive knowledge of what goes on in other people’s minds is positively uncanny.”

“I think you’ve already read my thoughts,” she said; “your ability to intuitively know what’s going on in other people’s minds is seriously weird.”

Her friend shook his head and smiled as he drew his chair up to a convenient position and prepared to listen attentively to what she had to say. He closed his eyes, as he always did when he wished to absorb the real meaning of a recital that might be inadequately expressed, for by this method he found it easier to set himself in tune with the living thoughts that lay behind the broken words.

Her friend shook his head and smiled as he pulled his chair closer and got ready to listen carefully to what she had to say. He closed his eyes, as he always did when he wanted to grasp the true meaning of a story that might not be fully articulated, because he found that it helped him connect with the real ideas behind the fragmented words.

By his friends John Silence was regarded as an eccentric, because he was rich by accident, and by choice—a doctor. That a man of independent means should devote his time to doctoring, chiefly doctoring folk who could not pay, passed their comprehension entirely. The native nobility of a soul whose first desire was to help those who could not help themselves, puzzled them. After that, it irritated them, and, greatly to his own satisfaction, they left him to his own devices.

By his friends, John Silence was seen as eccentric because he happened to be rich and chose to be a doctor. They couldn't understand why a man with independent wealth would spend his time treating mostly those who couldn't pay. The noble nature of someone whose main goal was to help those in need confused them. Eventually, it annoyed them, and, much to his own satisfaction, they left him to do his own thing.

Dr. Silence was a free-lance, though, among doctors, having neither consulting-room, bookkeeper, nor professional manner. He took no fees, being at heart a genuine philanthropist, yet at the same time did no harm to his fellow-practitioners, because he only accepted unremunerative cases, and cases that interested him for some very special reason. He argued that the rich could pay, and the very poor could avail themselves of organised charity, but that a very large class of ill-paid, self-respecting workers, often followers of the arts, could not afford the price of a week’s comforts merely to be told to travel. And it was these he desired to help: cases often requiring special and patient study—things no doctor can give for a guinea, and that no one would dream of expecting him to give.

Dr. Silence was a freelance doctor who didn’t have a consulting room, a bookkeeper, or a professional demeanor. He didn't charge fees, as he was genuinely philanthropic at heart. However, he didn’t harm his fellow practitioners, since he only took on cases that didn’t pay and ones that piqued his interest for specific reasons. He believed that the wealthy could pay for medical services, and that the very poor could rely on organized charity. But there was a large group of underpaid, self-respecting workers, often artists, who couldn't afford to sacrifice a week's worth of comfort just to be advised to travel. These were the people he wanted to help: cases that often required special and patient attention—things that no doctor could provide for a guinea, and that no one would expect him to give.

But there was another side to his personality and practice, and one with which we are now more directly concerned; for the cases that especially appealed to him were of no ordinary kind, but rather of that intangible, elusive, and difficult nature best described as psychical afflictions; and, though he would have been the last person himself to approve of the title, it was beyond question that he was known more or less generally as the “Psychic Doctor.”

But there was another side to his personality and practice, one that we're more focused on now; the cases that really caught his attention weren't ordinary at all. They were more about those intangible, elusive, and tricky issues best described as psychological disturbances. And even though he would have been the last person to support that label, there’s no doubt that he was fairly widely known as the “Psychic Doctor.”

In order to grapple with cases of this peculiar kind, he had submitted himself to a long and severe training, at once physical, mental, and spiritual. What precisely this training had been, or where undergone, no one seemed to know,—for he never spoke of it, as, indeed, he betrayed no single other characteristic of the charlatan,—but the fact that it had involved a total disappearance from the world for five years, and that after he returned and began his singular practice no one ever dreamed of applying to him the so easily acquired epithet of quack, spoke much for the seriousness of his strange quest and also for the genuineness of his attainments.

To deal with cases of this unusual kind, he had put himself through a long and intense training that was physical, mental, and spiritual. What exactly this training involved or where it took place, no one seemed to know—he never talked about it, and he certainly didn’t show any of the typical traits of a fraud—but the fact that it required a complete withdrawal from the world for five years, and that when he returned and started his unique practice, no one ever thought to label him as a quack, says a lot about the seriousness of his unusual journey and the authenticity of his skills.

For the modern psychical researcher he felt the calm tolerance of the “man who knows.” There was a trace of pity in his voice—contempt he never showed—when he spoke of their methods.

For the modern psychic researcher, he felt the calm acceptance of the “man who knows.” There was a hint of pity in his voice—contempt he never expressed—when he talked about their methods.

“This classification of results is uninspired work at best,” he said once to me, when I had been his confidential assistant for some years. “It leads nowhere, and after a hundred years will lead nowhere. It is playing with the wrong end of a rather dangerous toy. Far better, it would be, to examine the causes, and then the results would so easily slip into place and explain themselves. For the sources are accessible, and open to all who have the courage to lead the life that alone makes practical investigation safe and possible.”

“This classification of results is just lackluster work at best,” he said to me once, after I had been his trusted assistant for a few years. “It goes nowhere, and even after a hundred years, it still will go nowhere. It’s like playing with the dangerous end of a really risky toy. It would be much better to look at the causes, and then the results would easily fall into place and explain themselves. The sources are out there, available to anyone with the courage to live the kind of life that makes real investigation safe and feasible.”

And towards the question of clairvoyance, too, his attitude was significantly sane, for he knew how extremely rare the genuine power was, and that what is commonly called clairvoyance is nothing more than a keen power of visualising.

And about the question of clairvoyance, his perspective was quite sensible because he realized how incredibly rare genuine ability is, and that what people usually refer to as clairvoyance is just a strong skill in visualization.

“It connotes a slightly increased sensibility, nothing more,” he would say. “The true clairvoyant deplores his power, recognising that it adds a new horror to life, and is in the nature of an affliction. And you will find this always to be the real test.”

“It suggests a bit more sensitivity, nothing beyond that,” he would say. “The true clairvoyant regrets his ability, understanding that it brings a new kind of fear to life, and is essentially a burden. And you will always find this to be the real measure.”

Thus it was that John Silence, this singularly developed doctor, was able to select his cases with a clear knowledge of the difference between mere hysterical delusion and the kind of psychical affliction that claimed his special powers. It was never necessary for him to resort to the cheap mysteries of divination; for, as I have heard him observe, after the solution of some peculiarly intricate problem—

Thus, John Silence, this uniquely skilled doctor, could choose his cases with a clear understanding of the difference between simple hysterical delusion and the type of psychological affliction that required his special abilities. He never had to rely on the cheap tricks of divination; because, as I heard him say after solving some particularly complicated issue—

“Systems of divination, from geomancy down to reading by tea-leaves, are merely so many methods of obscuring the outer vision, in order that the inner vision may become open. Once the method is mastered, no system is necessary at all.”

“Divination methods, from geomancy to tea leaf reading, are just ways to blur our external sight so that our internal sight can open up. Once you’ve mastered the technique, you don’t need any system at all.”

And the words were significant of the methods of this remarkable man, the keynote of whose power lay, perhaps, more than anything else, in the knowledge, first, that thought can act at a distance, and, secondly, that thought is dynamic and can accomplish material results.

And his words highlighted the techniques of this extraordinary man, whose main strength was likely rooted in two key ideas: firstly, that thoughts can influence things from afar, and secondly, that thoughts are powerful and can lead to tangible outcomes.

“Learn how to think,” he would have expressed it, “and you have learned to tap power at its source.”

“Learn how to think,” he would have said, “and you’ve learned to access power at its source.”

To look at—he was now past forty—he was sparely built, with speaking brown eyes in which shone the light of knowledge and self-confidence, while at the same time they made one think of that wondrous gentleness seen most often in the eyes of animals. A close beard concealed the mouth without disguising the grim determination of lips and jaw, and the face somehow conveyed an impression of transparency, almost of light, so delicately were the features refined away. On the fine forehead was that indefinable touch of peace that comes from identifying the mind with what is permanent in the soul, and letting the impermanent slip by without power to wound or distress; while, from his manner,—so gentle, quiet, sympathetic,—few could have guessed the strength of purpose that burned within like a great flame.

To look at—he was now over forty—he was lean, with expressive brown eyes that reflected knowledge and self-confidence, yet also reminded one of the incredible gentleness often found in animals' eyes. A close beard covered his mouth but didn't hide the strong determination in his lips and jaw, and his face conveyed a sense of transparency, almost like it was lit from within, so finely were his features refined. On his smooth forehead was that indescribable calm that comes from aligning the mind with what is eternal in the soul, allowing the temporary to pass without the power to hurt or upset; while, in his demeanor—so gentle, quiet, and sympathetic—few could have guessed the strong resolve that burned within him like a blazing flame.

“I think I should describe it as a psychical case,” continued the Swedish lady, obviously trying to explain herself very intelligently, “and just the kind you like. I mean a case where the cause is hidden deep down in some spiritual distress, and——”

“I think I should describe it as a psychological case,” continued the Swedish lady, clearly trying to explain herself very thoughtfully, “and just the kind you like. I mean a case where the cause is buried deep in some spiritual distress, and——”

“But the symptoms first, please, my dear Svenska,” he interrupted, with a strangely compelling seriousness of manner, “and your deductions afterwards.”

“But the symptoms first, please, my dear Svenska,” he interrupted, with an oddly intense seriousness, “and your conclusions afterwards.”

She turned round sharply on the edge of her chair and looked him in the face, lowering her voice to prevent her emotion betraying itself too obviously.

She spun around quickly in her chair and looked him in the face, lowering her voice to keep her emotions from showing too clearly.

“In my opinion there’s only one symptom,” she half whispered, as though telling something disagreeable—“fear—simply fear.”

“In my opinion, there’s only one symptom,” she half-whispered, as if sharing something unpleasant—“fear—just fear.”

“Physical fear?”

“Fear of physical harm?”

“I think not; though how can I say? I think it’s a horror in the psychical region. It’s no ordinary delusion; the man is quite sane; but he lives in mortal terror of something——”

“I don’t think so; but how can I really be sure? I believe it’s a nightmare in the mind. It’s not just a common delusion; the guy is completely sane; but he’s living in constant fear of something——”

“I don’t know what you mean by his ‘psychical region,’” said the doctor, with a smile; “though I suppose you wish me to understand that his spiritual, and not his mental, processes are affected. Anyhow, try and tell me briefly and pointedly what you know about the man, his symptoms, his need for help, my peculiar help, that is, and all that seems vital in the case. I promise to listen devotedly.”

“I don’t quite get what you mean by his ‘psychical region,’” said the doctor with a smile; “but I assume you want me to understand that it’s his spiritual processes, not his mental ones, that are affected. Anyway, please tell me clearly and briefly what you know about the man, including his symptoms, his need for help—specifically, my kind of help—and everything else that seems important in this situation. I promise to listen carefully.”

“I am trying,” she continued earnestly, “but must do so in my own words and trust to your intelligence to disentangle as I go along. He is a young author, and lives in a tiny house off Putney Heath somewhere. He writes humorous stories—quite a genre of his own: Pender—you must have heard the name—Felix Pender? Oh, the man had a great gift, and married on the strength of it; his future seemed assured. I say ‘had,’ for quite suddenly his talent utterly failed him. Worse, it became transformed into its opposite. He can no longer write a line in the old way that was bringing him success——”

“I’m trying,” she continued earnestly, “but I have to do it in my own words and hope you can figure it out as I go. He’s a young author who lives in a small house somewhere off Putney Heath. He writes funny stories—he’s kind of created his own genre: Pender—you must have heard of him—Felix Pender? Oh, he had a real talent and got married because of it; his future looked bright. I say ‘had,’ because suddenly his talent completely abandoned him. Even worse, it turned into its opposite. He can’t write a single line the way that used to bring him success—”

Dr. Silence opened his eyes for a second and looked at her.

Dr. Silence opened his eyes for a moment and glanced at her.

“He still writes, then? The force has not gone?” he asked briefly, and then closed his eyes again to listen.

“He still writes, then? The passion hasn’t faded?” he asked briefly, and then closed his eyes again to listen.

“He works like a fury,” she went on, “but produces nothing”—she hesitated a moment—“nothing that he can use or sell. His earnings have practically ceased, and he makes a precarious living by book-reviewing and odd jobs—very odd, some of them. Yet, I am certain his talent has not really deserted him finally, but is merely——”

“He works like crazy,” she continued, “but creates nothing”—she paused for a moment—“nothing he can use or sell. His income has pretty much dried up, and he barely gets by doing book reviews and odd jobs—really odd ones, some of them. Still, I’m sure his talent hasn’t truly abandoned him, but is just——”

Again Mrs. Sivendson hesitated for the appropriate word.

Again, Mrs. Sivendson paused, searching for the right word.

“In abeyance,” he suggested, without opening his eyes.

“In abeyance,” he suggested, still with his eyes closed.

“Obliterated,” she went on, after a moment to weigh the word, “merely obliterated by something else——”

“Obliterated,” she continued, taking a moment to consider the word, “just erased by something else——”

“By some one else?”

“By someone else?”

“I wish I knew. All I can say is that he is haunted, and temporarily his sense of humour is shrouded—gone—replaced by something dreadful that writes other things. Unless something competent is done, he will simply starve to death. Yet he is afraid to go to a doctor for fear of being pronounced insane; and, anyhow, a man can hardly ask a doctor to take a guinea to restore a vanished sense of humour, can he?”

“I wish I knew. All I can say is that he is troubled, and for now, his sense of humor is hidden—gone—replaced by something awful that creates different things. Unless something effective is done, he will just end up starving. Yet he’s scared to see a doctor for fear of being declared insane; and besides, can a guy really ask a doctor to take a guinea to bring back a lost sense of humor?”

“Has he tried any one at all——?”

“Has he tried anyone at all?”

“Not doctors yet. He tried some clergymen and religious people; but they know so little and have so little intelligent sympathy. And most of them are so busy balancing on their own little pedestals——”

“Not doctors yet. He tried some clergymen and religious people, but they know so little and have so little genuine understanding. And most of them are so busy balancing on their own little pedestals——”

John Silence stopped her tirade with a gesture.

John Silence silenced her rant with a gesture.

“And how is it that you know so much about him?” he asked gently.

“And how do you know so much about him?” he asked softly.

“I know Mrs. Pender well—I knew her before she married him——”

“I know Mrs. Pender well—I knew her before she married him—”

“And is she a cause, perhaps?”

“And is she the reason, maybe?”

“Not in the least. She is devoted; a woman very well educated, though without being really intelligent, and with so little sense of humour herself that she always laughs at the wrong places. But she has nothing to do with the cause of his distress; and, indeed, has chiefly guessed it from observing him, rather than from what little he has told her. And he, you know, is a really lovable fellow, hard-working, patient—altogether worth saving.”

“Not at all. She’s committed; an educated woman, although not really bright, and she lacks a sense of humor, laughing at all the wrong moments. But she’s not responsible for his troubles; she mostly figured it out by watching him rather than from what he’s shared with her. And he, you see, is genuinely a likable guy, diligent and patient—definitely worth saving.”

Dr. Silence opened his eyes and went over to ring for tea. He did not know very much more about the case of the humorist than when he first sat down to listen; but he realised that no amount of words from his Swedish friend would help to reveal the real facts. A personal interview with the author himself could alone do that.

Dr. Silence opened his eyes and walked over to ring for tea. He didn’t know much more about the humorist’s case than when he first sat down to listen; but he understood that no amount of words from his Swedish friend would help uncover the real facts. Only a personal interview with the author himself could do that.

“All humorists are worth saving,” he said with a smile, as she poured out tea. “We can’t afford to lose a single one in these strenuous days. I will go and see your friend at the first opportunity.”

“All humorists are worth saving,” he said with a smile, as she poured the tea. “We can't afford to lose a single one in these challenging times. I’ll go and see your friend at the first chance I get.”

She thanked him elaborately, effusively, with many words, and he, with much difficulty, kept the conversation thenceforward strictly to the teapot.

She thanked him in detail, enthusiastically, with plenty of words, and he, with great effort, kept the conversation focused solely on the teapot from that point on.

And, as a result of this conversation, and a little more he had gathered by means best known to himself and his secretary, he was whizzing in his motor-car one afternoon a few days later up the Putney Hill to have his first interview with Felix Pender, the humorous writer who was the victim of some mysterious malady in his “psychical region” that had obliterated his sense of the comic and threatened to wreck his life and destroy his talent. And his desire to help was probably of equal strength with his desire to know and to investigate.

And as a result of this conversation, along with some additional information he had gathered in ways known only to himself and his secretary, he was zooming in his car one afternoon a few days later up Putney Hill for his first meeting with Felix Pender, the comedic writer suffering from some mysterious illness in his "psychical region" that had erased his sense of humor and threatened to ruin his life and destroy his talent. His desire to help was likely just as strong as his desire to learn more and investigate.

The motor stopped with a deep purring sound, as though a great black panther lay concealed within its hood, and the doctor—the “psychic doctor,” as he was sometimes called—stepped out through the gathering fog, and walked across the tiny garden that held a blackened fir tree and a stunted laurel shrubbery. The house was very small, and it was some time before any one answered the bell. Then, suddenly, a light appeared in the hall, and he saw a pretty little woman standing on the top step begging him to come in. She was dressed in grey, and the gaslight fell on a mass of deliberately brushed light hair. Stuffed, dusty birds, and a shabby array of African spears, hung on the wall behind her. A hat-rack, with a bronze plate full of very large cards, led his eye swiftly to a dark staircase beyond. Mrs. Pender had round eyes like a child’s, and she greeted him with an effusiveness that barely concealed her emotion, yet strove to appear naturally cordial. Evidently she had been looking out for his arrival, and had outrun the servant girl. She was a little breathless.

The engine stopped with a deep purring noise, like a big black panther hiding under the hood. The doctor—sometimes called the “psychic doctor”—stepped out through the thickening fog and walked across the small garden, which had a charred fir tree and a short laurel bush. The house was quite small, and it took a while for anyone to answer the doorbell. Then, suddenly, a light appeared in the hallway, and he saw a pretty woman standing at the top of the steps, urging him to come in. She was wearing grey, and the gaslight highlighted her carefully styled light hair. Stuffed, dusty birds and a worn collection of African spears hung on the wall behind her. A hat rack with a bronze plate full of large cards caught his eye, leading to a dark staircase beyond. Mrs. Pender had round eyes like a child's and greeted him with an enthusiasm that barely masked her excitement, although she tried to seem naturally friendly. Clearly, she had been waiting for him and had hurried ahead of the servant girl. She looked a little out of breath.

“I hope you’ve not been kept waiting—I think it’s most good of you to come——” she began, and then stopped sharp when she saw his face in the gaslight. There was something in Dr. Silence’s look that did not encourage mere talk. He was in earnest now, if ever man was.

“I hope you haven’t been kept waiting—I think it’s really nice of you to come——” she started, then abruptly stopped when she saw his face in the gaslight. There was something in Dr. Silence’s expression that did not invite small talk. He was serious now, more than ever.

“Good evening, Mrs. Pender,” he said, with a quiet smile that won confidence, yet deprecated unnecessary words, “the fog delayed me a little. I am glad to see you.”

“Good evening, Mrs. Pender,” he said, with a calm smile that inspired trust but avoided small talk, “the fog held me up a bit. It’s nice to see you.”

They went into a dingy sitting-room at the back of the house, neatly furnished but depressing. Books stood in a row upon the mantelpiece. The fire had evidently just been lit. It smoked in great puffs into the room.

They walked into a shabby living room at the back of the house, which was neatly furnished but still felt dreary. Books were lined up on the mantelpiece. The fire had obviously just been started, sending up big puffs of smoke into the room.

“Mrs. Sivendson said she thought you might be able to come,” ventured the little woman again, looking up engagingly into his face and betraying anxiety and eagerness in every gesture. “But I hardly dared to believe it. I think it is really too good of you. My husband’s case is so peculiar that—well, you know, I am quite sure any ordinary doctor would say at once the asylum——”

“Mrs. Sivendson said she thought you might be able to come,” the petite woman said again, looking up at him playfully and showing her worry and excitement in every movement. “But I hardly dared to believe it. I think it’s really too kind of you. My husband’s situation is so unusual that—well, you know, I’m pretty sure any ordinary doctor would immediately suggest the asylum——”

“Isn’t he in, then?” asked Dr. Silence gently.

“Isn’t he here, then?” asked Dr. Silence softly.

“In the asylum?” she gasped. “Oh dear, no—not yet!”

“In the asylum?” she gasped. “Oh no, not yet!”

“In the house, I meant,” he laughed.

“In the house, I meant,” he chuckled.

She gave a great sigh.

She sighed deeply.

“He’ll be back any minute now,” she replied, obviously relieved to see him laugh; “but the fact is, we didn’t expect you so early—I mean, my husband hardly thought you would come at all.”

“He’ll be back any minute now,” she replied, clearly relieved to see him laugh; “but the truth is, we didn’t expect you so early—I mean, my husband barely thought you would come at all.”

“I am always delighted to come—when I am really wanted, and can be of help,” he said quickly; “and, perhaps, it’s all for the best that your husband is out, for now that we are alone you can tell me something about his difficulties. So far, you know, I have heard very little.”

“I’m always happy to come—when I’m truly wanted and can be of assistance,” he said quickly; “and maybe it’s for the best that your husband is out, because now that we’re alone, you can share a bit about his troubles. So far, you know, I haven’t heard much.”

Her voice trembled as she thanked him, and when he came and took a chair close beside her she actually had difficulty in finding words with which to begin.

Her voice shook as she thanked him, and when he came and sat down right next to her, she really struggled to find the words to start.

“In the first place,” she began timidly, and then continuing with a nervous incoherent rush of words, “he will be simply delighted that you’ve really come, because he said you were the only person he would consent to see at all—the only doctor, I mean. But, of course, he doesn’t know how frightened I am, or how much I have noticed. He pretends with me that it’s just a nervous breakdown, and I’m sure he doesn’t realise all the odd things I’ve noticed him doing. But the main thing, I suppose——”

“In the first place,” she started hesitantly, and then continued with a flurry of nervous, jumbled words, “he’ll be so happy that you actually came because he said you were the only person he’d agree to see at all—the only doctor, I mean. But, of course, he doesn’t know how scared I am or how much I’ve observed. He acts with me like it’s just a nervous breakdown, and I’m sure he doesn’t realize all the strange things I’ve seen him doing. But the main thing, I guess——”

“Yes, the main thing, Mrs. Pender,” he said encouragingly, noticing her hesitation.

“Yes, the important thing, Mrs. Pender,” he said encouragingly, noticing her hesitation.

“——is that he thinks we are not alone in the house. That’s the chief thing.”

“——is that he believes we’re not alone in the house. That’s the main point.”

“Tell me more facts—just facts.”

“Share more facts—just facts.”

“It began last summer when I came back from Ireland; he had been here alone for six weeks, and I thought him looking tired and queer—ragged and scattered about the face, if you know what I mean, and his manner worn out. He said he had been writing hard, but his inspiration had somehow failed him, and he was dissatisfied with his work. His sense of humour was leaving him, or changing into something else, he said. There was something in the house, he declared, that”—she emphasised the words—“prevented his feeling funny.”

“It started last summer when I got back from Ireland; he had been here alone for six weeks, and I thought he looked tired and strange—disheveled and scattered, if you know what I mean, and his demeanor was worn out. He said he had been writing a lot, but his inspiration had somehow let him down, and he was unhappy with his work. His sense of humor was leaving him, or transforming into something else, he said. There was something in the house, he insisted, that”—she emphasized the words—“prevented him from feeling funny.”

“Something in the house that prevented his feeling funny,” repeated the doctor. “Ah, now we’re getting to the heart of it!”

“Something in the house that stopped him from feeling weird,” the doctor repeated. “Ah, now we’re getting to the core of it!”

“Yes,” she resumed vaguely; “that’s what he kept saying.”

“Yeah,” she continued vaguely; “that’s what he kept saying.”

“And what was it he did that you thought strange?” he asked sympathetically. “Be brief, or he may be here before you finish.”

“And what was it he did that you found odd?” he asked with sympathy. “Keep it short, or he might arrive before you’re done.”

“Very small things, but significant it seemed to me. He changed his workroom from the library, as we call it, to the sitting-room. He said all his characters became wrong and terrible in the library; they altered, so that he felt like writing tragedies—vile, debased tragedies, the tragedies of broken souls. But now he says the same of the smoking-room, and he’s gone back to the library.”

“Very small things, but they seemed significant to me. He moved his workroom from the library, as we call it, to the living room. He said all his characters turned out wrong and terrible in the library; they changed so much that he felt like writing tragedies—horrible, degraded tragedies, the tragedies of broken souls. But now he says the same about the smoking room, and he’s gone back to the library.”

“Ah!”

“Wow!”

“You see, there’s so little I can tell you,” she went on, with increasing speed and countless gestures. “I mean it’s only very small things he does and says that are queer. What frightens me is that he assumes there is some one else in the house all the time—some one I never see. He does not actually say so, but on the stairs I’ve seen him standing aside to let some one pass; I’ve seen him open a door to let some one in or out; and often in our bedroom he puts chairs about as though for some one else to sit in. Oh—oh yes, and once or twice,” she cried—“once or twice——”

“You see, there’s very little I can tell you,” she continued, speaking faster and making lots of gestures. “I mean, it’s really just small things he does and says that are strange. What really scares me is that he acts like there’s someone else in the house all the time—someone I never see. He doesn’t actually say it, but I’ve seen him step aside on the stairs to let someone pass; I’ve seen him open a door to let someone in or out; and often in our bedroom, he sets up chairs as if for someone else to sit in. Oh—oh yes, and once or twice,” she exclaimed—“once or twice——”

She paused, and looked about her with a startled air.

She paused and looked around with a startled expression.

“Yes?”

"Yeah?"

“Once or twice,” she resumed hurriedly, as though she heard a sound that alarmed her, “I’ve heard him running—coming in and out of the rooms breathless as if something were after him——”

“Once or twice,” she continued quickly, as if she heard a sound that scared her, “I’ve heard him running—coming in and out of the rooms breathless as if something was chasing him——”

The door opened while she was still speaking, cutting her words off in the middle, and a man came into the room. He was dark and clean-shaven sallow rather, with the eyes of imagination, and dark hair growing scantily about the temples. He was dressed in a shabby tweed suit, and wore an untidy flannel collar at the neck. The dominant expression of his face was startled—hunted; an expression that might any moment leap into the dreadful stare of terror and announce a total loss of self-control.

The door opened while she was still talking, interrupting her mid-sentence, and a man walked into the room. He was dark and clean-shaven—sallow, really—with imaginative eyes and sparse dark hair around his temples. He wore a worn tweed suit and a messy flannel collar at his neck. The main look on his face was one of shock—like he was being hunted; it was an expression that could quickly turn into a horrifying stare of fear, showing a complete loss of self-control.

The moment he saw his visitor a smile spread over his worn features, and he advanced to shake hands.

The moment he saw his visitor, a smile spread across his tired face, and he stepped forward to shake hands.

“I hoped you would come; Mrs. Sivendson said you might be able to find time,” he said simply. His voice was thin and reedy. “I am very glad to see you, Dr. Silence. It is ‘Doctor,’ is it not?”

“I was hoping you would come; Mrs. Sivendson mentioned that you might have some time,” he said plainly. His voice was thin and high-pitched. “I’m really glad to see you, Dr. Silence. It’s ‘Doctor,’ right?”

“Well, I am entitled to the description,” laughed the other, “but I rarely get it. You know, I do not practise as a regular thing; that is, I only take cases that specially interest me, or——”

“Well, I have a right to the description,” laughed the other, “but I hardly ever get it. You know, I don’t practice on a regular basis; that is, I only take on cases that really interest me, or——”

He did not finish the sentence, for the men exchanged a glance of sympathy that rendered it unnecessary.

He didn't finish the sentence, because the men shared a sympathetic glance that made it unnecessary.

“I have heard of your great kindness.”

“I’ve heard about your amazing kindness.”

“It’s my hobby,” said the other quickly, “and my privilege.”

“It’s my hobby,” the other said quickly, “and my privilege.”

“I trust you will still think so when you have heard what I have to tell you,” continued the author, a little wearily. He led the way across the hall into the little smoking-room where they could talk freely and undisturbed.

“I hope you’ll still feel the same after you hear what I have to say,” the author said, a bit tiredly. He walked across the hall into the small smoking room where they could talk openly and without interruptions.

In the smoking-room, the door shut and privacy about them, Pender’s attitude changed somewhat, and his manner became very grave. The doctor sat opposite, where he could watch his face. Already, he saw, it looked more haggard. Evidently it cost him much to refer to his trouble at all.

In the smoking room, with the door closed and privacy surrounding them, Pender’s demeanor shifted a bit, and he became quite serious. The doctor sat across from him, able to observe his expression. Already, he noticed it looked more worn out. It was clear that it was very difficult for him to even mention his issues.

“What I have is, in my belief, a profound spiritual affliction,” he began quite bluntly, looking straight into the other’s eyes.

“What I have is, I believe, a deep spiritual suffering,” he started very straightforwardly, looking directly into the other person’s eyes.

“I saw that at once,” Dr. Silence said.

“I noticed that right away,” Dr. Silence said.

“Yes, you saw that, of course; my atmosphere must convey that much to any one with psychic perceptions. Besides which, I feel sure from all I’ve heard, that you are really a soul-doctor, are you not, more than a healer merely of the body?”

“Yes, you noticed that, of course; my vibe must communicate that much to anyone with psychic awareness. Plus, I’m pretty sure from everything I’ve heard that you’re really a soul healer, right, more than just someone who heals the body?”

“You think of me too highly,” returned the other; “though I prefer cases, as you know, in which the spirit is disturbed first, the body afterwards.”

“You think of me too highly,” the other replied; “though I prefer situations, as you know, where the mind is unsettled first, then the body follows.”

“I understand, yes. Well, I have experienced a curious disturbance in—not in my physical region primarily. I mean my nerves are all right, and my body is all right I have no delusions exactly, but my spirit is tortured by a calamitous fear which first came upon me in a strange manner.”

“I get it, yes. Well, I've felt a strange disturbance in—not in my body mainly. My nerves are fine, and my body is okay. I don't have any delusions exactly, but my spirit is tormented by a disastrous fear that first hit me in a weird way.”

John Silence leaned forward a moment and took the speaker’s hand and held it in his own for a few brief seconds, closing his eyes as he did so. He was not feeling his pulse, or doing any of the things that doctors ordinarily do; he was merely absorbing into himself the main note of the man’s mental condition, so as to get completely his own point of view, and thus be able to treat his case with true sympathy. A very close observer might perhaps have noticed that a slight tremor ran through his frame after he had held the hand for a few seconds.

John Silence leaned in for a moment and took the speaker's hand, holding it in his own for a few brief seconds, closing his eyes as he did. He wasn't checking the man's pulse or doing anything a doctor usually would; he was simply taking in the essence of the man's mental state, aiming to fully understand his perspective, and to treat his case with genuine empathy. A very keen observer might have noticed a slight tremor running through his body after he held the hand for a moment.

“Tell me quite frankly, Mr. Pender,” he said soothingly, releasing the hand, and with deep attention in his manner, “tell me all the steps that led to the beginning of this invasion. I mean tell me what the particular drug was, and why you took it, and how it affected you——”

“Tell me honestly, Mr. Pender,” he said calmly, letting go of the hand and focusing intently on him, “tell me everything that led to the start of this invasion. I want to know what specific drug it was, why you took it, and how it affected you——”

“Then you know it began with a drug!” cried the author, with undisguised astonishment.

“Then you know it started with a drug!” shouted the author, clearly amazed.

“I only know from what I observe in you, and in its effect upon myself. You are in a surprising psychical condition. Certain portions of your atmosphere are vibrating at a far greater rate than others. This is the effect of a drug, but of no ordinary drug. Allow me to finish, please. If the higher rate of vibration spreads all over, you will become, of course, permanently cognisant of a much larger world than the one you know normally. If, on the other hand, the rapid portion sinks back to the usual rate, you will lose these occasional increased perceptions you now have.”

“I can only speak from what I see in you and how it affects me. You're in a really unusual mental state. Some parts of your energy are vibrating at a much higher frequency than others. This is due to a drug, but not just any drug. Please let me finish. If the higher vibration spreads throughout your system, you'll become permanently aware of a much bigger world than the one you usually know. On the other hand, if the faster vibrations go back to normal, you'll lose these heightened perceptions you currently have.”

“You amaze me!” exclaimed the author; “for your words exactly describe what I have been feeling——”

“You amaze me!” the author exclaimed; “your words perfectly capture what I've been feeling——”

“I mention this only in passing, and to give you confidence before you approach the account of your real affliction,” continued the doctor. “All perception, as you know, is the result of vibrations; and clairvoyance simply means becoming sensitive to an increased scale of vibrations. The awakening of the inner senses we hear so much about means no more than that. Your partial clairvoyance is easily explained. The only thing that puzzles me is how you managed to procure the drug, for it is not easy to get in pure form, and no adulterated tincture could have given you the terrific impetus I see you have acquired. But, please proceed now and tell me your story in your own way.”

“I bring this up just to reassure you before you dive into discussing your real issue,” the doctor continued. “All perception, as you know, comes from vibrations; and clairvoyance just means becoming attuned to a wider range of vibrations. When we talk about awakening the inner senses, that’s really all it is. Your partial clairvoyance can be easily explained. What puzzles me is how you managed to get the drug, since it’s not easy to find in its pure form, and no diluted tincture could have given you the strong boost I see you’ve gained. But go ahead now and share your story in your own way.”

“This Cannabis indica,” the author went on, “came into my possession last autumn while my wife was away. I need not explain how I got it, for that has no importance; but it was the genuine fluid extract, and I could not resist the temptation to make an experiment. One of its effects, as you know, is to induce torrential laughter——”

“This Cannabis indica,” the author continued, “I got it last autumn while my wife was away. I don’t need to explain how I obtained it, as that’s not important; but it was the real liquid extract, and I couldn’t resist the urge to try it out. One of its effects, as you know, is to trigger uncontrollable laughter——”

“Yes; sometimes.”

"Yes, sometimes."

“——I am a writer of humorous tales, and I wished to increase my own sense of laughter—to see the ludicrous from an abnormal point of view. I wished to study it a bit, if possible, and——”

“——I’m a writer of funny stories, and I wanted to boost my own sense of humor—to view the ridiculous from a different perspective. I wanted to explore it a bit, if I could, and——”

“Tell me!”

"Tell me!"

“I took an experimental dose. I starved for six hours to hasten the effect, locked myself into this room, and gave orders not to be disturbed. Then I swallowed the stuff and waited.”

“I took an experimental dose. I fasted for six hours to speed up the effect, locked myself in this room, and instructed not to be disturbed. Then I swallowed the substance and waited.”

“And the effect?”

"And what’s the impact?"

“I waited one hour, two, three, four, five hours. Nothing happened. No laughter came, but only a great weariness instead. Nothing in the room or in my thoughts came within a hundred miles of a humorous aspect.”

“I waited one hour, two, three, four, five hours. Nothing happened. No laughter came, just a deep exhaustion instead. Nothing in the room or in my thoughts even remotely approached anything funny.”

“Always a most uncertain drug,” interrupted the doctor. “We make very small use of it on that account.”

“It's always such an unreliable drug,” the doctor interrupted. “That’s why we hardly use it.”

“At two o’clock in the morning I felt so hungry and tired that I decided to give up the experiment and wait no longer. I drank some milk and went upstairs to bed. I felt flat and disappointed. I fell asleep at once and must have slept for about an hour, when I awoke suddenly with a great noise in my ears. It was the noise of my own laughter! I was simply shaking with merriment. At first I was bewildered and thought I had been laughing in dreams, but a moment later I remembered the drug, and was delighted to think that after all I had got an effect. It had been working all along, only I had miscalculated the time. The only unpleasant thing then was an odd feeling that I had not waked naturally, but had been wakened by some one else—deliberately. This came to me as a certainty in the middle of my noisy laughter and distressed me.”

“At two in the morning, I felt so hungry and tired that I decided to end the experiment and stop waiting. I drank some milk and went upstairs to bed. I felt deflated and let down. I fell asleep right away and must have slept for about an hour when I suddenly woke up with a loud noise in my ears. It was the sound of my own laughter! I was literally shaking with joy. At first, I was confused and thought I had been laughing in my dreams, but a moment later, I remembered the drug and was thrilled to realize that I had actually achieved an effect. It had been working all along; I had just miscalculated the timing. The only unpleasant thing then was a strange feeling that I hadn’t woken up naturally but had been awakened by someone else—on purpose. This certainty hit me in the middle of my loud laughter and unsettled me.”

“Any impression who it could have been?” asked the doctor, now listening with close attention to every word, very much on the alert.

“Any idea who it might have been?” asked the doctor, now paying close attention to every word, very much on high alert.

Pender hesitated and tried to smile. He brushed his hair from his forehead with a nervous gesture.

Pender hesitated and attempted to smile. He nervously brushed his hair off his forehead.

“You must tell me all your impressions, even your fancies; they are quite as important as your certainties.”

“You have to share all your thoughts with me, even your daydreams; they are just as important as what you know for sure.”

“I had a vague idea that it was some one connected with my forgotten dream, some one who had been at me in my sleep, some one of great strength and great ability—of great force—quite an unusual personality—and, I was certain, too—a woman.”

“I had a vague sense that it was someone linked to my forgotten dream, someone who had been in my thoughts while I slept, someone very strong and capable—someone with a powerful presence—definitely a unique personality—and I was sure it was a woman.”

“A good woman?” asked John Silence quietly.

“A good woman?” John Silence asked softly.

Pender started a little at the question and his sallow face flushed; it seemed to surprise him. But he shook his head quickly with an indefinable look of horror.

Pender flinched at the question, and his pale face turned red; it seemed to catch him off guard. But he quickly shook his head with a look of horror that was hard to define.

“Evil,” he answered briefly, “appallingly evil, and yet mingled with the sheer wickedness of it was also a certain perverseness—the perversity of the unbalanced mind.”

“Evil,” he replied shortly, “terribly evil, and yet mixed in with its sheer wickedness was also a certain twistedness—the twistedness of an unhinged mind.”

He hesitated a moment and looked up sharply at his interlocutor. A shade of suspicion showed itself in his eyes.

He paused for a moment and looked up sharply at his conversation partner. A hint of suspicion appeared in his eyes.

“No,” laughed the doctor, “you need not fear that I’m merely humouring you, or think you mad. Far from it. Your story interests me exceedingly and you furnish me unconsciously with a number of clues as you tell it. You see, I possess some knowledge of my own as to these psychic byways.”

“No,” the doctor laughed, “you don’t have to worry that I’m just playing along or that I think you’re crazy. Not at all. Your story really interests me, and you’re giving me a lot of clues without even realizing it as you share it. You see, I have some knowledge of these psychic paths myself.”

“I was shaking with such violent laughter,” continued the narrator, reassured in a moment, “though with no clear idea what was amusing me, that I had the greatest difficulty in getting up for the matches, and was afraid I should frighten the servants overhead with my explosions. When the gas was lit I found the room empty, of course, and the door locked as usual. Then I half dressed and went out on to the landing, my hilarity better under control, and proceeded to go downstairs. I wished to record my sensations. I stuffed a handkerchief into my mouth so as not to scream aloud and communicate my hysterics to the entire household.”

“I was shaking with such intense laughter,” the narrator went on, feeling reassured for a moment, “even though I had no clear idea what was making me laugh. I had a really hard time getting up for the matches and worried I might scare the servants upstairs with my outbursts. When the gas was lit, I found the room empty, of course, and the door locked as usual. So, I got partly dressed and stepped out onto the landing, my laughter a bit more under control, and made my way downstairs. I wanted to capture how I felt. I stuffed a handkerchief in my mouth to keep from screaming out loud and sharing my hysterics with the whole household.”

“And the presence of this—this——?”

"And what about this—this——?"

“It was hanging about me all the time,” said Pender, “but for the moment it seemed to have withdrawn. Probably, too, my laughter killed all other emotions.”

“It was all around me the entire time,” said Pender, “but for a moment it seemed to have faded away. Maybe, too, my laughter pushed aside all other feelings.”

“And how long did you take getting downstairs?”

“And how long did it take you to get downstairs?”

“I was just coming to that I see you know all my ‘symptoms’ in advance, as it were; for, of course, I thought I should never get to the bottom. Each step seemed to take five minutes, and crossing the narrow hall at the foot of the stairs—well, I could have sworn it was half an hour’s journey had not my watch certified that it was a few seconds. Yet I walked fast and tried to push on. It was no good. I walked apparently without advancing, and at that rate it would have taken me a week to get down Putney Hill.”

“I was just getting to that. I see you know all my ‘symptoms’ in advance, so to speak; because I honestly thought I’d never figure it out. Every step felt like it took five minutes, and crossing the narrow hallway at the bottom of the stairs—well, I could have sworn it was a half-hour journey if my watch hadn’t confirmed it was only a few seconds. Still, I walked quickly and tried to keep going. It was no use. I seemed to walk without actually making progress, and at that pace, it would have taken me a week to get down Putney Hill.”

“An experimental dose radically alters the scale of time and space sometimes——”

“An experimental dose dramatically changes the dimensions of time and space sometimes——”

“But, when at last I got into my study and lit the gas, the change came horridly, and sudden as a flash of lightning. It was like a douche of icy water, and in the middle of this storm of laughter——”

“But, when I finally got into my study and turned on the gas, the change hit me hard and fast, like a flash of lightning. It felt like a splash of icy water, and right in the middle of this storm of laughter——”

“Yes; what?” asked the doctor, leaning forward and peering into his eyes.

"Yeah; what?" asked the doctor, leaning forward and looking into his eyes.

“——I was overwhelmed with terror,” said Pender, lowering his reedy voice at the mere recollection of it.

“——I was completely terrified,” said Pender, lowering his thin voice at just the thought of it.

He paused a moment and mopped his forehead. The scared, hunted look in his eyes now dominated the whole face. Yet, all the time, the corners of his mouth hinted of possible laughter as though the recollection of that merriment still amused him. The combination of fear and laughter in his face was very curious, and lent great conviction to his story; it also lent a bizarre expression of horror to his gestures.

He paused for a moment and wiped his forehead. The fearful, hunted look in his eyes now dominated his entire face. Yet, all the while, the corners of his mouth suggested a hint of laughter, as if the memory of that joy still amused him. The mix of fear and laughter on his face was quite strange and added a lot of credibility to his story; it also gave his gestures an odd expression of horror.

“Terror, was it?” repeated the doctor soothingly.

“Terror, was it?” the doctor said gently.

“Yes, terror; for, though the Thing that woke me seemed to have gone, the memory of it still frightened me, and I collapsed into a chair. Then I locked the door and tried to reason with myself, but the drug made my movements so prolonged that it took me five minutes to reach the door, and another five to get back to the chair again. The laughter, too, kept bubbling up inside me—great wholesome laughter that shook me like gusts of wind—so that even my terror almost made me laugh. Oh, but I may tell you, Dr. Silence, it was altogether vile, that mixture of fear and laughter, altogether vile!

“Yes, terror; because even though the thing that woke me seemed to be gone, the memory of it still scared me, and I collapsed into a chair. Then I locked the door and tried to talk myself down, but the drug made my movements so slow that it took me five minutes to get to the door and another five to return to the chair. The laughter also kept bubbling up inside me—big, genuine laughter that shook me like gusts of wind—so that even my fear almost made me laugh. Oh, but I have to tell you, Dr. Silence, it was completely awful, that mix of fear and laughter, completely awful!”

“Then, all at once, the things in the room again presented their funny side to me and set me off laughing more furiously than ever. The bookcase was ludicrous, the arm-chair a perfect clown, the way the clock looked at me on the mantelpiece too comic for words; the arrangement of papers and inkstand on the desk tickled me till I roared and shook and held my sides and the tears streamed down my cheeks. And that footstool! Oh, that absurd footstool!”

“Then, all of a sudden, everything in the room became hilarious again, and I couldn't help but laugh harder than ever. The bookcase was ridiculous, the armchair a complete clown, and the way the clock on the mantelpiece looked at me was too funny to describe; the way the papers and inkstand were arranged on the desk cracked me up until I was roaring with laughter, shaking, holding my sides, and tears were streaming down my cheeks. And that footstool! Oh, that silly footstool!”

He lay back in his chair, laughing to himself and holding up his hands at the thought of it, and at the sight of him Dr. Silence laughed too.

He leaned back in his chair, chuckling to himself and raising his hands at the thought of it, and seeing him, Dr. Silence laughed as well.

“Go on, please,” he said, “I quite understand. I know something myself of the hashish laughter.”

“Go ahead, please,” he said, “I totally get it. I know a bit about the hashish laughter myself.”

The author pulled himself together and resumed, his face growing quickly grave again.

The author gathered himself and continued, his expression quickly turning serious again.

“So, you see, side by side with this extravagant, apparently causeless merriment, there was also an extravagant, apparently causeless terror. The drug produced the laughter, I knew; but what brought in the terror I could not imagine. Everywhere behind the fun lay the fear. It was terror masked by cap and bells; and I became the playground for two opposing emotions, armed and fighting to the death. Gradually, then, the impression grew in me that this fear was caused by the invasion—so you called it just now—of the ‘person’ who had wakened me: she was utterly evil; inimical to my soul, or at least to all in me that wished for good. There I stood, sweating and trembling, laughing at everything in the room, yet all the while with this white terror mastering my heart. And this creature was putting—putting her——”

“So, you see, alongside this wild, seemingly pointless joy, there was also an overwhelming, seemingly pointless fear. I knew the drug caused the laughter, but I couldn't figure out where the fear came from. Everywhere behind the fun was a sense of dread. It was terror disguised as merriment, and I became a battleground for two conflicting emotions, each fighting for dominance. Gradually, I started to feel that this fear was triggered by the intrusion—like you mentioned just now—of the 'person' who had awakened me: she was completely evil; hostile to my soul, or at least to everything in me that wanted good. There I stood, sweating and shaking, laughing at everything in the room, yet deep down this paralyzing fear was taking over my heart. And this creature was putting—putting her——”

He hesitated again, using his handkerchief freely.

He hesitated again, wiping his brow with his handkerchief.

“Putting what?”

“Putting what?”

“——putting ideas into my mind,” he went on, glancing nervously about the room. “Actually tapping my thought-stream so as to switch off the usual current and inject her own. How mad that sounds! I know it, but it’s true. It’s the only way I can express it. Moreover, while the operation terrified me, the skill with which it was accomplished filled me afresh with laughter at the clumsiness of men by comparison. Our ignorant, bungling methods of teaching the minds of others, of inculcating ideas, and so on, overwhelmed me with laughter when I understood this superior and diabolical method. Yet my laughter seemed hollow and ghastly, and ideas of evil and tragedy trod close upon the heels of the comic. Oh, doctor, I tell you again, it was unnerving!”

“——putting ideas into my head,” he continued, looking nervously around the room. “Actually tapping into my thought process to shut off the usual flow and inject her own. How insane that sounds! I know it, but it’s true. It’s the only way I can describe it. Plus, while the whole thing scared me, the way it was done made me laugh at how clumsy humans are in comparison. Our ignorant, clumsy ways of teaching others and instilling ideas struck me as ridiculous when I realized this superior and sinister method. Yet my laughter felt empty and eerie, and thoughts of evil and tragedy were close behind the humor. Oh, doctor, I’m telling you again, it was unsettling!”

John Silence sat with his head thrust forward to catch every word of the story which the other continued to pour out in nervous, jerky sentences and lowered voice.

John Silence leaned forward, eagerly catching every word of the story that the other person continued to spill out in nervous, choppy sentences and a quiet voice.

“You saw nothing—no one—all this time?” he asked.

“You didn’t see anything—no one—this whole time?” he asked.

“Not with my eyes. There was no visual hallucination. But in my mind there began to grow the vivid picture of a woman—large, dark-skinned, with white teeth and masculine features, and one eye—the left—so drooping as to appear almost closed. Oh, such a face——!”

“Not with my eyes. There was no visual hallucination. But in my mind, a vivid picture started to form of a woman—tall, dark-skinned, with white teeth and strong features, and one eye—the left—so droopy that it looked almost closed. Oh, what a face—!”

“A face you would recognise again?”

“A face you would recognize again?”

Pender laughed dreadfully.

Pender laughed inappropriately.

“I wish I could forget it,” he whispered, “I only wish I could forget it!” Then he sat forward in his chair suddenly, and grasped the doctor’s hand with an emotional gesture.

“I wish I could forget it,” he whispered, “I just wish I could forget it!” Then he suddenly leaned forward in his chair and grabbed the doctor’s hand with an emotional gesture.

“I must tell you how grateful I am for your patience and sympathy,” he cried, with a tremor in his voice, “and—that you do not think me mad. I have told no one else a quarter of all this, and the mere freedom of speech—the relief of sharing my affliction with another—has helped me already more than I can possibly say.”

“I have to tell you how thankful I am for your patience and understanding,” he exclaimed, his voice shaking, “and—that you don’t think I’m crazy. I haven’t told anyone else even a fraction of this, and just being able to talk about it—the relief of sharing my struggles with someone else—has already helped me more than I can express.”

Dr. Silence pressed his hand and looked steadily into the frightened eyes. His voice was very gentle when he replied.

Dr. Silence took his hand and looked intently into the scared eyes. His voice was incredibly gentle when he responded.

“Your case, you know, is very singular, but of absorbing interest to me,” he said, “for it threatens, not your physical existence, but the temple of your psychical existence—the inner life. Your mind would not be permanently affected here and now, in this world; but in the existence after the body is left behind, you might wake up with your spirit so twisted, so distorted, so befouled, that you would be spiritually insane—a far more radical condition than merely being insane here.”

“Your situation is quite unique, but it fascinates me,” he said, “because it doesn’t just threaten your physical existence, but the core of your mental existence—the inner life. Your mind wouldn’t be permanently damaged here and now, in this world; but in the afterlife, once your body is gone, you could awaken with your spirit so twisted, so distorted, so stained, that you would be spiritually insane—a much more severe condition than simply being insane here.”

There came a strange hush over the room, and between the two men sitting there facing one another.

There was an eerie silence in the room, hanging between the two men sitting across from each other.

“Do you really mean—Good Lord!” stammered the author as soon as he could find his tongue.

“Do you really mean—Oh my God!” stammered the author as soon as he could find his voice.

“What I mean in detail will keep till a little later, and I need only say now that I should not have spoken in this way unless I were quite positive of being able to help you. Oh, there’s no doubt as to that, believe me. In the first place, I am very familiar with the workings of this extraordinary drug, this drug which has had the chance effect of opening you up to the forces of another region; and, in the second, I have a firm belief in the reality of super-sensuous occurrences as well as considerable knowledge of psychic processes acquired by long and painful experiment. The rest is, or should be, merely sympathetic treatment and practical application. The hashish has partially opened another world to you by increasing your rate of psychical vibration, and thus rendering you abnormally sensitive. Ancient forces attached to this house have attacked you. For the moment I am only puzzled as to their precise nature; for were they of an ordinary character, I should myself be psychic enough to feel them. Yet I am conscious of feeling nothing as yet. But now, please continue, Mr. Pender, and tell me the rest of your wonderful story; and when you have finished, I will talk about the means of cure.”

“What I mean in detail will hold off until later, and I just need to say now that I wouldn't have spoken this way unless I was completely certain I could help you. There's no doubt about that, trust me. First of all, I am very familiar with how this extraordinary drug works, this drug that has unexpectedly opened you up to the forces of another realm; and secondly, I have a strong belief in the reality of super-sensory occurrences, along with substantial knowledge of psychic processes gained through long and difficult experimentation. The rest is, or at least should be, simply a matter of sympathetic treatment and practical application. The hashish has partially opened another world to you by increasing your rate of psychic vibration, making you unusually sensitive. Ancient forces connected to this house have targeted you. For now, I’m only puzzled about their exact nature; if they were ordinary, I would be psychic enough to sense them myself. Yet I don't feel anything so far. But now, please continue, Mr. Pender, and tell me the rest of your amazing story; and when you’re done, I’ll discuss the means of cure.”

Pender shifted his chair a little closer to the friendly doctor and then went on in the same nervous voice with his narrative.

Pender moved his chair closer to the friendly doctor and continued his story, still speaking in a nervous tone.

“After making some notes of my impressions I finally got upstairs again to bed. It was four o’clock in the morning. I laughed all the way up—at the grotesque banisters, the droll physiognomy of the staircase window, the burlesque grouping of the furniture, and the memory of that outrageous footstool in the room below; but nothing more happened to alarm or disturb me, and I woke late in the morning after a dreamless sleep, none the worse for my experiment except for a slight headache and a coldness of the extremities due to lowered circulation.”

“After jotting down some notes on my impressions, I finally made it back upstairs to bed. It was four in the morning. I laughed all the way up—at the bizarre banisters, the funny shape of the staircase window, the ridiculous arrangement of the furniture, and the memory of that ridiculous footstool in the room below; but nothing else happened to scare or bother me, and I woke up late in the morning after a dreamless sleep, not worse for my experiment except for a slight headache and cold extremities from poor circulation.”

“Fear gone, too?” asked the doctor.

“Is the fear gone, too?” asked the doctor.

“I seemed to have forgotten it, or at least ascribed it to mere nervousness. It’s reality had gone, anyhow for the time, and all that day I wrote and wrote and wrote. My sense of laughter seemed wonderfully quickened and my characters acted without effort out of the heart of true humour. I was exceedingly pleased with this result of my experiment But when the stenographer had taken her departure and I came to read over the pages she had typed out, I recalled her sudden glances of surprise and the odd way she had looked up at me while I was dictating. I was amazed at what I read and could hardly believe I had uttered it.”

“I seemed to have forgotten it, or at least blamed it on simple nervousness. Its reality was gone, at least for the time being, and all that day I just kept writing and writing. My sense of humor felt incredibly heightened, and my characters acted effortlessly from a place of true wit. I was really pleased with the outcome of my experiment. But when the stenographer left and I sat down to read the pages she had typed, I remembered her quick looks of surprise and the strange way she had glanced up at me while I was dictating. I was stunned by what I read and could hardly believe I had actually said it.”

“And why?”

"Why?"

“It was so distorted. The words, indeed, were mine so far as I could remember, but the meanings seemed strange. It frightened me. The sense was so altered. At the very places where my characters were intended to tickle the ribs, only curious emotions of sinister amusement resulted. Dreadful innuendoes had managed to creep into the phrases. There was laughter of a kind, but it was bizarre, horrible, distressing; and my attempt at analysis only increased my dismay. The story, as it read then, made me shudder, for by virtue of these slight changes it had come somehow to hold the soul of horror, of horror disguised as merriment. The framework of humour was there, if you understand me, but the characters had turned sinister, and their laughter was evil.”

“It was so twisted. The words were mine, as far as I could remember, but the meanings felt off. It scared me. The sense was completely changed. In the spots where I meant for my characters to be funny, only strange feelings of unsettling amusement came through. Terrible implications had somehow snuck into the phrases. There was a kind of laughter, but it was weird, horrifying, distressing; and my attempts to analyze it only made me more upset. The story, as it read then, made me shudder because, with these slight changes, it had taken on the essence of horror, horror masked as fun. The structure of humor was there, if you get my drift, but the characters had taken a dark turn, and their laughter was menacing.”

“Can you show me this writing?”

“Can you show me this writing?”

The author shook his head.

The author shook his head.

“I destroyed it,” he whispered. “But, in the end, though of course much perturbed about it, I persuaded myself that it was due to some after-effect of the drug, a sort of reaction that gave a twist to my mind and made me read macabre interpretations into words and situations that did not properly hold them.”

“I destroyed it,” he whispered. “But, in the end, although I was really bothered about it, I convinced myself that it was just an after-effect of the drug, a kind of reaction that warped my thinking and made me see sinister meanings in words and situations that didn’t actually have them.”

“And, meanwhile, did the presence of this person leave you?”

“And, in the meantime, did this person's presence leave you?”

“No; that stayed more or less. When my mind was actively employed I forgot it, but when idle, dreaming, or doing nothing in particular, there she was beside me, influencing my mind horribly——”

“No; that stayed pretty much the same. When I was focused on something, I forgot about it, but when I was idle, daydreaming, or just not doing anything in particular, there she was next to me, affecting my thoughts in a really unsettling way——”

“In what way, precisely?” interrupted the doctor.

“In what way, exactly?” interrupted the doctor.

“Evil, scheming thoughts came to me, visions of crime, hateful pictures of wickedness, and the kind of bad imagination that so far has been foreign, indeed impossible, to my normal nature——”

“Evil, scheming thoughts filled my mind, visions of crime, hateful images of wickedness, and a dark imagination that until now has felt completely foreign, even impossible, to my usual self——”

“The pressure of the Dark Powers upon the personality,” murmured the doctor, making a quick note.

“The pressure of the Dark Powers on the personality,” murmured the doctor, making a quick note.

“Eh? I didn’t quite catch——”

"Sorry? I didn’t quite catch——"

“Pray, go on. I am merely making notes; you shall know their purport fully later.”

“Please, continue. I’m just taking notes; you’ll understand what they mean fully later.”

“Even when my wife returned I was still aware of this Presence in the house; it associated itself with my inner personality in most intimate fashion; and outwardly I always felt oddly constrained to be polite and respectful towards it—to open doors, provide chairs and hold myself carefully deferential when it was about. It became very compelling at last, and, if I failed in any little particular, I seemed to know that it pursued me about the house, from one room to another, haunting my very soul in its inmost abode. It certainly came before my wife so far as my attentions were concerned.

“Even when my wife was back, I was still aware of this Presence in the house; it connected with my inner self in the closest way. Outwardly, I always felt strangely obligated to be polite and respectful toward it—to open doors, offer chairs, and carry myself with careful deference when it was around. It became quite intense in the end, and if I slipped up in any little way, I felt like it followed me around the house, from one room to another, haunting my very soul in its deepest part. It definitely took priority over my wife when it came to my attentions.”

“But, let me first finish the story of my experimental dose, for I took it again the third night, and underwent a very similar experience, delayed like the first in coming, and then carrying me off my feet when it did come with a rush of this false demon-laughter. This time, however, there was a reversal of the changed scale of space and time; it shortened, instead of lengthened, so that I dressed and got downstairs in about twenty seconds, and the couple of hours I stayed and worked in the study passed literally like a period of ten minutes.”

“But let me finish the story about my experiment with the dose. I took it again on the third night and had a very similar experience, delayed like the first time before hitting me with a rush of this fake demon-laughter. This time, though, there was a reversal—A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0—of the altered sense of space and time; it shortened instead of lengthening, so I got dressed and made it downstairs in about twenty seconds, and the couple of hours I spent working in the study felt like just ten minutes.”

“That is often true of an overdose,” interjected the doctor, “and you may go a mile in a few minutes, or a few yards in a quarter of an hour. It is quite incomprehensible to those who have never experienced it, and is a curious proof that time and space are merely forms of thought.”

“That's often the case with an overdose,” the doctor said, “and you can cover a mile in just a few minutes, or only a few yards in fifteen minutes. It's completely baffling to those who haven't been through it, and it serves as an interesting reminder that time and space are just constructs of our minds.”

“This time,” Pender went on, talking more and more rapidly in his excitement, “another extraordinary effect came to me, and I experienced a curious changing of the senses, so that I perceived external things through one large main sense-channel instead of through the five divisions known as sight, smell, touch, and so forth. You will, I know, understand me when I tell you that I heard sights and saw sounds. No language can make this comprehensible, of course, and I can only say, for instance, that the striking of the clock I saw as a visible picture in the air before me. I saw the sounds of the tinkling bell. And in precisely the same way I heard the colours in the room, especially the colours of those books in the shelf behind you. Those red bindings I heard in deep sounds, and the yellow covers of the French bindings next to them made a shrill, piercing note not unlike the chattering of starlings. That brown bookcase muttered, and those green curtains opposite kept up a constant sort of rippling sound like the lower notes of a wood-horn. But I only was conscious of these sounds when I looked steadily at the different objects, and thought about them. The room, you understand, was not full of a chorus of notes; but when I concentrated my mind upon a colour, I heard, as well as saw, it.”

“This time,” Pender continued, speaking faster and faster in his excitement, “another amazing effect happened to me, and I experienced a weird shift in my senses, where I perceived external things through one main sense instead of the five known as sight, smell, touch, and so on. You’ll understand what I mean when I say that I heard sights and saw sounds. No words can truly explain this, but I can say, for example, that I saw the clock striking as a visible picture in the air before me. I could see the sounds of the tinkling bell. And in exactly the same way, I heard the colors in the room, especially the colors of the books on the shelf behind you. Those red bindings sounded deep, and the yellow covers of the French books next to them produced a shrill, piercing note not unlike the chattering of starlings. That brown bookcase seemed to mutter, and those green curtains across the way made a constant soft rippling sound like the lower notes of a wood horn. But I only became aware of these sounds when I focused my gaze on the different objects and thought about them. The room, you see, wasn’t filled with a chorus of notes; but when I concentrated on a color, I heard it as well as saw it.”

“That is a known, though rarely-obtained, effect of Cannabis indica,” observed the doctor. “And it provoked laughter again, did it?”

“That's a well-known, though rarely seen, effect of Cannabis indica,” the doctor noted. “And it made you laugh again, did it?”

“Only the muttering of the cupboard-bookcase made me laugh. It was so like a great animal trying to get itself noticed, and made me think of a performing bear—which is full of a kind of pathetic humour, you know. But this mingling of the senses produced no confusion in my brain. On the contrary, I was unusually clear-headed and experienced an intensification of consciousness, and felt marvellously alive and keen-minded.

“Only the muttering of the cupboard-bookcase made me laugh. It was so like a large animal trying to get noticed, and it reminded me of a performing bear—which has a sort of sad humor, you know. But this blending of the senses didn’t confuse my mind. On the contrary, I felt unusually sharp and experienced a heightened awareness, feeling wonderfully alive and alert.”

“Moreover, when I took up a pencil in obedience to an impulse to sketch—a talent not normally mine—I found that I could draw nothing but heads, nothing, in fact, but one head—always the same—the head of a dark-skinned woman, with huge and terrible features and a very drooping left eye; and so well drawn, too, that I was amazed, as you may imagine——”

“Also, when I picked up a pencil because I felt the urge to sketch—something I don’t usually do—I realized I could only draw heads, or rather, just one head—always the same—of a dark-skinned woman with striking and intense features and a very droopy left eye; and it was drawn so well that I was surprised, as you can imagine——”

“And the expression of the face——?”

“And what about the expression on the face—?”

Pender hesitated a moment for words, casting about with his hands in the air and hunching his shoulders. A perceptible shudder ran over him.

Pender paused for a moment, searching for the right words, waving his hands in the air and shrugging his shoulders. A noticeable shiver swept through him.

“What I can only describe as—blackness,” he replied in a low tone; “the face of a dark and evil soul.”

“What I can only describe as—darkness,” he replied quietly; “the face of a wicked and evil soul.”

“You destroyed that, too?” queried the doctor sharply.

“You broke that too?” asked the doctor sharply.

“No; I have kept the drawings,” he said, with a laugh, and rose to get them from a drawer in the writing-desk behind him.

“No; I have kept the drawings,” he said with a laugh, and got up to retrieve them from a drawer in the writing desk behind him.

“Here is all that remains of the pictures, you see,” he added, pushing a number of loose sheets under the doctor’s eyes; “nothing but a few scrawly lines. That’s all I found the next morning. I had really drawn no heads at all—nothing but those lines and blots and wriggles. The pictures were entirely subjective, and existed only in my mind which constructed them out of a few wild strokes of the pen. Like the altered scale of space and time it was a complete delusion. These all passed, of course, with the passing of the drug’s effects. But the other thing did not pass. I mean, the presence of that Dark Soul remained with me. It is here still. It is real. I don’t know how I can escape from it.”

“Here’s all that’s left of the drawings, you see,” he said, sliding a bunch of loose sheets in front of the doctor; “just some messy lines. That’s all I found the next morning. I hadn’t really drawn any faces at all—just those lines and smudges and squiggles. The pictures were completely subjective and only existed in my mind, which created them out of a few wild pen strokes. Just like the warped sense of space and time, it was an absolute illusion. All that faded, of course, as the effects of the drug wore off. But the other thing didn’t fade. I mean, the presence of that Dark Soul has stayed with me. It’s still here. It’s real. I don’t know how I can get away from it.”

“It is attached to the house, not to you personally. You must leave the house.”

“It’s connected to the house, not you personally. You have to leave the house.”

“Yes. Only I cannot afford to leave the house, for my work is my sole means of support, and—well, you see, since this change I cannot even write. They are horrible, these mirthless tales I now write, with their mockery of laughter, their diabolical suggestion. Horrible! I shall go mad if this continues.”

“Yes. But I can’t afford to leave the house since my job is my only source of income, and—well, you see, ever since this change, I can’t even write. The stories I’m writing now are terrible, filled with joylessness, and they mock laughter with a sinister twist. It’s awful! I’ll go crazy if this keeps up.”

He screwed his face up and looked about the room as though he expected to see some haunting shape.

He scrunched up his face and glanced around the room as if he was expecting to see some ghostly figure.

“The influence in this house, induced by my experiment, has killed in a flash, in a sudden stroke, the sources of my humour, and, though I still go on writing funny tales—I have a certain name, you know—my inspiration has dried up, and much of what I write I have to burn—yes, doctor, to burn, before any one sees it.”

“The impact of my experiment in this house has quickly snuffed out my sense of humor. Even though I continue to write funny stories—I have a bit of a reputation, you know—my creativity has run dry, and I end up having to burn a lot of what I write—yes, doctor, burn it—before anyone can see it.”

“As utterly alien to your own mind and personality?”

“As completely foreign to your own thoughts and personality?”

“Utterly! As though some one else had written it——”

“Totally! As if someone else had written it——”

“Ah!”

“Whoa!”

“And shocking!” He passed his hand over his eyes a moment and let the breath escape softly through his teeth. “Yet most damnably clever in the consummate way the vile suggestions are insinuated under cover of a kind of high drollery. My stenographer left me, of course—and I’ve been afraid to take another——”

“And shocking!” He rubbed his eyes for a moment and let out a soft sigh through his teeth. “Yet incredibly clever in the way the disgusting ideas are subtly suggested under the guise of a sort of high humor. My stenographer left me, of course—and I’ve been too scared to hire another——”

John Silence got up and began to walk about the room leisurely without speaking; he appeared to be examining the pictures on the wall and reading the names of the books lying about. Presently he paused on the hearthrug, with his back to the fire, and turned to look his patient quietly in the eyes. Pender’s face was grey and drawn; the hunted expression dominated it; the long recital had told upon him.

John Silence got up and started to stroll around the room casually without saying a word; he seemed to be looking at the pictures on the wall and reading the titles of the books scattered around. After a moment, he stopped on the hearthrug, with his back to the fire, and turned to look his patient calmly in the eyes. Pender’s face was pale and tense; the hunted look was all over it; the long story had taken its toll on him.

“Thank you, Mr. Pender,” he said, a curious glow showing about his fine, quiet face, “thank you for the sincerity and frankness of your account. But I think now there is nothing further I need ask you.” He indulged in a long scrutiny of the author’s haggard features, drawing purposely the man’s eyes to his own and then meeting them with a look of power and confidence calculated to inspire even the feeblest soul with courage. “And, to begin with,” he added, smiling pleasantly, “let me assure you without delay that you need have no alarm, for you are no more insane or deluded than I myself am——”

“Thank you, Mr. Pender,” he said, a curious glow lighting up his fine, calm face, “thank you for your honesty and openness. But I think there’s nothing else I need to ask you now.” He took a long look at the author’s worn features, intentionally drawing the man’s gaze to his own and then meeting it with a look of strength and confidence meant to inspire courage even in the weakest person. “And to start off,” he added, smiling warmly, “let me reassure you right away that you have nothing to worry about because you are no more insane or deluded than I am—”

Pender heaved a deep sigh and tried to return the smile.

Pender let out a deep sigh and attempted to smile back.

“——and this is simply a case, so far as I can judge at present, of a very singular psychical invasion, and a very sinister one, too, if you perhaps understand what I mean——”

“——and this is just an example, as far as I can tell right now, of a very unusual psychological invasion, and a quite ominous one, too, if you get what I'm saying——”

“It’s an odd expression; you used it before, you know,” said the author wearily, yet eagerly listening to every word of the diagnosis, and deeply touched by the intelligent sympathy which did not at once indicate the lunatic asylum.

“It’s a strange expression; you’ve used it before, you know,” said the author, tired but eagerly listening to every word of the diagnosis, and deeply moved by the thoughtful sympathy that didn’t immediately suggest a mental hospital.

“Possibly,” returned the other, “and an odd affliction too, you’ll allow, yet one not unknown to the nations of antiquity, nor to those moderns, perhaps, who recognise the freedom of action under certain pathogenic conditions between this world and another.”

“Maybe,” replied the other, “and it's a strange condition too, you must admit, but it isn’t unfamiliar to the ancient nations, nor to some modern ones, perhaps, who understand the interaction between this world and another under certain pathogenic circumstances.”

“And you think,” asked Pender hastily, “that it is all primarily due to the Cannabis? There is nothing radically amiss with myself—nothing incurable, or——?”

“And you think,” asked Pender quickly, “that it’s all mainly because of the Cannabis? There’s nothing fundamentally wrong with me—nothing I can’t fix, or——?”

“Due entirely to the overdose,” Dr. Silence replied emphatically, “to the drug’s direct action upon your psychical being. It rendered you ultra-sensitive and made you respond to an increased rate of vibration. And, let me tell you, Mr. Pender, that your experiment might have had results far more dire. It has brought you into touch with a somewhat singular class of Invisible, but of one, I think, chiefly human in character. You might, however, just as easily have been drawn out of human range altogether, and the results of such a contingency would have been exceedingly terrible. Indeed, you would not now be here to tell the tale. I need not alarm you on that score, but mention it as a warning you will not misunderstand or underrate after what you have been through.

“Totally because of the overdose,” Dr. Silence answered firmly, “due to the drug’s direct effect on your mental state. It made you highly sensitive and caused you to react to a heightened frequency of vibrations. And let me tell you, Mr. Pender, your experiment could have led to much worse outcomes. It has connected you with a rather unique category of unseen beings, but one that I believe is mostly human in nature. However, you could just as easily have been pulled out of the human realm entirely, and the consequences of such a situation would have been extremely horrifying. In fact, you wouldn’t even be here to share your story. I don’t mean to scare you about this, but I mention it as a warning that you won’t misinterpret or take lightly after what you’ve experienced.”

“You look puzzled. You do not quite gather what I am driving at; and it is not to be expected that you should, for you, I suppose, are the nominal Christian with the nominal Christian’s lofty standard of ethics, and his utter ignorance of spiritual possibilities. Beyond a somewhat childish understanding of ‘spiritual wickedness in high places,’ you probably have no conception of what is possible once you break down the slender gulf that is mercifully fixed between you and that Outer World. But my studies and training have taken me far outside these orthodox trips, and I have made experiments that I could scarcely speak to you about in language that would be intelligible to you.”

“You look confused. You can’t quite understand what I’m getting at; and it’s not surprising, because you’re likely just a typical Christian with a typical Christian’s high moral standards, and complete ignorance of spiritual possibilities. Beyond a somewhat simplistic idea of ‘spiritual wickedness in high places,’ you probably have no idea of what’s possible once you break down the thin barrier that’s luckily set between you and that Outer World. But my studies and training have taken me far beyond these conventional paths, and I’ve conducted experiments that I could hardly explain to you in a way that would make sense to you.”

He paused a moment to note the breathless interest of Pender’s face and manner. Every word he uttered was calculated; he knew exactly the value and effect of the emotions he desired to waken in the heart of the afflicted being before him.

He took a moment to take in the eager look on Pender's face and in his actions. Every word he spoke was deliberate; he fully understood the impact and significance of the feelings he aimed to stir in the heart of the troubled person before him.

“And from certain knowledge I have gained through various experiences,” he continued calmly, “I can diagnose your case as I said before to be one of psychical invasion.”

“And from what I've learned through various experiences,” he continued calmly, “I can diagnose your situation, as I mentioned before, as one of psychical invasion.”

“And the nature of this—er—invasion?” stammered the bewildered writer of humorous tales.

“And what’s the nature of this—uh—invasion?” stuttered the confused writer of funny stories.

“There is no reason why I should not say at once that I do not yet quite know,” replied Dr. Silence. “I may first have to make one or two experiments——”

“There’s no reason why I shouldn’t say right away that I still don’t quite know,” replied Dr. Silence. “I might first have to run one or two experiments——”

“On me?” gasped Pender, catching his breath.

“On me?” Pender gasped, trying to catch his breath.

“Not exactly,” the doctor said, with a grave smile, “but with your assistance, perhaps. I shall want to test the conditions of the house—to ascertain, if possible, the character of the forces, of this strange personality that has been haunting you——”

“Not exactly,” the doctor said, with a serious smile, “but with your help, maybe. I need to check the house to figure out, if I can, the nature of the forces and this unusual presence that has been bothering you——”

“At present you have no idea exactly who—what—why——” asked the other in a wild flurry of interest, dread and amazement.

"Right now, you have no clue who—what—why——" the other person asked, a mix of curiosity, fear, and astonishment in their voice.

“I have a very good idea, but no proof rather,” returned the doctor. “The effects of the drug in altering the scale of time and space, and merging the senses have nothing primarily to do with the invasion. They come to any one who is fool enough to take an experimental dose. It is the other features of your case that are unusual. You see, you are now in touch with certain violent emotions, desires, purposes, still active in this house, that were produced in the past by some powerful and evil personality that lived here. How long ago, or why they still persist so forcibly, I cannot positively say. But I should judge that they are merely forces acting automatically with the momentum of their terrific original impetus.”

“I have a solid idea, but no proof,” the doctor replied. “The effects of the drug on altering time and space and blending the senses have nothing to do with the invasion itself. They can affect anyone who is reckless enough to take an experimental dose. It's the other aspects of your situation that are unusual. You see, you’re now connected to certain intense emotions, desires, and intentions that still linger in this house, created in the past by some powerful and malevolent personality that once lived here. I can’t say for sure how long ago that was or why they continue to persist so strongly. But I would guess that they are simply forces acting automatically with the momentum of their incredible original power.”

“Not directed by a living being, a conscious will, you mean?”

“Not guided by a living person, a conscious will, right?”

“Possibly not—but none the less dangerous on that account, and more difficult to deal with. I cannot explain to you in a few minutes the nature of such things, for you have not made the studies that would enable you to follow me; but I have reason to believe that on the dissolution at death of a human being, its forces may still persist and continue to act in a blind, unconscious fashion. As a rule they speedily dissipate themselves, but in the case of a very powerful personality they may last a long time. And, in some cases—of which I incline to think this is one—these forces may coalesce with certain non-human entities who thus continue their life indefinitely and increase their strength to an unbelievable degree. If the original personality was evil, the beings attracted to the left-over forces will also be evil. In this case, I think there has been an unusual and dreadful aggrandisement of the thoughts and purposes left behind long ago by a woman of consummate wickedness and great personal power of character and intellect. Now, do you begin to see what I am driving at a little?”

“Maybe not—but that doesn't make it any less dangerous or harder to handle. I can't explain this to you in a few minutes because you haven't studied it enough to understand; however, I believe that when a person dies, their energies might persist and keep acting in a blind, unconscious way. Usually, these energies fade away quickly, but in the case of a very strong personality, they can remain for a long time. In some instances—like I think this one is—these energies could merge with certain non-human entities that then continue their existence indefinitely and amplify their power to an unbelievable extent. If the original person was evil, the entities drawn to the remaining energies will also be evil. In this situation, I believe there has been an unusual and horrific enhancement of the thoughts and intentions left behind long ago by a woman of extreme wickedness and significant personal strength and intelligence. So, do you start to understand what I’m getting at?”

Pender stared fixedly at his companion, plain horror showing in his eyes. But he found nothing to say, and the doctor continued—

Pender stared intently at his companion, a look of pure horror in his eyes. But he couldn't find the words, and the doctor went on—

“In your case, predisposed by the action of the drug, you have experienced the rush of these forces in undiluted strength. They wholly obliterate in you the sense of humour, fancy, imagination,—all that makes for cheerfulness and hope. They seek, though perhaps automatically only, to oust your own thoughts and establish themselves in their place. You are the victim of a psychical invasion. At the same time, you have become clairvoyant in the true sense. You are also a clairvoyant victim.”

“In your situation, influenced by the drug, you have felt the full force of these powers in their purest form. They completely erase your sense of humor, creativity, and imagination—all the things that contribute to happiness and hope. They try, perhaps automatically, to push out your own thoughts and take over. You are experiencing a psychological invasion. At the same time, you have gained true clairvoyance. You are also a clairvoyant victim.”

Pender mopped his face and sighed. He left his chair and went over to the fireplace to warm himself.

Pender wiped his face and let out a sigh. He got up from his chair and walked over to the fireplace to warm up.

“You must think me a quack to talk like this, or a madman,” laughed Dr. Silence. “But never mind that. I have come to help you, and I can help you if you will do what I tell you. It is very simple: you must leave this house at once. Oh, never mind the difficulties; we will deal with those together. I can place another house at your disposal, or I would take the lease here off your hands, and later have it pulled down. Your case interests me greatly, and I mean to see you through, so that you have no anxiety, and can drop back into your old groove of work to-morrow! The drug has provided you, and therefore me, with a short-cut to a very interesting experience. I am grateful to you.”

“You probably think I’m a quack for saying all this, or maybe even crazy,” Dr. Silence laughed. “But forget about that. I’m here to help you, and I can, if you follow my instructions. It’s really easy: you need to leave this house right away. Don’t worry about the challenges; we’ll face them together. I can find you another place to stay, or I can take over the lease here and have it demolished later. Your situation really fascinates me, and I’m committed to seeing you through this, so you won’t have any worries and can get back to your usual routine of work tomorrow! The drug has given us, you and me, a shortcut to a really intriguing experience. I appreciate you.”

The author poked the fire vigorously, emotion rising in him like a tide. He glanced towards the door nervously.

The author prodded the fire energetically, emotions swelling inside him like a tide. He looked toward the door anxiously.

“There is no need to alarm your wife or to tell her the details of our conversation,” pursued the other quietly. “Let her know that you will soon be in possession again of your sense of humour and your health, and explain that I am lending you another house for six months. Meanwhile I may have the right to use this house for a night or two for my experiment. Is that understood between us?”

“There’s no need to worry your wife or to share the details of our conversation,” the other continued calmly. “Just let her know that you’ll soon regain your sense of humor and your health, and explain that I’m lending you another house for six months. In the meantime, I might need to use this house for a night or two for my experiment. Is that clear between us?”

“I can only thank you from the bottom of my heart,” stammered Pender, unable to find words to express his gratitude.

“I can only thank you from the bottom of my heart,” Pender stammered, struggling to find the right words to express his gratitude.

Then he hesitated for a moment, searching the doctor’s face anxiously.

Then he paused for a moment, anxiously searching the doctor's face.

“And your experiment with the house?” he said at length.

“And how's your experiment with the house going?” he said after a pause.

“Of the simplest character, my dear Mr. Pender. Although I am myself an artificially trained psychic, and consequently aware of the presence of discarnate entities as a rule, I have so far felt nothing here at all. This makes me sure that the forces acting here are of an unusual description. What I propose to do is to make an experiment with a view of drawing out this evil, coaxing it from its lair, so to speak, in order that it may exhaust itself through me and become dissipated for ever. I have already been inoculated,” he added; “I consider myself to be immune.”

“It's pretty straightforward, my dear Mr. Pender. Even though I’m a trained psychic and usually can sense the presence of spirits, I haven't felt anything here at all. This makes me believe that the forces at play are quite unusual. What I plan to do is conduct an experiment aimed at drawing out this negativity, coaxing it from its hiding place, so to speak, so that it can exhaust itself through me and be gone for good. I've already been prepared for this,” he added; “I think I’m immune.”

“Heavens above!” gasped the author, collapsing on to a chair.

“Heavens above!” gasped the author, collapsing onto a chair.

“Hell beneath! might be a more appropriate exclamation,” the doctor laughed. “But, seriously, Mr. Pender, this is what I propose to do—with your permission.”

“Hell below! might be a better way to put it,” the doctor chuckled. “But honestly, Mr. Pender, this is what I plan to do—with your okay.”

“Of course, of course,” cried the other, “you have my permission and my best wishes for success. I can see no possible objection, but——”

“Absolutely, absolutely,” exclaimed the other, “you have my permission and my best wishes for success. I can’t see any possible reason to object, but——”

“But what?”

"But why?"

“I pray to Heaven you will not undertake this experiment alone, will you?”

“I really hope you won't try this experiment by yourself, okay?”

“Oh dear, no; not alone.”

“Oh no, not alone.”

“You will take a companion with good nerves, and reliable in case of disaster, won’t you?”

“You'll choose a companion who can handle stress and is dependable in case something goes wrong, right?”

“I shall bring two companions,” the doctor said.

“I'll bring two friends,” the doctor said.

“Ah, that’s better. I feel easier. I am sure you must have among your acquaintances men who——”

“Ah, that's better. I feel more at ease. I'm sure you must know some guys who——”

“I shall not think of bringing men, Mr. Pender.”

“I’m not going to think about bringing men, Mr. Pender.”

The other looked up sharply.

The other looked up quickly.

“No, or women either; or children.”

“No, not women either; or children.”

“I don’t understand. Who will you bring, then?”

“I don’t get it. Who are you going to bring, then?”

“Animals,” explained the doctor, unable to prevent a smile at his companion’s expression of surprise—“two animals, a cat and a dog.”

“Animals,” the doctor explained, unable to stop himself from smiling at his companion’s surprised expression—“two animals, a cat and a dog.”

Pender stared as if his eyes would drop out upon the floor, and then led the way without another word into the adjoining room where his wife was awaiting them for tea.

Pender stared as if his eyes were about to pop out of his head, and then he silently led the way into the next room where his wife was waiting for them for tea.

II

A few days later the humorist and his wife, with minds greatly relieved, moved into a small furnished house placed at their free disposal in another part of London; and John Silence, intent upon his approaching experiment, made ready to spend a night in the empty house on the top of Putney Hill. Only two rooms were prepared for occupation: the study on the ground floor and the bedroom immediately above it; all other doors were to be locked, and no servant was to be left in the house. The motor had orders to call for him at nine o’clock the following morning.

A few days later, the comedian and his wife, feeling much better, moved into a small furnished house that was available to them in another part of London. John Silence, focused on his upcoming experiment, got ready to spend a night in the empty house at the top of Putney Hill. Only two rooms were set up for use: the study on the ground floor and the bedroom right above it. All other doors were to be locked, and no staff were to be left in the house. The car was scheduled to pick him up at nine o’clock the next morning.

And, meanwhile, his secretary had instructions to look up the past history and associations of the place, and learn everything he could concerning the character of former occupants, recent or remote.

And in the meantime, his secretary was tasked with researching the past history and connections of the place, gathering all the information possible about the character of previous occupants, whether recent or long ago.

The animals, by whose sensitiveness he intended to test any unusual conditions in the atmosphere of the building, Dr. Silence selected with care and judgment. He believed (and had already made curious experiments to prove it) that animals were more often, and more truly, clairvoyant than human beings. Many of them, he felt convinced, possessed powers of perception far superior to that mere keenness of the senses common to all dwellers in the wilds where the senses grow specially alert; they had what he termed “animal clairvoyance,” and from his experiments with horses, dogs, cats, and even birds, he had drawn certain deductions, which, however, need not be referred to in detail here.

The animals that Dr. Silence carefully chose to test for any unusual conditions in the building's atmosphere were selected with great attention and thought. He believed (and had already conducted interesting experiments to prove it) that animals were more often and more accurately clairvoyant than humans. He was convinced that many of them had a level of perception that was much greater than the simple sharpness of the senses typical of all creatures in the wild, where senses become particularly alert; they had what he called “animal clairvoyance.” From his experiments with horses, dogs, cats, and even birds, he had drawn certain conclusions, though there’s no need to go into those details here.

Cats, in particular, he believed, were almost continuously conscious of a larger field of vision, too detailed even for a photographic camera, and quite beyond the reach of normal human organs. He had, further, observed that while dogs were usually terrified in the presence of such phenomena, cats on the other hand were soothed and satisfied. They welcomed manifestations as something belonging peculiarly to their own region.

Cats, he believed, were almost always aware of a larger field of vision, too detailed even for a camera, and far beyond what normal human senses could perceive. He also noticed that while dogs were usually scared by such phenomena, cats, on the other hand, were calm and content. They embraced these occurrences as something that uniquely belonged to their territory.

He selected his animals, therefore, with wisdom so that they might afford a differing test, each in its own way, and that one should not merely communicate its own excitement to the other. He took a dog and a cat.

He chose his animals wisely so that each one would provide a unique test in its own way and not just pass on its own excitement to the other. He took a dog and a cat.

The cat he chose, now full grown, had lived with him since kittenhood, a kittenhood of perplexing sweetness and audacious mischief. Wayward it was and fanciful, ever playing its own mysterious games in the corners of the room, jumping at invisible nothings, leaping sideways into the air and falling with tiny mocassined feet on to another part of the carpet, yet with an air of dignified earnestness which showed that the performance was necessary to its own well-being, and not done merely to impress a stupid human audience. In the middle of elaborate washing it would look up, startled, as though to stare at the approach of some Invisible, cocking its little head sideways and putting out a velvet pad to inspect cautiously. Then it would get absent-minded, and stare with equal intentness in another direction (just to confuse the onlookers), and suddenly go on furiously washing its body again, but in quite a new place. Except for a white patch on its breast it was coal black. And its name was—Smoke.

The cat he chose, now fully grown, had been with him since it was a kitten, a time filled with charming sweetness and bold mischief. It was unpredictable and playful, always engaged in its own mysterious games in the corners of the room, jumping at invisible things, leaping sideways into the air, and landing softly on another part of the carpet, all while maintaining a dignified seriousness that suggested the performances were essential for its well-being, not just for entertaining a clueless human. In the midst of a detailed grooming session, it would pause, startled, as if sensing the presence of something unseen, tilting its little head to the side and extending a soft paw to investigate cautiously. Then it would become distracted, staring intently in another direction (just to confuse anyone watching), and suddenly resume its vigorous grooming, but in a completely new spot. Aside from a white patch on its chest, it was completely black. And its name was—Smoke.

“Smoke” described its temperament as well as its appearance. Its movements, its individuality, its posing as a little furry mass of concealed mysteries, its elfin-like elusiveness, all combined to justify its name; and a subtle painter might have pictured it as a wisp of floating smoke, the fire below betraying itself at two points only—the glowing eyes.

“Smoke” described both its mood and its looks. Its movements, its distinct personality, its presence as a small furry bundle of hidden secrets, and its almost magical elusive quality all contributed to its name; a talented artist might have portrayed it as a wisp of floating smoke, with the fire underneath revealing itself in only two places—the glowing eyes.

All its forces ran to intelligence—secret intelligence, the wordless, incalculable intuition of the Cat. It was, indeed, the cat for the business in hand.

All its strengths focused on intelligence—secret intelligence, the unspoken, immeasurable instinct of the Cat. It was, indeed, the cat for the job at hand.

The selection of the dog was not so simple, for the doctor owned many; but after much deliberation he chose a collie, called Flame from his yellow coat. True, it was a trifle old, and stiff in the joints, and even beginning to grow deaf, but, on the other hand, it was a very particular friend of Smoke’s, and had fathered it from kittenhood upwards so that a subtle understanding existed between them. It was this that turned the balance in its favour, this and its courage. Moreover, though good-tempered, it was a terrible fighter, and its anger when provoked by a righteous cause was a fury of fire, and irresistible.

Choosing a dog wasn't easy since the doctor had many to pick from; but after a lot of thought, he decided on a collie named Flame because of his yellow coat. Admittedly, Flame was a bit old, stiff in the joints, and starting to go deaf, but he was also a good friend of Smoke's and had looked after him since he was a kitten, creating a deep bond between them. This connection, along with Flame's bravery, tipped the scales in his favor. Plus, while he had a good temperament, he was an incredible fighter, and his rage when provoked for a just cause was like a raging fire, absolutely unstoppable.

It had come to him quite young, straight from the shepherd, with the air of the hills yet in its nostrils, and was then little more than skin and bones and teeth. For a collie it was sturdily built, its nose blunter than most, its yellow hair stiff rather than silky, and it had full eyes, unlike the slit eyes of its breed. Only its master could touch it, for it ignored strangers, and despised their pattings—when any dared to pat it. There was something patriarchal about the old beast. He was in earnest, and went through life with tremendous energy and big things in view, as though he had the reputation of his whole race to uphold. And to watch him fighting against odds was to understand why he was terrible.

It had come to him when he was still quite young, straight from the shepherd, with the scent of the hills still fresh in its nostrils. At that time, it was just skin, bones, and teeth. For a collie, it was very sturdy, with a nose that was broader than usual, its yellow fur more stiff than silky, and it had large eyes, unlike the narrow eyes typical of its breed. Only its owner could approach it, as it ignored strangers and rejected their attempts to pet it—when anyone dared to try. There was something very authoritative about the old dog. He was serious and lived life with immense energy and grand ambitions, as if he were upholding the reputation of his entire breed. Watching him struggle against challenges made it clear why he was so formidable.

In his relations with Smoke he was always absurdly gentle; also he was fatherly; and at the same time betrayed a certain diffidence or shyness. He recognised that Smoke called for strong yet respectful management. The cat’s circuitous methods puzzled him, and his elaborate pretences perhaps shocked the dog’s liking for direct, undisguised action. Yet, while he failed to comprehend these tortuous feline mysteries, he was never contemptuous or condescending; and he presided over the safety of his furry black friend somewhat as a father, loving but intuitive, might superintend the vagaries of a wayward and talented child. And, in return, Smoke rewarded him with exhibitions of fascinating and audacious mischief.

In his relationship with Smoke, he was always absurdly gentle; he was also fatherly, while at the same time showing a certain shyness. He understood that Smoke needed strong but respectful management. The cat’s roundabout ways confused him, and his elaborate tricks perhaps startled the dog’s preference for straightforward, honest action. Yet, even though he couldn’t grasp these complicated feline mysteries, he was never disrespectful or condescending; he looked after the safety of his furry black friend much like a loving but instinctive father might oversee the whims of a wayward and talented child. In return, Smoke treated him to displays of intriguing and daring mischief.

And these brief descriptions of their characters are necessary for the proper understanding of what subsequently took place.

And these short descriptions of their personalities are essential for understanding what happened next.

With Smoke sleeping in the folds of his fur coat, and the collie lying watchful on the seat opposite, John Silence went down in his motor after dinner on the night of November 15th.

With Smoke curled up in his fur coat and the collie keeping a watchful eye on the seat across from him, John Silence drove down in his car after dinner on the night of November 15th.

And the fog was so dense that they were obliged to travel at quarter speed the entire way.

And the fog was so thick that they had to go at a quarter of their usual speed the whole time.


It was after ten o’clock when he dismissed the motor and entered the dingy little house with the latchkey provided by Pender. He found the hall gas turned low, and a fire in the study. Books and food had also been placed ready by the servant according to instructions. Coils of fog rushed in after him through the opened door and filled the hall and passage with its cold discomfort.

It was after ten o’clock when he shut off the car and walked into the shabby little house using the key Pender gave him. He found the hallway gaslight turned down low and a fire going in the study. Books and food had also been set out by the servant as instructed. Chilly coils of fog poured in behind him through the open door, filling the hallway and passage with an uncomfortable cold.

The first thing Dr. Silence did was to lock up Smoke in the study with a saucer of milk before the fire, and then make a search of the house with Flame. The dog ran cheerfully behind him all the way while he tried the doors of the other rooms to make sure they were locked. He nosed about into corners and made little excursions on his own account. His manner was expectant. He knew there must be something unusual about the proceeding, because it was contrary to the habits of his whole life not to be asleep at this hour on the mat in front of the fire. He kept looking up into his master’s face, as door after door was tried, with an expression of intelligent sympathy, but at the same time a certain air of disapproval. Yet everything his master did was good in his eyes, and he betrayed as little impatience as possible with all this unnecessary journeying to and fro. If the doctor was pleased to play this sort of game at such an hour of the night, it was surely not for him to object. So he played it too; and was very busy and earnest about it into the bargain.

The first thing Dr. Silence did was lock up Smoke in the study with a saucer of milk in front of the fire, and then he searched the house with Flame. The dog happily followed him as he checked the other rooms to make sure they were locked. He sniffed around corners and made little explorations on his own. He seemed expectant; he knew something unusual was going on because it was unlike him not to be asleep at this hour on the mat in front of the fire. He kept looking up at his master’s face as door after door was checked, showing an expression of intelligent sympathy, but also a hint of disapproval. Yet everything his master did seemed great to him, and he showed very little impatience with all this needless moving back and forth. If the doctor wanted to play this kind of game at such a late hour, it wasn’t for him to complain. So he joined in; and he was very busy and serious about it too.

After an uneventful search they came down again to the study, and here Dr. Silence discovered Smoke washing his face calmly in front of the fire. The saucer of milk was licked dry and clean; the preliminary examination that cats always make in new surroundings had evidently been satisfactorily concluded. He drew an arm-chair up to the fire, stirred the coals into a blaze, arranged the table and lamp to his satisfaction for reading, and then prepared surreptitiously to watch the animals. He wished to observe them carefully without their being aware of it.

After a boring search, they came back down to the study, where Dr. Silence found Smoke calmly washing his face in front of the fire. The saucer of milk was completely licked clean; the usual inspection that cats do in new places had clearly been wrapped up well. He pulled an armchair closer to the fire, stoked the coals into a bright flame, set up the table and lamp just right for reading, and then quietly got ready to watch the animals. He wanted to observe them carefully without them knowing.

Now, in spite of their respective ages, it was the regular custom of these two to play together every night before sleep. Smoke always made the advances, beginning with grave impudence to pat the dog’s tail, and Flame played cumbrously, with condescension. It was his duty, rather than pleasure; he was glad when it was over, and sometimes he was very determined and refused to play at all.

Now, despite their ages, it was a regular thing for these two to play together every night before going to sleep. Smoke always took the initiative, starting off by playfully swatting the dog’s tail, while Flame played awkwardly, almost like he was doing it out of obligation. It was more of a duty for him than a joy; he felt relieved when it ended, and there were times he was quite stubborn and refused to play at all.

And this night was one of the occasions on which he was firm.

And tonight was one of those times when he stood his ground.

The doctor, looking cautiously over the top of his book, watched the cat begin the performance. It started by gazing with an innocent expression at the dog where he lay with nose on paws and eyes wide open in the middle of the floor. Then it got up and made as though it meant to walk to the door, going deliberately and very softly. Flame’s eyes followed it until it was beyond the range of sight, and then the cat turned sharply and began patting his tail tentatively with one paw. The tail moved slightly in reply, and Smoke changed paws and tapped it again. The dog, however, did not rise to play as was his wont, and the cat fell to patting it briskly with both paws. Flame still lay motionless.

The doctor, cautiously peeking over the top of his book, watched the cat start its show. It began by staring at the dog, who lay with his nose on his paws and eyes wide open in the middle of the floor, looking innocent. Then it got up and pretended to walk to the door, moving slowly and quietly. Flame’s eyes followed it until it was out of sight, then the cat suddenly turned and started tapping its tail gently with one paw. The tail twitched slightly in response, and Smoke switched paws and tapped it again. However, the dog didn't get up to play like he usually did, so the cat began tapping it quickly with both paws. Flame remained still.

This puzzled and bored the cat, and it went round and stared hard into its friend’s face to see what was the matter. Perhaps some inarticulate message flashed from the dog’s eyes into its own little brain, making it understand that the programme for the night had better not begin with play. Perhaps it only realised that its friend was immovable. But, whatever the reason, its usual persistence thenceforward deserted it, and it made no further attempts at persuasion. Smoke yielded at once to the dog’s mood; it sat down where it was and began to wash.

This confused and bored the cat, so it went over and stared closely at its friend’s face to figure out what was going on. Maybe some unspoken message flickered from the dog’s eyes into its own little brain, making it realize that the night’s agenda shouldn’t start with playing. Maybe it just understood that its friend was not moving. But whatever the reason, the cat's usual determination faded away, and it stopped trying to persuade the dog. Smoke immediately adjusted to the dog’s mood; it sat down where it was and started to groom itself.

But the washing, the doctor noted, was by no means its real purpose; it only used it to mask something else; it stopped at the most busy and furious moments and began to stare about the room. Its thoughts wandered absurdly. It peered intently at the curtains; at the shadowy corners; at empty space above; leaving its body in curiously awkward positions for whole minutes together. Then it turned sharply and stared with a sudden signal of intelligence at the dog, and Flame at once rose somewhat stiffly to his feet and began to wander aimlessly and restlessly to and fro about the floor. Smoke followed him, padding quietly at his heels. Between them they made what seemed to be a deliberate search of the room.

But the washing, the doctor noted, wasn’t really its main purpose; it was just a way to cover up something else. It paused during the busiest and most chaotic moments and started to look around the room. Its thoughts wandered aimlessly. It stared closely at the curtains, the shadowy corners, and the empty space above, leaving its body in oddly uncomfortable positions for long stretches of time. Then it suddenly turned and looked with a flash of understanding at the dog, and Flame immediately stood up a bit stiffly to his feet and began to wander around the floor restlessly. Smoke followed him, quietly padding at his heels. Together, they seemed to be deliberately searching the room.

And, here, as he watched them, noting carefully every detail of the performance over the top of his book, yet making no effort to interfere, it seemed to the doctor that the first beginnings of a faint distress betrayed themselves in the collie, and in the cat the stirrings of a vague excitement.

And here, as he watched them, paying close attention to every detail of the performance while keeping his book open, and making no attempt to intervene, the doctor noticed what seemed like the first signs of slight distress in the collie, and in the cat, he sensed the hints of a vague excitement.

He observed them closely. The fog was thick in the air, and the tobacco smoke from his pipe added to its density; the furniture at the far end stood mistily, and where the shadows congregated in hanging clouds under the ceiling, it was difficult to see clearly at all; the lamplight only reached to a level of five feet from the floor, above which came layers of comparative darkness, so that the room appeared twice as lofty as it actually was. By means of the lamp and the fire, however, the carpet was everywhere clearly visible.

He watched them closely. The fog hung thick in the air, and the smoke from his pipe made it even denser; the furniture at the far end looked hazy, and where the shadows gathered in thick clouds under the ceiling, it was hard to see clearly at all; the lamplight only reached about five feet from the floor, above which there were layers of relative darkness, making the room seem twice as tall as it really was. Still, thanks to the lamp and the fire, the carpet was clearly visible everywhere.

The animals made their silent tour of the floor, sometimes the dog leading, sometimes the cat; occasionally they looked at one another as though exchanging signals; and once or twice, in spite of the limited space, he lost sight of one or other among the fog and the shadows. Their curiosity, it appeared to him, was something more than the excitement lurking in the unknown territory of a strange room; yet, so far, it was impossible to test this, and he purposely kept his mind quietly receptive lest the smallest mental excitement on his part should communicate itself to the animals and thus destroy the value of their independent behaviour.

The animals quietly explored the floor, sometimes the dog leading the way, sometimes the cat. Occasionally, they glanced at each other as if sharing signals, and once or twice, despite the cramped space, he lost track of one or the other in the fog and shadows. It seemed to him that their curiosity was more than just the thrill of exploring a strange room; however, so far, it was impossible to confirm this, and he deliberately kept his mind open to avoid any small mental stir on his part that might affect the animals and ruin the authenticity of their independent behavior.

They made a very thorough journey, leaving no piece of furniture unexamined, or unsmelt. Flame led the way, walking slowly with lowered head, and Smoke followed demurely at his heels, making a transparent pretence of not being interested, yet missing nothing. And, at length, they returned, the old collie first, and came to rest on the mat before the fire. Flame rested his muzzle on his master’s knee, smiling beatifically while he patted the yellow head and spoke his name; and Smoke, coming a little later, pretending he came by chance, looked from the empty saucer to his face, lapped up the milk when it was given him to the last drop, and then sprang upon his knees and curled round for the sleep it had fully earned and intended to enjoy.

They took a very thorough trip, leaving no piece of furniture unexamined or unsmelt. Flame led the way, walking slowly with his head down, while Smoke followed quietly at his heels, making a transparent show of not being interested but noticing everything. Eventually, they returned, with the old collie leading the way, and settled down on the mat in front of the fire. Flame rested his muzzle on his owner’s knee, looking content while he patted the yellow head and said his name; and Smoke, arriving a little later and pretending it was by chance, glanced from the empty saucer to his face, lapped up the milk until the last drop, and then jumped onto his knees and curled up for the sleep he had fully earned and was ready to enjoy.

Silence descended upon the room. Only the breathing of the dog upon the mat came through the deep stillness, like the pulse of time marking the minutes; and the steady drip, drip of the fog outside upon the window-ledges dismally testified to the inclemency of the night beyond. And the soft crashings of the coals as the fire settled down into the grate became less and less audible as the fire sank and the flames resigned their fierceness.

Silence fell over the room. The only sound was the dog breathing on the mat, cutting through the stillness like the ticking of a clock marking the minutes. The steady drip of fog outside onto the window ledges was a grim reminder of the bad weather beyond. The soft sound of the coals as the fire calmed down in the grate faded more and more as the fire dwindled and the flames lost their intensity.

It was now well after eleven o’clock, and Dr. Silence devoted himself again to his book. He read the words on the printed page and took in their meaning superficially, yet without starting into life the correlations of thought and suggestion that should accompany interesting reading. Underneath, all the while, his mental energies were absorbed in watching, listening, waiting for what might come. He was not over sanguine himself, yet he did not wish to be taken by surprise. Moreover, the animals, his sensitive barometers, had incontinently gone to sleep.

It was now well past eleven o’clock, and Dr. Silence focused once more on his book. He read the words on the page and grasped their meaning on a surface level, but he didn’t activate the connections of thought and suggestion that usually come with engaging reading. Underneath it all, his mind was fully engaged in observing, listening, and anticipating what might happen next. He wasn't overly optimistic, but he also didn't want to be caught off guard. Besides, the animals, his sensitive indicators, had promptly fallen asleep.

After reading a dozen pages, however, he realised that his mind was really occupied in reviewing the features of Pender’s extraordinary story, and that it was no longer necessary to steady his imagination by studying the dull paragraphs detailed in the pages before him. He laid down his book accordingly, and allowed his thoughts to dwell upon the features of the Case. Speculations as to the meaning, however, he rigorously suppressed, knowing that such thoughts would act upon his imagination like wind upon the glowing embers of a fire.

After reading a dozen pages, he realized that he was really focused on reflecting on the key points of Pender’s extraordinary story, and it was no longer necessary to ground his thoughts by analyzing the tedious paragraphs in front of him. He put down his book and let his mind linger on the details of the Case. However, he forcefully pushed away any speculations about its meaning, aware that such thoughts would influence his imagination like wind fanning the glowing embers of a fire.

As the night wore on the silence grew deeper and deeper, and only at rare intervals he heard the sound of wheels on the main road a hundred yards away, where the horses went at a walking pace owing to the density of the fog. The echo of pedestrian footsteps no longer reached him, the clamour of occasional voices no longer came down the side street The night, muffled by fog, shrouded by veils of ultimate mystery, hung about the haunted villa like a doom. Nothing in the house stirred. Stillness, in a thick blanket, lay over the upper storeys. Only the mist in the room grew more dense, he thought, and the damp cold more penetrating. Certainly, from time to time, he shivered.

As the night went on, the silence got deeper and deeper, and only occasionally did he hear the sounds of wheels on the main road a hundred yards away, where the horses moved at a slow pace because of the thick fog. The echoes of footsteps no longer reached him, and the noise of distant voices had faded away from the side street. The night, heavy with fog and wrapped in layers of deep mystery, hung over the haunted villa like an unwelcome fate. Nothing in the house moved. A thick stillness covered the upper floors. Only the mist in the room seemed to get denser, he thought, and the damp cold felt more intense. He definitely shivered from time to time.

The collie, now deep in slumber, moved occasionally,—grunted, sighed, or twitched his legs in dreams. Smoke lay on his knees, a pool of warm, black fur, only the closest observation detecting the movement of his sleek sides. It was difficult to distinguish exactly where his head and body joined in that circle of glistening hair; only a black satin nose and a tiny tip of pink tongue betrayed the secret.

The collie, now fast asleep, stirred occasionally—grunting, sighing, or twitching his legs in dreams. Smoke rested on his knees, a warm, black fur ball, with only close observation revealing the subtle movement of his sleek sides. It was hard to tell exactly where his head and body connected in that circle of shiny fur; only the black satin nose and a little hint of pink tongue gave away the secret.

Dr. Silence watched him, and felt comfortable. The collie’s breathing was soothing. The fire was well built, and would burn for another two hours without attention. He was not conscious of the least nervousness. He particularly wished to remain in his ordinary and normal state of mind, and to force nothing. If sleep came naturally, he would let it come—and even welcome it. The coldness of the room, when the fire died down later, would be sure to wake him again; and it would then be time enough to carry these sleeping barometers up to bed. From various psychic premonitions he knew quite well that the night would not pass without adventure; but he did not wish to force its arrival; and he wished to remain normal, and let the animals remain normal, so that, when it came, it would be unattended by excitement or by any straining of the attention. Many experiments had made him wise. And, for the rest, he had no fear.

Dr. Silence watched him and felt at ease. The collie’s breathing was calming. The fire was well-built and would last for another two hours without needing any attention. He wasn’t feeling the slightest bit nervous. He specifically wanted to stay in his usual, relaxed state of mind and not push anything. If sleep came naturally, he would let it happen—and even welcome it. The chill in the room, once the fire burned down later, would definitely wake him up again; and it would then be time to take these sleeping animals up to bed. From various psychic hints, he was well aware that the night wouldn’t go by without some excitement; but he didn’t want to rush its arrival, and he wanted to stay calm, allowing the animals to stay calm too, so that when it did come, it wouldn’t be accompanied by any stress or heightened awareness. He had learned a lot from many experiments. And beyond that, he felt no fear.

Accordingly, after a time, he did fall asleep as he had expected, and the last thing he remembered, before oblivion slipped up over his eyes like soft wool, was the picture of Flame stretching all four legs at once, and sighing noisily as he sought a more comfortable position for his paws and muzzle upon the mat.

Accordingly, after a while, he did fall asleep like he thought he would, and the last thing he remembered before everything faded to black like soft wool was the image of Flame stretching all four legs at once and sighing loudly as he tried to find a more comfortable spot for his paws and muzzle on the mat.


It was a good deal later when he became aware that a weight lay upon his chest, and that something was pencilling over his face and mouth. A soft touch on the cheek woke him. Something was patting him.

It was a while later when he realized that a weight was pressing down on his chest and that something was lightly tracing over his face and mouth. A gentle touch on his cheek woke him up. Something was tapping him.

He sat up with a jerk, and found himself staring straight into a pair of brilliant eyes, half green, half black. Smoke’s face lay level with his own; and the cat had climbed up with its front paws upon his chest.

He sat up suddenly and found himself looking directly into a pair of bright eyes, half green and half black. Smoke’s face was right in front of his; the cat had climbed up, resting its front paws on his chest.

The lamp had burned low and the fire was nearly out, yet Dr. Silence saw in a moment that the cat was in an excited state. It kneaded with its front paws into his chest, shifting from one to the other. He felt them prodding against him. It lifted a leg very carefully and patted his cheek gingerly. Its fur, he saw, was standing ridgewise upon its back; the ears were flattened back somewhat; the tail was switching sharply. The cat, of course, had wakened him with a purpose, and the instant he realised this, he set it upon the arm of the chair and sprang up with a quick turn to face the empty room behind him. By some curious instinct, his arms of their own accord assumed an attitude of defence in front of him, as though to ward off something that threatened his safety. Yet nothing was visible. Only shapes of fog hung about rather heavily in the air, moving slightly to and fro.

The lamp had burned low and the fire was almost out, but Dr. Silence quickly noticed that the cat was agitated. It pawed at his chest with its front paws, switching between them. He felt them pushing against him. It cautiously lifted a leg and gently patted his cheek. He saw that its fur was bristled along its back; its ears were slightly flattened; the tail was flicking sharply. The cat, of course, had woken him for a reason, and the moment he realized this, he set it on the arm of the chair and jumped up, turning quickly to face the empty room behind him. For some strange reason, his arms instinctively raised in a defensive stance, as if to protect him from an unseen threat. Yet nothing was there. Only shadows of fog hung heavily in the air, swaying slightly back and forth.

His mind was now fully alert, and the last vestiges of sleep gone. He turned the lamp higher and peered about him. Two things he became aware of at once: one, that Smoke, while excited, was pleasurably excited; the other, that the collie was no longer visible upon the mat at his feet. He had crept away to the corner of the wall farthest from the window, and lay watching the room with wide-open eyes, in which lurked plainly something of alarm.

His mind was now completely awake, and the last traces of sleep were gone. He turned the lamp up brighter and looked around. He immediately noticed two things: first, that Smoke, while excited, was happily excited; second, that the collie was no longer lying on the mat at his feet. He had crept away to the corner of the wall farthest from the window and was watching the room with wide-open eyes that clearly showed some signs of fear.

Something in the dog’s behaviour instantly struck Dr. Silence as unusual, and, calling him by name, he moved across to pat him. Flame got up, wagged his tail, and came over slowly to the rug, uttering a low sound that was half growl, half whine. He was evidently perturbed about something, and his master was proceeding to administer comfort when his attention was suddenly drawn to the antics of his other four-footed companion, the cat.

Something about the dog's behavior immediately caught Dr. Silence's attention as strange, and calling him by name, he walked over to pat him. Flame got up, wagged his tail, and slowly came over to the rug, making a low sound that was part growl, part whine. He was clearly upset about something, and while his master was about to offer comfort, his attention was suddenly pulled to the playful antics of his other furry friend, the cat.

And what he saw filled him with something like amazement.

And what he saw amazed him.

Smoke had jumped down from the back of the arm-chair and now occupied the middle of the carpet, where, with tail erect and legs stiff as ramrods, it was steadily pacing backwards and forwards in a narrow space, uttering, as it did so, those curious little guttural sounds of pleasure that only an animal of the feline species knows how to make expressive of supreme happiness. Its stiffened legs and arched back made it appear larger than usual, and the black visage wore a smile of beatific joy. Its eyes blazed magnificently; it was in an ecstasy.

Smoke had jumped down from the back of the armchair and was now in the middle of the carpet, where, with its tail up and legs rigid as two sticks, it paced back and forth in a small area, making those unique little guttural sounds of pleasure that only cats can express when they’re completely happy. Its stiff legs and arched back made it look bigger than usual, and its black face showed a blissful grin. Its eyes sparkled brilliantly; it was in pure ecstasy.

At the end of every few paces it turned sharply and stalked back again along the same line, padding softly, and purring like a roll of little muffled drums. It behaved precisely as though it were rubbing against the ankles of some one who remained invisible. A thrill ran down the doctor’s spine as he stood and stared. His experiment was growing interesting at last.

At the end of every few steps, it would quickly turn and make its way back along the same path, walking softly and purring like a set of quiet drums. It acted exactly as if it were brushing against the ankles of someone who wasn’t there. A chill ran down the doctor’s spine as he stood and watched. His experiment was finally becoming interesting.

He called the collie’s attention to his friend’s performance to see whether he too was aware of anything standing there upon the carpet; and the dog’s behaviour was significant and corroborative. He came as far as his master’s knees and then stopped dead, refusing to investigate closely. In vain Dr. Silence urged him; he wagged his tail, whined a little, and stood in a half-crouching attitude, staring alternately at the cat and at his master’s face. He was, apparently, both puzzled and alarmed, and the whine went deeper and deeper down into his throat till it changed into an ugly snarl of awakening anger.

He drew the collie's attention to his friend's performance to see if the dog was aware of anything on the carpet; the dog's behavior was telling and supportive. He walked up to his master's knees and then stopped, refusing to get any closer. Despite Dr. Silence's encouragement, the dog wagged his tail, whined a bit, and stood in a half-crouch, looking back and forth between the cat and his master's face. He seemed both confused and scared, and his whine grew deeper until it turned into a nasty snarl of rising anger.

Then the doctor called to him in a tone of command he had never known to be disregarded; but still the dog, though springing up in response, declined to move nearer. He made tentative motions, pranced a little like a dog about to take to water, pretended to bark, and ran to and fro on the carpet. So far there was no actual fear in his manner, but he was uneasy and anxious, and nothing would induce him to go within touching distance of the walking cat. Once he made a complete circuit, but always carefully out of reach; and in the end he returned to his master’s legs and rubbed vigorously against him. Flame did not like the performance at all: that much was quite clear.

Then the doctor called out to him with a commanding tone he had never ignored before; yet the dog, while jumping up in response, refused to come any closer. He moved cautiously, pranced a bit like a dog about to jump into water, pretended to bark, and dashed back and forth on the carpet. So far, he didn't show any real fear, but he was restless and anxious, and nothing could persuade him to get within touching distance of the walking cat. He made a complete circle but always stayed just out of reach; in the end, he returned to his master’s legs and rubbed against him vigorously. Flame clearly didn’t like this performance at all.

For several minutes John Silence watched the performance of the cat with profound attention and without interfering. Then he called to the animal by name.

For several minutes, John Silence observed the cat's performance with deep focus, not getting involved. Then he called the animal by its name.

“Smoke, you mysterious beastie, what in the world are you about?” he said, in a coaxing tone.

“Smoke, you mysterious little creature, what on earth are you up to?” he said, in a soothing tone.

The cat looked up at him for a moment, smiling in its ecstasy, blinking its eyes, but too happy to pause. He spoke to it again. He called to it several times, and each time it turned upon him its blazing eyes, drunk with inner delight, opening and shutting its lips, its body large and rigid with excitement. Yet it never for one instant paused in its short journeys to and fro.

The cat looked up at him for a moment, grinning with joy, blinking its eyes, but too happy to stop. He spoke to it again. He called to it several times, and each time it turned its bright eyes on him, filled with delight, opening and closing its mouth, its body big and tense with excitement. Yet it never paused for a moment in its short trips back and forth.

He noted exactly what it did: it walked, he saw, the same number of paces each time, some six or seven steps, and then it turned sharply and retraced them. By the pattern of the great roses in the carpet he measured it. It kept to the same direction and the same line. It behaved precisely as though it were rubbing against something solid. Undoubtedly, there was something standing there on that strip of carpet, something invisible to the doctor, something that alarmed the dog, yet caused the cat unspeakable pleasure.

He noticed exactly what it was doing: it walked, as he observed, the same number of steps each time, about six or seven steps, and then it abruptly turned around and walked back. He measured it by the pattern of the large roses in the carpet. It stayed on the same path and followed the same line. It acted exactly as if it were brushing against something solid. There was definitely something there on that section of carpet, something invisible to the doctor, something that frightened the dog, yet brought the cat immense joy.

“Smokie!” he called again, “Smokie, you black mystery, what is it excites you so?”

“Smokie!” he called again, “Smokie, you mysterious black dog, what has got you so excited?”

Again the cat looked up at him for a brief second, and then continued its sentry-walk, blissfully happy, intensely preoccupied. And, for an instant, as he watched it, the doctor was aware that a faint uneasiness stirred in the depths of his own being, focusing itself for the moment upon this curious behaviour of the uncanny creature before him.

Again, the cat glanced up at him for a moment, then went back to its watchful stroll, completely blissful and deeply focused. And for a second, as he observed it, the doctor felt a slight unease bubbling up inside him, momentarily fixating on this strange behavior of the mysterious creature in front of him.

There rose in him quite a new realisation of the mystery connected with the whole feline tribe, but especially with that common member of it, the domestic cat—their hidden lives, their strange aloofness, their incalculable subtlety. How utterly remote from anything that human beings understood lay the sources of their elusive activities. As he watched the indescribable bearing of the little creature mincing along the strip of carpet under his eyes, coquetting with the powers of darkness, welcoming, maybe, some fearsome visitor, there stirred in his heart a feeling strangely akin to awe. Its indifference to human kind, its serene superiority to the obvious, struck him forcibly with fresh meaning; so remote, so inaccessible seemed the secret purposes of its real life, so alien to the blundering honesty of other animals. Its absolute poise of bearing brought into his mind the opium-eater’s words that “no dignity is perfect which does not at some point ally itself with the mysterious”; and he became suddenly aware that the presence of the dog in this foggy, haunted room on the top of Putney Hill was uncommonly welcome to him. He was glad to feel that Flame’s dependable personality was with him. The savage growling at his heels was a pleasant sound. He was glad to hear it. That marching cat made him uneasy.

He suddenly had a new realization about the mystery surrounding all cats, especially the domestic cat—how hidden their lives are, their strange detachment, and their incredible subtlety. The sources of their elusive behavior felt completely foreign to anything humans understood. As he observed the little creature gracefully moving along the strip of carpet in front of him, possibly flirting with the forces of darkness or welcoming a fearsome visitor, he felt a sense of awe stir in his heart. Its indifference to humans and its calm superiority over what was obvious struck him with renewed significance; the true purposes of its life seemed so distant and unreachable, so different from the straightforward nature of other animals. Its absolute composure reminded him of the opium-eater’s words that “no dignity is perfect which does not at some point ally itself with the mysterious”; he suddenly realized that the dog’s presence in this foggy, haunted room at the top of Putney Hill was incredibly comforting to him. He was grateful for Flame’s reliable personality. The low growling at his heels was a pleasant sound. He was glad to hear it. That marching cat made him uneasy.

Finding that Smoke paid no further attention to his words, the doctor decided upon action. Would it rub against his leg, too? He would take it by surprise and see.

Finding that Smoke paid no more attention to his words, the doctor decided to take action. Would it brush against his leg, too? He would catch it off guard and find out.

He stepped quickly forward and placed himself upon the exact strip of carpet where it walked.

He quickly stepped forward and positioned himself on the exact strip of carpet where it walked.

But no cat is ever taken by surprise! The moment he occupied the space of the Intruder, setting his feet on the woven roses midway in the line of travel, Smoke suddenly stopped purring and sat down. It lifted up its face with the most innocent stare imaginable of its green eyes. He could have sworn it laughed. It was a perfect child again. In a single second it had resumed its simple, domestic manner; and it gazed at him in such a way that he almost felt Smoke was the normal being, and his was the eccentric behaviour that was being watched. It was consummate, the manner in which it brought about this change so easily and so quickly.

But no cat is ever caught off guard! The moment it took the place of the Intruder, placing its paws on the woven roses in the middle of the path, Smoke suddenly stopped purring and sat down. It lifted its face with the sweetest, most innocent look imaginable in its green eyes. He could have sworn it was laughing. It was a perfect little kid again. In an instant, it was back to its simple, homey self; and it looked at him in a way that made him feel like Smoke was the normal one, and he was the odd one being observed. It was amazing how it could shift this way so effortlessly and quickly.

“Superb little actor!” he laughed in spite of himself, and stooped to stroke the shining black back. But, in a flash, as he touched its fur, the cat turned and spat at him viciously, striking at his hand with one paw. Then, with a hurried scutter of feet, it shot like a shadow across the floor and a moment later was calmly sitting over by the window-curtains washing its face as though nothing interested it in the whole world but the cleanness of its cheeks and whiskers.

“Great little actor!” he chuckled despite himself, and bent down to pet the shiny black fur. But suddenly, as he touched its coat, the cat turned and hissed at him angrily, swiping at his hand with one paw. Then, with a quick scurry of feet, it darted across the floor like a shadow and a moment later was sitting by the window curtains, calmly washing its face as if nothing in the world mattered to it except keeping its cheeks and whiskers clean.

John Silence straightened himself up and drew a long breath. He realised that the performance was temporarily at an end. The collie, meanwhile, who had watched the whole proceeding with marked disapproval, had now lain down again upon the mat by the fire, no longer growling. It seemed to the doctor just as though something that had entered the room while he slept, alarming the dog, yet bringing happiness to the cat, had now gone out again, leaving all as it was before. Whatever it was that excited its blissful attentions had retreated for the moment.

John Silence straightened up and took a deep breath. He realized that the performance was temporarily over. The collie, who had watched everything with clear disapproval, had now lay down again on the mat by the fire, no longer growling. To the doctor, it felt as if something had entered the room while he slept, causing the dog to be alarmed but bringing joy to the cat, and it had now left, leaving everything as it was before. Whatever had captured its joyful attention had pulled back for the moment.

He realised this intuitively. Smoke evidently realised it, too, for presently he deigned to march back to the fireplace and jump upon his master’s knees. Dr. Silence, patient and determined, settled down once more to his book. The animals soon slept; the fire blazed cheerfully; and the cold fog from outside poured into the room through every available chink and cranny.

He sensed this instinctively. Smoke seemed to understand it as well, because soon he decided to march back to the fireplace and jump onto his master's knees. Dr. Silence, calm and resolute, settled back into his book. The animals quickly fell asleep; the fire crackled warmly; and the cold fog from outside seeped into the room through every available crack and cranny.

For a long time silence and peace reigned in the room and Dr. Silence availed himself of the quietness to make careful notes of what had happened. He entered for future use in other cases an exhaustive analysis of what he had observed, especially with regard to the effect upon the two animals. It is impossible here, nor would it be intelligible to the reader unversed in the knowledge of the region known to a scientifically trained psychic like Dr. Silence, to detail these observations. But to him it was clear, up to a certain point—and for the rest he must still wait and watch. So far, at least, he realised that while he slept in the chair—that is, while his will was dormant—the room had suffered intrusion from what he recognised as an intensely active Force, and might later be forced to acknowledge as something more than merely a blind force, namely, a distinct personality.

For a long time, silence and peace filled the room, and Dr. Silence took advantage of the quiet to make detailed notes about what had happened. He wrote an extensive analysis of his observations for future reference in other cases, particularly focusing on the impact on the two animals. It’s impossible to explain here, and it wouldn’t make sense to a reader unfamiliar with the area known to a scientifically trained psychic like Dr. Silence, to detail these observations. But he understood it to a certain extent—and for the rest, he would have to wait and see. So far, at least, he realized that while he slept in the chair—that is, while his will was inactive—the room had been invaded by what he recognized as an intensely active Force, and he might eventually have to acknowledge it as something more than just a blind force, specifically, a distinct personality.

So far it had affected himself scarcely at all, but had acted directly upon the simpler organisms of the animals. It stimulated keenly the centres of the cat’s psychic being, inducing a state of instant happiness (intensifying its consciousness probably in the same way a drug or stimulant intensifies that of a human being); whereas it alarmed the less sensitive dog, causing it to feel a vague apprehension and distress.

So far, it had hardly impacted him at all, but it had directly affected the simpler creatures of the animals. It strongly stimulated the cat’s mind, creating a feeling of instant happiness (likely enhancing its awareness in a way similar to how a drug or stimulant enhances that of a human); meanwhile, it unsettled the less sensitive dog, making it feel a vague sense of unease and distress.

His own sudden action and exhibition of energy had served to disperse it temporarily, yet he felt convinced—the indications were not lacking even while he sat there making notes—that it still remained near to him, conditionally if not spatially, and was, as it were, gathering force for a second attack.

His sudden move and burst of energy had temporarily scattered it, but he was sure—there were clear signs even as he sat there taking notes—that it was still close to him, if not in a physical sense, and was, in a way, building up strength for another strike.

And, further, he intuitively understood that the relations between the two animals had undergone a subtle change: that the cat had become immeasurably superior, confident, sure of itself in its own peculiar region, whereas Flame had been weakened by an attack he could not comprehend and knew not how to reply to. Though not yet afraid, he was defiant—ready to act against a fear that he felt to be approaching. He was no longer fatherly and protective towards the cat. Smoke held the key to the situation; and both he and the cat knew it.

And, on top of that, he instinctively realized that the relationship between the two animals had shifted in a subtle way: the cat had become vastly superior, confident, and sure of itself in its own unique territory, while Flame had been weakened by an attack he couldn't understand and didn't know how to respond to. Though he wasn't afraid yet, he was defiant—prepared to confront a fear that he sensed was creeping in. He was no longer fatherly and protective toward the cat. Smoke held the key to the situation; both he and the cat were aware of it.

Thus, as the minutes passed, John Silence sat and waited, keenly on the alert, wondering how soon the attack would be renewed, and at what point it would be diverted from the animals and directed upon himself.

Thus, as the minutes went by, John Silence sat and waited, sharply attentive, wondering how soon the attack would start up again, and at what moment it would shift from the animals to himself.

The book lay on the floor beside him, his notes were complete. With one hand on the cat’s fur, and the dog’s front paws resting against his feet, the three of them dozed comfortably before the hot fire while the night wore on and the silence deepened towards midnight.

The book was on the floor next to him, and his notes were all done. With one hand on the cat's fur and the dog's front paws resting on his feet, the three of them dozed happily in front of the warm fire as the night went on and the silence grew deeper toward midnight.

It was well after one o’clock in the morning when Dr. Silence turned the lamp out and lighted the candle preparatory to going up to bed. Then Smoke suddenly woke with a loud sharp purr and sat up. It neither stretched, washed nor turned: it listened. And the doctor, watching it, realised that a certain indefinable change had come about that very moment in the room. A swift readjustment of the forces within the four walls had taken place—a new disposition of their personal equations. The balance was destroyed, the former harmony gone. Smoke, most sensitive of barometers, had been the first to feel it, but the dog was not slow to follow suit, for on looking down he noted that Flame was no longer asleep. He was lying with eyes wide open, and that same instant he sat up on his great haunches and began to growl.

It was well after one o’clock in the morning when Dr. Silence turned off the lamp and lit a candle before heading to bed. Suddenly, Smoke woke up with a loud, sharp purr and sat up. It didn’t stretch, wash, or turn around; it just listened. The doctor, observing it, realized that an indescribable change had just occurred in the room. A quick readjustment of the energy within the four walls had taken place—a new arrangement of their personal dynamics. The balance was gone, and the previous harmony was lost. Smoke, the most sensitive of indicators, was the first to notice it, but the dog quickly followed suit, for when he looked down, he saw that Flame was no longer asleep. Flame was lying with his eyes wide open, and at that exact moment, he sat up on his powerful haunches and started to growl.

Dr. Silence was in the act of taking the matches to re-light the lamp when an audible movement in the room behind made him pause. Smoke leaped down from his knee and moved forward a few paces across the carpet. Then it stopped and stared fixedly; and the doctor stood up on the rug to watch.

Dr. Silence was about to grab the matches to relight the lamp when he heard a noise coming from the room behind him, which made him stop. Smoke drifted down from his knee and moved a few steps across the carpet. Then it halted and stared intently; the doctor stood up on the rug to observe.

As he rose the sound was repeated, and he discovered that it was not in the room as he first thought, but outside, and that it came from more directions than one. There was a rushing, sweeping noise against the window-panes, and simultaneously a sound of something brushing against the door—out in the hall. Smoke advanced sedately across the carpet, twitching his tail, and sat down within a foot of the door. The influence that had destroyed the harmonious conditions of the room had apparently moved in advance of its cause. Clearly, something was about to happen.

As he got up, the sound happened again, and he realized it wasn’t in the room like he initially thought but outside, coming from multiple directions. There was a rushing noise against the window panes, and at the same time, something was brushing against the door—out in the hall. Smoke casually drifted across the carpet, flicked its tail, and settled down within a foot of the door. The force that had disrupted the peaceful atmosphere of the room had clearly arrived before its cause. It was obvious that something was about to happen.

For the first time that night John Silence hesitated; the thought of that dark narrow hall-way, choked with fog, and destitute of human comfort, was unpleasant. He became aware of a faint creeping of his flesh. He knew, of course, that the actual opening of the door was not necessary to the invasion of the room that was about to take place, since neither doors nor windows, nor any other solid barriers could interpose an obstacle to what was seeking entrance. Yet the opening of the door would be significant and symbolic, and he distinctly shrank from it.

For the first time that night, John Silence hesitated; the image of that dark, narrow hallway, filled with fog and lacking any human comfort, was unsettling. He felt a slight shiver run through his body. He understood that actually opening the door wasn’t necessary for the intrusion into the room that was about to happen, since no doors, windows, or any solid barriers could stop what was trying to get in. Still, opening the door would be meaningful and symbolic, and he clearly recoiled from the idea.

But for a moment only. Smoke, turning with a show of impatience, recalled him to his purpose, and he moved past the sitting, watching creature, and deliberately opened the door to its full width.

But just for a moment. The smoke, swirling with impatience, reminded him of what he needed to do, so he walked past the sitting, watching figure and purposefully opened the door all the way.

What subsequently happened, happened in the feeble and flickering light of the solitary candle on the mantelpiece.

What happened next took place in the weak and flickering light of the lone candle on the mantel.

Through the opened door he saw the hall, dimly lit and thick with fog. Nothing, of course, was visible—nothing but the hat-stand, the African spears in dark lines upon the wall and the high-backed wooden chair standing grotesquely underneath on the oilcloth floor. For one instant the fog seemed to move and thicken oddly; but he set that down to the score of the imagination. The door had opened upon nothing.

Through the open door, he saw the hall, faintly lit and full of fog. Nothing was visible—just the hat stand, the African spears forming dark lines on the wall, and the high-backed wooden chair oddly positioned on the oilcloth floor. For a moment, the fog appeared to shift and thicken strangely; but he dismissed that as just his imagination. The door had led to nothing.

Yet Smoke apparently thought otherwise, and the deep growling of the collie from the mat at the back of the room seemed to confirm his judgment.

Yet Smoke apparently thought differently, and the low growl of the collie from the mat at the back of the room seemed to back up his opinion.

For, proud and self-possessed, the cat had again risen to his feet, and having advanced to the door, was now ushering some one slowly into the room. Nothing could have been more evident. He paced from side to side, bowing his little head with great empressement and holding his stiffened tail aloft like a flagstaff. He turned this way and that, mincing to and fro, and showing signs of supreme satisfaction. He was in his element. He welcomed the intrusion, and apparently reckoned that his companions, the doctor and the dog, would welcome it likewise.

For, proud and confident, the cat had risen to his feet again and, having moved to the door, was now slowly letting someone into the room. Nothing could have been clearer. He paced back and forth, bowing his little head with great empressement and holding his stiff tail high like a flagpole. He turned this way and that, mincing around, showing clear signs of supreme satisfaction. He was in his element. He welcomed the visitor and seemed to believe that his companions, the doctor and the dog, would welcome it too.

The Intruder had returned for a second attack.

The intruder had come back for another attack.

Dr. Silence moved slowly backwards and took up his position on the hearthrug, keying himself up to a condition of concentrated attention.

Dr. Silence slowly stepped back and positioned himself on the hearthrug, getting himself ready for a state of focused attention.

He noted that Flame stood beside him, facing the room, with body motionless, and head moving swiftly from side to side with a curious swaying movement. His eyes were wide open, his back rigid, his neck and jaws thrust forward, his legs tense and ready to leap. Savage, ready for attack or defence, yet dreadfully puzzled and perhaps already a little cowed, he stood and stared, the hair on his spine and sides positively bristling outwards as though a wind played through them. In the dim firelight he looked like a great yellow-haired wolf, silent, eyes shooting dark fire, exceedingly formidable. It was Flame, the terrible.

He noticed that Flame was standing next to him, facing the room, completely still except for his head, which moved quickly from side to side with a curious sway. His eyes were wide open, his back was straight, and his neck and jaw were pushed forward, with his legs tense and ready to spring. Wild, prepared for either attack or defense, yet deeply confused and maybe even a bit intimidated, he stood and stared, the hair on his spine and sides standing up as if a breeze was blowing through them. In the dim light of the fire, he looked like a massive yellow-haired wolf, silent, with eyes blazing darkly, incredibly intimidating. It was Flame, the fearsome.

Smoke, meanwhile, advanced from the door towards the middle of the room, adopting the very slow pace of an invisible companion. A few feet away it stopped and began to smile and blink its eyes. There was something deliberately coaxing in its attitude as it stood there undecided on the carpet, clearly wishing to effect some sort of introduction between the Intruder and its canine friend and ally. It assumed its most winning manners, purring, smiling, looking persuasively from one to the other, and making quick tentative steps first in one direction and then in the other. There had always existed such perfect understanding between them in everything. Surely Flame would appreciate Smoke’s intentions now, and acquiesce.

Smoke, meanwhile, floated from the door toward the center of the room, moving at the slow pace of an unseen companion. A few feet away, it paused and started to smile and blink its eyes. There was something intentionally inviting in its demeanor as it stood there hesitantly on the carpet, clearly wanting to facilitate some kind of introduction between the Intruder and its dog friend and ally. It showed its most charming behavior, purring, smiling, looking persuasively from one to the other, and taking quick tentative steps in one direction and then the other. There had always been such perfect understanding between them in all things. Surely Flame would appreciate Smoke’s intentions now and go along with it.

But the old collie made no advances. He bared his teeth, lifting his lips till the gums showed, and stood stockstill with fixed eyes and heaving sides. The doctor moved a little farther back, watching intently the smallest movement, and it was just then he divined suddenly from the cat’s behaviour and attitude that it was not only a single companion it had ushered into the room, but several. It kept crossing over from one to the other, looking up at each in turn. It sought to win over the dog to friendliness with them all. The original Intruder had come back with reinforcements. And at the same time he further realised that the Intruder was something more than a blindly acting force, impersonal though destructive. It was a Personality, and moreover a great personality. And it was accompanied for the purposes of assistance by a host of other personalities, minor in degree, but similar in kind.

But the old collie didn’t make any moves. He showed his teeth, pulling back his lips to reveal his gums, and stood completely still with fixed eyes and heavy breathing. The doctor stepped back a bit, watching closely for even the smallest movement, and it was at that moment he suddenly figured out from the cat’s behavior and stance that it wasn’t just one companion it had brought into the room, but several. It kept moving between them, looking up at each one in turn. It tried to get the dog to be friendly with them all. The original Intruder had returned with reinforcements. At the same time, he also realized that the Intruder was more than just a force acting blindly, impersonal though destructive. It was a Personality, and moreover, a significant one. It was joined for support by a group of other personalities, lesser in degree, but similar in kind.

He braced himself in the corner against the mantelpiece and waited, his whole being roused to defence, for he was now fully aware that the attack had spread to include himself as well as the animals, and he must be on the alert. He strained his eyes through the foggy atmosphere, trying in vain to see what the cat and dog saw; but the candlelight threw an uncertain and flickering light across the room and his eyes discerned nothing. On the floor Smoke moved softly in front of him like a black shadow, his eyes gleaming as he turned his head, still trying with many insinuating gestures and much purring to bring about the introductions he desired.

He braced himself in the corner against the mantelpiece and waited, his whole being on high alert, because he now realized that the threat was directed at him just as much as it was at the animals, and he needed to stay watchful. He strained his eyes through the foggy air, trying unsuccessfully to see what the cat and dog were observing; but the candlelight cast an unsteady and flickering glow throughout the room, and he couldn't make out anything. On the floor, Smoke moved quietly in front of him like a black shadow, his eyes shining as he turned his head, still trying with various inviting gestures and a lot of purring to initiate the introductions he wanted.

But it was all in vain. Flame stood riveted to one spot, motionless as a figure carved in stone.

But it was all pointless. Flame stood frozen in one spot, as still as a statue.

Some minutes passed, during which only the cat moved, and then there came a sharp change. Flame began to back towards the wall. He moved his head from side to side as he went, sometimes turning to snap at something almost behind him. They were advancing upon him, trying to surround him. His distress became very marked from now onwards, and it seemed to the doctor that his anger merged into genuine terror and became overwhelmed by it. The savage growl sounded perilously like a whine, and more than once he tried to dive past his master’s legs, as though hunting for a way of escape. He was trying to avoid something that everywhere blocked the way.

Some minutes went by, during which only the cat moved, and then there was a sudden shift. Flame started to retreat toward the wall. He swung his head from side to side as he moved, sometimes turning to snap at something that was almost behind him. They were closing in on him, trying to trap him. His distress became very evident from this point on, and it seemed to the doctor that his anger turned into real fear and was completely overtaken by it. The fierce growl sounded dangerously like a whine, and he tried multiple times to dart past his master's legs, as if searching for a way out. He was trying to escape from something that was blocking his path everywhere he turned.

This terror of the indomitable fighter impressed the doctor enormously; yet also painfully; stirring his impatience; for he had never before seen the dog show signs of giving in, and it distressed him to witness it. He knew, however, that he was not giving in easily, and understood that it was really impossible for him to gauge the animal’s sensations properly at all. What Flame felt, and saw, must be terrible indeed to turn him all at once into a coward. He faced something that made him afraid of more than his life merely. The doctor spoke a few quick words of encouragement to him, and stroked the bristling hair. But without much success. The collie seemed already beyond the reach of comfort such as that, and the collapse of the old dog followed indeed very speedily after this.

The terror of the unbeatable fighter really affected the doctor; it was both impressive and painful, stirring up his impatience because he had never seen the dog show any signs of giving up, and it upset him to see it happen. He realized, though, that the dog wasn't giving up easily, and he acknowledged that he couldn’t truly understand what the animal was feeling. What Flame experienced must have been awful to turn him into a coward so suddenly. He was facing something that went beyond just fear for his life. The doctor offered a few quick words of encouragement and petted the collie's bristling fur, but it didn't help much. The collie seemed to be beyond comfort like that, and the old dog's collapse came very quickly after this.

And Smoke, meanwhile, remained behind, watching the advance, but not joining in it; sitting, pleased and expectant, considering that all was going well and as it wished. It was kneading on the carpet with its front paws—slowly, laboriously, as though its feet were dipped in treacle. The sound its claws made as they caught in the threads was distinctly audible. It was still smiling, blinking, purring.

And Smoke, on the other hand, stayed back, observing the action but not getting involved; sitting there, content and hopeful, thinking everything was going just as it wanted. It was kneading the carpet with its front paws—slowly and with effort, as if its paws were stuck in syrup. The sound of its claws snagging the threads was clearly audible. It was still smiling, blinking, and purring.

Suddenly the collie uttered a poignant short bark and leaped heavily to one side. His bared teeth traced a line of whiteness through the gloom. The next instant he dashed past his master’s legs, almost upsetting his balance, and shot out into the room, where he went blundering wildly against walls and furniture. But that bark was significant; the doctor had heard it before and knew what it meant: for it was the cry of the fighter against odds and it meant that the old beast had found his courage again. Possibly it was only the courage of despair, but at any rate the fighting would be terrific. And Dr. Silence understood, too, that he dared not interfere. Flame must fight his own enemies in his own way.

Suddenly, the collie let out a sharp bark and jumped to one side. His exposed teeth gleamed in the darkness. In the next moment, he dashed past his owner’s legs, nearly knocking him off balance, and rushed into the room, where he crashed into walls and furniture. But that bark was important; the doctor had heard it before and recognized its meaning: it was the call of a fighter against the odds, signaling that the old dog had found his courage again. Maybe it was just the courage of desperation, but either way, the fight would be intense. And Dr. Silence knew he couldn’t step in. Flame needed to confront his enemies in his own way.

But the cat, too, had heard that dreadful bark; and it, too, had understood. This was more than it had bargained for. Across the dim shadows of that haunted room there must have passed some secret signal of distress between the animals. Smoke stood up and looked swiftly about him. He uttered a piteous meow and trotted smartly away into the greater darkness by the windows. What his object was only those endowed with the spirit-like intelligence of cats might know. But, at any rate, he had at last ranged himself on the side of his friend. And the little beast meant business.

But the cat had heard that terrible bark too, and it understood what was happening. This was more than it had expected. In the dim shadows of that haunted room, there must have been some unspoken signal of distress between the animals. Smoke stood up and quickly looked around. He let out a sad meow and trotted away into the deeper darkness by the windows. What his plan was only those with the almost supernatural intuition of cats might understand. But, at least, he had finally aligned himself with his friend. And the little creature was serious about it.

At the same moment the collie managed to gain the door. The doctor saw him rush through into the hall like a flash of yellow light. He shot across the oilcloth, and tore up the stairs, but in another second he appeared again, flying down the steps and landing at the bottom in a tumbling heap, whining, cringing, terrified. The doctor saw him slink back into the room again and crawl round by the wall towards the cat. Was, then, even the staircase occupied? Did They stand also in the hall? Was the whole house crowded from floor to ceiling?

At that moment, the collie managed to reach the door. The doctor saw him dash into the hall like a flash of yellow light. He sped across the oilcloth and dashed up the stairs, but a second later, he was back again, hurling down the steps and landing at the bottom in a tangled heap, whimpering, huddled, and scared. The doctor watched as he slinked back into the room and crawled along the wall toward the cat. Was the staircase even occupied? Were They also in the hall? Was the whole house packed from floor to ceiling?

The thought came to add to the keen distress he felt at the sight of the collie’s discomfiture. And, indeed, his own personal distress had increased in a marked degree during the past minutes, and continued to increase steadily to the climax. He recognised that the drain on his own vitality grew steadily, and that the attack was now directed against himself even more than against the defeated dog, and the too much deceived cat.

The thought added to the sharp pain he felt at the sight of the collie's discomfort. In fact, his own personal distress had noticeably increased over the past few minutes and kept rising to a peak. He realized that the drain on his own energy was growing steadily, and that the attack was now aimed at himself even more than at the defeated dog and the overly deceived cat.

It all seemed so rapid and uncalculated after that—the events that took place in this little modern room at the top of Putney Hill between midnight and sunrise—that Dr. Silence was hardly able to follow and remember it all. It came about with such uncanny swiftness and terror; the light was so uncertain; the movements of the black cat so difficult to follow on the dark carpet, and the doctor himself so weary and taken by surprise—that he found it almost impossible to observe accurately, or to recall afterwards precisely what it was he had seen or in what order the incidents had taken place. He never could understand what defect of vision on his part made it seem as though the cat had duplicated itself at first, and then increased indefinitely, so that there were at least a dozen of them darting silently about the floor, leaping softly on to chairs and tables, passing like shadows from the open door to the end of the room, all black as sin, with brilliant green eyes flashing fire in all directions. It was like the reflections from a score of mirrors placed round the walls at different angles. Nor could he make out at the time why the size of the room seemed to have altered, grown much larger, and why it extended away behind him where ordinarily the wall should have been. The snarling of the enraged and terrified collie sounded sometimes so far away; the ceiling seemed to have raised itself so much higher than before, and much of the furniture had changed in appearance and shifted marvellously.

It all felt so fast and chaotic after that—the events that happened in this little modern room at the top of Putney Hill between midnight and sunrise—that Dr. Silence could barely keep up or remember everything. It unfolded with such strange speed and fear; the light was so dim; the movements of the black cat were hard to track on the dark carpet, and the doctor himself was so exhausted and caught off guard that he found it nearly impossible to observe things accurately or to remember exactly what he saw or in what order the events happened. He could never figure out what flaw in his vision made it seem like the cat had doubled itself at first, and then multiplied endlessly, so that there were at least a dozen of them dashing silently across the floor, leaping softly onto chairs and tables, moving like shadows from the open door to the far end of the room, all black as night, with bright green eyes flashing in every direction. It was like the reflections from a bunch of mirrors placed around the walls at different angles. He also couldn't understand at the time why the room felt like it had changed size, why it seemed much larger, and why it extended behind him where the wall should have been. The growling of the angry and scared collie sometimes sounded so far away; the ceiling felt like it had risen much higher than before, and much of the furniture had changed in look and shifted strangely.

It was all so confused and confusing, as though the little room he knew had become merged and transformed into the dimensions of quite another chamber, that came to him, with its host of cats and its strange distances, in a sort of vision.

It was all so chaotic and disorienting, as if the small room he knew had blended and changed into the characteristics of a completely different space, which appeared to him, filled with its many cats and unusual distances, like a kind of vision.

But these changes came about a little later, and at a time when his attention was so concentrated upon the proceedings of Smoke and the collie, that he only observed them, as it were, subconsciously. And the excitement, the flickering candlelight, the distress he felt for the collie, and the distorting atmosphere of fog were the poorest possible allies to careful observation.

But these changes happened a bit later, and at a time when he was so focused on what was happening with Smoke and the collie that he only noticed them subconsciously. The excitement, the flickering candlelight, the sympathy he felt for the collie, and the oppressive fog were the worst possible companions for careful observation.

At first he was only aware that the dog was repeating his short dangerous bark from time to time, snapping viciously at the empty air, a foot or so from the ground. Once, indeed, he sprang upwards and forwards, working furiously with teeth and paws, and with a noise like wolves fighting, but only to dash back the next minute against the wall behind him. Then, after lying still for a bit, he rose to a crouching position as though to spring again, snarling horribly and making short half-circles with lowered head. And Smoke all the while meowed piteously by the window as though trying to draw the attack upon himself.

At first, he only noticed that the dog was occasionally barking its short, aggressive bark, snapping wildly at the empty air just above the ground. At one point, it actually leaped up and forward, furiously snapping with its teeth and paws, making a noise like wolves fighting, but then it quickly dashed back against the wall behind it. After lying still for a moment, it got back into a crouching position as if ready to pounce again, snarling frighteningly and making short half-circles with its head lowered. Meanwhile, Smoke was meowing pitifully by the window, seemingly trying to lure the dog's attack towards himself.

Then it was that the rush of the whole dreadful business seemed to turn aside from the dog and direct itself upon his own person. The collie had made another spring and fallen back with a crash into the corner, where he made noise enough in his savage rage to waken the dead before he fell to whining and then finally lay still. And directly afterwards the doctor’s own distress became intolerably acute. He had made a half movement forward to come to the rescue when a veil that was denser than mere fog seemed to drop down over the scene, draping room, walls, animals and fire in a mist of darkness and folding also about his own mind. Other forms moved silently across the field of vision, forms that he recognised from previous experiments, and welcomed not. Unholy thoughts began to crowd into his brain, sinister suggestions of evil presented themselves seductively. Ice seemed to settle about his heart, and his mind trembled. He began to lose memory—memory of his identity, of where he was, of what he ought to do. The very foundations of his strength were shaken. His will seemed paralysed.

Then it happened that the rush of the whole dreadful situation seemed to shift from the dog and focus entirely on him. The collie made another leap but crashed back into the corner, making enough noise in its wild fury to wake the dead before it started whining and eventually lay still. Shortly after, the doctor’s own distress became unbearable. He took a half-step forward to help when a veil denser than fog seemed to fall over the scene, covering the room, walls, animals, and fire in a mist of darkness that also wrapped around his own mind. Other figures moved silently across his field of vision, shapes he recognized from previous experiences and did not welcome. Unholy thoughts began to invade his mind, sinister suggestions of evil presenting themselves temptingly. Ice seemed to grip his heart, and his mind quaked. He started to lose his memory—memory of his identity, of where he was, and of what he should do. The very foundations of his strength were shaken. His will felt paralyzed.

And it was then that the room filled with this horde of cats, all dark as the night, all silent, all with lamping eyes of green fire. The dimensions of the place altered and shifted. He was in a much larger space. The whining of the dog sounded far away, and all about him the cats flew busily to and fro, silently playing their tearing, rushing game of evil, weaving the pattern of their dark purpose upon the floor. He strove hard to collect himself and remember the words of power he had made use of before in similar dread positions where his dangerous practice had sometimes led; but he could recall nothing consecutively; a mist lay over his mind and memory; he felt dazed and his forces scattered. The deeps within were too troubled for healing power to come out of them.

And that’s when the room filled with a horde of cats, all as dark as night, all silent, each with glowing green eyes. The dimensions of the space shifted and expanded. He was in a much larger area. The dog's whine sounded distant, and all around him, the cats busily darted back and forth, silently engaging in their chaotic, malicious game, weaving the pattern of their dark intent on the floor. He struggled to gather himself and remember the words of power he had used before in similar terrifying situations where his risky practices had occasionally led him; but he couldn’t recall anything clearly; a fog hung over his mind and memory; he felt dazed and his strength scattered. The depths within him were too disturbed for any healing power to emerge.

It was glamour, of course, he realised afterwards, the strong glamour thrown upon his imagination by some powerful personality behind the veil; but at the time he was not sufficiently aware of this and, as with all true glamour, was unable to grasp where the true ended and the false began. He was caught momentarily in the same vortex that had sought to lure the cat to destruction through its delight, and threatened utterly to overwhelm the dog through its terror.

It was glamour, he realized later, the intense allure created in his mind by a strong personality behind the curtain; but at the time, he didn't fully understand this and, like with all true glamour, he couldn't tell where the real ended and the illusion started. He was briefly caught in the same whirlwind that tried to lead the cat to its doom through fascination, and threatened to completely engulf the dog through fear.

There came a sound in the chimney behind him like wind booming and tearing its way down. The windows rattled. The candle flickered and went out. The glacial atmosphere closed round him with the cold of death, and a great rushing sound swept by overhead as though the ceiling had lifted to a great height. He heard the door shut. Far away it sounded. He felt lost, shelterless in the depths of his soul. Yet still he held out and resisted while the climax of the fight came nearer and nearer.... He had stepped into the stream of forces awakened by Pender and he knew that he must withstand them to the end or come to a conclusion that it was not good for a man to come to. Something from the region of utter cold was upon him.

There was a sound from the chimney behind him, like wind crashing and tearing its way down. The windows shook. The candle flickered and went out. The icy atmosphere wrapped around him like the chill of death, and a loud rushing noise swept overhead as if the ceiling had lifted to a great height. He heard the door close. It seemed so far away. He felt lost, exposed in the depths of his soul. Yet he still held on and resisted as the climax of the battle drew closer and closer... He had stepped into the current of forces awakened by Pender, and he knew he had to endure them to the end or arrive at a conclusion that was not good for a man to reach. Something from the realm of absolute cold was upon him.

And then quite suddenly, through the confused mists about him, there slowly rose up the Personality that had been all the time directing the battle. Some force entered his being that shook him as the tempest shakes a leaf, and close against his eyes—clean level with his face—he found himself staring into the wreck of a vast dark Countenance, a countenance that was terrible even in its ruin.

And then, out of nowhere, through the chaotic fog around him, the true presence that had been controlling the battle slowly emerged. A force surged through him, shaking him like a leaf in a storm, and right in front of his eyes—at eye level with his face—he found himself staring into the ruins of a massive, dark face, a face that was frightening even in its devastation.

For ruined it was, and terrible it was, and the mark of spiritual evil was branded everywhere upon its broken features. Eyes, face and hair rose level with his own, and for a space of time he never could properly measure, or determine, these two, a man and a woman, looked straight into each other’s visages and down into each other’s hearts.

For it was ruined, and it was terrible, and the mark of spiritual evil was everywhere on its broken features. The eyes, face, and hair were at the same level as his, and for a time that he could never quite measure or define, these two, a man and a woman, gazed directly into each other’s faces and deep into each other’s hearts.

And John Silence, the soul with the good, unselfish motive, held his own against the dark discarnate woman whose motive was pure evil, and whose soul was on the side of the Dark Powers.

And John Silence, the person with a genuine, selfless intent, stood firm against the dark, disembodied woman whose intent was pure evil, and whose soul aligned with the Dark Powers.

It was the climax that touched the depth of power within him and began to restore him slowly to his own. He was conscious, of course, of effort, and yet it seemed no superhuman one, for he had recognised the character of his opponent’s power, and he called upon the good within him to meet and overcome it. The inner forces stirred and trembled in response to his call. They did not at first come readily as was their habit, for under the spell of glamour they had already been diabolically lulled into inactivity, but come they eventually did, rising out of the inner spiritual nature he had learned with so much time and pain to awaken to life. And power and confidence came with them. He began to breathe deeply and regularly, and at the same time to absorb into himself the forces opposed to him, and to turn them to his own account. By ceasing to resist, and allowing the deadly stream to pour into him unopposed, he used the very power supplied by his adversary and thus enormously increased his own.

It was the peak moment that reached deep into his inner strength and slowly started bringing him back to himself. He was aware, of course, of the effort involved, but it didn't feel beyond his capabilities since he had recognized the nature of his opponent’s power. He tapped into the goodness within him to confront and overcome it. The inner forces stirred and trembled at his call. They didn't respond right away as they usually did because they had been tricked into passivity, but eventually they did rise up from the spiritual essence he had painstakingly learned to bring to life. With them came power and confidence. He began to breathe deeply and steadily, while also absorbing the forces against him and turning them to his benefit. By stopping resistance and letting the hostile energy flow into him freely, he utilized the very power given by his opponent, significantly boosting his own.

For this spiritual alchemy he had learned. He understood that force ultimately is everywhere one and the same; it is the motive behind that makes it good or evil; and his motive was entirely unselfish. He knew—provided he was not first robbed of self-control—how vicariously to absorb these evil radiations into himself and change them magically into his own good purposes. And, since his motive was pure and his soul fearless, they could not work him harm.

For this spiritual transformation, he had learned. He realized that force is ultimately the same everywhere; it's the intention behind it that determines if it's good or evil, and his intention was completely selfless. He knew—assuming he maintained self-control—how to absorb these negative energies into himself and transform them into his own positive goals. And, since his intention was pure and his spirit was fearless, they couldn't harm him.

Thus he stood in the main stream of evil unwittingly attracted by Pender, deflecting its course upon himself; and after passing through the purifying filter of his own unselfishness these energies could only add to his store of experience, of knowledge, and therefore of power. And, as his self-control returned to him, he gradually accomplished this purpose, even though trembling while he did so.

So he found himself caught up in the main flow of evil, unknowingly drawn in by Pender, redirecting it onto himself; and after going through the cleansing process of his own selflessness, these energies could only enhance his experience, knowledge, and thus his power. And, as he regained self-control, he slowly achieved this goal, even though he was shaking while doing so.

Yet the struggle was severe, and in spite of the freezing chill of the air, the perspiration poured down his face. Then, by slow degrees, the dark and dreadful countenance faded, the glamour passed from his soul, the normal proportions returned to walls and ceiling, the forms melted back into the fog, and the whirl of rushing shadow-cats disappeared whence they came.

Yet the struggle was intense, and despite the freezing chill in the air, sweat streamed down his face. Gradually, the dark and terrifying expression faded, the enchantment lifted from his soul, normal shapes returned to the walls and ceiling, the figures melted back into the fog, and the rush of shadowy cats disappeared back to where they had come from.

And with the return of the consciousness of his own identity John Silence was restored to the full control of his own will-power. In a deep, modulated voice he began to utter certain rhythmical sounds that slowly rolled through the air like a rising sea, filling the room with powerful vibratory activities that whelmed all irregularities of lesser vibrations in its own swelling tone. He made certain sigils, gestures and movements at the same time. For several minutes he continued to utter these words, until at length the growing volume dominated the whole room and mastered the manifestation of all that opposed it. For just as he understood the spiritual alchemy that can transmute evil forces by raising them into higher channels, so he knew from long study the occult use of sound, and its direct effect upon the plastic region wherein the powers of spiritual evil work their fell purposes. Harmony was restored first of all to his own soul, and thence to the room and all its occupants.

And with the return of his awareness of his own identity, John regained complete control over his willpower. In a deep, modulated voice, he began to speak certain rhythmic sounds that gradually rolled through the air like a rising tide, filling the room with powerful vibrations that overwhelmed all lower frequencies in its swelling tone. He created specific symbols, gestures, and movements simultaneously. For several minutes, he continued to repeat these words, until the increasing volume dominated the entire room and quelled anything that stood against it. Just as he understood the spiritual transformation that can convert negative forces by elevating them into higher realms, he also knew from extensive study the mystical use of sound and its direct impact on the fluid space where the forces of spiritual evil operate. Harmony was first restored to his own soul, and then to the room and everyone in it.

And, after himself, the first to recognise it was the old dog lying in his corner. Flame began suddenly uttering sounds of pleasure, that “something” between a growl and a grunt that dogs make upon being restored to their master’s confidence. Dr. Silence heard the thumping of the collie’s tail against the ground. And the grunt and the thumping touched the depth of affection in the man’s heart, and gave him some inkling of what agonies the dumb creature had suffered.

And right after him, the first to notice was the old dog lying in his corner. Flame suddenly started making sounds of happiness, a mix between a growl and a grunt that dogs make when they feel trusted by their owner again. Dr. Silence heard the thumping of the collie's tail against the ground. The grunt and the thumping hit the man’s heart with deep affection and gave him some sense of the pain the silent creature had gone through.

Next, from the shadows by the window, a somewhat shrill purring announced the restoration of the cat to its normal state. Smoke was advancing across the carpet. He seemed very pleased with himself, and smiled with an expression of supreme innocence. He was no shadow-cat, but real and full of his usual and perfect self-possession. He marched along, picking his way delicately, but with a stately dignity that suggested his ancestry with the majesty of Egypt. His eyes no longer glared; they shone steadily before him; they radiated, not excitement, but knowledge. Clearly he was anxious to make amends for the mischief to which he had unwittingly lent himself owing to his subtle and electric constitution.

Next, from the shadows by the window, a somewhat shrill purring announced that the cat was back to its normal self. Smoke was moving across the carpet. He seemed very pleased with himself, wearing an expression of pure innocence. He was no shadow-cat, but real and full of his usual calm confidence. He strutted along, stepping carefully, but with a regal dignity that hinted at his noble lineage from ancient Egypt. His eyes no longer glared; they shone steadily ahead, radiating not excitement, but wisdom. Clearly, he was eager to make up for the trouble he had inadvertently caused due to his sensitive and electric nature.

Still uttering his sharp high purrings he marched up to his master and rubbed vigorously against his legs. Then he stood on his hind feet and pawed his knees and stared beseechingly up into his face. He turned his head towards the corner where the collie still lay, thumping his tail feebly and pathetically.

Still making his sharp high purrs, he walked over to his owner and rubbed against his legs. Then he stood on his hind legs, pawed at his knees, and looked up at him with pleading eyes. He turned his head toward the corner where the collie still lay, wagging his tail weakly and sadly.

John Silence understood. He bent down and stroked the creature’s living fur, noting the line of bright blue sparks that followed the motion of his hand down its back. And then they advanced together towards the corner where the dog was.

John Silence got it. He knelt down and gently ran his hand over the creature’s soft fur, noticing the trail of bright blue sparks that followed his hand as it moved down its back. Then, they moved forward together towards the corner where the dog was.

Smoke went first and put his nose gently against his friend’s muzzle, purring while he rubbed, and uttering little soft sounds of affection in his throat. The doctor lit the candle and brought it over. He saw the collie lying on its side against the wall; it was utterly exhausted, and foam still hung about its jaws. Its tail and eyes responded to the sound of its name, but it was evidently very weak and overcome. Smoke continued to rub against its cheek and nose and eyes, sometimes even standing on its body and kneading into the thick yellow hair. Flame replied from time to time by little licks of the tongue, most of them curiously misdirected.

Smoke went up first and gently nudged his friend's face, purring as he rubbed against him and making soft sounds of affection. The doctor lit the candle and brought it closer. He saw the collie lying on its side against the wall; it was completely worn out, with foam still around its mouth. Its tail and eyes responded at the sound of its name, but it was clear that it was very weak and overwhelmed. Smoke kept rubbing against its cheek, nose, and eyes, sometimes even standing on its body and kneading into the thick yellow fur. Flame occasionally responded with little licks of his tongue, most of them amusingly off-target.

But Dr. Silence felt intuitively that something disastrous had happened, and his heart was wrung. He stroked the dear body, feeling it over for bruises or broken bones, but finding none. He fed it with what remained of the sandwiches and milk, but the creature clumsily upset the saucer and lost the sandwiches between its paws, so that the doctor had to feed it with his own hand. And all the while Smoke meowed piteously.

But Dr. Silence sensed that something terrible had happened, and his heart ached. He gently touched the beloved creature, checking for bruises or broken bones, but didn’t find any. He offered it the leftover sandwiches and milk, but the creature awkwardly knocked over the saucer and dropped the sandwiches between its paws, so the doctor had to feed it with his own hand. Meanwhile, Smoke cried out sadly.

Then John Silence began to understand. He went across to the farther side of the room and called aloud to it.

Then John Silence started to realize. He walked over to the other side of the room and called out to it.

“Flame, old man! come!”

"Flame, old man! Come!"

At any other time the dog would have been upon him in an instant, barking and leaping to the shoulder. And even now he got up, though heavily and awkwardly, to his feet. He started to run, wagging his tail more briskly. He collided first with a chair, and then ran straight into a table. Smoke trotted close at his side, trying his very best to guide him. But it was useless. Dr. Silence had to lift him up into his own arms and carry him like a baby. For he was blind.

At any other time, the dog would have jumped on him immediately, barking and leaping onto his shoulder. But even now, he got up, though slowly and awkwardly, to his feet. He started to run, wagging his tail more energetically. He bumped into a chair, then ran right into a table. Smoke stayed close by his side, doing his best to guide him. But it was no use. Dr. Silence had to pick him up and carry him like a baby. Because he was blind.

III

It was a week later when John Silence called to see the author in his new house, and found him well on the way to recovery and already busy again with his writing. The haunted look had left his eyes, and he seemed cheerful and confident.

It was a week later when John Silence visited the author in his new house and found him well on the road to recovery, already busy with his writing again. The haunted look had disappeared from his eyes, and he seemed cheerful and confident.

“Humour restored?” laughed the doctor, as soon as they were comfortably settled in the room overlooking the Park.

“Humor restored?” laughed the doctor, as soon as they were comfortably settled in the room overlooking the park.

“I’ve had no trouble since I left that dreadful place,” returned Pender gratefully; “and thanks to you——”

“I haven’t had any problems since I left that awful place,” Pender replied, feeling thankful; “and it’s all because of you——”

The doctor stopped him with a gesture.

The doctor stopped him with a wave.

“Never mind that,” he said, “we’ll discuss your new plans afterwards, and my scheme for relieving you of the house and helping you settle elsewhere. Of course it must be pulled down, for it’s not fit for any sensitive person to live in, and any other tenant might be afflicted in the same way you were. Although, personally, I think the evil has exhausted itself by now.”

“Forget about that,” he said, “we’ll talk about your new plans later, and my idea for taking over the house and helping you move somewhere else. It definitely needs to be torn down, because it’s not suitable for anyone sensitive to live in, and any other tenant might suffer the same way you did. But honestly, I think the problem has run its course by now.”

He told the astonished author something of his experiences in it with the animals.

He shared some of his experiences with the animals with the amazed author.

“I don’t pretend to understand,” Pender said, when the account was finished, “but I and my wife are intensely relieved to be free of it all. Only I must say I should like to know something of the former history of the house. When we took it six months ago I heard no word against it.”

“I don’t pretend to understand,” Pender said when the story was done, “but my wife and I are really relieved to be free of it all. The only thing I want to know is a bit about the house’s history. When we took it six months ago, I didn’t hear a single bad thing about it.”

Dr. Silence drew a typewritten paper from his pocket.

Dr. Silence pulled out a typed paper from his pocket.

“I can satisfy your curiosity to some extent,” he said, running his eye over the sheets, and then replacing them in his coat; “for by my secretary’s investigations I have been able to check certain information obtained in the hypnotic trance by a ‘sensitive’ who helps me in such cases. The former occupant who haunted you appears to have been a woman of singularly atrocious life and character who finally suffered death by hanging, after a series of crimes that appalled the whole of England and only came to light by the merest chance. She came to her end in the year 1798, for it was not this particular house she lived in, but a much larger one that then stood upon the site it now occupies, and was then, of course, not in London, but in the country. She was a person of intellect, possessed of a powerful, trained will, and of consummate audacity, and I am convinced availed herself of the resources of the lower magic to attain her ends. This goes far to explain the virulence of the attack upon yourself, and why she is still able to carry on after death the evil practices that formed her main purpose during life.”

“I can satisfy your curiosity to some extent,” he said, scanning the sheets before putting them back in his coat. “Thanks to my secretary’s investigations, I’ve been able to verify certain information obtained during the hypnotic trance by a ‘sensitive’ who assists me in these matters. The former occupant who haunted you seems to have been a woman with a particularly horrific life and character, who ultimately died by hanging after committing a series of crimes that shocked all of England, which only came to light by the slightest chance. She met her end in 1798, as she didn’t actually live in this specific house, but in a much larger one that used to be on the site it now occupies, and at that time, it was in the countryside, not London. She was an intelligent person, with a powerful, trained will, and remarkable boldness, and I believe she used the resources of lower magic to achieve her goals. This helps explain the severity of the attack on you and why she can continue her malevolent practices even after death, which were her primary focus during her life.”

“You think that after death a soul can still consciously direct——” gasped the author.

“You think that after death a soul can still consciously guide——” gasped the author.

“I think, as I told you before, that the forces of a powerful personality may still persist after death in the line of their original momentum,” replied the doctor; “and that strong thoughts and purposes can still react upon suitably prepared brains long after their originators have passed away.

“I think, as I mentioned earlier, that the influence of a strong personality can continue even after they die, following the path of their original energy,” replied the doctor; “and that intense thoughts and intentions can still affect well-prepared minds long after their creators have gone.”

“If you knew anything of magic,” he pursued, “you would know that thought is dynamic, and that it may call into existence forms and pictures that may well exist for hundreds of years. For, not far removed from the region of our human life, is another region where floats the waste and drift of all the centuries, the limbo of the shells of the dead; a densely populated region crammed with horror and abomination of all descriptions, and sometimes galvanised into active life again by the will of a trained manipulator, a mind versed in the practices of lower magic. That this woman understood its vile commerce, I am persuaded, and the forces she set going during her life have simply been accumulating ever since, and would have continued to do so had they not been drawn down upon yourself, and afterwards discharged and satisfied through me.

“If you knew anything about magic,” he continued, “you would understand that thoughts are powerful and can create forms and images that might last for hundreds of years. Just beyond our human existence is another realm that holds the remnants of all the ages—the limbo of the remains of the dead; a crowded place filled with horror and grotesque things, sometimes brought back to life by the will of someone skilled in the practices of lower magic. I believe this woman understood its dark dealings, and the forces she unleashed during her life have simply been building up ever since. They would have kept accumulating if they hadn’t been directed towards you and then discharged and resolved through me.”

“Anything might have brought down the attack, for, besides drugs, there are certain violent emotions, certain moods of the soul, certain spiritual fevers, if I may so call them, which directly open the inner being to a cognisance of this astral region I have mentioned. In your case it happened to be a peculiarly potent drug that did it.

“Anything could have triggered the attack because, in addition to drugs, there are some intense emotions, specific moods of the soul, and certain spiritual highs, if I may put it that way, which directly expose the inner self to awareness of this astral realm I mentioned. In your case, it was a particularly strong drug that did it.”

“But now, tell me,” he added, after a pause, handing to the perplexed author a pencil-drawing he had made of the dark countenance that had appeared to him during the night on Putney Hill—“tell me if you recognise this face?”

“But now, tell me,” he added after a pause, handing the confused author a pencil drawing he had made of the dark face that had appeared to him during the night on Putney Hill—“do you recognize this face?”

Pender looked at the drawing closely, greatly astonished. He shuddered a little as he looked.

Pender examined the drawing closely, feeling really shocked. He shivered slightly as he looked at it.

“Undoubtedly,” he said, “it is the face I kept trying to draw—dark, with the great mouth and jaw, and the drooping eye. That is the woman.”

“Definitely,” he said, “it's the face I kept trying to draw—dark, with the big mouth and jaw, and the drooping eye. That’s her.”

Dr. Silence then produced from his pocket-book an old-fashioned woodcut of the same person which his secretary had unearthed from the records of the Newgate Calendar. The woodcut and the pencil drawing were two different aspects of the same dreadful visage. The men compared them for some moments in silence.

Dr. Silence then pulled out of his wallet an old-fashioned woodcut of the same person that his secretary had dug up from the records of the Newgate Calendar. The woodcut and the pencil drawing presented two different sides of the same horrifying face. The men compared them for a few moments in silence.

“It makes me thank God for the limitations of our senses,” said Pender quietly, with a sigh; “continuous clairvoyance must be a sore affliction.”

“It makes me thank God for the limits of our senses,” Pender said softly, with a sigh; “constant clairvoyance must be a major burden.”

“It is indeed,” returned John Silence significantly, “and if all the people nowadays who claim to be clairvoyant were really so, the statistics of suicide and lunacy would be considerably higher than they are. It is little wonder,” he added, “that your sense of humour was clouded, with the mind-forces of that dead monster trying to use your brain for their dissemination. You have had an interesting adventure, Mr. Felix Pender, and, let me add, a fortunate escape.”

“It really is,” John Silence replied meaningfully, “and if all the people today who say they're clairvoyant actually were, the rates of suicide and mental illness would be much higher than they currently are. It’s no surprise,” he continued, “that your sense of humor was affected, with the mind forces of that dead monster trying to use your brain to spread their influence. You’ve had quite an adventure, Mr. Felix Pender, and let me say, a lucky escape.”

The author was about to renew his thanks when there came a sound of scratching at the door, and the doctor sprang up quickly.

The author was about to express his gratitude again when he heard a scratching sound at the door, and the doctor quickly jumped up.

“It’s time for me to go. I left my dog on the step, but I suppose——”

“It’s time for me to leave. I left my dog on the step, but I guess——”

Before he had time to open the door, it had yielded to the pressure behind it and flew wide open to admit a great yellow-haired collie. The dog, wagging his tail and contorting his whole body with delight, tore across the floor and tried to leap up upon his owner’s breast. And there was laughter and happiness in the old eyes; for they were clear again as the day.

Before he could open the door, it gave way to the pressure behind it and swung wide open to let in a big yellow-haired collie. The dog, wagging its tail and twisting its whole body with joy, dashed across the floor and tried to jump up on its owner's chest. There was laughter and happiness in the old man's eyes; they were bright again, just like on a clear day.


CASE II
ANCIENT SORCERIES


CASE II
ANCIENT SORCERIES

I

There are, it would appear, certain wholly unremarkable persons, with none of the characteristics that invite adventure, who yet once or twice in the course of their smooth lives undergo an experience so strange that the world catches its breath—and looks the other way! And it was cases of this kind, perhaps, more than any other, that fell into the widespread net of John Silence, the psychic doctor, and, appealing to his deep humanity, to his patience, and to his great qualities of spiritual sympathy, led often to the revelation of problems of the strangest complexity, and of the profoundest possible human interest.

There seem to be some completely ordinary people, who lack the traits that attract adventure, yet once or twice in their otherwise uneventful lives have an experience so bizarre that the world gasps and looks away! And it was cases like these, perhaps more than any others, that fell into the wide net of John Silence, the psychic doctor, and, appealing to his deep compassion, his patience, and his remarkable ability for spiritual empathy, often led to the uncovering of problems that were perplexingly complex and deeply interesting on a human level.

Matters that seemed almost too curious and fantastic for belief he loved to trace to their hidden sources. To unravel a tangle in the very soul of things—and to release a suffering human soul in the process—was with him a veritable passion. And the knots he untied were, indeed, often passing strange.

Matters that seemed almost too curious and fantastic to believe, he loved to trace back to their hidden sources. Unraveling a complexity in the very essence of things—and helping a suffering human soul in the process—was truly a passion for him. And the knots he untangled were often quite bizarre.

The world, of course, asks for some plausible basis to which it can attach credence—something it can, at least, pretend to explain. The adventurous type it can understand: such people carry about with them an adequate explanation of their exciting lives, and their characters obviously drive them into the circumstances which produce the adventures. It expects nothing else from them, and is satisfied. But dull, ordinary folk have no right to out-of-the-way experiences, and the world having been led to expect otherwise, is disappointed with them, not to say shocked. Its complacent judgment has been rudely disturbed.

The world, of course, needs a reasonable reason to believe something—something it can at least pretend to understand. It gets the thrill-seekers; those people have a solid explanation for their exciting lives, and their personalities clearly push them into situations that lead to adventures. It doesn’t expect anything more from them and is happy with that. But unremarkable, everyday people don’t deserve unusual experiences, and since the world has been conditioned to expect otherwise, it feels let down by them, if not outright shocked. Its self-satisfied judgment has been unfairly shaken.

“Such a thing happen to that man!” it cries—“a commonplace person like that! It is too absurd! There must be something wrong!”

“Such a thing happened to that guy!” it cries—“a regular person like that! It’s too ridiculous! There must be something off!”

Yet there could be no question that something did actually happen to little Arthur Vezin, something of the curious nature he described to Dr. Silence. Outwardly, or inwardly, it happened beyond a doubt, and in spite of the jeers of his few friends who heard the tale, and observed wisely that “such a thing might perhaps have come to Iszard, that crack-brained Iszard, or to that odd fish Minski, but it could never have happened to commonplace little Vezin, who was fore-ordained to live and die according to scale.”

Yet there was no doubt that something actually happened to little Arthur Vezin, something strange that he described to Dr. Silence. Without a doubt, it happened, either outwardly or inwardly, and despite the mockery from his few friends who heard the story and wisely pointed out that “such a thing might have happened to Iszard, that crazy Iszard, or to that oddball Minski, but it could never happen to ordinary little Vezin, who was destined to live and die by the rules.”

But, whatever his method of death was, Vezin certainly did not “live according to scale” so far as this particular event in his otherwise uneventful life was concerned; and to hear him recount it, and watch his pale delicate features change, and hear his voice grow softer and more hushed as he proceeded, was to know the conviction that his halting words perhaps failed sometimes to convey. He lived the thing over again each time he told it. His whole personality became muffled in the recital. It subdued him more than ever, so that the tale became a lengthy apology for an experience that he deprecated. He appeared to excuse himself and ask your pardon for having dared to take part in so fantastic an episode. For little Vezin was a timid, gentle, sensitive soul, rarely able to assert himself, tender to man and beast, and almost constitutionally unable to say No, or to claim many things that should rightly have been his. His whole scheme of life seemed utterly remote from anything more exciting than missing a train or losing an umbrella on an omnibus. And when this curious event came upon him he was already more years beyond forty than his friends suspected or he cared to admit.

But whatever the way Vezin died, he definitely did not “live according to scale” when it came to this particular moment in his otherwise uneventful life; and listening to him tell the story, watching his pale, delicate features shift, and hearing his voice grow softer and more subdued as he went on, made it clear that his hesitant words sometimes couldn’t fully express the depth of his feelings. He relived the experience every time he shared it. His entire personality seemed to quiet down during the telling. It overwhelmed him more than ever, turning the tale into a long-winded apology for an experience he felt uncomfortable about. He seemed to seek forgiveness and ask for your understanding for having taken part in such a bizarre incident. Little Vezin was a shy, gentle, sensitive person, rarely able to stand up for himself, kind to both people and animals, and almost unable to say No or claim things that should rightly have belonged to him. His whole way of life seemed completely detached from anything more exciting than missing a train or losing an umbrella on a bus. And when this strange event happened to him, he was already much older than forty, more than his friends realized or he cared to admit.

John Silence, who heard him speak of his experience more than once, said that he sometimes left out certain details and put in others; yet they were all obviously true. The whole scene was unforgettably cinematographed on to his mind. None of the details were imagined or invented. And when he told the story with them all complete, the effect was undeniable. His appealing brown eyes shone, and much of the charming personality, usually so carefully repressed, came forward and revealed itself. His modesty was always there, of course, but in the telling he forgot the present and allowed himself to appear almost vividly as he lived again in the past of his adventure.

John Silence, who heard him talk about his experiences more than once, noted that he sometimes left out certain details and added others; yet everything was clearly true. The entire scene was unforgettable and etched into his mind. None of the details were made up or invented. And when he told the story with all the details included, the impact was undeniable. His warm brown eyes sparkled, and much of his charming personality, usually kept in check, came out and showed itself. His modesty was always present, of course, but while telling the story, he lost track of the present and allowed himself to vividly relive his past adventure.

He was on the way home when it happened, crossing northern France from some mountain trip or other where he buried himself solitary-wise every summer. He had nothing but an unregistered bag in the rack, and the train was jammed to suffocation, most of the passengers being unredeemed holiday English. He disliked them, not because they were his fellow-countrymen, but because they were noisy and obtrusive, obliterating with their big limbs and tweed clothing all the quieter tints of the day that brought him satisfaction and enabled him to melt into insignificance and forget that he was anybody. These English clashed about him like a brass band, making him feel vaguely that he ought to be more self-assertive and obstreperous, and that he did not claim insistently enough all kinds of things that he didn’t want and that were really valueless, such as corner seats, windows up or down, and so forth.

He was on his way home when it happened, crossing northern France after some mountain trip or another where he spent every summer alone. He had nothing but an unregistered bag in the rack, and the train was packed to the brim, most of the passengers being typical holiday English tourists. He didn’t like them, not because they were his fellow countrymen, but because they were loud and intrusive, overshadowing with their big bodies and tweed outfits all the calmer moments of the day that brought him peace and helped him blend into the background, making him forget he was anyone. These English folks bumped around him like a brass band, making him feel like he should be more assertive and assertive, and that he wasn’t claiming enough of the things he didn’t even want that were actually worthless, like corner seats, windows up or down, and so on.

So that he felt uncomfortable in the train, and wished the journey were over and he was back again living with his unmarried sister in Surbiton.

So he felt uneasy on the train and wished the trip was over so he could be back living with his single sister in Surbiton.

And when the train stopped for ten panting minutes at the little station in northern France, and he got out to stretch his legs on the platform, and saw to his dismay a further batch of the British Isles debouching from another train, it suddenly seemed impossible to him to continue the journey. Even his flabby soul revolted, and the idea of staying a night in the little town and going on next day by a slower, emptier train, flashed into his mind. The guard was already shouting “en voiture” and the corridor of his compartment was already packed when the thought came to him. And, for once, he acted with decision and rushed to snatch his bag.

And when the train stopped for ten exhausting minutes at the small station in northern France, he got out to stretch his legs on the platform and, to his dismay, saw another group from the British Isles getting off a different train. It suddenly felt impossible for him to continue his journey. Even his flabby spirit protested, and the idea of spending a night in the little town and catching a slower, emptier train the next day popped into his mind. The guard was already calling “en voiture,” and the corridor of his compartment was already crowded when the thought struck him. For once, he acted decisively and rushed to grab his bag.

Finding the corridor and steps impassable, he tapped at the window (for he had a corner seat) and begged the Frenchman who sat opposite to hand his luggage out to him, explaining in his wretched French that he intended to break the journey there. And this elderly Frenchman, he declared, gave him a look, half of warning, half of reproach, that to his dying day he could never forget; handed the bag through the window of the moving train; and at the same time poured into his ears a long sentence, spoken rapidly and low, of which he was able to comprehend only the last few words: “à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats.”

Finding the corridor and steps blocked, he knocked on the window (since he had a corner seat) and asked the Frenchman sitting across from him to pass his luggage out to him, explaining in his poor French that he planned to break his journey there. This older Frenchman, he said, gave him a look that was half warning and half reproach, which he could never forget for the rest of his life; he handed the bag through the window of the moving train and simultaneously whispered a long sentence quickly and quietly, of which he could only grasp the last few words: “à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats.”

In reply to Dr. Silence, whose singular psychic acuteness at once seized upon this Frenchman as a vital point in the adventure, Vezin admitted that the man had impressed him favourably from the beginning, though without being able to explain why. They had sat facing one another during the four hours of the journey, and though no conversation had passed between them—Vezin was timid about his stuttering French—he confessed that his eyes were being continually drawn to his face, almost, he felt, to rudeness, and that each, by a dozen nameless little politenesses and attentions, had evinced the desire to be kind. The men liked each other and their personalities did not clash, or would not have clashed had they chanced to come to terms of acquaintance. The Frenchman, indeed, seemed to have exercised a silent protective influence over the insignificant little Englishman, and without words or gestures betrayed that he wished him well and would gladly have been of service to him.

In response to Dr. Silence, who immediately recognized this Frenchman as a crucial part of the adventure, Vezin admitted that the man had impressed him positively from the start, even though he couldn’t quite explain why. They had been sitting across from each other for the four-hour journey, and even though they hadn’t exchanged words—Vezin felt shy about his stuttering French—he admitted that he kept finding himself staring at the Frenchman's face, almost to the point of rudeness. Each of them, through a dozen small acts of politeness and attention, showed a desire to be kind. They liked each other, and their personalities didn’t clash, or wouldn’t have clashed if they had had the chance to get to know one another. The Frenchman seemed to have a quiet protective presence over the unassuming little Englishman, silently conveying his good wishes and willingness to help him.

“And this sentence that he hurled at you after the bag?” asked John Silence, smiling that peculiarly sympathetic smile that always melted the prejudices of his patient, “were you unable to follow it exactly?”

“And this sentence that he threw at you after the bag?” asked John. Silence, smiling that uniquely sympathetic smile that always dissolved his patient's prejudices, “were you unable to follow it exactly?”

“It was so quick and low and vehement,” explained Vezin, in his small voice, “that I missed practically the whole of it. I only caught the few words at the very end, because he spoke them so clearly, and his face was bent down out of the carriage window so near to mine.”

“It was so fast and intense,” Vezin explained in his soft voice, “that I missed almost all of it. I only caught the few words at the very end, because he said them so clearly, and his face was leaned out of the carriage window so close to mine.”

‘A cause du sommeil et à cause des chats’?” repeated Dr. Silence, as though half speaking to himself.

‘Because of sleep and because of the cats’?” Dr. Silence repeated, as if half talking to himself.

“That’s it exactly,” said Vezin; “which, I take it, means something like ‘because of sleep and because of the cats,’ doesn’t it?”

"That’s it exactly," Vezin said. "So, I guess that means something like 'because of sleep and because of the cats,' right?"

“Certainly, that’s how I should translate it,” the doctor observed shortly, evidently not wishing to interrupt more than necessary.

“Definitely, that’s how I should translate it,” the doctor said briefly, clearly not wanting to interrupt more than needed.

“And the rest of the sentence—all the first part I couldn’t understand, I mean—was a warning not to do something—not to stop in the town, or at some particular place in the town, perhaps. That was the impression it made on me.”

“And the rest of the sentence—all the first part I couldn’t understand, I mean—was a warning not to do something—not to stop in the town, or at some particular place in the town, maybe. That was the impression it left on me.”

Then, of course, the train rushed off, and left Vezin standing on the platform alone and rather forlorn.

Then, of course, the train sped away, leaving Vezin standing alone on the platform, feeling a bit lost and sad.

The little town climbed in straggling fashion up a sharp hill rising out of the plain at the back of the station, and was crowned by the twin towers of the ruined cathedral peeping over the summit. From the station itself it looked uninteresting and modern, but the fact was that the mediæval position lay out of sight just beyond the crest. And once he reached the top and entered the old streets, he stepped clean out of modern life into a bygone century. The noise and bustle of the crowded train seemed days away. The spirit of this silent hill-town, remote from tourists and motor-cars, dreaming its own quiet life under the autumn sun, rose up and cast its spell upon him. Long before he recognised this spell he acted under it. He walked softly, almost on tiptoe, down the winding narrow streets where the gables all but met over his head, and he entered the doorway of the solitary inn with a deprecating and modest demeanour that was in itself an apology for intruding upon the place and disturbing its dream.

The small town climbed unevenly up a steep hill that jutted out from the plain behind the station, topped by the twin towers of the ruined cathedral peeking over the summit. From the station itself, it looked unremarkable and modern, but the truth was that the medieval area was hidden just beyond the crest. Once he reached the top and stepped into the old streets, he left modern life behind and entered a past century. The noise and chaos of the crowded train felt like days ago. The essence of this quiet hill-town, far from tourists and cars, living its peaceful life under the autumn sun, enveloped him and worked its magic. Long before he realized this influence, he was acting under it. He walked softly, almost on tiptoe, down the winding narrow streets where the gables nearly touched overhead, and he entered the doorway of the solitary inn with a humble and reserved demeanor that served as an apology for intruding and disturbing the place's peaceful existence.

At first, however, Vezin said, he noticed very little of all this. The attempt at analysis came much later. What struck him then was only the delightful contrast of the silence and peace after the dust and noisy rattle of the train. He felt soothed and stroked like a cat.

At first, though, Vezin said he noticed very little of all this. The effort to analyze it came much later. What caught his attention at the time was just the lovely contrast of the silence and calm after the dust and loud rattle of the train. He felt comforted and pampered like a cat.

“Like a cat, you said?” interrupted John Silence, quickly catching him up.

“Like a cat, you mean?” interrupted John Silence, quickly catching up to him.

“Yes. At the very start I felt that.” He laughed apologetically. “I felt as though the warmth and the stillness and the comfort made me purr. It seemed to be the general mood of the whole place—then.”

“Yes. Right from the beginning, I felt that.” He laughed slightly embarrassed. “I felt like the warmth, stillness, and comfort made me purr. It seemed to reflect the overall vibe of the whole place—back then.”

The inn, a rambling ancient house, the atmosphere of the old coaching days still about it, apparently did not welcome him too warmly. He felt he was only tolerated, he said. But it was cheap and comfortable, and the delicious cup of afternoon tea he ordered at once made him feel really very pleased with himself for leaving the train in this bold, original way. For to him it had seemed bold and original. He felt something of a dog. His room, too, soothed him with its dark panelling and low irregular ceiling, and the long sloping passage that led to it seemed the natural pathway to a real Chamber of Sleep—a little dim cubby hole out of the world where noise could not enter. It looked upon the courtyard at the back. It was all very charming, and made him think of himself as dressed in very soft velvet somehow, and the floors seemed padded, the walls provided with cushions. The sounds of the streets could not penetrate there. It was an atmosphere of absolute rest that surrounded him.

The inn, a sprawling old house, still carried the vibe of the coaching days, but it didn't seem to welcome him too warmly. He felt like he was just being tolerated, he said. But it was affordable and comfortable, and the delicious cup of afternoon tea he ordered right away made him feel quite pleased with himself for leaving the train in such a bold, original way. To him, it felt bold and original. He felt a bit like a lost puppy. His room also calmed him with its dark paneling and low, uneven ceiling, and the long, sloping hallway that led to it seemed like the perfect pathway to a true Chamber of Sleep—a little dim nook away from the world where no noise could get in. It overlooked the courtyard in the back. It was all very charming and made him imagine himself dressed in soft velvet, and the floors seemed cushioned, like the walls were lined with pillows. The sounds of the streets could not reach him there. An atmosphere of complete relaxation surrounded him.

On engaging the two-franc room he had interviewed the only person who seemed to be about that sleepy afternoon, an elderly waiter with Dundreary whiskers and a drowsy courtesy, who had ambled lazily towards him across the stone yard; but on coming downstairs again for a little promenade in the town before dinner he encountered the proprietress herself. She was a large woman whose hands, feet, and features seemed to swim towards him out of a sea of person. They emerged, so to speak. But she had great dark, vivacious eyes that counteracted the bulk of her body, and betrayed the fact that in reality she was both vigorous and alert. When he first caught sight of her she was knitting in a low chair against the sunlight of the wall, and something at once made him see her as a great tabby cat, dozing, yet awake, heavily sleepy, and yet at the same time prepared for instantaneous action. A great mouser on the watch occurred to him.

Upon checking into the two-franc room, he spoke with the only person around that drowsy afternoon—an elderly waiter with scruffy whiskers and a lazy courtesy, who shuffled toward him across the stone courtyard. However, when he came downstairs again for a quick stroll in the town before dinner, he ran into the owner herself. She was a large woman, her hands, feet, and features seemed to loom out of a sea of bulk. They seemed to emerge, so to speak. But she had striking dark, lively eyes that balanced out her size, revealing that she was actually both strong and alert. When he first spotted her, she was knitting in a low chair against the sunlight of the wall, and something immediately made him think of her as a big tabby cat—dozing, yet awake, heavily sleepy, and at the same time ready for instant action. A formidable hunter on the lookout came to mind.

She took him in with a single comprehensive glance that was polite without being cordial. Her neck, he noticed, was extraordinarily supple in spite of its proportions, for it turned so easily to follow him, and the head it carried bowed so very flexibly.

She took him in with a single thorough glance that was polite but not friendly. He noticed her neck was incredibly flexible despite its size, as it turned easily to follow him, and the head it supported dipped with such flexibility.

“But when she looked at me, you know,” said Vezin, with that little apologetic smile in his brown eyes, and that faintly deprecating gesture of the shoulders that was characteristic of him, “the odd notion came to me that really she had intended to make quite a different movement, and that with a single bound she could have leaped at me across the width of that stone yard and pounced upon me like some huge cat upon a mouse.”

“But when she looked at me, you know,” said Vezin, with that little apologetic smile in his brown eyes and that slightly self-deprecating shrug that was typical of him, “the strange thought hit me that maybe she had actually planned to make a completely different move, and that with a single leap she could have jumped across that stone yard and pounced on me like a big cat on a mouse.”

He laughed a little soft laugh, and Dr. Silence made a note in his book without interrupting, while Vezin proceeded in a tone as though he feared he had already told too much and more than we could believe.

He let out a quiet laugh, and Dr. Silence jotted down a note in his book without interrupting, while Vezin continued speaking in a tone that suggested he was worried he had revealed too much, more than we could possibly believe.

“Very soft, yet very active she was, for all her size and mass, and I felt she knew what I was doing even after I had passed and was behind her back. She spoke to me, and her voice was smooth and running. She asked if I had my luggage, and was comfortable in my room, and then added that dinner was at seven o’clock, and that they were very early people in this little country town. Clearly, she intended to convey that late hours were not encouraged.”

“Very soft, yet very lively she was, despite her size and weight, and I sensed she knew what I was doing even after I passed and was behind her. She spoke to me, and her voice was smooth and flowing. She asked if I had my luggage and if I was comfortable in my room, then added that dinner was at seven o’clock and that they were early risers in this little country town. Clearly, she meant to convey that late hours weren’t welcomed.”

Evidently, she contrived by voice and manner to give him the impression that here he would be “managed,” that everything would be arranged and planned for him, and that he had nothing to do but fall into the groove and obey. No decided action or sharp personal effort would be looked for from him. It was the very reverse of the train. He walked quietly out into the street feeling soothed and peaceful. He realised that he was in a milieu that suited him and stroked him the right way. It was so much easier to be obedient. He began to purr again, and to feel that all the town purred with him.

Clearly, she managed to make him think that he would be “taken care of,” that everything would be organized and set up for him, and that all he had to do was settle in and follow along. They wouldn't expect any strong action or significant personal effort from him. It was the complete opposite of the train. He stepped out into the street feeling calm and at ease. He realized that he was in an environment that suited him and made him feel good. It was much easier to just go along with things. He started to relax again and felt like the whole town was in sync with him.

About the streets of that little town he meandered gently, falling deeper and deeper into the spirit of repose that characterised it. With no special aim he wandered up and down, and to and fro. The September sunshine fell slantingly over the roofs. Down winding alleyways, fringed with tumbling gables and open casements, he caught fairylike glimpses of the great plain below, and of the meadows and yellow copses lying like a dream-map in the haze. The spell of the past held very potently here, he felt.

About the streets of that little town, he wandered slowly, sinking deeper and deeper into the peaceful vibe that defined it. With no particular purpose, he strolled back and forth. The September sunshine streamed gently over the rooftops. Down winding alleyways, lined with tilted gables and open windows, he caught magical glimpses of the vast plain below, along with the meadows and yellow groves that lay like a dream map in the mist. He sensed the powerful enchantment of the past here.

The streets were full of picturesquely garbed men and women, all busy enough, going their respective ways; but no one took any notice of him or turned to stare at his obviously English appearance. He was even able to forget that with his tourist appearance he was a false note in a charming picture, and he melted more and more into the scene, feeling delightfully insignificant and unimportant and unselfconscious. It was like becoming part of a softly-coloured dream which he did not even realise to be a dream.

The streets were crowded with colorfully dressed men and women, all preoccupied with their own activities; yet no one paid attention to him or looked at his clearly English demeanor. He even managed to forget that with his tourist look, he was a mismatched element in a beautiful scene, and he blended more and more into the surroundings, feeling wonderfully insignificant, unimportant, and carefree. It felt like becoming part of a softly-colored dream that he didn’t even recognize as a dream.

On the eastern side the hill fell away more sharply, and the plain below ran off rather suddenly into a sea of gathering shadows in which the little patches of woodland looked like islands and the stubble fields like deep water. Here he strolled along the old ramparts of ancient fortifications that once had been formidable, but now were only vision-like with their charming mingling of broken grey walls and wayward vine and ivy. From the broad coping on which he sat for a moment, level with the rounded tops of clipped plane trees, he saw the esplanade far below lying in shadow. Here and there a yellow sunbeam crept in and lay upon the fallen yellow leaves, and from the height he looked down and saw that the townsfolk were walking to and fro in the cool of the evening. He could just hear the sound of their slow footfalls, and the murmur of their voices floated up to him through the gaps between the trees. The figures looked like shadows as he caught glimpses of their quiet movements far below.

On the eastern side, the hill dropped off more steeply, and the plain below suddenly gave way to a sea of deepening shadows where the little patches of forest looked like islands and the stubble fields appeared like dark water. He walked along the old ramparts of ancient defenses that had once been impressive, but now seemed almost dreamlike with their beautiful mix of crumbling gray walls and tangled vines and ivy. From the wide ledge where he sat for a moment, level with the rounded tops of trimmed plane trees, he could see the esplanade far below in shadow. Here and there, a beam of yellow sunlight broke through and rested on the fallen yellow leaves, and from his vantage point, he watched the townspeople strolling back and forth in the cool of the evening. He could just make out the sound of their slow footsteps, and the soft murmur of their voices drifted up to him through the spaces between the trees. The figures looked like shadows as he caught glimpses of their quiet movements far below.

He sat there for some time pondering, bathed in the waves of murmurs and half-lost echoes that rose to his ears, muffled by the leaves of the plane trees. The whole town, and the little hill out of which it grew as naturally as an ancient wood, seemed to him like a being lying there half asleep on the plain and crooning to itself as it dozed.

He sat there for a while thinking, surrounded by the soft murmurs and distant echoes that reached his ears, muted by the leaves of the plane trees. The whole town, along with the small hill it was built on, felt to him like a creature lying there half asleep on the plain, softly humming to itself as it drifted off.

And, presently, as he sat lazily melting into its dream, a sound of horns and strings and wood instruments rose to his ears, and the town band began to play at the far end of the crowded terrace below to the accompaniment of a very soft, deep-throated drum. Vezin was very sensitive to music, knew about it intelligently, and had even ventured, unknown to his friends, upon the composition of quiet melodies with low-running chords which he played to himself with the soft pedal when no one was about. And this music floating up through the trees from an invisible and doubtless very picturesque band of the townspeople wholly charmed him. He recognised nothing that they played, and it sounded as though they were simply improvising without a conductor. No definitely marked time ran through the pieces, which ended and began oddly after the fashion of wind through an Æolian harp. It was part of the place and scene, just as the dying sunlight and faintly-breathing wind were part of the scene and hour, and the mellow notes of old-fashioned plaintive horns, pierced here and there by the sharper strings, all half smothered by the continuous booming of the deep drum, touched his soul with a curiously potent spell that was almost too engrossing to be quite pleasant.

And as he sat lazily sinking into its dream, a sound of horns, strings, and wooden instruments reached his ears, and the town band began to play at the far end of the crowded terrace below, accompanied by a very soft, deep drum. Vezin was very sensitive to music, understood it well, and had even secretly composed gentle melodies with flowing chords which he played softly to himself when no one was around. This music drifting up through the trees from an unseen and undoubtedly picturesque band of townspeople completely captivated him. He didn’t recognize any of the pieces they played; it felt like they were just improvising without a conductor. There was no clear rhythm in the music, and the pieces started and stopped oddly, resembling the wind through an Aeolian harp. It was part of the ambiance, just like the fading sunlight and the softly rustling wind, and the warm notes of old-fashioned, mournful horns, occasionally interrupted by sharper strings, all somewhat muffled by the steady beat of the deep drum, touched his soul with a strangely powerful spell that was almost too consuming to be fully enjoyable.

There was a certain queer sense of bewitchment in it all. The music seemed to him oddly unartificial. It made him think of trees swept by the wind, of night breezes singing among wires and chimney-stacks, or in the rigging of invisible ships; or—and the simile leaped up in his thoughts with a sudden sharpness of suggestion—a chorus of animals, of wild creatures, somewhere in desolate places of the world, crying and singing as animals will, to the moon. He could fancy he heard the wailing, half-human cries of cats upon the tiles at night, rising and falling with weird intervals of sound, and this music, muffled by distance and the trees, made him think of a queer company of these creatures on some roof far away in the sky, uttering their solemn music to one another and the moon in chorus.

There was something strangely enchanting about it all. The music felt oddly genuine to him. It reminded him of trees swaying in the wind, of night breezes singing through wires and chimney stacks, or in the rigging of unseen ships; or—and the comparison suddenly struck him with a burst of clarity—a chorus of animals, wild creatures, somewhere in the desolate parts of the world, calling and singing to the moon like animals do. He could almost hear the mournful, half-human cries of cats on the tiles at night, rising and falling with strange intervals of sound, and this music, softened by distance and the trees, made him imagine a peculiar gathering of these creatures on some rooftop far away in the sky, sharing their solemn music with each other and the moon in harmony.

It was, he felt at the time, a singular image to occur to him, yet it expressed his sensation pictorially better than anything else. The instruments played such impossibly odd intervals, and the crescendos and diminuendos were so very suggestive of cat-land on the tiles at night, rising swiftly, dropping without warning to deep notes again, and all in such strange confusion of discords and accords. But, at the same time a plaintive sweetness resulted on the whole, and the discords of these half-broken instruments were so singular that they did not distress his musical soul like fiddles out of tune.

It was, he thought at the time, a unique image that came to him, yet it captured his feelings visually better than anything else. The instruments played such oddly unexpected notes, and the crescendos and diminuendos were incredibly reminiscent of the sounds of a cat roaming the tiles at night, rising quickly, dropping suddenly to deep notes again, all in a strange mix of dissonance and harmony. Yet, at the same time, there was a touching sweetness overall, and the discordant sounds from these half-broken instruments were so unusual that they didn’t upset his musical sensibility like out-of-tune violins would.

He listened a long time, wholly surrendering himself as his character was, and then strolled homewards in the dusk as the air grew chilly.

He listened for a long time, fully immersing himself as his character was, and then walked home in the dusk as the air got cooler.

“There was nothing to alarm?” put in Dr. Silence briefly.

“There was nothing to worry about?” Dr. Silence interjected briefly.

“Absolutely nothing,” said Vezin; “but you know it was all so fantastical and charming that my imagination was profoundly impressed. Perhaps, too,” he continued, gently explanatory, “it was this stirring of my imagination that caused other impressions; for, as I walked back, the spell of the place began to steal over me in a dozen ways, though all intelligible ways. But there were other things I could not account for in the least, even then.”

“Absolutely nothing,” said Vezin; “but you know it was all so fantastical and charming that it really captured my imagination. Maybe, too,” he continued, gently explaining, “it was this spark of my imagination that created other feelings; because, as I walked back, the magic of the place started to influence me in countless ways, even though they were all clear. However, there were still other things I couldn't explain at all, even then.”

“Incidents, you mean?”

"Incidents, right?"

“Hardly incidents, I think. A lot of vivid sensations crowded themselves upon my mind and I could trace them to no causes. It was just after sunset and the tumbled old buildings traced magical outlines against an opalescent sky of gold and red. The dusk was running down the twisted streets. All round the hill the plain pressed in like a dim sea, its level rising with the darkness. The spell of this kind of scene, you know, can be very moving, and it was so that night. Yet I felt that what came to me had nothing directly to do with the mystery and wonder of the scene.”

“Not really incidents, I think. A lot of vivid feelings overwhelmed my mind, and I couldn't pinpoint their sources. It was just after sunset, and the old buildings created enchanting shapes against a shimmering sky of gold and red. The dusk was flowing down the winding streets. All around the hill, the flat land closed in like a dim sea, its level rising with the darkness. The magic of such a scene can be incredibly moving, and it certainly was that night. Yet, I sensed that what I was experiencing had nothing directly to do with the mystery and beauty of the moment.”

“Not merely the subtle transformations of the spirit that come with beauty,” put in the doctor, noticing his hesitation.

“Not just the subtle changes of the spirit that come with beauty,” the doctor said, noticing his hesitation.

“Exactly,” Vezin went on, duly encouraged and no longer so fearful of our smiles at his expense. “The impressions came from somewhere else. For instance, down the busy main street where men and women were bustling home from work, shopping at stalls and barrows, idly gossiping in groups, and all the rest of it, I saw that I aroused no interest and that no one turned to stare at me as a foreigner and stranger. I was utterly ignored, and my presence among them excited no special interest or attention.

“Exactly,” Vezin continued, feeling more encouraged and less afraid of our smiles at his expense. “The impressions came from somewhere else. For example, along the busy main street where men and women were hurrying home from work, shopping at stalls and carts, casually chatting in groups, and all the usual things, I realized that I attracted no attention and that no one looked at me as a foreigner or outsider. I was completely ignored, and my presence among them sparked no special interest or attention.”

“And then, quite suddenly, it dawned upon me with conviction that all the time this indifference and inattention were merely feigned. Everybody as a matter of fact was watching me closely. Every movement I made was known and observed. Ignoring me was all a pretence—an elaborate pretence.”

“And then, all of a sudden, I realized with certainty that all this indifference and lack of attention were just put on. Everyone was actually paying close attention to me. Every move I made was noticed and watched. They were pretending to ignore me—an elaborate act.”

He paused a moment and looked at us to see if we were smiling, and then continued, reassured—

He paused for a moment and looked at us to check if we were smiling, then continued, feeling reassured—

“It is useless to ask me how I noticed this, because I simply cannot explain it. But the discovery gave me something of a shock. Before I got back to the inn, however, another curious thing rose up strongly in my mind and forced my recognition of it as true. And this, too, I may as well say at once, was equally inexplicable to me. I mean I can only give you the fact, as fact it was to me.”

“It's pointless to ask me how I noticed this because I honestly can’t explain it. But the discovery shocked me a bit. Before I returned to the inn, though, another strange thought came to me and made me accept it as true. And I should mention that this, too, was just as puzzling for me. I can only present you with the fact, as it was a fact to me.”

The little man left his chair and stood on the mat before the fire. His diffidence lessened from now onwards, as he lost himself again in the magic of the old adventure. His eyes shone a little already as he talked.

The little man got up from his chair and stood on the mat in front of the fire. His shyness began to fade away as he immersed himself once more in the magic of the old adventure. His eyes already sparkled a bit as he spoke.

“Well,” he went on, his soft voice rising somewhat with his excitement, “I was in a shop when it came to me first—though the idea must have been at work for a long time subconsciously to appear in so complete a form all at once. I was buying socks, I think,” he laughed, “and struggling with my dreadful French, when it struck me that the woman in the shop did not care two pins whether I bought anything or not. She was indifferent whether she made a sale or did not make a sale. She was only pretending to sell.

“Well,” he continued, his soft voice getting a bit louder with excitement, “I was in a store when it hit me for the first time—though the thought must have been brewing in my mind for a long time to come together so completely all at once. I was buying socks, I think,” he chuckled, “and struggling with my terrible French, when it dawned on me that the woman in the store didn’t give a hoot whether I bought anything or not. She didn’t care if she made a sale or not. She was just pretending to sell.”

“This sounds a very small and fanciful incident to build upon what follows. But really it was not small. I mean it was the spark that lit the line of powder and ran along to the big blaze in my mind.

“This sounds like a pretty minor and whimsical event to base what comes next on. But honestly, it wasn’t minor. I mean it was the spark that ignited the fuse and led to the big fire in my mind.

“For the whole town, I suddenly realised, was something other than I so far saw it. The real activities and interests of the people were elsewhere and otherwise than appeared. Their true lives lay somewhere out of sight behind the scenes. Their busy-ness was but the outward semblance that masked their actual purposes. They bought and sold, and ate and drank, and walked about the streets, yet all the while the main stream of their existence lay somewhere beyond my ken, underground, in secret places. In the shops and at the stalls they did not care whether I purchased their articles or not; at the inn, they were indifferent to my staying or going; their life lay remote from my own, springing from hidden, mysterious sources, coursing out of sight, unknown. It was all a great elaborate pretence, assumed possibly for my benefit, or possibly for purposes of their own. But the main current of their energies ran elsewhere. I almost felt as an unwelcome foreign substance might be expected to feel when it has found its way into the human system and the whole body organises itself to eject it or to absorb it. The town was doing this very thing to me.

“For the whole town, I suddenly realized, was something different from what I had seen so far. The real activities and interests of the people were hidden from view. Their true lives lay out of sight, behind the scenes. Their busyness was just the facade that hid their actual purposes. They bought and sold, ate and drank, and walked around the streets, yet all the while, the main stream of their existence flowed somewhere beyond my awareness, underground, in secret places. In the shops and at the stalls, they didn't care whether I bought their goods or not; at the inn, they were indifferent to whether I stayed or left; their lives were distant from mine, coming from hidden, mysterious sources, flowing out of sight, unknown. It was all an elaborate pretense, possibly for my benefit, or maybe for their own reasons. But the real energy of their lives was directed elsewhere. I almost felt like an unwelcome foreign substance might feel when it enters the human body and the whole system works to reject or absorb it. The town was doing exactly that to me.”

“This bizarre notion presented itself forcibly to my mind as I walked home to the inn, and I began busily to wonder wherein the true life of this town could lie and what were the actual interests and activities of its hidden life.

“This strange idea hit me hard as I walked back to the inn, and I started to think intensely about where the real essence of this town could be and what the actual interests and activities of its unseen life were.”

“And, now that my eyes were partly opened, I noticed other things too that puzzled me, first of which, I think, was the extraordinary silence of the whole place. Positively, the town was muffled. Although the streets were paved with cobbles the people moved about silently, softly, with padded feet, like cats. Nothing made noise. All was hushed, subdued, muted. The very voices were quiet, low-pitched like purring. Nothing clamorous, vehement or emphatic seemed able to live in the drowsy atmosphere of soft dreaming that soothed this little hill-town into its sleep. It was like the woman at the inn—an outward repose screening intense inner activity and purpose.

“And now that my eyes were partly opened, I noticed other things that puzzled me. The first was the incredible silence of the entire place. It felt like the town was muffled. Although the streets were paved with cobblestones, the people moved about quietly, softly, with padded footsteps, like cats. Nothing made a sound. Everything was hushed, subdued, muted. Even the voices were quiet, low-pitched like purring. Nothing loud, forceful, or intense seemed capable of existing in the sleepy atmosphere of soft dreaming that lulled this little hill town into its rest. It was like the woman at the inn—an outward calm hiding intense inner energy and purpose.”

“Yet there was no sign of lethargy or sluggishness anywhere about it. The people were active and alert. Only a magical and uncanny softness lay over them all like a spell.”

“Yet there was no sign of laziness or sluggishness anywhere. The people were energized and aware. Only a magical and strange softness enveloped them all like a spell.”

Vezin passed his hand across his eyes for a moment as though the memory had become very vivid. His voice had run off into a whisper so that we heard the last part with difficulty. He was telling a true thing obviously, yet something that he both liked and hated telling.

Vezin rubbed his eyes for a moment like the memory had just become really clear. His voice dropped to a whisper, making it hard for us to catch the last part. He was sharing something that was obviously true, but it was also something he both liked and hated talking about.

“I went back to the inn,” he continued presently in a louder voice, “and dined. I felt a new strange world about me. My old world of reality receded. Here, whether I liked it or no, was something new and incomprehensible. I regretted having left the train so impulsively. An adventure was upon me, and I loathed adventures as foreign to my nature. Moreover, this was the beginning apparently of an adventure somewhere deep within me, in a region I could not check or measure, and a feeling of alarm mingled itself with my wonder—alarm for the stability of what I had for forty years recognised as my ‘personality.’

“I went back to the inn,” he continued, raising his voice, “and had dinner. I felt like I stepped into a whole new world. My familiar reality faded away. Here, whether I liked it or not, was something new and confusing. I regretted getting off the train so impulsively. An adventure was unfolding around me, and I hated adventures because they felt so foreign to me. Plus, this seemed to be the start of an adventure deep within me, in a place I couldn’t observe or measure, and a sense of anxiety mixed with my curiosity—anxiety for the stability of what I had recognized as my ‘personality’ for the past forty years.”

“I went upstairs to bed, my mind teeming with thoughts that were unusual to me, and of rather a haunting description. By way of relief I kept thinking of that nice, prosaic noisy train and all those wholesome, blustering passengers. I almost wished I were with them again. But my dreams took me elsewhere. I dreamed of cats, and soft-moving creatures, and the silence of life in a dim muffled world beyond the senses.”

“I went upstairs to bed, my mind overflowing with thoughts that were unusual to me and had a haunting quality. To find some relief, I kept thinking about that nice, ordinary noisy train and all those lively, boisterous passengers. I nearly wished I could be with them again. But my dreams took me somewhere else. I dreamed of cats, and gentle creatures, and the quiet of life in a soft, muted world beyond what I could sense.”

II

Vezin stayed on from day to day, indefinitely, much longer than he had intended. He felt in a kind of dazed, somnolent condition. He did nothing in particular, but the place fascinated him and he could not decide to leave. Decisions were always very difficult for him and he sometimes wondered how he had ever brought himself to the point of leaving the train. It seemed as though some one else must have arranged it for him, and once or twice his thoughts ran to the swarthy Frenchman who had sat opposite. If only he could have understood that long sentence ending so strangely with “à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats.” He wondered what it all meant.

Vezin stayed on day after day, indefinitely, much longer than he had planned. He felt sort of dazed and sleepy. He didn’t do anything specific, but he was captivated by the place and couldn't decide to leave. Making decisions was always really tough for him, and he sometimes wondered how he had managed to get himself to the point of leaving the train. It felt like someone else had set it up for him, and once or twice he thought about the dark-skinned Frenchman who had sat across from him. If only he could have understood that long sentence that ended so oddly with “à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats.” He wondered what it all meant.

Meanwhile the hushed softness of the town held him prisoner and he sought in his muddling, gentle way to find out where the mystery lay, and what it was all about. But his limited French and his constitutional hatred of active investigation made it hard for him to buttonhole anybody and ask questions. He was content to observe, and watch, and remain negative.

Meanwhile, the quiet charm of the town trapped him, and he tried in his confused, gentle way to uncover the mystery and understand what was going on. But his poor French and his natural aversion to digging for answers made it tough for him to approach anyone and ask questions. He was content to observe, watch, and stay passive.

The weather held on calm and hazy, and this just suited him. He wandered about the town till he knew every street and alley. The people suffered him to come and go without let or hindrance, though it became clearer to him every day that he was never free himself from observation. The town watched him as a cat watches a mouse. And he got no nearer to finding out what they were all so busy with or where the main stream of their activities lay. This remained hidden. The people were as soft and mysterious as cats.

The weather stayed calm and hazy, which was perfect for him. He wandered around the town until he was familiar with every street and alley. The people allowed him to come and go without any restrictions, although it became more obvious to him every day that he could never escape their watchful eyes. The town observed him like a cat watches a mouse. He still had no idea what they were all so busy with or where the main pulse of their activities was. That remained a mystery. The people were as subtle and enigmatic as cats.

But that he was continually under observation became more evident from day to day.

But it became more obvious day by day that he was constantly being watched.

For instance, when he strolled to the end of the town and entered a little green public garden beneath the ramparts and seated himself upon one of the empty benches in the sun, he was quite alone—at first. Not another seat was occupied; the little park was empty, the paths deserted. Yet, within ten minutes of his coming, there must have been fully twenty persons scattered about him, some strolling aimlessly along the gravel walks, staring at the flowers, and others seated on the wooden benches enjoying the sun like himself. None of them appeared to take any notice of him; yet he understood quite well they had all come there to watch. They kept him under close observation. In the street they had seemed busy enough, hurrying upon various errands; yet these were suddenly all forgotten and they had nothing to do but loll and laze in the sun, their duties unremembered. Five minutes after he left, the garden was again deserted, the seats vacant. But in the crowded street it was the same thing again; he was never alone. He was ever in their thoughts.

For example, when he walked to the edge of town and entered a small green public garden under the ramparts, he sat down on one of the empty benches in the sun and found himself completely alone—at first. Not a single seat was taken; the little park was empty, the paths deserted. However, within ten minutes of his arrival, there were at least twenty people scattered around him—some wandering aimlessly along the gravel paths, admiring the flowers, while others sat on the wooden benches soaking up the sun just like he was. They didn’t seem to notice him, but he understood that they were all there to observe him. In the street, they appeared to be busy with various errands; yet now, those were all forgotten as they had nothing to do but lounge in the sun, their responsibilities pushed aside. Five minutes after he left, the garden was deserted again, the benches empty. But back in the busy street, it was the same; he was never alone. He was always on their minds.

By degrees, too, he began to see how it was he was so cleverly watched, yet without the appearance of it. The people did nothing directly. They behaved obliquely. He laughed in his mind as the thought thus clothed itself in words, but the phrase exactly described it. They looked at him from angles which naturally should have led their sight in another direction altogether. Their movements were oblique, too, so far as these concerned himself. The straight, direct thing was not their way evidently. They did nothing obviously. If he entered a shop to buy, the woman walked instantly away and busied herself with something at the farther end of the counter, though answering at once when he spoke, showing that she knew he was there and that this was only her way of attending to him. It was the fashion of the cat she followed. Even in the dining-room of the inn, the be-whiskered and courteous waiter, lithe and silent in all his movements, never seemed able to come straight to his table for an order or a dish. He came by zigzags, indirectly, vaguely, so that he appeared to be going to another table altogether, and only turned suddenly at the last moment, and was there beside him.

Gradually, he started to notice how cleverly he was being observed without it seeming obvious. People didn’t act directly. They behaved obliquely. He chuckled to himself as he put this thought into words, but the phrase fit perfectly. They glanced at him from angles that should have led their focus somewhere else entirely. Their movements were indirect too, especially when it came to him. The straightforward, direct approach clearly wasn’t their style. They never acted obviously. If he walked into a shop to buy something, the woman would instantly walk away and busy herself with something at the far end of the counter, though she would respond immediately when he spoke, showing she was aware of his presence and that this was just her way of engaging with him. She followed the pattern of a cat. Even in the inn’s dining room, the whiskered and polite waiter, graceful and silent in all his movements, never seemed to approach his table directly to take an order or deliver a dish. He would come in zigzags, indirectly, vaguely, making it look like he was headed to another table entirely, and only turned suddenly at the last moment to be right next to him.

Vezin smiled curiously to himself as he described how he began to realise these things. Other tourists there were none in the hostel, but he recalled the figures of one or two old men, inhabitants, who took their déjeuner and dinner there, and remembered how fantastically they entered the room in similar fashion. First, they paused in the doorway, peering about the room, and then, after a temporary inspection, they came in, as it were, sideways, keeping close to the walls so that he wondered which table they were making for, and at the last minute making almost a little quick run to their particular seats. And again he thought of the ways and methods of cats.

Vezin smiled to himself as he described how he started to realize these things. There were no other tourists in the hostel, but he remembered the figures of one or two old men, locals, who had their déjeuner and dinner there, and he recalled how oddly they entered the room in a similar way. First, they would pause in the doorway, scanning the room, and then, after a quick look around, they would come in sideways, sticking close to the walls, making him wonder which table they were headed for, and at the last moment, making a little quick dash to their specific seats. Again, he thought about the behavior and habits of cats.

Other small incidents, too, impressed him as all part of this queer, soft town with its muffled, indirect life, for the way some of the people appeared and disappeared with extraordinary swiftness puzzled him exceedingly. It may have been all perfectly natural, he knew, yet he could not make it out how the alleys swallowed them up and shot them forth in a second of time when there were no visible doorways or openings near enough to explain the phenomenon. Once he followed two elderly women who, he felt, had been particularly examining him from across the street—quite near the inn this was—and saw them turn the corner a few feet only in front of him. Yet when he sharply followed on their heels he saw nothing but an utterly deserted alley stretching in front of him with no sign of a living thing. And the only opening through which they could have escaped was a porch some fifty yards away, which not the swiftest human runner could have reached in time.

Other small incidents also caught his attention as part of this strange, soft town with its muted, indirect life. The way some people seemed to appear and disappear so quickly baffled him. It might have all been completely natural, he realized, but he couldn’t understand how the alleys seemed to swallow them up and spit them out in an instant when there were no visible doorways or openings nearby to explain it. Once, he followed two elderly women who he felt had been particularly studying him from across the street—this was quite near the inn—and saw them turn the corner just a few feet ahead of him. But when he quickly followed them, all he saw was a completely empty alley stretching out in front of him with no sign of life. The only opening they could have used to escape was a porch about fifty yards away, which not even the fastest human runner could have reached in time.

And in just such sudden fashion people appeared when he never expected them. Once when he heard a great noise of fighting going on behind a low wall, and hurried up to see what was going on, what should he see but a group of girls and women engaged in vociferous conversation which instantly hushed itself to the normal whispering note of the town when his head appeared over the wall. And even then none of them turned to look at him directly, but slunk off with the most unaccountable rapidity into doors and sheds across the yard. And their voices, he thought, had sounded so like, so strangely like, the angry snarling of fighting animals, almost of cats.

And just like that, people showed up when he least expected it. One time, he heard a loud noise from a fight happening behind a low wall and rushed over to check it out. What did he find? A group of girls and women in a heated conversation that instantly quieted to a normal whisper the moment his head popped over the wall. Even then, none of them looked directly at him; they quickly slipped away into doors and sheds across the yard. He thought their voices had sounded so much like, strangely, the angry snarl of fighting animals, almost like cats.

The whole spirit of the town, however, continued to evade him as something elusive, protean, screened from the outer world, and at the same time intensely, genuinely vital; and, since he now formed part of its life, this concealment puzzled and irritated him; more—it began rather to frighten him.

The whole vibe of the town, however, continued to escape him as something elusive, changeable, hidden from the outside world, and at the same time deeply, truly alive; and, since he was now a part of its life, this concealment puzzled and irritated him; more—it started to scare him.

Out of the mists that slowly gathered about his ordinary surface thoughts, there rose again the idea that the inhabitants were waiting for him to declare himself, to take an attitude, to do this, or to do that; and that when he had done so they in their turn would at length make some direct response, accepting or rejecting him. Yet the vital matter concerning which his decision was awaited came no nearer to him.

Out of the fog that slowly surrounded his everyday thoughts, the idea came back that the people were waiting for him to announce himself, to take a stand, to do this or that; and that once he did, they would finally respond directly, either accepting or rejecting him. Still, the important question they were waiting for him to decide on remained just as distant.

Once or twice he purposely followed little processions or groups of the citizens in order to find out, if possible, on what purpose they were bent; but they always discovered him in time and dwindled away, each individual going his or her own way. It was always the same: he never could learn what their main interest was. The cathedral was ever empty, the old church of St. Martin, at the other end of the town, deserted. They shopped because they had to, and not because they wished to. The booths stood neglected, the stalls unvisited, the little cafés desolate. Yet the streets were always full, the townsfolk ever on the bustle.

Once or twice, he intentionally followed small processions or groups of citizens to figure out what they were up to, but they always noticed him and quickly dispersed, each person going their own way. It was the same every time: he could never find out what their main interest was. The cathedral was always empty, and the old church of St. Martin at the other end of town was deserted. They shopped because they had to, not because they wanted to. The booths were neglected, the stalls were unvisited, and the little cafés were lifeless. Yet the streets were always crowded, with the townspeople constantly in a hurry.

“Can it be,” he thought to himself, yet with a deprecating laugh that he should have dared to think anything so odd, “can it be that these people are people of the twilight, that they live only at night their real life, and come out honestly only with the dusk? That during the day they make a sham though brave pretence, and after the sun is down their true life begins? Have they the souls of night-things, and is the whole blessed town in the hands of the cats?”

“Could it be,” he thought to himself, letting out a self-deprecating laugh at the idea of being so strange, “could it be that these people are creatures of the night, living their true lives only after dark and just pretending during the day? That when the sun sets, their real lives start? Do they have the souls of nocturnal beings, and is the entire town under the control of cats?”

The fancy somehow electrified him with little shocks of shrinking and dismay. Yet, though he affected to laugh, he knew that he was beginning to feel more than uneasy, and that strange forces were tugging with a thousand invisible cords at the very centre of his being. Something utterly remote from his ordinary life, something that had not waked for years, began faintly to stir in his soul, sending feelers abroad into his brain and heart, shaping queer thoughts and penetrating even into certain of his minor actions. Something exceedingly vital to himself, to his soul, hung in the balance.

The idea somehow shocked him with little jolts of anxiety and confusion. Yet, even though he pretended to laugh, he realized he was starting to feel more than just uneasy, and that strange forces were pulling at the very core of his being with a thousand invisible strings. Something completely distant from his everyday life, something that hadn’t stirred for years, began to faintly awaken in his soul, sending tendrils into his mind and heart, shaping odd thoughts and even affecting some of his minor actions. Something incredibly important to him, to his soul, was hanging in the balance.

And, always when he returned to the inn about the hour of sunset, he saw the figures of the townsfolk stealing through the dusk from their shop doors, moving sentry-wise to and fro at the corners of the streets, yet always vanishing silently like shadows at his near approach. And as the inn invariably closed its doors at ten o’clock he had never yet found the opportunity he rather half-heartedly sought to see for himself what account the town could give of itself at night.

And every time he came back to the inn around sunset, he noticed the townspeople slipping through the twilight from their shop entrances, moving back and forth cautiously at the street corners, yet always disappearing quietly like shadows as he got closer. Since the inn always closed its doors at ten o’clock, he had never really had the chance he somewhat reluctantly wanted to see what the town was like at night.

“——à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats”—the words now rang in his ears more and more often, though still as yet without any definite meaning.

“——because of sleep and because of cats”—the words now echoed in his ears more and more often, though still without any clear meaning.

Moreover, something made him sleep like the dead.

Moreover, something made him sleep like a log.

III

It was, I think, on the fifth day—though in this detail his story sometimes varied—that he made a definite discovery which increased his alarm and brought him up to a rather sharp climax. Before that he had already noticed that a change was going forward and certain subtle transformations being brought about in his character which modified several of his minor habits. And he had affected to ignore them. Here, however, was something he could no longer ignore; and it startled him.

It was, I think, on the fifth day—though he sometimes changed this detail in his story—that he made a definite discovery that heightened his fear and brought him to a sudden peak. Before this, he had already seen that a change was happening and certain subtle shifts were occurring in his personality that altered some of his minor habits. And he had pretended not to notice them. However, this was something he could no longer overlook; and it shocked him.

At the best of times he was never very positive, always negative rather, compliant and acquiescent; yet, when necessity arose he was capable of reasonably vigorous action and could take a strongish decision. The discovery he now made that brought him up with such a sharp turn was that this power had positively dwindled to nothing. He found it impossible to make up his mind. For, on this fifth day, he realised that he had stayed long enough in the town and that for reasons he could only vaguely define to himself it was wiser and safer that he should leave.

At his best, he was never very optimistic, always more negative, compliant, and accepting; yet, when the situation called for it, he could take fairly decisive action and make strong choices. The realization that hit him hard was that this ability had completely vanished. He found it impossible to make a decision. By this fifth day, he understood that he had been in the town long enough, and for reasons he could only vaguely explain to himself, it was wiser and safer for him to leave.

And he found that he could not leave!

And he realized that he couldn’t leave!

This is difficult to describe in words, and it was more by gesture and the expression of his face that he conveyed to Dr. Silence the state of impotence he had reached. All this spying and watching, he said, had as it were spun a net about his feet so that he was trapped and powerless to escape; he felt like a fly that had blundered into the intricacies of a great web; he was caught, imprisoned, and could not get away. It was a distressing sensation. A numbness had crept over his will till it had become almost incapable of decision. The mere thought of vigorous action—action towards escape—began to terrify him. All the currents of his life had turned inwards upon himself, striving to bring to the surface something that lay buried almost beyond reach, determined to force his recognition of something he had long forgotten—forgotten years upon years, centuries almost ago. It seemed as though a window deep within his being would presently open and reveal an entirely new world, yet somehow a world that was not unfamiliar. Beyond that, again, he fancied a great curtain hung; and when that too rolled up he would see still farther into this region and at last understand something of the secret life of these extraordinary people.

This is hard to put into words, and it was more through gestures and the expressions on his face that he communicated to Dr. Silence the feeling of powerlessness he had reached. All this spying and watching, he said, had kind of spun a net around his feet, trapping him and making him unable to escape; he felt like a fly that had stumbled into the complexity of a giant web; he was caught, imprisoned, and couldn't get away. It was a distressing feeling. A numbness had crept over his will until it had become almost incapable of making decisions. Just the thought of taking strong action—action to escape—began to frighten him. All the currents of his life had turned inward on himself, trying to bring to the surface something that was buried almost out of reach, determined to force him to recognize something he had long forgotten—forgotten for years, almost centuries. It felt like a window deep inside him was about to open and reveal an entirely new world, yet somehow a world that felt familiar. Beyond that, he imagined a great curtain hanging; and when that too was pulled back, he would see even further into this area and finally understand something of the secret life of these extraordinary people.

“Is this why they wait and watch?” he asked himself with rather a shaking heart, “for the time when I shall join them—or refuse to join them? Does the decision rest with me after all, and not with them?”

“Is this why they wait and watch?” he wondered, his heart racing, “for the moment when I either join them or decide not to? Is the choice really mine in the end, and not theirs?”

And it was at this point that the sinister character of the adventure first really declared itself, and he became genuinely alarmed. The stability of his rather fluid little personality was at stake, he felt, and something in his heart turned coward.

And it was at this point that the dark side of the adventure finally revealed itself, and he became truly worried. He felt that the stability of his somewhat unstable personality was at risk, and something inside him turned cowardly.

Why otherwise should he have suddenly taken to walking stealthily, silently, making as little sound as possible, for ever looking behind him? Why else should he have moved almost on tiptoe about the passages of the practically deserted inn, and when he was abroad have found himself deliberately taking advantage of what cover presented itself? And why, if he was not afraid, should the wisdom of staying indoors after sundown have suddenly occurred to him as eminently desirable? Why, indeed?

Why else would he have suddenly started walking quietly, making hardly any noise, always glancing over his shoulder? Why else would he have tiptoed through the nearly empty inn, and when he was outside, taken advantage of any cover he could find? And why, if he wasn't scared, would it suddenly seem very wise to stay indoors after dark? Why, indeed?

And, when John Silence gently pressed him for an explanation of these things, he admitted apologetically that he had none to give.

And when John Silence gently asked him to explain these things, he admitted, somewhat apologetically, that he had no explanation to offer.

“It was simply that I feared something might happen to me unless I kept a sharp look-out. I felt afraid. It was instinctive,” was all he could say. “I got the impression that the whole town was after me—wanted me for something; and that if it got me I should lose myself, or at least the Self I knew, in some unfamiliar state of consciousness. But I am not a psychologist, you know,” he added meekly, “and I cannot define it better than that.”

“It was just that I was scared something might happen to me if I didn’t stay alert. I felt afraid. It was instinctive,” was all he could say. “I got the feeling that the whole town was after me—wanted me for something; and that if it caught me, I would lose myself, or at least the self I knew, in some strange state of consciousness. But I’m not a psychologist, you know,” he added humbly, “and I can’t explain it better than that.”

It was while lounging in the courtyard half an hour before the evening meal that Vezin made this discovery, and he at once went upstairs to his quiet room at the end of the winding passage to think it over alone. In the yard it was empty enough, true, but there was always the possibility that the big woman whom he dreaded would come out of some door, with her pretence of knitting, to sit and watch him. This had happened several times, and he could not endure the sight of her. He still remembered his original fancy, bizarre though it was, that she would spring upon him the moment his back was turned and land with one single crushing leap upon his neck. Of course it was nonsense, but then it haunted him, and once an idea begins to do that it ceases to be nonsense. It has clothed itself in reality.

It was while relaxing in the courtyard half an hour before dinner that Vezin made this discovery, and he immediately went upstairs to his quiet room at the end of the winding hall to think it over by himself. The yard was pretty empty, but there was always the chance that the big woman he feared would come out of some door, pretending to knit, just to sit and watch him. This had happened a few times, and he couldn't stand the sight of her. He still remembered his strange idea, however bizarre it was, that she would jump on him the moment he turned his back and land with one single crushing leap on his neck. Of course, it was silly, but it still bothered him, and once an idea starts to do that, it stops being silly. It has taken on a life of its own.

He went upstairs accordingly. It was dusk, and the oil lamps had not yet been lit in the passages. He stumbled over the uneven surface of the ancient flooring, passing the dim outlines of doors along the corridor—doors that he had never once seen opened—rooms that seemed never occupied. He moved, as his habit now was, stealthily and on tiptoe.

He went upstairs as planned. It was getting dark, and the oil lamps hadn’t been lit in the hallways yet. He tripped over the uneven surface of the old flooring, passing the faint shapes of doors along the corridor—doors he had never seen opened—rooms that appeared never to be used. He moved, as he usually did now, quietly and on tiptoe.

Half-way down the last passage to his own chamber there was a sharp turn, and it was just here, while groping round the walls with outstretched hands, that his fingers touched something that was not wall—something that moved. It was soft and warm in texture, indescribably fragrant, and about the height of his shoulder; and he immediately thought of a furry, sweet-smelling kitten. The next minute he knew it was something quite different.

Halfway down the last hallway to his room, there was a sharp turn, and it was just here, while feeling around the walls with his outstretched hands, that his fingers brushed against something that wasn’t the wall—something that moved. It was soft and warm to the touch, indescribably fragrant, and about shoulder height; and he instantly thought of a furry, sweet-smelling kitten. Just a moment later, he realized it was something completely different.

Instead of investigating, however,—his nerves must have been too overwrought for that, he said,—he shrank back as closely as possible against the wall on the other side. The thing, whatever it was, slipped past him with a sound of rustling, and retreating with light footsteps down the passage behind him, was gone. A breath of warm, scented air was wafted to his nostrils.

Instead of trying to figure it out, though—his nerves must have been too frayed for that, he said—he pressed himself as close as he could against the wall on the other side. The thing, whatever it was, slipped by him with a rustling sound and retreated with soft footsteps down the hallway behind him, disappearing. A warm, fragrant breeze wafted to his nose.

Vezin caught his breath for an instant and paused, stockstill, half leaning against the wall—and then almost ran down the remaining distance and entered his room with a rush, locking the door hurriedly behind him. Yet it was not fear that made him run: it was excitement, pleasurable excitement. His nerves were tingling, and a delicious glow made itself felt all over his body. In a flash it came to him that this was just what he had felt twenty-five years ago as a boy when he was in love for the first time. Warm currents of life ran all over him and mounted to his brain in a whirl of soft delight. His mood was suddenly become tender, melting, loving.

Vezin caught his breath for a moment and stopped, leaning against the wall, and then almost sprinted the rest of the way to his room, quickly locking the door behind him. But it wasn't fear that made him rush; it was excitement, thrilling excitement. His nerves were buzzing, and a warm glow spread all over his body. In an instant, he realized this was exactly how he had felt twenty-five years ago as a boy when he fell in love for the first time. Warm waves of life coursed through him, swirling in a soft delight that filled his mind. His mood suddenly shifted to something tender, melting, and loving.

The room was quite dark, and he collapsed upon the sofa by the window, wondering what had happened to him and what it all meant. But the only thing he understood clearly in that instant was that something in him had swiftly, magically changed: he no longer wished to leave, or to argue with himself about leaving. The encounter in the passage-way had changed all that. The strange perfume of it still hung about him, bemusing his heart and mind. For he knew that it was a girl who had passed him, a girl’s face that his fingers had brushed in the darkness, and he felt in some extraordinary way as though he had been actually kissed by her, kissed full upon the lips.

The room was pretty dark, and he collapsed onto the sofa by the window, wondering what had happened to him and what it all meant. But the only thing he clearly understood in that moment was that something inside him had quickly, almost magically, changed: he no longer wanted to leave or even debate with himself about leaving. The encounter in the hallway had changed everything. The strange scent still lingered around him, captivating his heart and mind. He knew it was a girl who had brushed past him, a girl’s face that his fingers had touched in the dark, and he felt in some extraordinary way as if he had actually been kissed by her, kissed right on the lips.

Trembling, he sat upon the sofa by the window and struggled to collect his thoughts. He was utterly unable to understand how the mere passing of a girl in the darkness of a narrow passage-way could communicate so electric a thrill to his whole being that he still shook with the sweetness of it. Yet, there it was! And he found it as useless to deny as to attempt analysis. Some ancient fire had entered his veins, and now ran coursing through his blood; and that he was forty-five instead of twenty did not matter one little jot. Out of all the inner turmoil and confusion emerged the one salient fact that the mere atmosphere, the merest casual touch, of this girl, unseen, unknown in the darkness, had been sufficient to stir dormant fires in the centre of his heart, and rouse his whole being from a state of feeble sluggishness to one of tearing and tumultuous excitement.

Trembling, he sat on the sofa by the window and struggled to gather his thoughts. He couldn’t grasp how the simple act of a girl passing by in the darkness of a narrow hallway could send such an electric thrill through him that he still shook from its sweetness. Yet, there it was! He found it just as pointless to deny as it was to try to analyze. Some ancient fire had entered his veins and was now coursing through his blood; and the fact that he was forty-five instead of twenty didn’t matter at all. Out of all the inner turmoil and confusion emerged the one clear truth: the mere presence, the slightest touch, of this girl, unseen and unknown in the darkness, had been enough to awaken dormant fires in his heart and pull his whole being from a state of weak sluggishness to one of intense and chaotic excitement.

After a time, however, the number of Vezin’s years began to assert their cumulative power; he grew calmer; and when a knock came at length upon his door and he heard the waiter’s voice suggesting that dinner was nearly over, he pulled himself together and slowly made his way downstairs into the dining-room.

After a while, though, the weight of Vezin’s years started to take its toll; he became calmer, and when he finally heard a knock at his door and the waiter’s voice saying that dinner was almost over, he gathered himself and slowly made his way downstairs to the dining room.

Every one looked up as he entered, for he was very late, but he took his customary seat in the far corner and began to eat. The trepidation was still in his nerves, but the fact that he had passed through the courtyard and hall without catching sight of a petticoat served to calm him a little. He ate so fast that he had almost caught up with the current stage of the table d’hôte, when a slight commotion in the room drew his attention.

Everyone looked up when he walked in, since he was really late, but he took his usual seat in the far corner and started to eat. He was still feeling nervous, but the fact that he made it through the courtyard and hall without seeing a woman in a petticoat helped to calm him down a bit. He ate so quickly that he was almost in sync with the current pace of the meal, when a slight commotion in the room caught his attention.

His chair was so placed that the door and the greater portion of the long salle à manger were behind him, yet it was not necessary to turn round to know that the same person he had passed in the dark passage had now come into the room. He felt the presence long before he heard or saw any one. Then he became aware that the old men, the only other guests, were rising one by one in their places, and exchanging greetings with some one who passed among them from table to table. And when at length he turned with his heart beating furiously to ascertain for himself, he saw the form of a young girl, lithe and slim, moving down the centre of the room and making straight for his own table in the corner. She moved wonderfully, with sinuous grace, like a young panther, and her approach filled him with such delicious bewilderment that he was utterly unable to tell at first what her face was like, or discover what it was about the whole presentment of the creature that filled him anew with trepidation and delight.

His chair was positioned so that the door and most of the long salle à manger were behind him, yet he didn’t need to turn around to realize that the same person he had passed in the dark hallway had now entered the room. He sensed her presence long before he heard or saw anyone. Then he noticed that the old men, the only other guests, were rising one by one from their seats and exchanging greetings with someone passing among them from table to table. When he finally turned, his heart racing, to see for himself, he spotted the figure of a young girl, lithe and slim, moving down the center of the room and heading straight for his table in the corner. She moved beautifully, with fluid grace, like a young panther, and her approach filled him with such thrilling confusion that he could hardly grasp what her face looked like or understand what it was about her entire presence that filled him once again with both fear and delight.

“Ah, Ma’mselle est de retour!” he heard the old waiter murmur at his side, and he was just able to take in that she was the daughter of the proprietress, when she was upon him, and he heard her voice. She was addressing him. Something of red lips he saw and laughing white teeth, and stray wisps of fine dark hair about the temples; but all the rest was a dream in which his own emotion rose like a thick cloud before his eyes and prevented his seeing accurately, or knowing exactly what he did. He was aware that she greeted him with a charming little bow; that her beautiful large eyes looked searchingly into his own; that the perfume he had noticed in the dark passage again assailed his nostrils, and that she was bending a little towards him and leaning with one hand on the table at his side. She was quite close to him—that was the chief thing he knew—explaining that she had been asking after the comfort of her mother’s guests, and was now introducing herself to the latest arrival—himself.

“Ah, Miss is back!” he heard the old waiter murmur beside him, and he barely registered that she was the daughter of the owner when she approached him, and he heard her voice. He noticed her red lips and bright white teeth, and some stray strands of fine dark hair framing her face; but everything else felt like a dream where his emotions rose like a thick cloud in front of his eyes, blurring his vision and making it hard to know exactly what he was doing. He realized that she greeted him with a charming little bow; that her beautiful large eyes looked deeply into his; that the perfume he had sensed in the dark hallway wafted into his nose again, and that she was leaning slightly towards him with one hand resting on the table beside him. She was so close—that was the most important thing he knew—explaining that she had been checking on the comfort of her mother’s guests and was now introducing herself to the newest arrival—him.

“M’sieur has already been here a few days,” he heard the waiter say; and then her own voice, sweet as singing, replied—

“M’sieur has already been here a few days,” he heard the waiter say; and then her own voice, sweet as singing, replied—

“Ah, but M’sieur is not going to leave us just yet, I hope. My mother is too old to look after the comfort of our guests properly, but now I am here I will remedy all that.” She laughed deliciously. “M’sieur shall be well looked after.”

“Ah, but I hope you’re not leaving us just yet, sir. My mother is too old to take care of our guests properly, but now that I’m here, I’ll fix all that.” She laughed charmingly. “You’ll be well taken care of, sir.”

Vezin, struggling with his emotion and desire to be polite, half rose to acknowledge the pretty speech, and to stammer some sort of reply, but as he did so his hand by chance touched her own that was resting upon the table, and a shock that was for all the world like a shock of electricity, passed from her skin into his body. His soul wavered and shook deep within him. He caught her eyes fixed upon his own with a look of most curious intentness, and the next moment he knew that he had sat down wordless again on his chair, that the girl was already half-way across the room, and that he was trying to eat his salad with a dessert-spoon and a knife.

Vezin, battling his emotions and the urge to be polite, half stood up to acknowledge her flattering words and stammer some sort of response. But as he did, his hand accidentally brushed against hers, which was resting on the table, and it felt like a jolt of electricity shot from her skin into his body. His soul wavered and shook deep within him. He caught her gaze locked onto his with an unusually intense look, and in the next moment, he realized he had sat back down in silence, that the girl was already halfway across the room, and that he was attempting to eat his salad with a dessert spoon and a knife.

Longing for her return, and yet dreading it, he gulped down the remainder of his dinner, and then went at once to his bedroom to be alone with his thoughts. This time the passages were lighted, and he suffered no exciting contretemps; yet the winding corridor was dim with shadows, and the last portion, from the bend of the walls onwards, seemed longer than he had ever known it. It ran downhill like the pathway on a mountain side, and as he tiptoed softly down it he felt that by rights it ought to have led him clean out of the house into the heart of a great forest. The world was singing with him. Strange fancies filled his brain, and once in the room, with the door securely locked, he did not light the candles, but sat by the open window thinking long, long thoughts that came unbidden in troops to his mind.

Longing for her return but also afraid of it, he quickly finished the rest of his dinner and headed straight to his bedroom to be alone with his thoughts. This time the hallways were lit, and he didn’t face any surprising incidents; yet the winding corridor was dark with shadows, and the last part, from the corner of the walls onward, felt longer than he had ever experienced. It sloped down like a path on a mountainside, and as he tiptoed quietly down it, he thought it should have led him right out of the house into the depths of a vast forest. The world was resonating with him. Odd thoughts filled his mind, and once in the room, with the door firmly locked, he didn’t light the candles but sat by the open window, lost in deep, wandering thoughts that came to him uninvited, like a crowd.

IV

This part of the story he told to Dr. Silence, without special coaxing, it is true, yet with much stammering embarrassment. He could not in the least understand, he said, how the girl had managed to affect him so profoundly, and even before he had set eyes upon her. For her mere proximity in the darkness had been sufficient to set him on fire. He knew nothing of enchantments, and for years had been a stranger to anything approaching tender relations with any member of the opposite sex, for he was encased in shyness, and realised his overwhelming defects only too well. Yet this bewitching young creature came to him deliberately. Her manner was unmistakable, and she sought him out on every possible occasion. Chaste and sweet she was undoubtedly, yet frankly inviting; and she won him utterly with the first glance of her shining eyes, even if she had not already done so in the dark merely by the magic of her invisible presence.

This part of the story he shared with Dr. Silence, without much prompting, it's true, but with a lot of awkwardness and hesitation. He couldn’t understand, he said, how the girl had been able to affect him so deeply, even before he had seen her. Just being near her in the darkness had been enough to ignite something in him. He didn’t know anything about enchantments, and for years he had stayed away from anything resembling a romantic relationship with any member of the opposite sex, as he was wrapped in shyness, fully aware of his overwhelming shortcomings. Yet this captivating young woman approached him intentionally. Her demeanor was clear, and she sought him out whenever she could. She was undoubtedly pure and sweet, yet openly inviting; and she completely captured him with the first look from her sparkling eyes, even if she had already enchanted him in the dark simply by the magic of her unseen presence.

“You felt she was altogether wholesome and good?” queried the doctor. “You had no reaction of any sort—for instance, of alarm?”

“You thought she was completely wholesome and good?” asked the doctor. “You didn’t have any reaction at all—like, say, alarm?”

Vezin looked up sharply with one of his inimitable little apologetic smiles. It was some time before he replied. The mere memory of the adventure had suffused his shy face with blushes, and his brown eyes sought the floor again before he answered.

Vezin looked up quickly with one of his unique little apologetic smiles. It took him a while to respond. Just the thought of the adventure had made his bashful face turn red, and his brown eyes fell to the floor again before he spoke.

“I don’t think I can quite say that,” he explained presently. “I acknowledged certain qualms, sitting up in my room afterwards. A conviction grew upon me that there was something about her—how shall I express it?—well, something unholy. It is not impurity in any sense, physical or mental, that I mean, but something quite indefinable that gave me a vague sensation of the creeps. She drew me, and at the same time repelled me, more than—than——”

“I can’t really put it into words,” he said after a moment. “I felt some doubts after I sat up in my room. I started to believe there was something about her—how can I say it?—well, something unsettling. It’s not about impurity in any way, either physical or mental, but something completely hard to describe that gave me a strange feeling of unease. She attracted me, and at the same time pushed me away, more than—than——”

He hesitated, blushing furiously, and unable to finish the sentence.

He hesitated, blushing heavily, and couldn't complete the sentence.

“Nothing like it has ever come to me before or since,” he concluded, with lame confusion. “I suppose it was, as you suggested just now, something of an enchantment. At any rate, it was strong enough to make me feel that I would stay in that awful little haunted town for years if only I could see her every day, hear her voice, watch her wonderful movements, and sometimes, perhaps, touch her hand.”

“Nothing like it has ever happened to me before or since,” he finished, feeling a bit lost. “I guess it was, as you just mentioned, kind of magical. Either way, it was powerful enough to make me feel like I could stay in that terrible little haunted town for years if it meant I could see her every day, hear her voice, watch her graceful movements, and maybe, just maybe, touch her hand.”

“Can you explain to me what you felt was the source of her power?” John Silence asked, looking purposely anywhere but at the narrator.

“Can you tell me what you think gave her power?” John Silence asked, deliberately avoiding eye contact with the narrator.

“I am surprised that you should ask me such a question,” answered Vezin, with the nearest approach to dignity he could manage. “I think no man can describe to another convincingly wherein lies the magic of the woman who ensnares him. I certainly cannot. I can only say this slip of a girl bewitched me, and the mere knowledge that she was living and sleeping in the same house filled me with an extraordinary sense of delight.

“I’m surprised that you would ask me such a question,” Vezin replied, trying to sound dignified. “I don’t think any man can convincingly explain what makes the woman who captivates him so enchanting. I certainly can’t. All I can say is that this petite girl has charmed me, and just knowing that she was living and sleeping in the same house brought me an incredible sense of joy.

“But there’s one thing I can tell you,” he went on earnestly, his eyes aglow, “namely, that she seemed to sum up and synthesise in herself all the strange hidden forces that operated so mysteriously in the town and its inhabitants. She had the silken movements of the panther, going smoothly, silently to and fro, and the same indirect, oblique methods as the townsfolk, screening, like them, secret purposes of her own—purposes that I was sure had me for their objective. She kept me, to my terror and delight, ceaselessly under observation, yet so carelessly, so consummately, that another man less sensitive, if I may say so”—he made a deprecating gesture—“or less prepared by what had gone before, would never have noticed it at all. She was always still, always reposeful, yet she seemed to be everywhere at once, so that I never could escape from her. I was continually meeting the stare and laughter of her great eyes, in the corners of the rooms, in the passages, calmly looking at me through the windows, or in the busiest parts of the public streets.”

“But there’s one thing I can tell you,” he continued earnestly, his eyes shining, “specifically, that she seemed to embody and merge all the strange hidden forces that worked so mysteriously in the town and its people. She moved like a panther, smooth and quiet, going back and forth, and she used the same indirect, subtle tactics as the townsfolk, hiding, like them, her own secret intentions—intentions that I was sure had me as their target. She kept me, to my terror and excitement, constantly under observation, yet so casually, so perfectly, that another man less aware, if I may say so”—he made a modest gesture—“or less prepared by what had happened before, would never have noticed it at all. She was always still, always composed, yet it felt like she was everywhere at once, so I could never escape her. I was always catching the gaze and laughter of her big eyes in the corners of rooms, in the hallways, calmly looking at me through the windows, or in the busiest parts of the public streets.”

Their intimacy, it seems, grew very rapidly after this first encounter which had so violently disturbed the little man’s equilibrium. He was naturally very prim, and prim folk live mostly in so small a world that anything violently unusual may shake them clean out of it, and they therefore instinctively distrust originality. But Vezin began to forget his primness after awhile. The girl was always modestly behaved, and as her mother’s representative she naturally had to do with the guests in the hotel. It was not out of the way that a spirit of camaraderie should spring up. Besides, she was young, she was charmingly pretty, she was French, and—she obviously liked him.

Their closeness seemed to grow really quickly after their first meeting, which had shaken the little man's balance so much. He was naturally quite proper, and proper people often live in such a small world that anything dramatically unusual can completely throw them off, so they tend to instinctively distrust anything original. But after a while, Vezin started to forget his properness. The girl always acted modestly, and since she was representing her mother, she naturally interacted with the hotel guests. It wasn't surprising that a sense of friendship developed. Plus, she was young, charmingly pretty, she was French, and—she clearly liked him.

At the same time, there was something indescribable—a certain indefinable atmosphere of other places, other times—that made him try hard to remain on his guard, and sometimes made him catch his breath with a sudden start. It was all rather like a delirious dream, half delight, half dread, he confided in a whisper to Dr. Silence; and more than once he hardly knew quite what he was doing or saying, as though he were driven forward by impulses he scarcely recognised as his own.

At the same time, there was something beyond words—a certain unexplainable vibe of different places and times—that kept him on edge, sometimes making him catch his breath in surprise. It felt a lot like a wild dream, part joy, part fear, he quietly shared with Dr. Silence; and more than once, he lost track of what he was doing or saying, as if he were being pushed forward by urges he barely recognized as his own.

And though the thought of leaving presented itself again and again to his mind, it was each time with less insistence, so that he stayed on from day to day, becoming more and more a part of the sleepy life of this dreamy mediæval town, losing more and more of his recognisable personality. Soon, he felt, the Curtain within would roll up with an awful rush, and he would find himself suddenly admitted into the secret purposes of the hidden life that lay behind it all. Only, by that time, he would have become transformed into an entirely different being.

And even though the idea of leaving came to him over and over, it became less and less urgent each time, so he stayed on day by day, becoming more and more a part of the slow-paced life of this dreamy medieval town, losing more and more of his recognizable self. Soon, he felt, the Curtain within would lift suddenly, and he would find himself unexpectedly let in on the secret reasons behind all of it. Only, by that time, he would have turned into someone completely different.

And, meanwhile, he noticed various little signs of the intention to make his stay attractive to him: flowers in his bedroom, a more comfortable arm-chair in the corner, and even special little extra dishes on his private table in the dining-room. Conversations, too, with “Mademoiselle Ilsé” became more and more frequent and pleasant, and although they seldom travelled beyond the weather, or the details of the town, the girl, he noticed, was never in a hurry to bring them to an end, and often contrived to interject little odd sentences that he never properly understood, yet felt to be significant.

And, in the meantime, he noticed various small signs that showed an effort to make his stay enjoyable: flowers in his bedroom, a cozier armchair in the corner, and even special extra dishes on his private table in the dining room. Conversations with “Mademoiselle Ilsé” also became more frequent and enjoyable, and even though they rarely went beyond the weather or the details of the town, he noticed that she was never in a hurry to end them. She often managed to slip in little odd comments that he never really understood but felt were important.

And it was these stray remarks, full of a meaning that evaded him, that pointed to some hidden purpose of her own and made him feel uneasy. They all had to do, he felt sure, with reasons for his staying on in the town indefinitely.

And it was these random comments, loaded with a meaning that he couldn't grasp, that hinted at some secret agenda of hers and made him feel uncomfortable. He was sure they all related to the reasons for him staying in the town indefinitely.

“And has M’sieur not even yet come to a decision?” she said softly in his ear, sitting beside him in the sunny yard before déjeuner, the acquaintance having progressed with significant rapidity. “Because, if it’s so difficult, we must all try together to help him!”

“And hasn’t M’sieur made a decision yet?” she said softly in his ear, sitting next to him in the sunny yard before déjeuner, their acquaintance having grown quite quickly. “Because if it’s that hard, we should all work together to help him!”

The question startled him, following upon his own thoughts. It was spoken with a pretty laugh, and a stray bit of hair across one eye, as she turned and peered at him half roguishly. Possibly he did not quite understand the French of it, for her near presence always confused his small knowledge of the language distressingly. Yet the words, and her manner, and something else that lay behind it all in her mind, frightened him. It gave such point to his feeling that the town was waiting for him to make his mind up on some important matter.

The question caught him off guard, interrupting his own thoughts. It was asked with a charming laugh, and a loose strand of hair fell across one eye as she turned to look at him playfully. He might not have fully grasped the French she used, as her close presence always made his limited knowledge of the language quite confusing. Still, her words, her demeanor, and something deeper in her mind frightened him. It intensified his feeling that the town was expecting him to decide on something significant.

At the same time, her voice, and the fact that she was there so close beside him in her soft dark dress, thrilled him inexpressibly.

At the same time, her voice and the fact that she was so close to him in her soft dark dress thrilled him beyond words.

“It is true I find it difficult to leave,” he stammered, losing his way deliciously in the depths of her eyes, “and especially now that Mademoiselle Ilsé has come.”

“It’s true I find it hard to leave,” he stammered, getting lost in the depths of her eyes, “especially now that Mademoiselle Ilsé has arrived.”

He was surprised at the success of his sentence, and quite delighted with the little gallantry of it. But at the same time he could have bitten his tongue off for having said it.

He was surprised by how well his sentence worked, and he felt pretty pleased with the little touch of flair it had. But at the same time, he could have kicked himself for saying it.

“Then after all you like our little town, or you would not be pleased to stay on,” she said, ignoring the compliment.

“Then after all, you like our little town, or you wouldn’t be happy to stay,” she said, ignoring the compliment.

“I am enchanted with it, and enchanted with you,” he cried, feeling that his tongue was somehow slipping beyond the control of his brain. And he was on the verge of saying all manner of other things of the wildest description, when the girl sprang lightly up from her chair beside him, and made to go.

“I’m totally in love with it, and with you,” he exclaimed, feeling like his words were slipping out of control. He was about to say all sorts of crazy things when the girl suddenly jumped up from her chair next to him and started to leave.

“It is soupe à l’onion to-day!” she cried, laughing back at him through the sunlight, “and I must go and see about it. Otherwise, you know, M’sieur will not enjoy his dinner, and then, perhaps, he will leave us!”

“It’s soupe à l’onion today!” she exclaimed, laughing back at him in the sunlight, “and I have to go check on it. Otherwise, you know, M’sieur won't enjoy his dinner, and then he might leave us!”

He watched her cross the courtyard, moving with all the grace and lightness of the feline race, and her simple black dress clothed her, he thought, exactly like the fur of the same supple species. She turned once to laugh at him from the porch with the glass door, and then stopped a moment to speak to her mother, who sat knitting as usual in her corner seat just inside the hall-way.

He watched her walk across the courtyard, moving with all the grace and lightness of a cat, and her simple black dress, he thought, looked just like the fur of that sleek creature. She turned once to laugh at him from the porch with the glass door, then paused for a moment to talk to her mother, who was sitting in her usual corner chair just inside the hallway, knitting.

But how was it, then, that the moment his eye fell upon this ungainly woman, the pair of them appeared suddenly as other than they were? Whence came that transforming dignity and sense of power that enveloped them both as by magic? What was it about that massive woman that made her appear instantly regal, and set her on a throne in some dark and dreadful scenery, wielding a sceptre over the red glare of some tempestuous orgy? And why did this slender stripling of a girl, graceful as a willow, lithe as a young leopard, assume suddenly an air of sinister majesty, and move with flame and smoke about her head, and the darkness of night beneath her feet?

But how was it that the moment he saw this awkward woman, they both suddenly seemed different from who they really were? Where did that transforming dignity and sense of power that surrounded them both come from, almost like magic? What was it about that towering woman that made her look instantly regal, placing her on a throne in some dark and terrifying setting, holding a scepter over the fiery chaos of some wild celebration? And why did this slender girl, graceful like a willow and agile like a young leopard, suddenly take on an air of ominous majesty, moving with flames and smoke around her head, and the darkness of night beneath her feet?

Vezin caught his breath and sat there transfixed. Then, almost simultaneously with its appearance, the queer notion vanished again, and the sunlight of day caught them both, and he heard her laughing to her mother about the soupe à l’onion, and saw her glancing back at him over her dear little shoulder with a smile that made him think of a dew-kissed rose bending lightly before summer airs.

Vezin caught his breath and sat there in shock. Then, just as quickly as it appeared, the strange idea disappeared again, and the daylight enveloped them both. He heard her laughing to her mother about the soupe à l’onion and saw her glance back at him over her adorable little shoulder with a smile that reminded him of a dew-kissed rose swaying gently in the summer breeze.

And, indeed, the onion soup was particularly excellent that day, because he saw another cover laid at his small table and, with fluttering heart, heard the waiter murmur by way of explanation that “Ma’mselle Ilsé would honour M’sieur to-day at déjeuner, as her custom sometimes is with her mother’s guests.”

And, really, the onion soup was especially good that day, because he noticed another place set at his little table and, with a racing heart, heard the waiter explain that “Mademoiselle Ilsé would be joining Monsieur today for déjeuner, as she sometimes does with her mother’s guests.”

So actually she sat by him all through that delirious meal, talking quietly to him in easy French, seeing that he was well looked after, mixing the salad-dressing, and even helping him with her own hand. And, later in the afternoon, while he was smoking in the courtyard, longing for a sight of her as soon as her duties were done, she came again to his side, and when he rose to meet her, she stood facing him a moment, full of a perplexing sweet shyness before she spoke—

So she actually sat next to him the whole time during that wild meal, chatting softly in casual French, making sure he was taken care of, mixing the salad dressing, and even helping him with her own hands. And later in the afternoon, while he was smoking in the courtyard, wishing to see her as soon as she finished her tasks, she came back to his side, and when he stood up to greet her, she faced him for a moment, filled with a confusing sweet shyness before she said anything—

“My mother thinks you ought to know more of the beauties of our little town, and I think so too! Would M’sieur like me to be his guide, perhaps? I can show him everything, for our family has lived here for many generations.”

“My mom thinks you should learn more about the charms of our small town, and I agree! Would you like me to be your guide? I can show you everything since my family has lived here for many generations.”

She had him by the hand, indeed, before he could find a single word to express his pleasure, and led him, all unresisting, out into the street, yet in such a way that it seemed perfectly natural she should do so, and without the faintest suggestion of boldness or immodesty. Her face glowed with the pleasure and interest of it, and with her short dress and tumbled hair she looked every bit the charming child of seventeen that she was, innocent and playful, proud of her native town, and alive beyond her years to the sense of its ancient beauty.

She took his hand before he could say anything to show his happiness and led him out into the street, and it felt completely natural for her to do so, without any hint of being forward or inappropriate. Her face lit up with joy and curiosity, and with her short dress and messy hair, she looked just like the delightful seventeen-year-old she was—innocent and playful, proud of her hometown, and more aware than her age might suggest of its timeless beauty.

So they went over the town together, and she showed him what she considered its chief interest: the tumble-down old house where her forebears had lived; the sombre, aristocratic-looking mansion where her mother’s family dwelt for centuries, and the ancient market-place where several hundred years before the witches had been burnt by the score. She kept up a lively running stream of talk about it all, of which he understood not a fiftieth part as he trudged along by her side, cursing his forty-five years and feeling all the yearnings of his early manhood revive and jeer at him. And, as she talked, England and Surbiton seemed very far away indeed, almost in another age of the world’s history. Her voice touched something immeasurably old in him, something that slept deep. It lulled the surface parts of his consciousness to sleep, allowing what was far more ancient to awaken. Like the town, with its elaborate pretence of modern active life, the upper layers of his being became dulled, soothed, muffled, and what lay underneath began to stir in its sleep. That big Curtain swayed a little to and fro. Presently it might lift altogether....

So they walked around the town together, and she pointed out what she thought were its main attractions: the rundown old house where her ancestors had lived; the somber, aristocratic-looking mansion where her mom's family had been for centuries, and the ancient marketplace where, hundreds of years earlier, witches had been burned by the dozens. She kept a lively conversation going about it all, of which he understood barely a fraction as he trudged along beside her, cursing his forty-five years and feeling all the longings of his youth resurface and mock him. As she spoke, England and Surbiton seemed very far away, almost in a different era of the world's history. Her voice touched something incredibly old within him, something that lay deep asleep. It quieted the surface parts of his mind, allowing what was much older to awaken. Like the town, with its elaborate facade of modern activity, the upper layers of his being became dulled, soothed, muffled, and what lay beneath started to stir in its sleep. That big curtain swayed a little back and forth. Soon it might lift completely...

He began to understand a little better at last. The mood of the town was reproducing itself in him. In proportion as his ordinary external self became muffled, that inner secret life, that was far more real and vital, asserted itself. And this girl was surely the high-priestess of it all, the chief instrument of its accomplishment. New thoughts, with new interpretations, flooded his mind as she walked beside him through the winding streets, while the picturesque old gabled town, softly coloured in the sunset, had never appeared to him so wholly wonderful and seductive.

He finally started to understand a bit better. The vibe of the town was reflecting in him. As his usual outer self faded away, that deeper inner life, which felt much more real and alive, came to the forefront. And this girl was definitely the key to it all, the main force behind its unfolding. Fresh thoughts with new meanings poured into his mind as she walked next to him through the winding streets, while the charming old gabled town, bathed in the soft colors of sunset, had never looked so completely amazing and enchanting to him.

And only one curious incident came to disturb and puzzle him, slight in itself, but utterly inexplicable, bringing white terror into the child’s face and a scream to her laughing lips. He had merely pointed to a column of blue smoke that rose from the burning autumn leaves and made a picture against the red roofs, and had then run to the wall and called her to his side to watch the flames shooting here and there through the heap of rubbish. Yet, at the sight of it, as though taken by surprise, her face had altered dreadfully, and she had turned and run like the wind, calling out wild sentences to him as she ran, of which he had not understood a single word, except that the fire apparently frightened her, and she wanted to get quickly away from it, and to get him away too.

And just one strange incident disrupted and confused him, small in itself, but completely inexplicable, striking pure terror into the child's face and turning her laughter into a scream. He had simply pointed to a column of blue smoke rising from the burning autumn leaves, creating a picture against the red roofs, and then he ran to the wall and called her to come watch the flames dancing through the pile of rubbish. But at the sight of it, as if caught off guard, her face changed horribly, and she turned and ran like the wind, calling out frantic sentences to him as she went, none of which he understood except that the fire clearly scared her, and she wanted to get away from it fast, and she wanted him to get away too.

Yet five minutes later she was as calm and happy again as though nothing had happened to alarm or waken troubled thoughts in her, and they had both forgotten the incident.

Yet five minutes later, she was just as calm and happy as if nothing had happened to disturb or wake up any troubling thoughts in her, and they had both forgotten the incident.

They were leaning over the ruined ramparts together listening to the weird music of the band as he had heard it the first day of his arrival. It moved him again profoundly as it had done before, and somehow he managed to find his tongue and his best French. The girl leaned across the stones close beside him. No one was about. Driven by some remorseless engine within he began to stammer something—he hardly knew what—of his strange admiration for her. Almost at the first word she sprang lightly off the wall and came up smiling in front of him, just touching his knees as he sat there. She was hatless as usual, and the sun caught her hair and one side of her cheek and throat.

They were leaning over the broken walls together, listening to the strange music of the band like he had on his first day there. It moved him deeply once again, just like before, and somehow he managed to find the words in his best French. The girl leaned over the stones right next to him. There was no one else around. Driven by some relentless force inside him, he started to stammer something—he barely knew what—about his unusual admiration for her. Almost at the first word, she jumped lightly off the wall and came up smiling in front of him, just nudging his knees as he sat there. She was hatless as usual, and the sun caught her hair and one side of her cheek and neck.

“Oh, I’m so glad!” she cried, clapping her little hands softly in his face, “so very glad, because that means that if you like me you must also like what I do, and what I belong to.”

“Oh, I’m so glad!” she exclaimed, gently clapping her little hands in front of his face, “I’m really glad because that means if you like me, you must also like what I do and what I stand for.”

Already he regretted bitterly having lost control of himself. Something in the phrasing of her sentence chilled him. He knew the fear of embarking upon an unknown and dangerous sea.

Already he deeply regretted losing control. Something in her wording sent a chill down his spine. He was familiar with the fear of venturing into an unknown and treacherous situation.

“You will take part in our real life, I mean,” she added softly, with an indescribable coaxing of manner, as though she noticed his shrinking. “You will come back to us.”

“You will be a part of our real life, I mean,” she added quietly, with an unexplainable gentle persuasion in her tone, as if she sensed him pulling away. “You will come back to us.”

Already this slip of a child seemed to dominate him; he felt her power coming over him more and more; something emanated from her that stole over his senses and made him aware that her personality, for all its simple grace, held forces that were stately, imposing, august. He saw her again moving through smoke and flame amid broken and tempestuous scenery, alarmingly strong, her terrible mother by her side. Dimly this shone through her smile and appearance of charming innocence.

Even at her young age, this little girl seemed to have an overwhelming presence; he felt her influence growing stronger. There was something about her that captivated his senses and made him realize that her personality, despite its simple charm, held a commanding and dignified force. He envisioned her again, navigating through smoke and fire in a chaotic environment, remarkably powerful, with her fierce mother beside her. This strength was subtly revealed in her smile and her seemingly innocent demeanor.

“You will, I know,” she repeated, holding him with her eyes.

“You will, I know,” she repeated, holding his gaze.

They were quite alone up there on the ramparts, and the sensation that she was overmastering him stirred a wild sensuousness in his blood. The mingled abandon and reserve in her attracted him furiously, and all of him that was man rose up and resisted the creeping influence, at the same time acclaiming it with the full delight of his forgotten youth. An irresistible desire came to him to question her, to summon what still remained to him of his own little personality in an effort to retain the right to his normal self.

They were completely alone up there on the walls, and the feeling that she was dominating him stirred a wild passion in his blood. The mix of freedom and restraint in her drew him in fiercely, and everything that made him a man pushed back against the growing influence while also celebrating it with the full joy of his long-buried youth. An undeniable urge came over him to ask her questions, to draw on whatever was left of his own little personality in an effort to hold on to his normal self.

The girl had grown quiet again, and was now leaning on the broad wall close beside him, gazing out across the darkening plain, her elbows on the coping, motionless as a figure carved in stone. He took his courage in both hands.

The girl had gone quiet again and was now leaning against the wide wall next to him, staring out at the darkening plains, her elbows on the ledge, still as a statue. He gathered his courage.

“Tell me, Ilsé,” he said, unconsciously imitating her own purring softness of voice, yet aware that he was utterly in earnest, “what is the meaning of this town, and what is this real life you speak of? And why is it that the people watch me from morning to night? Tell me what it all means? And, tell me,” he added more quickly with passion in his voice, “what you really are—yourself?”

“Tell me, Ilsé,” he said, unconsciously mimicking her soft, purring voice, yet fully aware that he was completely serious, “what does this town mean, and what is this real life you talk about? And why do the people watch me from morning until night? What does it all mean? And, tell me,” he added more urgently with passion in his voice, “what are you really—who are you?”

She turned her head and looked at him through half-closed eyelids, her growing inner excitement betraying itself by the faint colour that ran like a shadow across her face.

She turned her head and looked at him through half-closed eyelids, her rising inner excitement showing itself in the faint color that spread like a shadow across her face.

“It seems to me,”—he faltered oddly under her gaze—“that I have some right to know——”

“It seems to me,”—he hesitated strangely under her gaze—“that I have a right to know——”

Suddenly she opened her eyes to the full. “You love me, then?” she asked softly.

Suddenly, she fully opened her eyes. “So, you love me?” she asked gently.

“I swear,” he cried impetuously, moved as by the force of a rising tide, “I never felt before—I have never known any other girl who——”

“I swear,” he exclaimed impulsively, swept away like a rising tide, “I’ve never felt this way before—I’ve never known any other girl who——”

“Then you have the right to know,” she calmly interrupted his confused confession; “for love shares all secrets.”

“Then you have the right to know,” she calmly interrupted his confused confession; “because love shares all secrets.”

She paused, and a thrill like fire ran swiftly through him. Her words lifted him off the earth, and he felt a radiant happiness, followed almost the same instant in horrible contrast by the thought of death. He became aware that she had turned her eyes upon his own and was speaking again.

She stopped, and a rush of excitement coursed through him like flames. Her words made him feel weightless, and he experienced a glowing happiness, quickly followed by the jarring thought of death. He realized she had turned her gaze to his and was speaking again.

“The real life I speak of,” she whispered, “is the old, old life within, the life of long ago, the life to which you, too, once belonged, and to which you still belong.”

“The real life I’m talking about,” she whispered, “is the old, old life inside, the life from long ago, the life to which you, too, once belonged, and to which you still belong.”

A faint wave of memory troubled the deeps of his soul as her low voice sank into him. What she was saying he knew instinctively to be true, even though he could not as yet understand its full purport. His present life seemed slipping from him as he listened, merging his personality in one that was far older and greater. It was this loss of his present self that brought to him the thought of death.

A faint wave of memory stirred in the depths of his soul as her soft voice resonated within him. He instinctively knew that what she was saying was true, even though he couldn't fully grasp its meaning yet. As he listened, his current life felt like it was slipping away, merging his identity with one that was much older and more significant. This loss of his present self made him think about death.

“You came here,” she went on, “with the purpose of seeking it, and the people felt your presence and are waiting to know what you decide, whether you will leave them without having found it, or whether——”

“You came here,” she continued, “to look for it, and the people sensed your arrival and are waiting to hear what you choose, whether you will leave them without discovering it, or whether——”

Her eyes remained fixed upon his own, but her face began to change, growing larger and darker with an expression of age.

Her eyes stayed locked on his, but her face started to transform, becoming bigger and darker, reflecting an expression of age.

“It is their thoughts constantly playing about your soul that makes you feel they watch you. They do not watch you with their eyes. The purposes of their inner life are calling to you, seeking to claim you. You were all part of the same life long, long ago, and now they want you back again among them.”

“It’s their thoughts constantly drifting around your soul that makes you feel like they're watching you. They don't watch you with their eyes. The intentions of their inner lives are reaching out to you, trying to bring you back. You were all part of the same life a long time ago, and now they want you back with them.”

Vezin’s timid heart sank with dread as he listened; but the girl’s eyes held him with a net of joy so that he had no wish to escape. She fascinated him, as it were, clean out of his normal self.

Vezin’s anxious heart sank with fear as he listened; but the girl’s eyes captured him in a web of joy, so he felt no desire to flee. She intrigued him, pulling him completely out of his usual self.

“Alone, however, the people could never have caught and held you,” she resumed. “The motive force was not strong enough; it has faded through all these years. But I”—she paused a moment and looked at him with complete confidence in her splendid eyes—“I possess the spell to conquer you and hold you: the spell of old love. I can win you back again and make you live the old life with me, for the force of the ancient tie between us, if I choose to use it, is irresistible. And I do choose to use it I still want you. And you, dear soul of my dim past”—she pressed closer to him so that her breath passed across his eyes, and her voice positively sang—“I mean to have you, for you love me and are utterly at my mercy.”

“On their own, the people would never have been able to catch and keep you,” she continued. “The driving force wasn’t strong enough; it’s faded over the years. But I”—she paused for a moment and looked at him with complete confidence in her beautiful eyes—“I have the magic to conquer you and keep you: the magic of old love. I can bring you back and make you live the old life with me because the strength of the bond between us, if I decide to tap into it, is irresistible. And I do decide to tap into it—I still want you. And you, dear soul of my distant past”—she moved closer to him so that her breath brushed against his eyes, and her voice practically sang—“I intend to have you, because you love me and are completely at my mercy.”

Vezin heard, and yet did not hear; understood, yet did not understand. He had passed into a condition of exaltation. The world was beneath his feet, made of music and flowers, and he was flying somewhere far above it through the sunshine of pure delight. He was breathless and giddy with the wonder of her words. They intoxicated him. And, still, the terror of it all, the dreadful thought of death, pressed ever behind her sentences. For flames shot through her voice out of black smoke and licked at his soul.

Vezin heard, but didn’t really listen; he understood, yet couldn’t truly grasp it. He had entered a state of bliss. The world felt like it was at his feet, a mix of music and flowers, and he was soaring somewhere high above it all, basking in pure joy. He was breathless and dizzy with the magic of her words. They filled him with ecstasy. Still, lurking behind her phrases was the haunting fear of death, always present. Flames seemed to blaze through her voice from dark smoke, reaching for his soul.

And they communicated with one another, it seemed to him, by a process of swift telepathy, for his French could never have compassed all he said to her. Yet she understood perfectly, and what she said to him was like the recital of verses long since known. And the mingled pain and sweetness of it as he listened were almost more than his little soul could hold.

And it seemed to him that they connected with each other through a rapid telepathy, because his French could never fully express everything he wanted to say to her. But she understood him completely, and her responses were like reciting verses he had known for a long time. As he listened, the mixture of pain and sweetness was almost too much for his small soul to bear.

“Yet I came here wholly by chance——” he heard himself saying.

“Yet I came here completely by chance——” he heard himself saying.

“No,” she cried with passion, “you came here because I called to you. I have called to you for years, and you came with the whole force of the past behind you. You had to come, for I own you, and I claim you.”

“No,” she shouted passionately, “you came here because I called you. I’ve been calling you for years, and you came with all the weight of the past behind you. You had to come, because I own you, and I claim you.”

She rose again and moved closer, looking at him with a certain insolence in the face—the insolence of power.

She stood up again and moved closer, gazing at him with a kind of defiance in her expression—the defiance of power.

The sun had set behind the towers of the old cathedral and the darkness rose up from the plain and enveloped them. The music of the band had ceased. The leaves of the plane trees hung motionless, but the chill of the autumn evening rose about them and made Vezin shiver. There was no sound but the sound of their voices and the occasional soft rustle of the girl’s dress. He could hear the blood rushing in his ears. He scarcely realised where he was or what he was doing. Some terrible magic of the imagination drew him deeply down into the tombs of his own being, telling him in no unfaltering voice that her words shadowed forth the truth. And this simple little French maid, speaking beside him with so strange authority, he saw curiously alter into quite another being. As he stared into her eyes, the picture in his mind grew and lived, dressing itself vividly to his inner vision with a degree of reality he was compelled to acknowledge. As once before, he saw her tall and stately, moving through wild and broken scenery of forests and mountain caverns, the glare of flames behind her head and clouds of shifting smoke about her feet. Dark leaves encircled her hair, flying loosely in the wind, and her limbs shone through the merest rags of clothing. Others were about her too, and ardent eyes on all sides cast delirious glances upon her, but her own eyes were always for One only, one whom she held by the hand. For she was leading the dance in some tempestuous orgy to the music of chanting voices, and the dance she led circled about a great and awful Figure on a throne, brooding over the scene through lurid vapours, while innumerable other wild faces and forms crowded furiously about her in the dance. But the one she held by the hand he knew to be himself, and the monstrous shape upon the throne he knew to be her mother.

The sun had set behind the towers of the old cathedral, and darkness rose from the plain, wrapping around them. The band’s music had stopped. The leaves of the plane trees hung still, but the chill of the autumn evening enveloped them, making Vezin shiver. The only sound was their voices and the occasional soft rustle of the girl’s dress. He could hear the blood rushing in his ears. He barely realized where he was or what he was doing. Some strange magic of the imagination pulled him deep into the depths of his own being, telling him in a clear voice that her words hinted at the truth. And this simple little French maid, speaking beside him with such unusual authority, began to transform in his eyes into someone entirely different. As he stared into her eyes, the image in his mind expanded and came to life, vividly presenting itself with such a degree of reality that he couldn’t ignore it. Just as before, he saw her tall and regal, moving through wild and broken landscapes of forests and mountain caverns, with flames glaring behind her and clouds of swirling smoke around her feet. Dark leaves framed her hair, blowing freely in the wind, and her limbs shone through the thin rags of clothing. Others were around her too, their eager eyes casting ecstatic glances her way, but her own gaze was always for just One, the person she held by the hand. For she was leading the dance in some wild celebration to the music of chanting voices, and the dance she led circled around a great and terrifying Figure on a throne, looming over the scene through bright vapors, while countless other wild faces and forms angrily swirled around her in the dance. But the one she held by the hand, he recognized as himself, and the monstrous shape on the throne, he identified as her mother.

The vision rose within him, rushing to him down the long years of buried time, crying aloud to him with the voice of memory reawakened.... And then the scene faded away and he saw the clear circle of the girl’s eyes gazing steadfastly into his own, and she became once more the pretty little daughter of the innkeeper, and he found his voice again.

The vision surged within him, traveling through the long years of forgotten time, calling out to him with the voice of revived memories.... Then the scene faded, and he saw the bright circle of the girl's eyes looking steadily into his, and she transformed back into the cute little daughter of the innkeeper, and he regained his voice.

“And you,” he whispered tremblingly—“you child of visions and enchantment, how is it that you so bewitch me that I loved you even before I saw?”

“And you,” he whispered nervously, “you child of dreams and magic, how is it that you charm me so deeply that I loved you even before I laid eyes on you?”

She drew herself up beside him with an air of rare dignity.

She stood up next to him with a sense of uncommon dignity.

“The call of the Past,” she said; “and besides,” she added proudly, “in the real life I am a princess——”

“The call of the Past,” she said; “and besides,” she added proudly, “in real life, I’m a princess——”

“A princess!” he cried.

"A princess!" he shouted.

“——and my mother is a queen!”

“——and my mom is a queen!”

At this, little Vezin utterly lost his head. Delight tore at his heart and swept him into sheer ecstasy. To hear that sweet singing voice, and to see those adorable little lips utter such things, upset his balance beyond all hope of control. He took her in his arms and covered her unresisting face with kisses.

At this, little Vezin completely lost his mind. Joy filled his heart and overwhelmed him with pure happiness. Hearing that sweet singing voice and seeing those adorable little lips say such things threw him off balance beyond any chance of control. He took her in his arms and showered her unresisting face with kisses.

But even while he did so, and while the hot passion swept him, he felt that she was soft and loathsome, and that her answering kisses stained his very soul.... And when, presently, she had freed herself and vanished into the darkness, he stood there, leaning against the wall in a state of collapse, creeping with horror from the touch of her yielding body, and inwardly raging at the weakness that he already dimly realised must prove his undoing.

But even as he did this, and while the intense passion took over him, he felt that she was both delicate and repulsive, and that her returning kisses tainted his very soul... And when, eventually, she had pulled away and disappeared into the dark, he stood there, leaning against the wall in a state of despair, horrified by the memory of her soft body, and inwardly furious at the weakness that he already vaguely sensed would lead to his downfall.

And from the shadows of the old buildings into which she disappeared there rose in the stillness of the night a singular, long-drawn cry, which at first he took for laughter, but which later he was sure he recognised as the almost human wailing of a cat.

And from the shadows of the old buildings where she vanished, a unique, drawn-out cry rose in the stillness of the night. At first, he thought it was laughter, but later he was certain it was the almost human wailing of a cat.

V

For a long time Vezin leant there against the wall, alone with his surging thoughts and emotions. He understood at length that he had done the one thing necessary to call down upon him the whole force of this ancient Past. For in those passionate kisses he had acknowledged the tie of olden days, and had revived it. And the memory of that soft impalpable caress in the darkness of the inn corridor came back to him with a shudder. The girl had first mastered him, and then led him to the one act that was necessary for her purpose. He had been waylaid, after the lapse of centuries—caught, and conquered.

For a long time, Vezin stood there against the wall, alone with his racing thoughts and emotions. He eventually realized that he had done the one thing needed to bring down the full weight of this ancient past upon him. In those passionate kisses, he had acknowledged a connection from days gone by and had reignited it. The memory of that soft, intangible caress in the darkness of the inn corridor came back to him with a shiver. The girl had first captivated him and then led him to the one act required for her goal. He had been ambushed, after centuries—captured and defeated.

Dimly he realised this, and sought to make plans for his escape. But, for the moment at any rate, he was powerless to manage his thoughts or will, for the sweet, fantastic madness of the whole adventure mounted to his brain like a spell, and he gloried in the feeling that he was utterly enchanted and moving in a world so much larger and wilder than the one he had ever been accustomed to.

Dimly, he realized this and tried to plan his escape. But for now, he was unable to control his thoughts or will, as the sweet, surreal madness of the whole adventure filled his head like a spell. He reveled in the feeling that he was completely enchanted and that he was in a world so much bigger and wilder than anything he had ever known.

The moon, pale and enormous, was just rising over the sea-like plain, when at last he rose to go. Her slanting rays drew all the houses into new perspective, so that their roofs, already glistening with dew, seemed to stretch much higher into the sky than usual, and their gables and quaint old towers lay far away in its purple reaches.

The huge, pale moon was just rising over the sea-like plains when he finally got up to leave. Its angled rays changed the way the houses looked, making their dew-covered roofs appear to reach much higher into the sky than they normally did, and their gables and old, quirky towers seemed to lie far away in the purple expanse.

The cathedral appeared unreal in a silver mist. He moved softly, keeping to the shadows; but the streets were all deserted and very silent; the doors were closed, the shutters fastened. Not a soul was astir. The hush of night lay over everything; it was like a town of the dead, a churchyard with gigantic and grotesque tombstones.

The cathedral looked surreal in a silver mist. He moved quietly, sticking to the shadows; but the streets were completely deserted and very silent; the doors were shut, the shutters secured. Not a single person was around. The stillness of night covered everything; it felt like a ghost town, a graveyard filled with huge and bizarre headstones.

Wondering where all the busy life of the day had so utterly disappeared to, he made his way to a back door that entered the inn by means of the stables, thinking thus to reach his room unobserved. He reached the courtyard safely and crossed it by keeping close to the shadow of the wall. He sidled down it, mincing along on tiptoe, just as the old men did when they entered the salle à manger. He was horrified to find himself doing this instinctively. A strange impulse came to him, catching him somehow in the centre of his body—an impulse to drop upon all fours and run swiftly and silently. He glanced upwards and the idea came to him to leap up upon his window-sill overhead instead of going round by the stairs. This occurred to him as the easiest, and most natural way. It was like the beginning of some horrible transformation of himself into something else. He was fearfully strung up.

Wondering where all the hectic activity of the day had completely gone, he headed to a back door that led into the inn through the stables, hoping to get to his room unnoticed. He made it to the courtyard safely and crossed it while sticking close to the wall's shadow. He crept along it on tiptoe, much like the old men did when they entered the salle à manger. He was shocked to realize he was doing this instinctively. A strange urge hit him, feeling like it was centered in his body—an urge to drop to all fours and move quickly and quietly. He looked up and got the idea to jump up onto his window-sill above instead of going around by the stairs. It seemed like the easiest and most natural option. It felt like the beginning of some terrifying transformation into something else. He was intensely on edge.

The moon was higher now, and the shadows very dark along the side of the street where he moved. He kept among the deepest of them, and reached the porch with the glass doors.

The moon was higher now, and the shadows were very dark along the side of the street where he walked. He stayed in the deepest shadows and reached the porch with the glass doors.

But here there was light; the inmates, unfortunately, were still about. Hoping to slip across the hall unobserved and reach the stairs, he opened the door carefully and stole in. Then he saw that the hall was not empty. A large dark thing lay against the wall on his left. At first he thought it must be household articles. Then it moved, and he thought it was an immense cat, distorted in some way by the play of light and shadow. Then it rose straight up before him and he saw that it was the proprietress.

But there was light here; unfortunately, the residents were still around. Hoping to sneak across the hall unnoticed and reach the stairs, he opened the door carefully and slipped inside. Then he realized that the hall wasn't empty. A large dark object was against the wall on his left. At first, he thought it was just some household items. Then it moved, and he thought it was a huge cat, distorted somehow by the interplay of light and shadow. Then it stood up straight in front of him, and he saw that it was the owner.

What she had been doing in this position he could only venture a dreadful guess, but the moment she stood up and faced him he was aware of some terrible dignity clothing her about that instantly recalled the girl’s strange saying that she was a queen. Huge and sinister she stood there under the little oil lamp; alone with him in the empty hall. Awe stirred in his heart, and the roots of some ancient fear. He felt that he must bow to her and make some kind of obeisance. The impulse was fierce and irresistible, as of long habit. He glanced quickly about him. There was no one there. Then he deliberately inclined his head towards her. He bowed.

What she had been doing in that position, he could only guess, but the moment she stood up and faced him, he felt an overwhelming sense of dignity surrounding her that quickly reminded him of the girl’s strange claim of being a queen. She stood there, large and imposing, under the small oil lamp; alone with him in the empty hall. Awe stirred in his heart, along with the roots of some ancient fear. He felt he had to bow to her and show some kind of respect. The urge was strong and impossible to resist, as if it were a long-standing habit. He glanced quickly around. There was no one else there. Then, he deliberately lowered his head toward her. He bowed.

“Enfin! M’sieur s’est donc décidé. C’est bien alors. J’en suis contente.”

“Finally! You’ve made up your mind, sir. That’s great. I’m happy about that.”

Her words came to him sonorously as through a great open space.

Her words reached him clearly as if through a vast open space.

Then the great figure came suddenly across the flagged hall at him and seized his trembling hands. Some overpowering force moved with her and caught him.

Then the imposing figure suddenly crossed the tiled hall and grabbed his trembling hands. An overwhelming energy accompanied her and ensnared him.

“On pourrait faire un p’tit tour ensemble, n’est-ce pas? Nous y allons cette nuit et il faut s’exercer un peu d’avance pour cela. Ilsé, Ilsé, viens donc ici. Viens vite!”

“Want to take a little trip together, right? We're going tonight and we should practice a bit in advance for it. Ilsé, Ilsé, come here. Hurry up!”

And she whirled him round in the opening steps of some dance that seemed oddly and horribly familiar. They made no sound on the stones, this strangely assorted couple. It was all soft and stealthy. And presently, when the air seemed to thicken like smoke, and a red glare as of flame shot through it, he was aware that some one else had joined them and that his hand the mother had released was now tightly held by the daughter. Ilsé had come in answer to the call, and he saw her with leaves of vervain twined in her dark hair, clothed in tattered vestiges of some curious garment, beautiful as the night, and horribly, odiously, loathsomely seductive.

And she spun him around in the opening moves of a dance that felt strangely and terrifyingly familiar. They made no sound on the stones, this oddly paired couple. It was all soft and stealthy. Soon, when the air seemed to thicken like smoke, and a red glow like flame shot through it, he realized that someone else had joined them and that the hand the mother had released was now tightly held by the daughter. Ilsé had come in response to the call, and he saw her with vervain leaves woven into her dark hair, dressed in tattered remnants of some strange garment, beautiful like the night, and horribly, disgustingly, seductively alluring.

“To the Sabbath! to the Sabbath!” they cried. “On to the Witches’ Sabbath!”

“To the Sabbath! to the Sabbath!” they shouted. “Let’s go to the Witches’ Sabbath!”

Up and down that narrow hall they danced, the women on each side of him, to the wildest measure he had ever imagined, yet which he dimly, dreadfully remembered, till the lamp on the wall flickered and went out, and they were left in total darkness. And the devil woke in his heart with a thousand vile suggestions and made him afraid.

Up and down that narrow hall they danced, the women on each side of him, to the wildest beat he had ever imagined, yet which he vaguely and horrifyingly remembered, until the lamp on the wall flickered and went out, leaving them in complete darkness. And the devil stirred in his heart with a thousand disgusting ideas and made him afraid.

Suddenly they released his hands and he heard the voice of the mother cry that it was time, and they must go. Which way they went he did not pause to see. He only realised that he was free, and he blundered through the darkness till he found the stairs and then tore up them to his room as though all hell was at his heels.

Suddenly, they let go of his hands, and he heard his mother’s voice crying that it was time to go. He didn’t stop to see which way they went. He only realized he was free and stumbled through the darkness until he found the stairs, then raced up them to his room as if all hell was chasing him.

He flung himself on the sofa, with his face in his hands, and groaned. Swiftly reviewing a dozen ways of immediate escape, all equally impossible, he finally decided that the only thing to do for the moment was to sit quiet and wait. He must see what was going to happen. At least in the privacy of his own bedroom he would be fairly safe. The door was locked. He crossed over and softly opened the window which gave upon the courtyard and also permitted a partial view of the hall through the glass doors.

He threw himself onto the couch, covering his face with his hands, and groaned. Quickly thinking of a dozen ways to escape, all of them just as impossible, he finally decided that the only thing to do for now was to sit still and wait. He needed to see what was going to happen. At least in the privacy of his own bedroom, he would be fairly safe. The door was locked. He moved over and quietly opened the window that looked out onto the courtyard and also allowed a partial view of the hall through the glass doors.

As he did so the hum and murmur of a great activity reached his ears from the streets beyond—the sound of footsteps and voices muffled by distance. He leaned out cautiously and listened. The moonlight was clear and strong now, but his own window was in shadow, the silver disc being still behind the house. It came to him irresistibly that the inhabitants of the town, who a little while before had all been invisible behind closed doors, were now issuing forth, busy upon some secret and unholy errand. He listened intently.

As he did this, the hum and murmur of a bustling activity reached his ears from the streets outside—the sound of footsteps and voices faintly audible from a distance. He leaned out carefully and listened. The moonlight was bright and strong now, but his own window was in shadow, with the silver disc still behind the house. It struck him that the townspeople, who not long ago had all been hidden behind closed doors, were now coming out, engaged in some secret and questionable task. He listened closely.

At first everything about him was silent, but soon he became aware of movements going on in the house itself. Rustlings and cheepings came to him across that still, moonlit yard. A concourse of living beings sent the hum of their activity into the night. Things were on the move everywhere. A biting, pungent odour rose through the air, coming he knew not whence. Presently his eyes became glued to the windows of the opposite wall where the moonshine fell in a soft blaze. The roof overhead, and behind him, was reflected clearly in the panes of glass, and he saw the outlines of dark bodies moving with long footsteps over the tiles and along the coping. They passed swiftly and silently, shaped like immense cats, in an endless procession across the pictured glass, and then appeared to leap down to a lower level where he lost sight of them. He just caught the soft thudding of their leaps. Sometimes their shadows fell upon the white wall opposite, and then he could not make out whether they were the shadows of human beings or of cats. They seemed to change swiftly from one to the other. The transformation looked horribly real, for they leaped like human beings, yet changed swiftly in the air immediately afterwards, and dropped like animals.

At first, everything about him was quiet, but soon he started noticing movements happening in the house itself. Sounds of rustling and chirping reached him across the still, moonlit yard. A group of living beings sent the buzz of their activity into the night. Everything was in motion. A sharp, strong smell filled the air, and he couldn’t tell where it was coming from. Eventually, his eyes were drawn to the windows of the wall opposite where the moonlight poured in brightly. The roof above him, and behind him, was clearly reflected in the glass panes, and he saw dark figures moving with long strides over the tiles and along the edges. They passed quickly and silently, shaped like huge cats, in an endless line across the illuminated glass, then seemed to jump down to a lower level where he lost sight of them. He barely caught the soft thuds of their jumps. Sometimes their shadows fell on the white wall across from him, and he couldn’t tell if they were shadows of humans or of cats. They seemed to shift swiftly from one to the other. The transformation looked terrifyingly real, as they leaped like humans but quickly changed in mid-air and dropped like animals.

The yard, too, beneath him, was now alive with the creeping movements of dark forms all stealthily drawing towards the porch with the glass doors. They kept so closely to the wall that he could not determine their actual shape, but when he saw that they passed on to the great congregation that was gathering in the hall, he understood that these were the creatures whose leaping shadows he had first seen reflected in the window-panes opposite. They were coming from all parts of the town, reaching the appointed meeting-place across the roofs and tiles, and springing from level to level till they came to the yard.

The yard below him was now buzzing with the stealthy movements of dark figures, all quietly making their way toward the porch with the glass doors. They stayed so close to the wall that he couldn't make out their actual shape, but when he noticed they passed into the large crowd gathering in the hall, he realized these were the creatures whose jumping shadows he had first spotted reflected in the window panes across from him. They were arriving from all over town, traveling to the designated meeting spot across the roofs and tiles, leaping from level to level until they reached the yard.

Then a new sound caught his ear, and he saw that the windows all about him were being softly opened, and that to each window came a face. A moment later figures began dropping hurriedly down into the yard. And these figures, as they lowered themselves down from the windows, were human, he saw; but once safely in the yard they fell upon all fours and changed in the swiftest possible second into—cats—huge, silent cats. They ran in streams to join the main body in the hall beyond.

Then a new sound caught his attention, and he noticed that the windows around him were being gently opened, with a face appearing at each one. Moments later, figures began to quickly drop down into the yard. He realized that these figures, as they lowered themselves from the windows, were human; but once they were safely in the yard, they dropped onto all fours and instantly transformed into—cats—large, silent cats. They dashed in groups to join the main crowd in the hall beyond.

So, after all, the rooms in the house had not been empty and unoccupied.

So, in the end, the rooms in the house hadn’t been empty and unoccupied.

Moreover, what he saw no longer filled him with amazement. For he remembered it all. It was familiar. It had all happened before just so, hundreds of times, and he himself had taken part in it and known the wild madness of it all. The outline of the old building changed, the yard grew larger, and he seemed to be staring down upon it from a much greater height through smoky vapours. And, as he looked, half remembering, the old pains of long ago, fierce and sweet, furiously assailed him, and the blood stirred horribly as he heard the Call of the Dance again in his heart and tasted the ancient magic of Ilsé whirling by his side.

Moreover, what he saw no longer amazed him. He remembered it all. It was familiar. It had all happened just like this hundreds of times before, and he had been a part of it, experiencing the wild madness of it all. The shape of the old building changed, the yard expanded, and he felt like he was looking down on it from a much higher place through smoky haze. As he gazed, half-remembering the old pains from long ago—intense and sweet—they fiercely attacked him, and the blood stirred violently as he felt the Call of the Dance in his heart again and tasted the ancient magic of Ilsé spinning by his side.

Suddenly he started back. A great lithe cat had leaped softly up from the shadows below on to the sill close to his face, and was staring fixedly at him with the eyes of a human. “Come,” it seemed to say, “come with us to the Dance! Change as of old! Transform yourself swiftly and come!” Only too well he understood the creature’s soundless call.

Suddenly, he jumped back. A sleek cat had quietly jumped up from the shadows below onto the sill right in front of him and was staring intently at him with eyes that seemed almost human. “Come,” it seemed to say, “come with us to the Dance! Change like before! Transform quickly and join us!” He understood the creature’s silent invitation all too well.

It was gone again in a flash with scarcely a sound of its padded feet on the stones, and then others dropped by the score down the side of the house, past his very eyes, all changing as they fell and darting away rapidly, softly, towards the gathering point. And again he felt the dreadful desire to do likewise; to murmur the old incantation, and then drop upon hands and knees and run swiftly for the great flying leap into the air. Oh, how the passion of it rose within him like a flood, twisting his very entrails, sending his heart’s desire flaming forth into the night for the old, old Dance of the Sorcerers at the Witches’ Sabbath! The whirl of the stars was about him; once more he met the magic of the moon. The power of the wind, rushing from precipice and forest, leaping from cliff to cliff across the valleys, tore him away.... He heard the cries of the dancers and their wild laughter, and with this savage girl in his embrace he danced furiously about the dim Throne where sate the Figure with the sceptre of majesty....

It was gone in an instant, barely making a sound with its soft feet on the stones, and then others started to drop down the side of the house, right in front of him, all shifting as they fell and quickly darting away towards the meeting point. Once again, he felt the overwhelming urge to do the same; to whisper the old chant, then drop to his hands and knees and sprint forward for a big leap into the air. Oh, how the passion surged within him like a wave, twisting his insides, sending his deepest longing blazing into the night for the ancient Dance of the Sorcerers at the Witches’ Sabbath! The stars whirled around him; he once more encountered the magic of the moon. The power of the wind, rushing from cliffs and forests, leaping from one peak to another across the valleys, swept him away... He heard the shouts of the dancers and their wild laughter, and with this fierce girl in his arms, he danced wildly around the dim Throne where the Figure with the sceptre of majesty sat...

Then, suddenly, all became hushed and still, and the fever died down a little in his heart. The calm moonlight flooded a courtyard empty and deserted. They had started. The procession was off into the sky. And he was left behind—alone.

Then, suddenly, everything went quiet and still, and the excitement faded a bit in his heart. The calm moonlight filled the empty, deserted courtyard. They had set off. The procession was heading into the sky. And he was left behind—alone.

Vezin tiptoed softly across the room and unlocked the door. The murmur from the streets, growing momentarily as he advanced, met his ears. He made his way with the utmost caution down the corridor. At the head of the stairs he paused and listened. Below him, the hall where they had gathered was dark and still, but through opened doors and windows on the far side of the building came the sound of a great throng moving farther and farther into the distance.

Vezin quietly tiptoed across the room and unlocked the door. The sound from the streets, getting a bit louder as he moved forward, reached his ears. He carefully made his way down the corridor. At the top of the stairs, he stopped and listened. Below, the hall where everyone had gathered was dark and still, but through the open doors and windows on the other side of the building, he could hear a large crowd moving further and further away.

He made his way down the creaking wooden stairs, dreading yet longing to meet some straggler who should point the way, but finding no one; across the dark hall, so lately thronged with living, moving things, and out through the opened front doors into the street. He could not believe that he was really left behind, really forgotten, that he had been purposely permitted to escape. It perplexed him.

He walked down the creaking wooden stairs, both dreading and hoping to bump into someone who could offer direction, but found no one; across the dark hallway, which had recently been filled with people and activity, and out through the open front doors into the street. He couldn’t believe he was actually left behind, truly forgotten, that he had been intentionally allowed to leave. It confused him.

Nervously he peered about him, and up and down the street; then, seeing nothing, advanced slowly down the pavement.

Nervously, he looked around him and up and down the street; then, seeing nothing, he walked slowly down the sidewalk.

The whole town, as he went, showed itself empty and deserted, as though a great wind had blown everything alive out of it. The doors and windows of the houses stood open to the night; nothing stirred; moonlight and silence lay over all. The night lay about him like a cloak. The air, soft and cool, caressed his cheek like the touch of a great furry paw. He gained confidence and began to walk quickly, though still keeping to the shadowed side. Nowhere could he discover the faintest sign of the great unholy exodus he knew had just taken place. The moon sailed high over all in a sky, cloudless and serene.

The whole town, as he walked through it, looked empty and deserted, as if a strong wind had blown everything alive out of it. The doors and windows of the houses stood open to the night; nothing stirred; moonlight and silence covered everything. The night wrapped around him like a cloak. The air, soft and cool, brushed against his cheek like the touch of a giant furry paw. He felt more confident and started to walk quickly, though still sticking to the shadowy side. He couldn't find even the slightest sign of the massive, unholy departure he knew had just happened. The moon hung high above in a sky that was clear and peaceful.

Hardly realising where he was going, he crossed the open market-place and so came to the ramparts, whence he knew a pathway descended to the high road and along which he could make good his escape to one of the other little towns that lay to the northward, and so to the railway.

Hardly realizing where he was headed, he crossed the open market and reached the ramparts, from where he knew a path led down to the highway, allowing him to escape to one of the other small towns to the north, and then to the railway.

But first he paused and gazed out over the scene at his feet where the great plain lay like a silver map of some dream country. The still beauty of it entered his heart, increasing his sense of bewilderment and unreality. No air stirred, the leaves of the plane trees stood motionless, the near details were defined with the sharpness of day against dark shadows, and in the distance the fields and woods melted away into haze and shimmering mistiness.

But first he stopped and looked out over the view at his feet where the great plain lay like a silver map of some dreamlike land. The still beauty of it filled his heart, amplifying his feeling of confusion and unreality. No air moved, the leaves of the plane trees stood still, the nearby details were clear and vivid against the dark shadows, and in the distance, the fields and woods faded into a haze and shimmering mist.

But the breath caught in his throat and he stood stockstill as though transfixed when his gaze passed from the horizon and fell upon the near prospect in the depth of the valley at his feet. The whole lower slopes of the hill, that lay hid from the brightness of the moon, were aglow, and through the glare he saw countless moving forms, shifting thick and fast between the openings of the trees; while overhead, like leaves driven by the wind, he discerned flying shapes that hovered darkly one moment against the sky and then settled down with cries and weird singing through the branches into the region that was aflame.

But the breath caught in his throat and he stood frozen, as if mesmerized, when his gaze shifted from the horizon and fell onto the view deep in the valley at his feet. The entire lower slopes of the hill, hidden from the moonlight, were illuminated, and through the brightness, he saw countless moving figures, rapidly shifting between the gaps in the trees; while above, like leaves blown by the wind, he noticed dark shapes that hovered for a moment against the sky and then descended with cries and strange singing through the branches into the blazing area.

Spellbound, he stood and stared for a time that he could not measure. And then, moved by one of the terrible impulses that seemed to control the whole adventure, he climbed swiftly upon the top of the broad coping, and balanced a moment where the valley gaped at his feet. But in that very instant, as he stood hovering, a sudden movement among the shadows of the houses caught his eye, and he turned to see the outline of a large animal dart swiftly across the open space behind him, and land with a flying leap upon the top of the wall a little lower down. It ran like the wind to his feet and then rose up beside him upon the ramparts. A shiver seemed to run through the moonlight, and his sight trembled for a second. His heart pulsed fearfully. Ilsé stood beside him, peering into his face.

Spellbound, he stood and stared for an amount of time he couldn’t measure. Then, driven by one of those intense impulses that seemed to control the whole situation, he quickly climbed to the top of the wide wall and balanced for a moment, looking down into the valley below. But just then, as he hovered there, a sudden movement in the shadows of the houses caught his eye. He turned to see the shape of a large animal dash rapidly across the open space behind him and leap onto the wall a little lower down. It raced like the wind to his feet and then rose up next to him on the ramparts. A shiver seemed to ripple through the moonlight, and his vision blurred for a second. His heart raced with fear. Ilsé stood beside him, gazing at his face.

Some dark substance, he saw, stained the girl’s face and skin, shining in the moonlight as she stretched her hands towards him; she was dressed in wretched tattered garments that yet became her mightily; rue and vervain twined about her temples; her eyes glittered with unholy light. He only just controlled the wild impulse to take her in his arms and leap with her from their giddy perch into the valley below.

Some dark substance, he noticed, covered the girl's face and skin, glimmering in the moonlight as she reached her hands towards him; she was wearing ragged, torn clothes that somehow suited her remarkably well; rue and vervain wound around her head; her eyes shone with an eerie light. He barely managed to hold back the overwhelming desire to take her in his arms and jump with her from their dizzying spot into the valley below.

“See!” she cried, pointing with an arm on which the rags fluttered in the rising wind towards the forest aglow in the distance. “See where they await us! The woods are alive! Already the Great Ones are there, and the dance will soon begin! The salve is here! Anoint yourself and come!”

“Look!” she shouted, pointing with an arm wrapped in tattered cloth fluttering in the rising wind toward the vibrant forest in the distance. “See where they’re waiting for us! The woods are full of life! The Great Ones are already there, and the dance will start soon! The salve is here! Anoint yourself and come!”

Though a moment before the sky was clear and cloudless, yet even while she spoke the face of the moon grew dark and the wind began to toss in the crests of the plane trees at his feet. Stray gusts brought the sounds of hoarse singing and crying from the lower slopes of the hill, and the pungent odour he had already noticed about the courtyard of the inn rose about him in the air.

Just a moment ago, the sky was clear and bright, but as she was speaking, the moon’s face started to darken, and the wind began to stir the leaves of the plane trees at his feet. Random gusts carried the rough sounds of singing and shouting from the lower parts of the hill, and the sharp smell he had already noticed in the inn's courtyard filled the air around him.

“Transform, transform!” she cried again, her voice rising like a song. “Rub well your skin before you fly. Come! Come with me to the Sabbath, to the madness of its furious delight, to the sweet abandonment of its evil worship! See! the Great Ones are there, and the terrible Sacraments prepared. The Throne is occupied. Anoint and come! Anoint and come!”

“Transform, transform!” she shouted again, her voice rising like a melody. “Rub your skin well before you take off. Come! Join me for the Sabbath, for the wild thrill of its crazy joy, for the sweet release of its dark worship! Look! The Great Ones are here, and the frightening Sacraments are ready. The Throne is taken. Anoint yourself and come! Anoint yourself and come!”

She grew to the height of a tree beside him, leaping upon the wall with flaming eyes and hair strewn upon the night. He too began to change swiftly. Her hands touched the skin of his face and neck, streaking him with the burning salve that sent the old magic into his blood with the power before which fades all that is good.

She grew as tall as a tree next to him, jumping onto the wall with fiery eyes and hair flowing into the night. He also started to transform quickly. Her hands brushed against his face and neck, coating him with the burning balm that sent the old magic coursing through his veins, overpowering everything that is good.

A wild roar came up to his ears from the heart of the wood, and the girl, when she heard it, leaped upon the wall in the frenzy of her wicked joy.

A wild roar echoed in his ears from deep within the woods, and the girl, upon hearing it, jumped onto the wall in the excitement of her wicked happiness.

“Satan is there!” she screamed, rushing upon him and striving to draw him with her to the edge of the wall. “Satan has come! The Sacraments call us! Come, with your dear apostate soul, and we will worship and dance till the moon dies and the world is forgotten!”

“Satan is here!” she screamed, charging at him and trying to pull him with her to the edge of the wall. “Satan has arrived! The Sacraments summon us! Come, with your precious betraying soul, and we will worship and dance until the moon fades and the world is forgotten!”

Just saving himself from the dreadful plunge, Vezin struggled to release himself from her grasp, while the passion tore at his reins and all but mastered him. He shrieked aloud, not knowing what he said, and then he shrieked again. It was the old impulses, the old awful habits instinctively finding voice; for though it seemed to him that he merely shrieked nonsense, the words he uttered really had meaning in them, and were intelligible. It was the ancient call. And it was heard below. It was answered.

Just saving himself from the terrifying fall, Vezin struggled to free himself from her hold, while the passion pulled at his emotions and almost completely took over him. He yelled out, not even realizing what he was saying, and then he yelled again. It was the familiar urges, the same terrible habits instinctively coming out; because even though it felt to him like he was just shouting gibberish, the words he spoke actually held meaning and were understandable. It was the age-old call. And it was heard below. It was answered.

The wind whistled at the skirts of his coat as the air round him darkened with many flying forms crowding upwards out of the valley. The crying of hoarse voices smote upon his ears, coming closer. Strokes of wind buffeted him, tearing him this way and that along the crumbling top of the stone wall; and Ilsé clung to him with her long shining arms, smooth and bare, holding him fast about the neck. But not Ilsé alone, for a dozen of them surrounded him, dropping out of the air. The pungent odour of the anointed bodies stifled him, exciting him to the old madness of the Sabbath, the dance of the witches and sorcerers doing honour to the personified Evil of the world.

The wind whistled around the edges of his coat as the air darkened with a swarm of figures rising up from the valley. The loud cries of rough voices echoed in his ears, growing closer. Gusts of wind pushed against him, tossing him back and forth along the crumbling top of the stone wall; Ilsé clung to him with her long, smooth, bare arms, holding him tightly around the neck. But it wasn't just Ilsé—dozens of them surrounded him, dropping down from the sky. The strong smell of the anointed bodies overwhelmed him, awakening the old madness of the Sabbath, the dance of witches and sorcerers paying tribute to the personified Evil of the world.

“Anoint and away! Anoint and away!” they cried in wild chorus about him. “To the Dance that never dies! To the sweet and fearful fantasy of evil!”

“Anoint and go! Anoint and go!” they shouted in a wild chorus around him. “To the Dance that never ends! To the sweet and terrifying dream of evil!”

Another moment and he would have yielded and gone, for his will turned soft and the flood of passionate memory all but overwhelmed him, when—so can a small thing alter the whole course of an adventure—he caught his foot upon a loose stone in the edge of the wall, and then fell with a sudden crash on to the ground below. But he fell towards the houses, in the open space of dust and cobble stones, and fortunately not into the gaping depth of the valley on the farther side.

Another moment and he would have given in and left, as his resolve softened and the rush of intense memories nearly consumed him, when—such a small thing can change the entire path of an adventure—he tripped on a loose stone at the edge of the wall and then suddenly crashed down to the ground below. But he fell toward the houses, in the open area of dust and cobblestones, and fortunately not into the gaping depth of the valley on the other side.

And they, too, came in a tumbling heap about him, like flies upon a piece of food, but as they fell he was released for a moment from the power of their touch, and in that brief instant of freedom there flashed into his mind the sudden intuition that saved him. Before he could regain his feet he saw them scrabbling awkwardly back upon the wall, as though bat-like they could only fly by dropping from a height, and had no hold upon him in the open. Then, seeing them perched there in a row like cats upon a roof, all dark and singularly shapeless, their eyes like lamps, the sudden memory came back to him of Ilsé’s terror at the sight of fire.

And they all crashed around him like flies on food, but as they fell, he was freed for a moment from their touch, and in that brief moment of freedom, an insight popped into his mind that saved him. Before he could get back on his feet, he saw them awkwardly crawling back up the wall, as if they could only fly by dropping from above and had no grip on him out in the open. Then, noticing them sitting there in a row like cats on a roof, all dark and oddly shapeless, their eyes shining like lamps, he suddenly remembered Ilsé’s fear of fire.

Quick as a flash he found his matches and lit the dead leaves that lay under the wall.

Quick as a flash, he grabbed his matches and lit the dead leaves lying under the wall.

Dry and withered, they caught fire at once, and the wind carried the flame in a long line down the length of the wall, licking upwards as it ran; and with shrieks and wailings, the crowded row of forms upon the top melted away into the air on the other side, and were gone with a great rush and whirring of their bodies down into the heart of the haunted valley, leaving Vezin breathless and shaken in the middle of the deserted ground.

Dry and withered, they ignited instantly, and the wind pushed the flames along the wall, licking upwards as it traveled; with screams and cries, the packed line of figures on top dissolved into the air on the other side, vanishing with a swift rush and whirr of their bodies down into the depths of the haunted valley, leaving Vezin breathless and shaken in the center of the empty ground.

“Ilsé!” he called feebly; “Ilsé!” for his heart ached to think that she was really gone to the great Dance without him, and that he had lost the opportunity of its fearful joy. Yet at the same time his relief was so great, and he was so dazed and troubled in mind with the whole thing, that he hardly knew what he was saying, and only cried aloud in the fierce storm of his emotion....

“Ilsé!” he called weakly; “Ilsé!” because his heart hurt to think that she had truly gone to the great Dance without him, and that he had missed the chance for its terrifying joy. Yet at the same time, his relief was overwhelming, and he was so confused and troubled by the whole situation that he barely knew what he was saying, only crying out in the intense storm of his emotions....

The fire under the wall ran its course, and the moonlight came out again, soft and clear, from its temporary eclipse. With one last shuddering look at the ruined ramparts, and a feeling of horrid wonder for the haunted valley beyond, where the shapes still crowded and flew, he turned his face towards the town and slowly made his way in the direction of the hotel.

The fire by the wall died down, and the moonlight returned, soft and clear, after its temporary darkness. With one final shuddering glance at the ruined walls and a mix of dread and fascination for the haunted valley beyond, where the shadows still moved and flickered, he turned his face toward the town and slowly walked back in the direction of the hotel.

And as he went, a great wailing of cries, and a sound of howling, followed him from the gleaming forest below, growing fainter and fainter with the bursts of wind as he disappeared between the houses.

And as he walked away, a loud wailing and howling echoed behind him from the shining forest below, growing fainter with each gust of wind as he vanished between the houses.

VI

“It may seem rather abrupt to you, this sudden tame ending,” said Arthur Vezin, glancing with flushed face and timid eyes at Dr. Silence sitting there with his notebook, “but the fact is—er—from that moment my memory seems to have failed rather. I have no distinct recollection of how I got home or what precisely I did.

“It might feel a bit sudden to you, this unexpected calm ending,” said Arthur Vezin, looking with a flushed face and nervous eyes at Dr. Silence sitting there with his notebook, “but the thing is—um—from that moment, I seem to have lost my memory quite a bit. I don’t clearly remember how I got home or what exactly I did.”

“It appears I never went back to the inn at all. I only dimly recollect racing down a long white road in the moonlight, past woods and villages, still and deserted, and then the dawn came up, and I saw the towers of a biggish town and so came to a station.

“It seems I never returned to the inn at all. I only vaguely remember speeding down a long white road in the moonlight, passing quiet and empty woods and villages, and then dawn broke, revealing the towers of a somewhat large town, leading me to a station."

“But, long before that, I remember pausing somewhere on the road and looking back to where the hill-town of my adventure stood up in the moonlight, and thinking how exactly like a great monstrous cat it lay there upon the plain, its huge front paws lying down the two main streets, and the twin and broken towers of the cathedral marking its torn ears against the sky. That picture stays in my mind with the utmost vividness to this day.

“But, long before that, I remember stopping somewhere on the road and looking back at the hilltown where my adventure took place, illuminated by the moonlight, and thinking how much it looked like a huge, monstrous cat lying on the plain, its massive front paws stretching down the two main streets, and the twin and broken towers of the cathedral resembling its torn ears against the sky. That image remains incredibly vivid in my mind to this day.”

“Another thing remains in my mind from that escape—namely, the sudden sharp reminder that I had not paid my bill, and the decision I made, standing there on the dusty highroad, that the small baggage I had left behind would more than settle for my indebtedness.

“Another thing sticks with me from that escape—namely, the sudden sharp reminder that I hadn’t paid my bill, and the decision I made, standing there on the dusty road, that the little luggage I had left behind would cover my debt more than enough.”

“For the rest, I can only tell you that I got coffee and bread at a café on the outskirts of this town I had come to, and soon after found my way to the station and caught a train later in the day. That same evening I reached London.”

“For the rest, I can only tell you that I got coffee and bread at a café on the edge of the town I had come to, and shortly after, I found my way to the station and caught a train later in the day. That same evening, I arrived in London.”

“And how long altogether,” asked John Silence quietly, “do you think you stayed in the town of the adventure?”

“And how long in total,” asked John Silence quietly, “do you think you stayed in the town of the adventure?”

Vezin looked up sheepishly.

Vezin looked up shyly.

“I was coming to that,” he resumed, with apologetic wrigglings of his body. “In London I found that I was a whole week out in my reckoning of time. I had stayed over a week in the town, and it ought to have been September 15th,—instead of which it was only September 10th!”

“I was getting to that,” he continued, shifting uncomfortably. “In London, I realized I was a whole week off in my sense of time. I had spent over a week in the city, and it should have been September 15th—instead, it was only September 10th!”

“So that, in reality, you had only stayed a night or two in the inn?” queried the doctor.

“So, in reality, you only spent a night or two at the inn?” the doctor asked.

Vezin hesitated before replying. He shuffled upon the mat.

Vezin paused before answering. He shifted on the mat.

“I must have gained time somewhere,” he said at length—“somewhere or somehow. I certainly had a week to my credit. I can’t explain it. I can only give you the fact.”

“I must have gained time somewhere,” he said after a while—“somewhere or somehow. I definitely had a week to my credit. I can’t explain it. I can only give you the fact.”

“And this happened to you last year, since when you have never been back to the place?”

“And this happened to you last year? You haven't been back since then?”

“Last autumn, yes,” murmured Vezin; “and I have never dared to go back. I think I never want to.”

“Last autumn, yes,” murmured Vezin; “and I have never dared to go back. I don’t think I ever want to.”

“And, tell me,” asked Dr. Silence at length, when he saw that the little man had evidently come to the end of his words and had nothing more to say, “had you ever read up the subject of the old witchcraft practices during the Middle Ages, or been at all interested in the subject?”

“And, tell me,” asked Dr. Silence after a moment, noticing that the little man had clearly run out of things to say, “have you ever looked into the old witchcraft practices from the Middle Ages, or shown any interest in that topic?”

“Never!” declared Vezin emphatically. “I had never given a thought to such matters so far as I know——”

“Never!” Vezin said firmly. “I’ve never even considered those things, as far as I know——”

“Or to the question of reincarnation, perhaps?”

“Or maybe about being reborn?”

“Never—before my adventure; but I have since,” he replied significantly.

“Never—before my adventure; but I have since,” he replied meaningfully.

There was, however, something still on the man’s mind that he wished to relieve himself of by confession, yet could with difficulty bring himself to mention; and it was only after the sympathetic tactfulness of the doctor had provided numerous openings that he at length availed himself of one of them, and stammered that he would like to show him the marks he still had on his neck where, he said, the girl had touched him with her anointed hands.

There was, however, something still on the man’s mind that he wanted to get off his chest through confession, but he could hardly bring himself to say it. It was only after the doctor’s thoughtful approach created several chances to speak that he finally took one and stammered that he wanted to show him the marks on his neck where, he said, the girl had touched him with her oiled hands.

He took off his collar after infinite fumbling hesitation, and lowered his shirt a little for the doctor to see. And there, on the surface of the skin, lay a faint reddish line across the shoulder and extending a little way down the back towards the spine. It certainly indicated exactly the position an arm might have taken in the act of embracing. And on the other side of the neck, slightly higher up, was a similar mark, though not quite so clearly defined.

He took off his collar after a lot of awkward hesitation and pulled his shirt down a bit for the doctor to see. There, on the surface of his skin, was a faint reddish line across his shoulder that extended down a little toward his spine. It definitely showed where an arm might have rested during an embrace. On the other side of his neck, slightly higher up, was a similar mark, although not as clearly defined.

“That was where she held me that night on the ramparts,” he whispered, a strange light coming and going in his eyes.

“That’s where she held me that night on the wall,” he whispered, a weird light flickering in his eyes.


It was some weeks later when I again found occasion to consult John Silence concerning another extraordinary case that had come under my notice, and we fell to discussing Vezin’s story. Since hearing it, the doctor had made investigations on his own account, and one of his secretaries had discovered that Vezin’s ancestors had actually lived for generations in the very town where the adventure came to him. Two of them, both women, had been tried and convicted as witches, and had been burned alive at the stake. Moreover, it had not been difficult to prove that the very inn where Vezin stayed was built about 1700 upon the spot where the funeral pyres stood and the executions took place. The town was a sort of headquarters for all the sorcerers and witches of the entire region, and after conviction they were burnt there literally by scores.

It was a few weeks later when I had the chance to consult John Silence about another bizarre case that had caught my attention, and we started discussing Vezin’s story. Since hearing it, the doctor had done some investigating on his own, and one of his assistants found that Vezin’s ancestors had actually lived for generations in the same town where his adventure occurred. Two of them, both women, had been tried and convicted as witches and had been burned alive at the stake. Furthermore, it wasn't hard to prove that the inn where Vezin stayed was built around 1700 on the very spot where the funeral pyres were set up and the executions took place. The town served as a sort of hub for all the sorcerers and witches in the region, and after being convicted, they were literally burned there by the dozens.

“It seems strange,” continued the doctor, “that Vezin should have remained ignorant of all this; but, on the other hand, it was not the kind of history that successive generations would have been anxious to keep alive, or to repeat to their children. Therefore I am inclined to think he still knows nothing about it.

“It seems strange,” the doctor continued, “that Vezin has remained unaware of all this; but on the other hand, it wasn’t the kind of history that generations would have been eager to preserve or share with their children. So I’m inclined to believe he still knows nothing about it.”

“The whole adventure seems to have been a very vivid revival of the memories of an earlier life, caused by coming directly into contact with the living forces still intense enough to hang about the place, and, by a most singular chance too, with the very souls who had taken part with him in the events of that particular life. For the mother and daughter who impressed him so strangely must have been leading actors, with himself, in the scenes and practices of witchcraft which at that period dominated the imaginations of the whole country.

“The whole adventure feels like a vivid revival of memories from a past life, triggered by coming into direct contact with the living energies still strong enough to linger in the area, and, quite unexpectedly, with the very souls who shared experiences with him during that life. The mother and daughter who struck him so profoundly must have been key figures, alongside him, in the scenes and practices of witchcraft that dominated the imaginations of the entire country at that time.

“One has only to read the histories of the times to know that these witches claimed the power of transforming themselves into various animals, both for the purposes of disguise and also to convey themselves swiftly to the scenes of their imaginary orgies. Lycanthropy, or the power to change themselves into wolves, was everywhere believed in, and the ability to transform themselves into cats by rubbing their bodies with a special salve or ointment provided by Satan himself, found equal credence. The witchcraft trials abound in evidences of such universal beliefs.”

“One just has to read the histories of the times to see that these witches claimed they could transform themselves into different animals, both to disguise themselves and to quickly get to their imagined parties. Lycanthropy, or the ability to change into wolves, was widely believed in, and the idea that they could turn into cats by rubbing special salves or ointments given by Satan was equally accepted. The witch trials are filled with evidence of these widespread beliefs.”

Dr. Silence quoted chapter and verse from many writers on the subject, and showed how every detail of Vezin’s adventure had a basis in the practices of those dark days.

Dr. Silence quoted chapter and verse from many authors on the topic and demonstrated how every detail of Vezin’s adventure was rooted in the practices of those dark times.

“But that the entire affair took place subjectively in the man’s own consciousness, I have no doubt,” he went on, in reply to my questions; “for my secretary who has been to the town to investigate, discovered his signature in the visitors’ book, and proved by it that he had arrived on September 8th, and left suddenly without paying his bill. He left two days later, and they still were in possession of his dirty brown bag and some tourist clothes. I paid a few francs in settlement of his debt, and have sent his luggage on to him. The daughter was absent from home, but the proprietress, a large woman very much as he described her, told my secretary that he had seemed a very strange, absent-minded kind of gentleman, and after his disappearance she had feared for a long time that he had met with a violent end in the neighbouring forest where he used to roam about alone.

“But the whole situation happened subjectively in the man’s own mind, I have no doubt,” he continued in response to my questions; “because my secretary, who went to the town to investigate, found his signature in the visitors’ book, which confirmed that he arrived on September 8th and left suddenly without paying his bill. He left two days later, and they still had his dirty brown bag and some tourist clothes. I paid a few francs to cover his debt and sent his luggage to him. The daughter was not home, but the proprietress, a large woman just as he described, told my secretary that he seemed like a very strange, absent-minded kind of guy, and after he disappeared, she was worried for a long time that he might have met a violent end in the nearby forest where he often wandered alone.”

“I should like to have obtained a personal interview with the daughter so as to ascertain how much was subjective and how much actually took place with her as Vezin told it. For her dread of fire and the sight of burning must, of course, have been the intuitive memory of her former painful death at the stake, and have thus explained why he fancied more than once that he saw her through smoke and flame.”

“I would like to have had a personal interview with the daughter to find out how much was in her head and how much really happened as Vezin described it. Her fear of fire and seeing flames must have been, of course, the instinctive memory of her past painful death at the stake, which would explain why he thought he saw her more than once through smoke and fire.”

“And that mark on his skin, for instance?” I inquired.

“And that mark on his skin, for example?” I asked.

“Merely the marks produced by hysterical brooding,” he replied, “like the stigmata of the religieuses, and the bruises which appear on the bodies of hypnotised subjects who have been told to expect them. This is very common and easily explained. Only it seems curious that these marks should have remained so long in Vezin’s case. Usually they disappear quickly.”

“Just the marks left by intense anxiety,” he replied, “like the stigmata of the religieuses, and the bruises that show up on the bodies of hypnotized subjects who’ve been told to expect them. This is pretty common and can be easily explained. It’s just strange that these marks stayed for so long in Vezin's case. Normally, they go away quickly.”

“Obviously he is still thinking about it all, brooding, and living it all over again,” I ventured.

“Clearly, he’s still thinking about everything, dwelling on it, and reliving it all,” I suggested.

“Probably. And this makes me fear that the end of his trouble is not yet. We shall hear of him again. It is a case, alas! I can do little to alleviate.”

“Probably. And this makes me worry that his troubles aren’t over yet. We will hear from him again. Unfortunately, it’s a situation where I can do very little to help.”

Dr. Silence spoke gravely and with sadness in his voice.

Dr. Silence spoke seriously and with a tone of sadness in his voice.

“And what do you make of the Frenchman in the train?” I asked further—“the man who warned him against the place, à cause du sommeil et à cause des chats? Surely a very singular incident?”

“And what do you think about the Frenchman on the train?” I asked further—“the guy who warned him about the place, because of the sleep and because of the cats? That's definitely a pretty unusual incident, right?”

“A very singular incident indeed,” he made answer slowly, “and one I can only explain on the basis of a highly improbable coincidence——”

“A very unique incident, for sure,” he replied slowly, “and one I can only explain by saying it was a highly unlikely coincidence—”

“Namely?”

"Like what?"

“That the man was one who had himself stayed in the town and undergone there a similar experience. I should like to find this man and ask him. But the crystal is useless here, for I have no slightest clue to go upon, and I can only conclude that some singular psychic affinity, some force still active in his being out of the same past life, drew him thus to the personality of Vezin, and enabled him to fear what might happen to him, and thus to warn him as he did.

“That the man was someone who had also stayed in the town and gone through a similar experience. I want to find this man and ask him. But the crystal is useless here, as I have no hints to follow, and I can only conclude that some unique psychic connection, some force still alive in him from the same past life, pulled him toward Vezin's personality and made him fear what could happen to him, thus enabling him to warn him as he did."

“Yes,” he presently continued, half talking to himself, “I suspect in this case that Vezin was swept into the vortex of forces arising out of the intense activities of a past life, and that he lived over again a scene in which he had often played a leading part centuries before. For strong actions set up forces that are so slow to exhaust themselves, they may be said in a sense never to die. In this case they were not vital enough to render the illusion complete, so that the little man found himself caught in a very distressing confusion of the present and the past; yet he was sufficiently sensitive to recognise that it was true, and to fight against the degradation of returning, even in memory, to a former and lower state of development.

“Yes,” he continued, mostly talking to himself, “I think in this situation that Vezin got pulled into the intense forces from a past life, and that he relived a scene where he often played a leading role centuries ago. Strong actions create forces that take a long time to fade; in a way, they never truly die. In this case, they weren’t strong enough to make the illusion complete, so the little man found himself stuck in a confusing mix of the present and the past; yet he was sensitive enough to realize it was real, and to resist the regression, even in memory, to a former and lesser stage of development.”

“Ah yes!” he continued, crossing the floor to gaze at the darkening sky, and seemingly quite oblivious of my presence, “subliminal up-rushes of memory like this can be exceedingly painful, and sometimes exceedingly dangerous. I only trust that this gentle soul may soon escape from this obsession of a passionate and tempestuous past. But I doubt it, I doubt it.”

“Ah yes!” he said, walking across the room to look at the darkening sky, clearly unaware of my presence. “These hidden memories can be really painful and sometimes even quite dangerous. I just hope that this gentle person can soon break free from this fixation of a passionate and turbulent past. But I doubt it, I really doubt it.”

His voice was hushed with sadness as he spoke, and when he turned back into the room again there was an expression of profound yearning upon his face, the yearning of a soul whose desire to help is sometimes greater than his power.

His voice was low with sadness as he spoke, and when he turned back into the room, there was an expression of deep longing on his face, the longing of a soul whose desire to help is sometimes stronger than his ability.


CASE III
THE NEMESIS OF FIRE


CASE III
THE NEMESIS OF FIRE

I

By some means which I never could fathom, John Silence always contrived to keep the compartment to himself, and as the train had a clear run of two hours before the first stop, there was ample time to go over the preliminary facts of the case. He had telephoned to me that very morning, and even through the disguise of the miles of wire the thrill of incalculable adventure had sounded in his voice.

By some means I never understood, John Silence always managed to keep the compartment to himself, and since the train had a clear two-hour stretch before the first stop, there was plenty of time to go over the initial facts of the case. He had called me that very morning, and even with the distance of miles of wires, I could hear the excitement of unimaginable adventure in his voice.

“As if it were an ordinary country visit,” he called, in reply to my question; “and don’t forget to bring your gun.”

“As if it were a regular trip to the countryside,” he called back in response to my question; “and don’t forget to bring your gun.”

“With blank cartridges, I suppose?” for I knew his rigid principles with regard to the taking of life, and guessed that the guns were merely for some obvious purpose of disguise.

“Using blank cartridges, I assume?” because I knew his strict beliefs about taking life and figured that the guns were just for some clear reason of disguise.

Then he thanked me for coming, mentioned the train, snapped down the receiver, and left me vibrating with the excitement of anticipation to do my packing. For the honour of accompanying Dr. John Silence on one of his big cases was what many would have considered an empty honour—and risky. Certainly the adventure held all manner of possibilities, and I arrived at Waterloo with the feelings of a man who is about to embark on some dangerous and peculiar mission in which the dangers he expects to run will not be the ordinary dangers to life and limb, but of some secret character difficult to name and still more difficult to cope with.

Then he thanked me for coming, mentioned the train, hung up the phone, and left me buzzing with excitement to start packing. Many would see the chance to accompany Dr. John Silence on one of his major cases as a hollow honor—and risky. Still, the adventure was full of possibilities, and I arrived at Waterloo feeling like someone about to embark on a dangerous and strange mission, where the dangers I'd face wouldn't be the usual threats to life and limb, but something secret and hard to define, even harder to deal with.

“The Manor House has a high sound,” he told me, as we sat with our feet up and talked, “but I believe it is little more than an overgrown farmhouse in the desolate heather country beyond D——, and its owner, Colonel Wragge, a retired soldier with a taste for books, lives there practically alone, I understand, with an elderly invalid sister. So you need not look forward to a lively visit, unless the case provides some excitement of its own.”

“The Manor House has a grand reputation,” he told me as we relaxed with our feet up and chatted, “but I think it’s really just a fancy farmhouse in the barren heatherlands past D——, and its owner, Colonel Wragge, a retired soldier who loves reading, lives there almost by himself, as I hear, with an elderly sister who’s not well. So don’t expect a lively visit, unless the situation brings some excitement on its own.”

“Which is likely?”

"Which is more likely?"

By way of reply he handed me a letter marked “Private.” It was dated a week ago, and signed “Yours faithfully, Horace Wragge.”

By way of response, he handed me a letter labeled “Private.” It was dated a week earlier and signed “Yours faithfully, Horace Wragge.”

“He heard of me, you see, through Captain Anderson,” the doctor explained modestly, as though his fame were not almost world-wide; “you remember that Indian obsession case——”

“He heard of me, you see, through Captain Anderson,” the doctor said modestly, as if his fame wasn’t nearly world-wide; “you remember that Indian obsession case——”

I read the letter. Why it should have been marked private was difficult to understand. It was very brief, direct, and to the point. It referred by way of introduction to Captain Anderson, and then stated quite simply that the writer needed help of a peculiar kind and asked for a personal interview—a morning interview, since it was impossible for him to be absent from the house at night. The letter was dignified even to the point of abruptness, and it is difficult to explain how it managed to convey to me the impression of a strong man, shaken and perplexed. Perhaps the restraint of the wording, and the mystery of the affair had something to do with it; and the reference to the Anderson case, the horror of which lay still vivid in my memory, may have touched the sense of something rather ominous and alarming. But, whatever the cause, there was no doubt that an impression of serious peril rose somehow out of that white paper with the few lines of firm writing, and the spirit of a deep uneasiness ran between the words and reached the mind without any visible form of expression.

I read the letter. It was hard to understand why it was marked private. It was very brief, direct, and to the point. It introduced Captain Anderson and then simply stated that the writer needed a specific kind of help and requested a personal meeting—a morning meeting, since he couldn’t be away from the house at night. The letter was dignified, even to the point of being abrupt, and it’s difficult to explain how it conveyed to me the impression of a strong man, shaken and confused. Maybe the restraint of the wording and the mystery of the situation contributed to that; the reference to the Anderson case, which still haunted my memory, might have evoked a sense of something ominous and alarming. But whatever the reason, there’s no doubt that an impression of serious danger somehow emerged from that white paper with its few lines of firm writing, and a deep sense of unease lingered between the words and reached the mind without any visible expression.

“And when you saw him——?” I asked, returning the letter as the train rushed clattering noisily through Clapham Junction.

“And when you saw him——?” I asked, handing back the letter as the train rushed noisily through Clapham Junction.

“I have not seen him,” was the reply. “The man’s mind was charged to the brim when he wrote that; full of vivid mental pictures. Notice the restraint of it. For the main character of his case psychometry could be depended upon, and the scrap of paper his hand has touched is sufficient to give to another mind—a sensitive and sympathetic mind—clear mental pictures of what is going on. I think I have a very sound general idea of his problem.”

“I haven’t seen him,” was the reply. “The guy was filled to the brim with thoughts when he wrote that; his mind was packed with vivid images. Notice the restraint in it. For the main character, psychometry could be relied on, and just the piece of paper he touched is enough to give another mind—a sensitive and sympathetic mind—clear images of what’s happening. I think I have a pretty solid overall idea of his problem.”

“So there may be excitement after all?”

“So there might be some excitement after all?”

John Silence waited a moment before he replied.

John Silence paused for a moment before answering.

“Something very serious is amiss there,” he said gravely, at length. “Some one—not himself, I gather,—has been meddling with a rather dangerous kind of gunpowder. So—yes, there may be excitement, as you put it.”

“Something really serious is going on there,” he said seriously, after a pause. “Someone—not him, I assume—has been tampering with a pretty dangerous type of gunpowder. So—yeah, there could be some excitement, like you said.”

“And my duties?” I asked, with a decidedly growing interest. “Remember, I am your ‘assistant.’”

“And my duties?” I asked, now genuinely curious. “Just remember, I’m your ‘assistant.’”

“Behave like an intelligent confidential secretary. Observe everything, without seeming to. Say nothing—nothing that means anything. Be present at all interviews. I may ask a good deal of you, for if my impressions are correct this is——”

“Act like a smart personal assistant. Notice everything without being obvious. Don’t say anything meaningful. Be there for all meetings. I might ask a lot of you, because if I’m right, this is——”

He broke off suddenly.

He stopped abruptly.

“But I won’t tell you my impressions yet,” he resumed after a moment’s thought. “Just watch and listen as the case proceeds. Form your own impressions and cultivate your intuitions. We come as ordinary visitors, of course,” he added, a twinkle showing for an instant in his eye; “hence, the guns.”

“But I won’t share my thoughts just yet,” he continued after thinking for a moment. “Just watch and listen as the case unfolds. Make your own judgments and trust your instincts. We’re just regular visitors, of course,” he added, a glimmer in his eye for a brief moment; “that’s why we have the guns.”

Though disappointed not to hear more, I recognised the wisdom of his words and knew how valueless my impressions would be once the powerful suggestion of having heard his own lay behind them. I likewise reflected that intuition joined to a sense of humour was of more use to a man than double the quantity of mere “brains,” as such.

Though I was disappointed not to hear more, I recognized the wisdom in his words and understood how worthless my impressions would become once the strong suggestion of having heard his perspective influenced them. I also thought that having intuition combined with a sense of humor was more beneficial to a person than just having double the amount of “smarts.”

Before putting the letter away, however, he handed it back, telling me to place it against my forehead for a few moments and then describe any pictures that came spontaneously into my mind.

Before putting the letter away, though, he handed it back to me and told me to hold it against my forehead for a few moments and then describe any images that came to mind spontaneously.

“Don’t deliberately look for anything. Just imagine you see the inside of the eyelid, and wait for pictures that rise against its dark screen.”

“Don’t actively search for anything. Just picture the inside of your eyelid and wait for images that appear against its dark surface.”

I followed his instructions, making my mind as nearly a blank as possible. But no visions came. I saw nothing but the lines of light that pass to and fro like the changes of a kaleidoscope across the blackness. A momentary sensation of warmth came and went curiously.

I followed his instructions, trying to clear my mind as much as I could. But no visions appeared. I only saw the lines of light moving back and forth like the shifting patterns of a kaleidoscope against the darkness. For a brief moment, I felt a strange warmth that quickly faded away.

“You see—what?” he asked presently.

"You see—what?" he asked then.

“Nothing,” I was obliged to admit disappointedly; “nothing but the usual flashes of light one always sees. Only, perhaps, they are more vivid than usual.”

“Nothing,” I had to admit with disappointment; “nothing but the usual flashes of light you always see. It’s just that maybe they’re more intense than usual.”

He said nothing by way of comment or reply.

He didn’t say anything in response.

“And they group themselves now and then,” I continued, with painful candour, for I longed to see the pictures he had spoken of, “group themselves into globes and round balls of fire, and the lines that flash about sometimes look like triangles and crosses—almost like geometrical figures. Nothing more.”

“And they come together every now and then,” I continued, with painful honesty, because I really wanted to see the images he had mentioned, “they form globes and round balls of fire, and the lines that flash around sometimes look like triangles and crosses—almost like geometric shapes. That’s all.”

I opened my eyes again, and gave him back the letter.

I opened my eyes again and handed him the letter back.

“It makes my head hot,” I said, feeling somehow unworthy for not seeing anything of interest. But the look in his eyes arrested my attention at once.

“It makes my head hot,” I said, feeling a bit unworthy for not finding anything interesting. But the look in his eyes caught my attention immediately.

“That sensation of heat is important,” he said significantly.

"That feeling of heat is important," he said meaningfully.

“It was certainly real, and rather uncomfortable,” I replied, hoping he would expand and explain. “There was a distinct feeling of warmth—internal warmth somewhere—oppressive in a sense.”

“It was definitely real, and kind of uncomfortable,” I replied, hoping he would elaborate and explain. “There was a clear sense of warmth—somewhere inside—almost overwhelming in a way.”

“That is interesting,” he remarked, putting the letter back in his pocket, and settling himself in the corner with newspapers and books. He vouchsafed nothing more, and I knew the uselessness of trying to make him talk. Following his example I settled likewise with magazines into my corner. But when I closed my eyes again to look for the flashing lights and the sensation of heat, I found nothing but the usual phantasmagoria of the day’s events—faces, scenes, memories,—and in due course I fell asleep and then saw nothing at all of any kind.

“That’s interesting,” he said, putting the letter back in his pocket and getting comfortable in the corner with newspapers and books. He didn’t say anything more, and I understood how pointless it was to try to get him to talk. Following his lead, I settled in with some magazines in my corner. But when I closed my eyes again to seek the flashing lights and the feeling of warmth, I found nothing but the usual jumble of the day’s events—faces, scenes, memories—and eventually, I fell asleep and saw nothing at all.

When we left the train, after six hours’ travelling, at a little wayside station standing without trees in a world of sand and heather, the late October shadows had already dropped their sombre veil upon the landscape, and the sun dipped almost out of sight behind the moorland hills. In a high dogcart, behind a fast horse, we were soon rattling across the undulating stretches of an open and bleak country, the keen air stinging our cheeks and the scents of pine and bracken strong about us. Bare hills were faintly visible against the horizon, and the coachman pointed to a bank of distant shadows on our left where he told us the sea lay. Occasional stone farmhouses, standing back from the road among straggling fir trees, and large black barns that seemed to shift past us with a movement of their own in the gloom, were the only signs of humanity and civilisation that we saw, until at the end of a bracing five miles the lights of the lodge gates flared before us and we plunged into a thick grove of pine trees that concealed the Manor House up to the moment of actual arrival.

When we got off the train after six hours of travel, at a small station with no trees in a landscape of sand and heather, the late October shadows had already cast their dark veil over the scenery, and the sun was almost disappearing behind the moorland hills. In a high dogcart pulled by a fast horse, we quickly bounced across the rolling stretches of open, bleak countryside, the chilly air stinging our cheeks and the scents of pine and bracken strong around us. Bare hills were faintly visible against the horizon, and the coachman pointed to a bank of distant shadows on our left where he said the sea was. The only signs of humanity and civilization we saw were occasional stone farmhouses set back from the road among scattered fir trees and large black barns that seemed to drift past us in the gloom, until after a brisk five miles, the lights of the lodge gates flared ahead and we drove into a dense grove of pine trees that hid the Manor House until we actually arrived.

Colonel Wragge himself met us in the hall. He was the typical army officer who had seen service, real service, and found himself in the process. He was tall and well built, broad in the shoulders, but lean as a greyhound, with grave eyes, rather stern, and a moustache turning grey. I judged him to be about sixty years of age, but his movements showed a suppleness of strength and agility that contradicted the years. The face was full of character and resolution, the face of a man to be depended upon, and the straight grey eyes, it seemed to me, wore a veil of perplexed anxiety that he made no attempt to disguise. The whole appearance of the man at once clothed the adventure with gravity and importance. A matter that gave such a man cause for serious alarm, I felt, must be something real and of genuine moment.

Colonel Wragge greeted us in the hall. He was a classic army officer who had experienced real service and was shaped by it. He was tall and well-built, broad shouldered, yet lean like a greyhound, with serious, somewhat stern eyes and a moustache that was starting to go grey. I guessed he was around sixty, but his movements showed a flexibility and agility that contradicted his age. His face had a lot of character and determination, the kind of face you could rely on, and his straight grey eyes seemed to carry a veil of confused worry that he didn’t try to hide. The entire appearance of the man instantly made the situation feel serious and significant. I sensed that something causing such a man genuine concern must be real and truly important.

His speech and manner, as he welcomed us, were like his letter, simple and sincere. He had a nature as direct and undeviating as a bullet. Thus, he showed plainly his surprise that Dr. Silence had not come alone.

His speech and demeanor as he welcomed us were just like his letter—simple and genuine. He had a straightforward and unwavering nature, like a bullet. This made it obvious that he was surprised Dr. Silence hadn’t come alone.

“My confidential secretary, Mr. Hubbard,” the doctor said, introducing me, and the steady gaze and powerful shake of the hand I then received were well calculated, I remember thinking, to drive home the impression that here was a man who was not to be trifled with, and whose perplexity must spring from some very real and tangible cause. And, quite obviously, he was relieved that we had come. His welcome was unmistakably genuine.

“My confidential secretary, Mr. Hubbard,” the doctor said, introducing me, and the firm gaze and strong handshake I got then were clearly meant to convey that this was a man not to be messed with, and that his confusion must come from something very real and serious. And, quite clearly, he was glad we had arrived. His welcome was undeniably sincere.

He led us at once into a room, half library, half smoking-room, that opened out of the low-ceilinged hall. The Manor House gave the impression of a rambling and glorified farmhouse, solid, ancient, comfortable, and wholly unpretentious. And so it was. Only the heat of the place struck me as unnatural. This room with the blazing fire may have seemed uncomfortably warm after the long drive through the night air; yet it seemed to me that the hall itself, and the whole atmosphere of the house, breathed a warmth that hardly belonged to well-filled grates or the pipes of hot air and water. It was not the heat of the greenhouse; it was an oppressive heat that somehow got into the head and mind. It stirred a curious sense of uneasiness in me, and I caught myself thinking of the sensation of warmth that had emanated from the letter in the train.

He immediately took us into a room that was part library, part smoking room, which opened off the low-ceilinged hall. The Manor House felt like a sprawling, upgraded farmhouse—solid, old, cozy, and completely down-to-earth. And that’s exactly what it was. The only thing that struck me as odd was the heat. This room with the roaring fire might have felt uncomfortably warm after our long drive through the chilly night; still, it seemed to me that the hall itself, and the overall vibe of the house, exuded a warmth that didn’t come from the well-stocked fireplaces or the hot air and water pipes. It wasn’t the heat of a greenhouse; it was a stifling warmth that somehow got into your thoughts. It stirred up a strange sense of unease in me, and I found myself recalling the warmth that had radiated from the letter on the train.

I heard him thanking Dr. Silence for having come; there was no preamble, and the exchange of civilities was of the briefest description. Evidently here was a man who, like my companion, loved action rather than talk. His manner was straightforward and direct. I saw him in a flash: puzzled, worried, harassed into a state of alarm by something he could not comprehend; forced to deal with things he would have preferred to despise, yet facing it all with dogged seriousness and making no attempt to conceal that he felt secretly ashamed of his incompetence.

I heard him thanking Dr. Silence for coming; there was no small talk, and their exchange was very brief. Clearly, this was a man who, like my companion, preferred action over conversation. His demeanor was straightforward and direct. I caught a glimpse of him: puzzled, worried, stressed out by something he couldn’t understand; forced to confront issues he would have rather ignored, yet tackling it all with grim determination and showing no effort to hide that he felt secretly embarrassed by his inability.

“So I cannot offer you much entertainment beyond that of my own company, and the queer business that has been going on here, and is still going on,” he said, with a slight inclination of the head towards me by way of including me in his confidence.

“So I can't provide you with much entertainment other than my own company and the strange happenings that have been taking place here, and still are,” he said, giving a slight nod in my direction to include me in his trust.

“I think, Colonel Wragge,” replied John Silence impressively, “that we shall none of us find the time hang heavy. I gather we shall have our hands full.”

“I think, Colonel Wragge,” replied John Silence earnestly, “that none of us will find the time dragging. It seems we’ll have plenty to keep us busy.”

The two men looked at one another for the space of some seconds, and there was an indefinable quality in their silence which for the first time made me admit a swift question into my mind; and I wondered a little at my rashness in coming with so little reflection into a big case of this incalculable doctor. But no answer suggested itself, and to withdraw was, of course, inconceivable. The gates had closed behind me now, and the spirit of the adventure was already besieging my mind with its advance guard of a thousand little hopes and fears.

The two men stared at each other for a few seconds, and there was an unexplainable quality in their silence that made me suddenly realize a question swirling in my mind. I felt a bit foolish for jumping into such a significant case involving this unpredictable doctor without much thought. But no answer came to me, and leaving was, of course, out of the question. The gates had closed behind me, and the thrill of the adventure was already flooding my mind with a thousand tiny hopes and fears.

Explaining that he would wait till after dinner to discuss anything serious, as no reference was ever made before his sister, he led the way upstairs and showed us personally to our rooms; and it was just as I was finishing dressing that a knock came at my door and Dr. Silence entered.

Explaining that he would wait until after dinner to talk about anything important, since no topics were ever brought up in front of his sister, he took us upstairs and personally showed us to our rooms. Just as I was finishing getting ready, there was a knock on my door and Dr. Silence came in.

He was always what is called a serious man, so that even in moments of comedy you felt he never lost sight of the profound gravity of life, but as he came across the room to me I caught the expression of his face and understood in a flash that he was now in his most grave and earnest mood. He looked almost troubled. I stopped fumbling with my black tie and stared.

He was always what you’d call a serious guy, so even during funny moments, you felt like he never lost sight of the serious nature of life. But as he walked across the room to me, I noticed the look on his face and realized in an instant that he was now in his most serious and intense mood. He looked almost worried. I stopped messing with my black tie and stared.

“It is serious,” he said, speaking in a low voice, “more so even than I imagined. Colonel Wragge’s control over his thoughts concealed a great deal in my psychometrising of the letter. I looked in to warn you to keep yourself well in hand—generally speaking.”

“It is serious,” he said, speaking quietly, “even more than I expected. Colonel Wragge’s ability to keep his thoughts under control hid a lot during my psychometrizing of the letter. I came to warn you to stay composed—generally speaking.”

“Haunted house?” I asked, conscious of a distinct shiver down my back.

“Haunted house?” I asked, feeling a noticeable shiver run down my back.

But he smiled gravely at the question.

But he smiled seriously at the question.

“Haunted House of Life more likely,” he replied, and a look came into his eyes which I had only seen there when a human soul was in the toils and he was thick in the fight of rescue. He was stirred in the deeps.

“Haunted House of Life more likely,” he replied, and a look appeared in his eyes that I had only seen when a human soul was trapped and he was deeply engaged in the struggle to rescue them. He was moved at his core.

“Colonel Wragge—or the sister?” I asked hurriedly, for the gong was sounding.

“Colonel Wragge—or his sister?” I asked quickly, as the gong was ringing.

“Neither directly,” he said from the door. “Something far older, something very, very remote indeed. This thing has to do with the ages, unless I am mistaken greatly, the ages on which the mists of memory have long lain undisturbed.”

“Not directly,” he said from the doorway. “It’s something much older, something really, really ancient. This has to do with the ages, unless I am seriously mistaken, the ages where the mists of memory have been undisturbed for a long time.”

He came across the floor very quickly with a finger on his lips, looking at me with a peculiar searchingness of gaze.

He crossed the floor really quickly with a finger on his lips, looking at me with a strangely intense gaze.

“Are you aware yet of anything—odd here?” he asked in a whisper. “Anything you cannot quite define, for instance. Tell me, Hubbard, for I want to know all your impressions. They may help me.”

“Do you notice anything strange here?” he asked quietly. “Anything you can’t quite put your finger on, for example. Tell me, Hubbard, because I want to know all your thoughts. They might help me.”

I shook my head, avoiding his gaze, for there was something in the eyes that scared me a little. But he was so in earnest that I set my mind keenly searching.

I shook my head, avoiding his gaze, because there was something in his eyes that scared me a bit. But he was so serious that I focused my mind on searching.

“Nothing yet,” I replied truthfully, wishing I could confess to a real emotion; “nothing but the strange heat of the place.”

“Not yet,” I answered honestly, wishing I could admit to a real feeling; “just the odd warmth of the place.”

He gave a little jump forward in my direction.

He jumped a little closer to me.

“The heat again, that’s it!” he exclaimed, as though glad of my corroboration. “And how would you describe it, perhaps?” he asked quickly, with a hand on the door knob.

“The heat again, that's it!” he exclaimed, as if he was relieved by my agreement. “And how would you describe it, maybe?” he asked quickly, with a hand on the doorknob.

“It doesn’t seem like ordinary physical heat,” I said, casting about in my thoughts for a definition.

“It doesn’t feel like regular physical heat,” I said, searching my mind for a definition.

“More a mental heat,” he interrupted, “a glowing of thought and desire, a sort of feverish warmth of the spirit. Isn’t that it?”

“More of a mental heat,” he interrupted, “a glowing of thought and desire, a kind of feverish warmth of the spirit. Isn’t that right?”

I admitted that he had exactly described my sensations.

I acknowledged that he had perfectly described how I felt.

“Good!” he said, as he opened the door, and with an indescribable gesture that combined a warning to be ready with a sign of praise for my correct intuition, he was gone.

“Good!” he said as he opened the door, and with a gesture that was hard to describe, mixing a warning to be prepared with a sign of approval for my accurate intuition, he was gone.

I hurried after him, and found the two men waiting for me in front of the fire.

I rushed after him and found the two men waiting for me in front of the fire.

“I ought to warn you,” our host was saying as I came in, “that my sister, whom you will meet at dinner, is not aware of the real object of your visit. She is under the impression that we are interested in the same line of study—folklore—and that your researches have led to my seeking acquaintance. She comes to dinner in her chair, you know. It will be a great pleasure to her to meet you both. We have few visitors.”

"I should let you know," our host said as I walked in, "that my sister, whom you'll meet at dinner, doesn't know the true reason for your visit. She thinks we're both into the same subject—folklore—and that your research is what prompted me to get to know you. She comes to dinner in her chair, by the way. It will really make her happy to meet both of you. We don't have many visitors."

So that on entering the dining-room we were prepared to find Miss Wragge already at her place, seated in a sort of bath-chair. She was a vivacious and charming old lady, with smiling expression and bright eyes, and she chatted all through dinner with unfailing spontaneity. She had that face, unlined and fresh, that some people carry through life from the cradle to the grave; her smooth plump cheeks were all pink and white, and her hair, still dark, was divided into two glossy and sleek halves on either side of a careful parting. She wore gold-rimmed glasses, and at her throat was a large scarab of green jasper that made a very handsome brooch.

So when we walked into the dining room, we were ready to find Miss Wragge already in her seat, sitting in a kind of bath chair. She was a lively and delightful old woman, with a smiling face and bright eyes, and she chatted throughout dinner with effortless enthusiasm. She had that youthful, unwrinkled face that some people seem to keep from birth to death; her smooth, plump cheeks were all pink and white, and her hair, still dark, was neatly parted into two glossy, sleek sections on either side. She wore gold-rimmed glasses, and around her neck was a large green jasper scarab that made for a very beautiful brooch.

Her brother and Dr. Silence talked little, so that most of the conversation was carried on between herself and me, and she told me a great deal about the history of the old house, most of which I fear I listened to with but half an ear.

Her brother and Dr. Silence didn’t talk much, so most of the conversation happened between her and me. She shared a lot about the history of the old house, though I’m afraid I listened with only half my attention.

“And when Cromwell stayed here,” she babbled on, “he occupied the very rooms upstairs that used to be mine. But my brother thinks it safer for me to sleep on the ground floor now in case of fire.”

“And when Cromwell was here,” she continued, “he stayed in the exact rooms upstairs that used to be mine. But my brother believes it’s safer for me to sleep on the ground floor now, just in case of a fire.”

And this sentence has stayed in my memory only because of the sudden way her brother interrupted her and instantly led the conversation on to another topic. The passing reference to fire seemed to have disturbed him, and thenceforward he directed the talk himself.

And this sentence has stuck in my mind only because of the abrupt way her brother interrupted her and immediately shifted the conversation to another topic. The quick mention of fire seemed to unsettle him, and from that point on, he took control of the discussion.

It was difficult to believe that this lively and animated old lady, sitting beside me and taking so eager an interest in the affairs of life, was practically, we understood, without the use of her lower limbs, and that her whole existence for years had been passed between the sofa, the bed, and the bath-chair in which she chatted so naturally at the dinner-table. She made no allusion to her affliction until the dessert was reached, and then, touching a bell, she made us a witty little speech about leaving us “like time, on noiseless feet,” and was wheeled out of the room by the butler and carried off to her apartments at the other end of the house.

It was hard to believe that this lively and animated old lady, sitting next to me and showing such a keen interest in life’s happenings, was essentially without the use of her legs. For years, she had lived mostly between the sofa, the bed, and the wheelchair where she chatted so effortlessly at the dinner table. She didn’t mention her condition until we got to dessert, and then, ringing a bell, she gave us a witty little speech about leaving us “like time, on noiseless feet,” before the butler wheeled her out of the room and took her off to her rooms at the other end of the house.

And the rest of us were not long in following suit, for Dr. Silence and myself were quite as eager to learn the nature of our errand as our host was to impart it to us. He led us down a long flagged passage to a room at the very end of the house, a room provided with double doors, and windows, I saw, heavily shuttered. Books lined the walls on every side, and a large desk in the bow window was piled up with volumes, some open, some shut, some showing scraps of paper stuck between the leaves, and all smothered in a general cataract of untidy foolscap and loose half sheets.

And the rest of us quickly followed suit, as Dr. Silence and I were just as eager to find out the nature of our mission as our host was to share it with us. He led us down a long stone passage to a room at the very end of the house, a room with double doors, and I noticed the windows were heavily shuttered. Books filled the walls all around, and a large desk in the bay window was piled high with volumes, some open, some closed, some with scraps of paper stuck between the pages, and everything covered in a chaotic mess of loose sheets and half sheets.

“My study and workroom,” explained Colonel Wragge, with a delightful touch of innocent pride, as though he were a very serious scholar. He placed arm-chairs for us round the fire. “Here,” he added significantly, “we shall be safe from interruption and can talk securely.”

“My study and workroom,” Colonel Wragge said, with a charming hint of innocent pride, as if he were a serious scholar. He arranged armchairs for us around the fire. “Here,” he added meaningfully, “we’ll be safe from interruptions and can talk freely.”

During dinner the manner of the doctor had been all that was natural and spontaneous, though it was impossible for me, knowing him as I did, not to be aware that he was subconsciously very keenly alert and already receiving upon the ultra-sensitive surface of his mind various and vivid impressions; and there was now something in the gravity of his face, as well as in the significant tone of Colonel Wragge’s speech, and something, too, in the fact that we three were shut away in this private chamber about to listen to things probably strange, and certainly mysterious—something in all this that touched my imagination sharply and sent an undeniable thrill along my nerves. Taking the chair indicated by my host, I lit my cigar and waited for the opening of the attack, fully conscious that we were now too far gone in the adventure to admit of withdrawal, and wondering a little anxiously where it was going to lead.

During dinner, the doctor acted completely natural and relaxed, but I couldn't help but notice that he was subconsciously on high alert, already picking up various vivid impressions on the sensitive surface of his mind. There was something serious in his expression, along with the significant tone in Colonel Wragge’s speech, and the fact that the three of us were isolated in this private room about to hear probably strange and definitely mysterious things—this all sparked my imagination sharply and sent an undeniable thrill through my nerves. Taking the chair my host pointed out, I lit my cigar and waited for the impending discussion, fully aware that we were too deep into this adventure to back out now and feeling a bit anxious about where it might lead us.

What I expected precisely, it is hard to say. Nothing definite, perhaps. Only the sudden change was dramatic. A few hours before the prosaic atmosphere of Piccadilly was about me, and now I was sitting in a secret chamber of this remote old building waiting to hear an account of things that held possibly the genuine heart of terror. I thought of the dreary moors and hills outside, and the dark pine copses soughing in the wind of night; I remembered my companion’s singular words up in my bedroom before dinner; and then I turned and noted carefully the stern countenance of the Colonel as he faced us and lit his big black cigar before speaking.

What I expected exactly, it’s hard to say. Nothing clear, maybe. The sudden change was just so dramatic. A few hours ago, I was surrounded by the everyday buzz of Piccadilly, and now I was sitting in a secret room of this old, remote building, waiting to hear a tale about things that might truly embody terror. I thought about the dreary moors and hills outside, and the dark pine trees rustling in the nighttime wind; I recalled my companion’s peculiar words in my bedroom before dinner; and then I turned and closely observed the serious expression on the Colonel's face as he faced us and lit his big black cigar before speaking.

The threshold of an adventure, I reflected as I waited for the first words, is always the most thrilling moment—until the climax comes.

The start of an adventure, I thought as I waited for the first words, is always the most exciting moment—until the climax arrives.

But Colonel Wragge hesitated—mentally—a long time before he began. He talked briefly of our journey, the weather, the country, and other comparatively trivial topics, while he sought about in his mind for an appropriate entry into the subject that was uppermost in the thoughts of all of us. The fact was he found it a difficult matter to speak of at all, and it was Dr. Silence who finally showed him the way over the hedge.

But Colonel Wragge hesitated in his mind for a long time before he began. He briefly talked about our journey, the weather, the landscape, and other relatively unimportant topics as he searched for a suitable way to bring up the subject that was on all our minds. The truth was, he found it challenging to talk about it at all, and it was Dr. Silence who finally guided him over the hurdle.

“Mr Hubbard will take a few notes when you are ready—you won’t object,” he suggested; “I can give my undivided attention in this way.”

“Mr. Hubbard will jot down a few notes when you’re ready—you won’t mind,” he proposed; “I can focus completely this way.”

“By all means,” turning to reach some of the loose sheets on the writing table, and glancing at me. He still hesitated a little, I thought. “The fact is,” he said apologetically, “I wondered if it was quite fair to trouble you so soon. The daylight might suit you better to hear what I have to tell. Your sleep, I mean, might be less disturbed, perhaps.”

“Of course,” he said, turning to grab some loose sheets from the writing table and looking at me. He still seemed a bit unsure, I thought. “The thing is,” he said apologetically, “I was wondering if it was really fair to bother you this soon. Maybe it would be better to wait for daylight to share what I have to say. Your sleep, I mean, might not be as disturbed that way.”

“I appreciate your thoughtfulness,” John Silence replied with his gentle smile, taking command as it were from that moment, “but really we are both quite immune. There is nothing, I think, that could prevent either of us sleeping, except—an outbreak of fire, or some such very physical disturbance.”

“I appreciate your thoughtfulness,” John Silence said with a gentle smile, taking charge from that moment on, “but honestly, we're both pretty immune. I don’t think anything could keep either of us from sleeping, except maybe a fire breaking out or some other major disturbance.”

Colonel Wragge raised his eyes and looked fixedly at him. This reference to an outbreak of fire I felt sure was made with a purpose. It certainly had the desired effect of removing from our host’s manner the last signs of hesitancy.

Colonel Wragge looked him straight in the eye. I was convinced that this mention of a fire was intentional. It definitely succeeded in taking away the last hints of doubt from our host’s demeanor.

“Forgive me,” he said. “Of course, I know nothing of your methods in matters of this kind—so, perhaps, you would like me to begin at once and give you an outline of the situation?”

“Forgive me,” he said. “Of course, I know nothing about your methods in situations like this—so, maybe you'd like me to start right away and give you an overview of the situation?”

Dr. Silence bowed his agreement. “I can then take my precautions accordingly,” he added calmly.

Dr. Silence nodded in agreement. "I can then take my precautions accordingly," he added calmly.

The soldier looked up for a moment as though he did not quite gather the meaning of these words; but he made no further comment and turned at once to tackle a subject on which he evidently talked with diffidence and unwillingness.

The soldier looked up for a moment as if he didn't fully understand what those words meant; but he didn't say anything else and immediately shifted to a topic he clearly discussed with hesitation and reluctance.

“It’s all so utterly out of my line of things,” he began, puffing out clouds of cigar smoke between his words, “and there’s so little to tell with any real evidence behind it, that it’s almost impossible to make a consecutive story for you. It’s the total cumulative effect that is so—so disquieting.” He chose his words with care, as though determined not to travel one hair’s breadth beyond the truth.

“It’s all completely outside my area of expertise,” he started, exhaling clouds of cigar smoke as he spoke, “and there’s so little to share that’s backed up by real evidence that it’s nearly impossible to give you a coherent story. It’s the overall effect that is so—so unsettling.” He chose his words carefully, as if he was intent on not straying even slightly from the truth.

“I came into this place twenty years ago when my elder brother died,” he continued, “but could not afford to live here then. My sister, whom you met at dinner, kept house for him till the end, and during all these years, while I was seeing service abroad, she had an eye to the place—for we never got a satisfactory tenant—and saw that it was not allowed to go to ruin. I myself took possession, however, only a year ago.

“I came into this place twenty years ago when my older brother died,” he continued, “but I couldn’t afford to live here back then. My sister, whom you met at dinner, took care of the house for him until the end, and during all those years, while I was serving overseas, she kept an eye on the place—since we never found a good tenant—and made sure it didn’t fall into disrepair. I actually moved in only a year ago.

“My brother,” he went on, after a perceptible pause, “spent much of his time away, too. He was a great traveller, and filled the house with stuff he brought home from all over the world. The laundry—a small detached building beyond the servants’ quarters—he turned into a regular little museum. The curios and things I have cleared away—they collected dust and were always getting broken—but the laundry-house you shall see tomorrow.”

“My brother,” he continued after a noticeable pause, “spent a lot of time away as well. He was a big traveler and filled the house with things he brought back from all over the world. The laundry—a small separate building behind the servants’ quarters—he turned into a regular little museum. The curios and items I cleared away—they collected dust and kept breaking—but you’ll see the laundry house tomorrow.”

Colonel Wragge spoke with such deliberation and with so many pauses that this beginning took him a long time. But at this point he came to a full stop altogether. Evidently there was something he wished to say that cost him considerable effort. At length he looked up steadily into my companion’s face.

Colonel Wragge spoke so deliberately and took so many pauses that it took him a long time to get started. But then he completely stopped. Clearly, there was something he wanted to say that took a lot of effort. Finally, he looked up steadily into my companion's face.

“May I ask you—that is, if you won’t think it strange,” he said, and a sort of hush came over his voice and manner, “whether you have noticed anything at all unusual—anything queer, since you came into the house?”

“Can I ask you—if you won’t find it odd,” he said, his voice lowering slightly, “if you’ve noticed anything unusual—anything weird, since you arrived in the house?”

Dr. Silence answered without a moment’s hesitation.

Dr. Silence responded without any hesitation.

“I have,” he said. “There is a curious sensation of heat in the place.”

“I have,” he said. “There’s a strange feeling of warmth in this place.”

“Ah!” exclaimed the other, with a slight start. “You have noticed it. This unaccountable heat——”

“Ah!” the other exclaimed, slightly startled. “You have noticed it. This strange heat——”

“But its cause, I gather, is not in the house itself—but outside,” I was astonished to hear the doctor add.

“But I understand that its cause isn’t in the house itself—but outside,” I was shocked to hear the doctor add.

Colonel Wragge rose from his chair and turned to unhook a framed map that hung upon the wall. I got the impression that the movement was made with the deliberate purpose of concealing his face.

Colonel Wragge stood up from his chair and turned to take down a framed map that was hanging on the wall. I got the feeling that he did this intentionally to hide his face.

“Your diagnosis, I believe, is amazingly accurate,” he said after a moment, turning round with the map in his hands. “Though, of course, I can have no idea how you should guess——”

“Your diagnosis, I think, is incredibly accurate,” he said after a moment, turning around with the map in his hands. “Though, of course, I can't understand how you managed to guess——”

John Silence shrugged his shoulders expressively. “Merely my impression,” he said. “If you pay attention to impressions, and do not allow them to be confused by deductions of the intellect, you will often find them surprisingly, uncannily, accurate.”

John Silence shrugged his shoulders expressively. “Just my impression,” he said. “If you focus on impressions and don’t let them get tangled up in logical deductions, you’ll often find they’re surprisingly, almost eerily, accurate.”

Colonel Wragge resumed his seat and laid the map upon his knees. His face was very thoughtful as he plunged abruptly again into his story.

Colonel Wragge sat down again and placed the map on his lap. He looked very serious as he suddenly dove back into his story.

“On coming into possession,” he said, looking us alternately in the face, “I found a crop of stories of the most extraordinary and impossible kind I had ever heard—stories which at first I treated with amused indifference, but later was forced to regard seriously, if only to keep my servants. These stories I thought I traced to the fact of my brother’s death—and, in a way, I think so still.”

“Once I took possession,” he said, looking at us back and forth, “I came across a bunch of the most bizarre and unbelievable stories I had ever heard—stories that I initially dismissed with a chuckle, but eventually had to take seriously, if only to manage my staff. I thought these stories were related to my brother’s death—and in a way, I still think that.”

He leant forward and handed the map to Dr. Silence.

He leaned forward and handed the map to Dr. Silence.

“It’s an old plan of the estate,” he explained, “but accurate enough for our purpose, and I wish you would note the position of the plantations marked upon it, especially those near the house. That one,” indicating the spot with his finger, “is called the Twelve Acre Plantation. It was just there, on the side nearest the house, that my brother and the head keeper met their deaths.”

“It’s an old map of the estate,” he explained, “but it’s accurate enough for what we need, and I wish you’d pay attention to the location of the plantations marked on it, especially those close to the house. That one,” indicating the spot with his finger, “is called the Twelve Acre Plantation. It was right there, on the side nearest the house, where my brother and the head keeper lost their lives.”

He spoke as a man forced to recognise facts that he deplored, and would have preferred to leave untouched—things he personally would rather have treated with ridicule if possible. It made his words peculiarly dignified and impressive, and I listened with an increasing uneasiness as to the sort of help the doctor would look to me for later. It seemed as though I were a spectator of some drama of mystery in which any moment I might be summoned to play a part.

He spoke like someone who had to face uncomfortable truths he wished he could ignore—things he would have preferred to mock, if he could. This gave his words a unique dignity and weight, and I felt a growing unease about what kind of help the doctor would expect from me later. It felt as though I were watching a mysterious drama where I might be called to play a role at any moment.

“It was twenty years ago,” continued the Colonel, “but there was much talk about it at the time, unfortunately, and you may, perhaps, have heard of the affair. Stride, the keeper, was a passionate, hot-tempered man, but I regret to say, so was my brother, and quarrels between them seem to have been frequent.”

“It was twenty years ago,” the Colonel continued, “but there was a lot of talk about it back then, unfortunately, and you might have heard about it. Stride, the keeper, was a passionate, hot-tempered guy, but I regret to say my brother was the same, and it seems like they often got into fights.”

“I do not recall the affair,” said the doctor. “May I ask what was the cause of death?” Something in his voice made me prick up my ears for the reply.

“I don’t remember the incident,” said the doctor. “Can I ask what the cause of death was?” There was something in his tone that made me pay attention to the answer.

“The keeper, it was said, from suffocation. And at the inquest the doctors averred that both men had been dead the same length of time when found.”

“The keeper, it was said, died from suffocation. And at the inquest, the doctors stated that both men had been dead for the same amount of time when they were found.”

“And your brother?” asked John Silence, noticing the omission, and listening intently.

“And your brother?” asked John Silence, noticing the omission and listening closely.

“Equally mysterious,” said our host, speaking in a low voice with effort. “But there was one distressing feature I think I ought to mention. For those who saw the face—I did not see it myself—and though Stride carried a gun its chambers were undischarged——” He stammered and hesitated with confusion. Again that sense of terror moved between his words. He stuck.

“Just as mysterious,” our host said, speaking in a low, strained voice. “But there was one troubling detail I think I should mention. For those who saw the face—I didn’t see it myself—and even though Stride had a gun, it was fully loaded and hadn’t been fired…” He stumbled over his words, hesitating in confusion. Again, that feeling of fear lingered between his sentences. He was stuck.

“Yes,” said the chief listener sympathetically.

"Yeah," said the chief listener, understandingly.

“My brother’s face, they said, looked as though it had been scorched. It had been swept, as it were, by something that burned—blasted. It was, I am told, quite dreadful. The bodies were found lying side by side, faces downwards, both pointing away from the wood, as though they had been in the act of running, and not more than a dozen yards from its edge.”

“My brother’s face, they said, looked like it had been burned. It had been hit by something that scorched—blasted. It was, I’ve heard, pretty awful. The bodies were found lying side by side, faces down, both turned away from the woods, as if they had been in the act of running, no more than a dozen yards from its edge.”

Dr. Silence made no comment. He appeared to be studying the map attentively.

Dr. Silence didn’t say anything. He seemed to be looking closely at the map.

“I did not see the face myself,” repeated the other, his manner somehow expressing the sense of awe he contrived to keep out of his voice, “but my sister unfortunately did, and her present state I believe to be entirely due to the shock it gave to her nerves. She never can be brought to refer to it, naturally, and I am even inclined to think that the memory has mercifully been permitted to vanish from her mind. But she spoke of it at the time as a face swept by flame—blasted.”

“I didn’t see the face myself,” the other person repeated, his tone somehow showing the awe he managed to keep out of his voice, “but my sister unfortunately did, and I believe her current state is entirely due to the shock it caused her nerves. She can never be made to talk about it, understandably, and I even think that the memory has mercifully faded from her mind. But she described it at the time as a face engulfed in flames—destroyed.”

John Silence looked up from his contemplation of the map, but with the air of one who wished to listen, not to speak, and presently Colonel Wragge went on with his account. He stood on the mat, his broad shoulders hiding most of the mantelpiece.

John Silence glanced up from studying the map, but he had the demeanor of someone who preferred to listen rather than speak, and soon after, Colonel Wragge continued with his story. He was standing on the mat, his broad shoulders blocking most of the mantelpiece.

“They all centred about this particular plantation, these stories. That was to be expected, for the people here are as superstitious as Irish peasantry, and though I made one or two examples among them to stop the foolish talk, it had no effect, and new versions came to my ears every week. You may imagine how little good dismissals did, when I tell you that the servants dismissed themselves. It was not the house servants, but the men who worked on the estate outside. The keepers gave notice one after another, none of them with any reason I could accept; the foresters refused to enter the wood, and the beaters to beat in it. Word flew all over the countryside that Twelve Acre Plantation was a place to be avoided, day or night.

“They all focused on this particular plantation, these stories. That was to be expected, since the people here are as superstitious as Irish peasants, and even though I set a few examples to stop the silly talk, it didn’t help, and new versions came to me every week. You can imagine how little good dismissals accomplished when I tell you that the servants dismissed themselves. It wasn’t the house staff, but the men who worked on the estate outside. The keepers gave notice one after another, none of them with a reason I could accept; the foresters refused to enter the woods, and the beaters wouldn’t work in them. Word spread all over the countryside that Twelve Acre Plantation was a place to avoid, day or night."

“There came a point,” the Colonel went on, now well in his swing, “when I felt compelled to make investigations on my own account. I could not kill the thing by ignoring it; so I collected and analysed the stories at first hand. For this Twelve Acre Wood, you will see by the map, comes rather near home. Its lower end, if you will look, almost touches the end of the back lawn, as I will show you tomorrow, and its dense growth of pines forms the chief protection the house enjoys from the east winds that blow up from the sea. And in olden days, before my brother interfered with it and frightened all the game away, it was one of the best pheasant coverts on the whole estate.”

“There came a time,” the Colonel continued, now really getting into it, “when I felt I had to investigate things on my own. I couldn’t just ignore it and hope it would go away; so I gathered and analyzed the stories firsthand. This Twelve Acre Wood, as you can see on the map, is quite close to home. Its lower end, if you look, almost touches the edge of the back lawn, which I’ll show you tomorrow, and its thick growth of pines provides the main protection the house has from the east winds coming in from the sea. And back in the day, before my brother messed with it and scared all the game away, it was one of the best spots for pheasants on the entire estate.”

“And what form, if I may ask, did this interference take?” asked Dr. Silence.

“And what form, if I can ask, did this interference take?” Dr. Silence asked.

“In detail, I cannot tell you, for I do not know—except that I understand it was the subject of his frequent differences with the head keeper; but during the last two years of his life, when he gave up travelling and settled down here, he took a special interest in this wood, and for some unaccountable reason began to build a low stone wall round it. This wall was never finished, but you shall see the ruins tomorrow in the daylight.”

“In detail, I can't tell you because I don’t know—except that I understand it was the source of his frequent disagreements with the head keeper. However, during the last two years of his life, when he stopped traveling and settled down here, he became particularly interested in this wood, and for some unknown reason, he started building a low stone wall around it. This wall was never completed, but you’ll see the ruins tomorrow in the daylight.”

“And the result of your investigations—these stories, I mean?” the doctor broke in, anxious to keep him to the main issues.

“And what did you find out from your investigations—these stories, I mean?” the doctor interrupted, eager to focus him on the main issues.

“Yes, I’m coming to that,” he said slowly, “but the wood first, for this wood out of which they grew like mushrooms has nothing in any way peculiar about it. It is very thickly grown, and rises to a clearer part in the centre, a sort of mound where there is a circle of large boulders—old Druid stones, I’m told. At another place there’s a small pond. There’s nothing distinctive about it that I could mention—just an ordinary pine-wood, a very ordinary pine-wood—only the trees are a bit twisted in the trunks, some of ’em, and very dense. Nothing more.

“Yes, I’m getting to that,” he said slowly, “but let’s talk about the woods first. This wood, where the trees grew like mushrooms, isn’t anything unusual. It’s very densely packed, and it opens up to a clearer area in the center, a kind of mound with a circle of large boulders—old Druid stones, I’ve heard. There’s also a small pond in another spot. There’s nothing special about it that I can point out—just an ordinary pine forest, a very ordinary pine forest—except that some of the trees are a bit twisted in their trunks and very thick. That’s all there is to it.”

“And the stories? Well, none of them had anything to do with my poor brother, or the keeper, as you might have expected; and they were all odd—such odd things, I mean, to invent or imagine. I never could make out how these people got such notions into their heads.”

“And the stories? Well, none of them had anything to do with my poor brother or the keeper, as you might expect; and they were all strange—really strange things, I mean, to invent or imagine. I could never figure out how these people came up with such ideas.”

He paused a moment to relight his cigar.

He took a moment to relight his cigar.

“There’s no regular path through it,” he resumed, puffing vigorously, “but the fields round it are constantly used, and one of the gardeners whose cottage lies over that way declared he often saw moving lights in it at night, and luminous shapes like globes of fire over the tops of the trees, skimming and floating, and making a soft hissing sound—most of ’em said that, in fact—and another man saw shapes flitting in and out among the trees, things that were neither men nor animals, and all faintly luminous. No one ever pretended to see human forms—always queer, huge things they could not properly describe. Sometimes the whole wood was lit up, and one fellow—he’s still here and you shall see him—has a most circumstantial yarn about having seen great stars lying on the ground round the edge of the wood at regular intervals——”

“There’s no regular path through it,” he continued, breathing hard, “but the fields around it are always in use, and one of the gardeners whose cottage is over that way said he often saw moving lights in it at night, and glowing shapes like balls of fire over the tops of the trees, gliding and floating, and making a soft hissing sound—most of them said that, actually—and another guy saw shapes darting in and out among the trees, things that were neither people nor animals, and all faintly glowing. No one ever claimed to see human forms—always strange, huge things they couldn’t really describe. Sometimes the whole woods would light up, and one guy—he’s still here and you’ll see him—has a really detailed story about having seen big stars lying on the ground around the edge of the woods at regular intervals——”

“What kind of stars?” put in John Silence sharply, in a sudden way that made me start.

“What kind of stars?” John Silence interjected suddenly, catching me off guard.

“Oh, I don’t know quite; ordinary stars, I think he said, only very large, and apparently blazing as though the ground was alight. He was too terrified to go close and examine, and he has never seen them since.”

“Oh, I’m not really sure; he mentioned they were ordinary stars, just much larger, and they seemed to be glowing like the ground was on fire. He was too scared to get closer and hasn’t seen them since.”

He stooped and stirred the fire into a welcome blaze—welcome for its blaze of light rather than for its heat. In the room there was already a strange pervading sensation of warmth that was oppressive in its effect and far from comforting.

He bent down and stirred the fire into a bright blaze—bright for its light rather than its heat. In the room, there was already a strange, overwhelming sense of warmth that felt suffocating rather than comforting.

“Of course,” he went on, straightening up again on the mat, “this was all commonplace enough—this seeing lights and figures at night. Most of these fellows drink, and imagination and terror between them may account for almost anything. But others saw things in broad daylight. One of the woodmen, a sober, respectable man, took the shortcut home to his midday meal, and swore he was followed the whole length of the wood by something that never showed itself, but dodged from tree to tree, always keeping out of sight, yet solid enough to make the branches sway and the twigs snap on the ground. And it made a noise, he declared—but really”—the speaker stopped and gave a short laugh—“it’s too absurd——”

“Of course,” he continued, sitting up again on the mat, “this was all pretty ordinary—seeing lights and figures at night. Most of these guys drink, and a mix of imagination and fear can explain just about anything. But some people saw things in broad daylight. One of the woodworkers, a sober, respectable guy, took a shortcut home for his lunch and swore he was followed the entire way through the woods by something that never revealed itself but moved from tree to tree, always staying out of sight, yet solid enough to make the branches sway and the twigs snap on the ground. And it made a noise, he insisted—but honestly”—the speaker paused and chuckled briefly—“it’s too ridiculous—”

Please!” insisted the doctor; “for it is these small details that give me the best clues always.”

Please!” insisted the doctor; “because it’s these small details that always give me the best clues.”

“——it made a crackling noise, he said, like a bonfire. Those were his very words: like the crackling of a bonfire,” finished the soldier, with a repetition of his short laugh.

“——it made this crackling noise, he said, like a bonfire. Those were his exact words: like the crackling of a bonfire,” finished the soldier, with a quick laugh.

“Most interesting,” Dr. Silence observed gravely. “Please omit nothing.”

“Most interesting,” Dr. Silence said seriously. “Please don’t leave anything out.”

“Yes” he went on, “and it was soon after that the fires began—the fires in the wood. They started mysteriously burning in the patches of coarse white grass that cover the more open parts of the plantation. No one ever actually saw them start, but many, myself among the number, have seen them burning and smouldering. They are always small and circular in shape, and for all the world like a picnic fire. The head keeper has a dozen explanations, from sparks flying out of the house chimneys to the sunlight focusing through a dewdrop, but none of them, I must admit, convince me as being in the least likely or probable. They are most singular, I consider, most singular, these mysterious fires, and I am glad to say that they come only at rather long intervals and never seem to spread.

“Yes,” he continued, “and it was shortly after that the fires started—the fires in the woods. They began burning mysteriously in the patches of coarse white grass that cover the more open areas of the plantation. No one actually saw them ignite, but many, including myself, have witnessed them burning and smoldering. They’re always small and round in shape, just like a picnic fire. The head keeper has a dozen theories, ranging from sparks flying out of the house chimneys to sunlight focusing through a dewdrop, but none of them, I must admit, convince me as being the least bit likely or plausible. I find these mysterious fires to be quite unusual, and I’m glad to say they only appear at long intervals and never seem to spread.

“But the keeper had other queer stories as well, and about things that are verifiable. He declared that no life ever willingly entered the plantation; more, that no life existed in it at all. No birds nested in the trees, or flew into their shade. He set countless traps, but never caught so much as a rabbit or a weasel. Animals avoided it, and more than once he had picked up dead creatures round the edges that bore no obvious signs of how they had met their death.

“But the keeper had other strange stories too, and about things that can be proven. He said that no living thing ever willingly entered the plantation; in fact, that no life existed there at all. No birds nested in the trees or flew into their shade. He set up countless traps, but never caught even a rabbit or a weasel. Animals steered clear of it, and more than once he found dead creatures around the edges that showed no clear signs of how they had died.”

“Moreover, he told me one extraordinary tale about his retriever chasing some invisible creature across the field one day when he was out with his gun. The dog suddenly pointed at something in the field at his feet, and then gave chase, yelping like a mad thing. It followed its imaginary quarry to the borders of the wood, and then went in—a thing he had never known it to do before. The moment it crossed the edge—it is darkish in there even in daylight—it began fighting in the most frenzied and terrific fashion. It made him afraid to interfere, he said. And at last, when the dog came out, hanging its tail down and panting, he found something like white hair stuck to its jaws, and brought it to show me. I tell you these details because——”

“Also, he shared this amazing story about his retriever chasing some invisible creature across the field one day while he was out with his gun. The dog suddenly pointed at something right in front of him and then took off, barking like crazy. It chased its imaginary target all the way to the edge of the woods, something he had never seen it do before. The minute it crossed into the trees—it’s pretty dark in there, even during the day—it started fighting like it was wild. It scared him so much that he didn’t want to get involved, he said. Finally, when the dog came back out, tail down and panting, he found some white hair stuck to its jaws and brought it to show me. I’m sharing these details because——”

“They are important, believe me,” the doctor stopped him. “And you have it still, this hair?” he asked.

“They're important, trust me,” the doctor interrupted him. “And do you still have this hair?” he asked.

“It disappeared in the oddest way,” the Colonel explained. “It was curious looking stuff, something like asbestos, and I sent it to be analysed by the local chemist. But either the man got wind of its origin, or else he didn’t like the look of it for some reason, because he returned it to me and said it was neither animal, vegetable, nor mineral, so far as he could make out, and he didn’t wish to have anything to do with it. I put it away in paper, but a week later, on opening the package—it was gone! Oh, the stories are simply endless. I could tell you hundreds all on the same lines.”

“It disappeared in the strangest way,” the Colonel explained. “It was some curious stuff, kind of like asbestos, and I sent it to the local chemist for analysis. But either he figured out where it came from, or he just didn’t like the look of it for some reason, because he returned it to me and said it was neither animal, vegetable, nor mineral, as far as he could tell, and he didn’t want anything to do with it. I wrapped it up in paper, but a week later, when I opened the package—it was gone! Oh, the stories are just endless. I could tell you hundreds all along the same lines.”

“And personal experiences of your own, Colonel Wragge?” asked John Silence earnestly, his manner showing the greatest possible interest and sympathy.

“And what about your own personal experiences, Colonel Wragge?” asked John, his tone serious and his demeanor full of genuine interest and concern.

The soldier gave an almost imperceptible start. He looked distinctly uncomfortable.

The soldier flinched slightly. He looked clearly uneasy.

“Nothing, I think,” he said slowly, “nothing—er—I should like to rely on. I mean nothing I have the right to speak of, perhaps—yet.”

“Nothing, I guess,” he said slowly, “nothing—um—I would like to depend on. I mean nothing I have the authority to talk about, maybe—not yet.”

His mouth closed with a snap. Dr. Silence, after waiting a little to see if he would add to his reply, did not seek to press him on the point.

His mouth shut with a snap. Dr. Silence, after waiting a bit to see if he would add anything to his response, didn't try to push him on the matter.

“Well,” he resumed presently, and as though he would speak contemptuously, yet dared not, “this sort of thing has gone on at intervals ever since. It spreads like wildfire, of course, mysterious chatter of this kind, and people began trespassing all over the estate, coming to see the wood, and making themselves a general nuisance. Notices of man-traps and spring-guns only seemed to increase their persistence; and—think of it,” he snorted, “some local Research Society actually wrote and asked permission for one of their members to spend a night in the wood! Bolder fools, who didn’t write for leave, came and took away bits of bark from the trees and gave them to clairvoyants, who invented in their turn a further batch of tales. There was simply no end to it all.”

“Well,” he continued after a moment, as if he wanted to sound dismissive but didn’t dare, “this kind of thing has been happening at intervals ever since. It spreads like wildfire, of course; mysterious gossip like this leads people to roam all over the estate, coming to see the woods and being a total nuisance. Warnings about traps and spring guns only seemed to make them more determined; and—can you believe it?” he scoffed, “some local Research Society actually wrote asking for permission for one of their members to spend a night in the woods! Even bolder idiots, who didn’t bother to ask, came and took pieces of bark from the trees and gave them to psychics, who then made up even more stories. There was just no end to it all.”

“Most distressing and annoying, I can well believe,” interposed the doctor.

“Most distressing and annoying, I can totally believe,” the doctor chimed in.

“Then suddenly the phenomena ceased as mysteriously as they had begun, and the interest flagged. The tales stopped. People got interested in something else. It all seemed to die out. This was last July. I can tell you exactly, for I’ve kept a diary more or less of what happened.”

“Then suddenly, the phenomena stopped just as mysteriously as they had started, and interest faded. The stories stopped. People moved on to something else. It all seemed to fade away. This was last July. I can pinpoint it exactly because I’ve kept a diary, more or less, of what happened.”

“Ah!”

“Wow!”

“But now, quite recently, within the past three weeks, it has all revived again with a rush—with a kind of furious attack, so to speak. It has really become unbearable. You may imagine what it means, and the general state of affairs, when I say that the possibility of leaving has occurred to me.”

“But now, just recently, in the past three weeks, it has all come rushing back—with a sort of intense force, so to speak. It has really become unbearable. You can imagine what it means, and the overall situation, when I say that the thought of leaving has crossed my mind.”

“Incendiarism?” suggested Dr. Silence, half under his breath, but not so low that Colonel Wragge did not hear him.

“Arson?” suggested Dr. Silence, half under his breath, but not so quietly that Colonel Wragge didn’t hear him.

“By Jove, sir, you take the very words out of my mouth!” exclaimed the astonished man, glancing from the doctor to me and from me to the doctor, and rattling the money in his pocket as though some explanation of my friend’s divining powers were to be found that way.

“By Jove, sir, you’re taking the words right out of my mouth!” exclaimed the shocked man, looking from the doctor to me and then back to the doctor, shaking the money in his pocket as if he could find some explanation for my friend’s insights that way.

“It’s only that you are thinking very vividly,” the doctor said quietly, “and your thoughts form pictures in my mind before you utter them. It’s merely a little elementary thought-reading.”

“It’s just that you’re thinking really clearly,” the doctor said softly, “and your thoughts create images in my mind before you say them. It’s just a bit of basic thought-reading.”

His intention, I saw, was not to perplex the good man, but to impress him with his powers so as to ensure obedience later.

His intention, I realized, was not to confuse the good man, but to show off his abilities to make sure he would be obedient later.

“Good Lord! I had no idea——” He did not finish the sentence, and dived again abruptly into his narrative.

“Wow! I had no idea——” He didn’t finish the sentence and abruptly dove back into his story.

“I did not see anything myself, I must admit, but the stories of independent eye-witnesses were to the effect that lines of light, like streams of thin fire, moved through the wood and sometimes were seen to shoot out precisely as flames might shoot out—in the direction of this house. There,” he explained, in a louder voice that made me jump, pointing with a thick finger to the map, “where the westerly fringe of the plantation comes up to the end of the lower lawn at the back of the house—where it links on to those dark patches, which are laurel shrubberies, running right up to the back premises—that’s where these lights were seen. They passed from the wood to the shrubberies, and in this way reached the house itself. Like silent rockets, one man described them, rapid as lightning and exceedingly bright.”

“I didn’t see anything myself, I have to admit, but independent eyewitnesses reported that lines of light, like streams of thin fire, moved through the woods and were sometimes seen shooting out just like flames might—in the direction of this house. There,” he explained, in a louder voice that startled me, pointing with a thick finger at the map, “where the western edge of the plantation meets the end of the lower lawn at the back of the house—where it connects to those dark patches, which are laurel bushes, running all the way up to the back of the property—that's where these lights were spotted. They moved from the woods to the bushes and reached the house itself this way. One man described them like silent rockets, as fast as lightning and incredibly bright.”

“And this evidence you spoke of?”

“And what about the evidence you mentioned?”

“They actually reached the sides of the house. They’ve left a mark of scorching on the walls—the walls of the laundry building at the other end. You shall see ’em tomorrow.” He pointed to the map to indicate the spot, and then straightened himself and glared about the room as though he had said something no one could believe and expected contradiction.

“They actually made it to the sides of the house. There’s a burn mark on the walls—the walls of the laundry building at the other end. You’ll see it tomorrow.” He pointed to the map to show the location, then stood up straight and scanned the room as if he had said something unbelievable and was waiting for someone to disagree.

“Scorched—just as the faces were,” the doctor murmured, looking significantly at me.

“Scorched—just like the faces were,” the doctor murmured, glancing meaningfully at me.

“Scorched—yes,” repeated the Colonel, failing to catch the rest of the sentence in his excitement.

“Scorched—yes,” repeated the Colonel, missing the rest of the sentence in his excitement.

There was a prolonged silence in the room, in which I heard the gurgling of the oil in the lamp and the click of the coals and the heavy breathing of our host. The most unwelcome sensations were creeping about my spine, and I wondered whether my companion would scorn me utterly if I asked to sleep on the sofa in his room. It was eleven o’clock, I saw by the clock on the mantelpiece. We had crossed the dividing line and were now well in the movement of the adventure. The fight between my interest and my dread became acute. But, even if turning back had been possible, I think the interest would have easily gained the day.

There was a long silence in the room, during which I could hear the gurgling of the oil in the lamp, the click of the coals, and our host's heavy breathing. Uncomfortable sensations were creeping up my spine, and I wondered if my companion would completely reject me if I asked to sleep on the sofa in his room. It was eleven o’clock, according to the clock on the mantelpiece. We had crossed the line and were now fully caught up in the adventure. The struggle between my curiosity and my fear became intense. But even if turning back had been an option, I think my curiosity would have easily won out.

“I have enemies, of course,” I heard the Colonel’s rough voice break into the pause presently, “and have discharged a number of servants——”

“I have enemies, of course,” I heard the Colonel’s rough voice interrupt the silence just then, “and have let go of a number of servants——”

“It’s not that,” put in John Silence briefly.

“It’s not that,” John Silence said briefly.

“You think not? In a sense I am glad, and yet—there are some things that can be met and dealt with——”

“You think not? In a way, I’m glad, but still—there are some things that can be faced and handled—”

He left the sentence unfinished, and looked down at the floor with an expression of grim severity that betrayed a momentary glimpse of character. This fighting man loathed and abhorred the thought of an enemy he could not see and come to grips with. Presently he moved over and sat down in the chair between us. Something like a sigh escaped him. Dr. Silence said nothing.

He left the sentence hanging and glanced down at the floor with a serious expression that revealed a brief glimpse of his true self. This warrior hated and detested the idea of an unseen enemy he couldn't confront. Eventually, he moved over and took a seat in the chair between us. A sound that resembled a sigh escaped him. Dr. Silence said nothing.

“My sister, of course, is kept in ignorance, as far as possible, of all this,” he said disconnectedly, and as if talking to himself. “But even if she knew, she would find matter-of-fact explanations. I only wish I could. I’m sure they exist.”

“My sister, of course, is kept in the dark as much as possible about all this,” he said absently, almost as if he were speaking to himself. “But even if she knew, she’d come up with practical explanations. I just wish I could. I’m sure they’re out there.”

There came then an interval in the conversation that was very significant. It did not seem a real pause, or the silence real silence, for both men continued to think so rapidly and strongly that one almost imagined their thoughts clothed themselves in words in the air of the room. I was more than a little keyed up with the strange excitement of all I had heard, but what stimulated my nerves more than anything else was the obvious fact that the doctor was clearly upon the trail of discovery. In his mind at that moment, I believe, he had already solved the nature of this perplexing psychical problem. His face was like a mask, and he employed the absolute minimum of gesture and words. All his energies were directed inwards, and by those incalculable methods and processes he had mastered with such infinite patience and study, I felt sure he was already in touch with the forces behind these singular phenomena and laying his deep plans for bringing them into the open, and then effectively dealing with them.

There was a moment in the conversation that was very significant. It didn’t feel like a real pause, or the silence felt genuine, because both men were thinking so quickly and intensely that you could almost imagine their thoughts taking shape in words in the air of the room. I was more than a little on edge from the strange excitement of everything I had heard, but what energized my nerves the most was the clear fact that the doctor was clearly on the verge of discovery. At that moment, I believe he had already figured out the nature of this confusing psychological issue. His face was expressionless, and he used hardly any gestures or words. All his energy was focused inward, and through those countless methods and processes he had perfected with incredible patience and study, I was sure he was already connected to the forces behind these unusual phenomena and was planning how to bring them to light and handle them effectively.

Colonel Wragge meanwhile grew more and more fidgety. From time to time he turned towards my companion, as though about to speak, yet always changing his mind at the last moment. Once he went over and opened the door suddenly, apparently to see if any one were listening at the keyhole, for he disappeared a moment between the two doors, and I then heard him open the outer one. He stood there for some seconds and made a noise as though he were sniffing the air like a dog. Then he closed both doors cautiously and came back to the fireplace. A strange excitement seemed growing upon him. Evidently he was trying to make up his mind to say something that he found it difficult to say. And John Silence, as I rightly judged, was waiting patiently for him to choose his own opportunity and his own way of saying it. At last he turned and faced us, squaring his great shoulders, and stiffening perceptibly.

Colonel Wragge grew more and more restless. He occasionally turned to my companion as if he was about to speak, but always changed his mind at the last moment. At one point, he suddenly opened the door, apparently to check if anyone was eavesdropping at the keyhole, since he disappeared momentarily between the two doors, and then I heard him open the outer one. He stood there for a few seconds, making a sound like he was sniffing the air like a dog. Then he cautiously closed both doors and returned to the fireplace. A strange excitement seemed to be building up in him. Clearly, he was struggling to say something he found difficult to express. And John Silence, as I correctly guessed, was patiently waiting for him to find his own moment and way to say it. Finally, he turned to face us, squaring his broad shoulders and visibly tensing up.

Dr. Silence looked up sympathetically.

Dr. Silence looked up with empathy.

“Your own experiences help me most,” he observed quietly.

“Your experiences help me the most,” he said quietly.

“The fact is,” the Colonel said, speaking very low, “this past week there have been outbreaks of fire in the house itself. Three separate outbreaks—and all—in my sister’s room.”

“The fact is,” the Colonel said, speaking very softly, “this past week there have been fires breaking out in the house. Three separate incidents— all in my sister’s room.”

“Yes,” the doctor said, as if this was just what he had expected to hear.

“Yes,” the doctor said, as if he had been expecting to hear that.

“Utterly unaccountable—all of them,” added the other, and then sat down. I began to understand something of the reason of his excitement. He was realising at last that the “natural” explanation he had held to all along was becoming impossible, and he hated it. It made him angry.

“Completely unaccountable—all of them,” the other person said, and then sat down. I started to grasp some of the reason for his excitement. He was finally realizing that the “natural” explanation he had believed in all along was becoming impossible, and he hated it. It made him angry.

“Fortunately,” he went on, “she was out each time and does not know. But I have made her sleep now in a room on the ground floor.”

“Luckily,” he continued, “she was out every time and doesn’t know. But I’ve put her to sleep now in a room on the ground floor.”

“A wise precaution,” the doctor said simply. He asked one or two questions. The fires had started in the curtains—once by the window and once by the bed. The third time smoke had been discovered by the maid coming from the cupboard, and it was found that Miss Wragge’s clothes hanging on the hooks were smouldering. The doctor listened attentively, but made no comment.

“A smart precaution,” the doctor said plainly. He asked a couple of questions. The fires had started in the curtains—once by the window and once by the bed. The third time, smoke was found by the maid coming from the cupboard, and it turned out that Miss Wragge’s clothes hanging on the hooks were smoldering. The doctor listened carefully, but didn’t say anything.

“And now can you tell me,” he said presently, “what your own feeling about it is—your general impression?”

“And now can you tell me,” he said after a moment, “what your own feelings about it are—your overall impression?”

“It sounds foolish to say so,” replied the soldier, after a moment’s hesitation, “but I feel exactly as I have often felt on active service in my Indian campaigns: just as if the house and all in it were in a state of siege; as though a concealed enemy were encamped about us—in ambush somewhere.” He uttered a soft nervous laugh. “As if the next sign of smoke would precipitate a panic—a dreadful panic.”

“It might sound silly to say this,” the soldier replied after a brief pause, “but I feel exactly like I often did during my time in the field in India: as if the house and everyone in it were under siege; like there’s a hidden enemy surrounding us—lying in wait somewhere.” He let out a quiet, nervous laugh. “As if the next sign of smoke would set off a panic—a terrible panic.”

The picture came before me of the night shadowing the house, and the twisted pine trees he had described crowding about it, concealing some powerful enemy; and, glancing at the resolute face and figure of the old soldier, forced at length to his confession, I understood something of all he had been through before he sought the assistance of John Silence.

The image appeared in my mind of the night surrounding the house, with the gnarled pine trees he mentioned looming around it, hiding some strong enemy; and, looking at the determined face and stance of the old soldier, who was finally compelled to confess, I started to grasp some of what he had experienced before he turned to John Silence for help.

“And tomorrow, unless I am mistaken, is full moon,” said the doctor suddenly, watching the other’s face for the effect of his apparently careless words.

“And tomorrow, if I’m not mistaken, is a full moon,” said the doctor suddenly, watching the other’s face to see the reaction to his seemingly casual remark.

Colonel Wragge gave an uncontrollable start, and his face for the first time showed unmistakable pallor.

Colonel Wragge jumped uncontrollably, and for the first time, his face showed clear signs of fear.

“What in the world——?” he began, his lip quivering.

“What on earth——?” he started, his lip trembling.

“Only that I am beginning to see light in this extraordinary affair,” returned the other calmly, “and, if my theory is correct, each month when the moon is at the full should witness an increase in the activity of the phenomena.”

“Only that I’m starting to see some clarity in this unusual situation,” replied the other calmly, “and, if my theory is right, every month when the moon is full, we should expect to see increased activity in the phenomena.”

“I don’t see the connection,” Colonel Wragge answered almost savagely, “but I am bound to say my diary bears you out.” He wore the most puzzled expression I have ever seen upon an honest face, but he abhorred this additional corroboration of an explanation that perplexed him.

“I don’t see the connection,” Colonel Wragge replied almost angrily, “but I have to admit my diary supports what you’re saying.” He had the most confused look I’ve ever seen on an honest face, but he hated this extra confirmation of an explanation that baffled him.

“I confess,” he repeated; “I cannot see the connection.”

"I admit," he said again, "I can't see the connection."

“Why should you?” said the doctor, with his first laugh that evening. He got up and hung the map upon the wall again. “But I do—because these things are my special study—and let me add that I have yet to come across a problem that is not natural, and has not a natural explanation. It’s merely a question of how much one knows—and admits.”

“Why should you?” the doctor said, laughing for the first time that evening. He stood up and hung the map back on the wall. “But I do—because these things are my area of expertise—and let me add that I haven’t encountered a problem that isn’t natural and doesn’t have a natural explanation. It’s just a matter of how much one knows—and is willing to accept.”

Colonel Wragge eyed him with a new and curious respect in his face. But his feelings were soothed. Moreover, the doctor’s laugh and change of manner came as a relief to all, and broke the spell of grave suspense that had held us so long. We all rose and stretched our limbs, and took little walks about the room.

Colonel Wragge looked at him with a fresh and curious respect. But his feelings were calmed. Additionally, the doctor’s laughter and change in demeanor were a relief to everyone and lifted the heavy tension that had been hanging over us for so long. We all got up, stretched our legs, and took short walks around the room.

“I am glad, Dr. Silence, if you will allow me to say so, that you are here,” he said simply, “very glad indeed. And now I fear I have kept you both up very late,” with a glance to include me, “for you must be tired, and ready for your beds. I have told you all there is to tell,” he added, “and tomorrow you must feel perfectly free to take any steps you think necessary.”

“I’m really glad you’re here, Dr. Silence, if I can say that,” he said simply, “very glad indeed. And now I worry that I’ve kept you both up too late,” he glanced at me, “since you must be tired and ready for bed. I’ve shared everything there is to share,” he added, “and tomorrow you should feel completely free to take any steps you think are necessary.”

The end was abrupt, yet natural, for there was nothing more to say, and neither of these men talked for mere talking’s sake.

The ending was sudden, but it felt right, as there was nothing left to discuss, and neither of these men spoke just for the sake of speaking.

Out in the cold and chilly hall he lit our candles and took us upstairs. The house was at rest and still, every one asleep. We moved softly. Through the windows on the stairs we saw the moonlight falling across the lawn, throwing deep shadows. The nearer pine trees were just visible in the distance, a wall of impenetrable blackness.

Out in the cold and chilly hallway, he lit our candles and led us upstairs. The house was quiet and still, everyone asleep. We moved carefully. Through the windows on the staircase, we saw the moonlight shining down on the lawn, creating deep shadows. The nearby pine trees were barely visible in the distance, a solid wall of darkness.

Our host came for a moment to our rooms to see that we had everything. He pointed to a coil of strong rope lying beside the window, fastened to the wall by means of an iron ring. Evidently it had been recently put in.

Our host came by our rooms for a moment to make sure we had everything we needed. He pointed to a thick rope coiled up next to the window, secured to the wall with an iron ring. It was clear that it had been installed recently.

“I don’t think we shall need it,” Dr. Silence said, with a smile.

“I don’t think we’ll need it,” Dr. Silence said with a smile.

“I trust not,” replied our host gravely. “I sleep quite close to you across the landing,” he whispered, pointing to his door, “and if you—if you want anything in the night you will know where to find me.”

“I don’t think so,” our host replied seriously. “I sleep just across the landing from you,” he whispered, pointing to his door, “and if you—if you need anything in the night, you’ll know where to find me.”

He wished us pleasant dreams and disappeared down the passage into his room, shading the candle with his big muscular hand from the draughts.

He wished us sweet dreams and went down the hallway to his room, covering the candle with his strong hand to protect it from the drafts.

John Silence stopped me a moment before I went.

John Silence stopped me for a moment before I left.

“You know what it is?” I asked, with an excitement that even overcame my weariness.

“You know what it is?” I asked, with an excitement that even surpassed my tiredness.

“Yes,” he said, “I’m almost sure. And you?”

“Yeah,” he said, “I’m pretty sure. How about you?”

“Not the smallest notion.”

"Not the slightest idea."

He looked disappointed, but not half as disappointed as I felt.

He looked disappointed, but not nearly as disappointed as I felt.

“Egypt,” he whispered, “Egypt!”

“Egypt,” he whispered, “Egypt!”

II

Nothing happened to disturb me in the night—nothing, that is, except a nightmare in which Colonel Wragge chased me amid thin streaks of fire, and his sister always prevented my escape by suddenly rising up out of the ground in her chair—dead. The deep baying of dogs woke me once, just before the dawn, it must have been, for I saw the window frame against the sky; there was a flash of lightning, too, I thought, as I turned over in bed. And it was warm, for October oppressively warm.

Nothing happened to disturb me during the night—nothing, except for a nightmare where Colonel Wragge chased me through thin streaks of fire, and his sister kept stopping my escape by suddenly rising up out of the ground in her chair—dead. The loud barking of dogs woke me once, just before dawn, because I saw the window frame against the sky; I thought I also saw a flash of lightning as I turned over in bed. And it was warm, oppressively warm for October.

It was after eleven o’clock when our host suggested going out with the guns, these, we understood, being a somewhat thin disguise for our true purpose. Personally, I was glad to be in the open air, for the atmosphere of the house was heavy with presentiment. The sense of impending disaster hung over all. Fear stalked the passages, and lurked in the corners of every room. It was a house haunted, but really haunted; not by some vague shadow of the dead, but by a definite though incalculable influence that was actively alive, and dangerous. At the least smell of smoke the entire household quivered. An odour of burning, I was convinced, would paralyse all the inmates. For the servants, though professedly ignorant by the master’s unspoken orders, yet shared the common dread; and the hideous uncertainty, joined with this display of so spiteful and calculated a spirit of malignity, provided a kind of black doom that draped not only the walls, but also the minds of the people living within them.

It was after eleven o’clock when our host suggested going outside with the guns, which we understood was just a thin cover for our real intentions. Personally, I was happy to be in the fresh air because the atmosphere inside the house felt heavy with unease. A sense of looming disaster hung over everyone. Fear crept through the hallways and hid in the corners of every room. This house was truly haunted; not by some vague ghost of the past, but by a specific yet unpredictable force that was very much alive and perilous. At the faintest whiff of smoke, the entire household would shudder. I was sure that even the scent of burning would immobilize everyone inside. Although the servants pretended not to know anything due to their master’s unspoken orders, they still shared the common anxiety. The horrific uncertainty, combined with this display of malicious intent, cast a dark shadow that weighed heavily not just on the walls, but also on the minds of the people living within them.

Only the bright and cheerful vision of old Miss Wragge being pushed about the house in her noiseless chair, chatting and nodding briskly to every one she met, prevented us from giving way entirely to the depression which governed the majority. The sight of her was like a gleam of sunshine through the depths of some ill-omened wood, and just as we went out I saw her being wheeled along by her attendant into the sunshine of the back lawn, and caught her cheery smile as she turned her head and wished us good sport.

Only the bright and cheerful sight of old Miss Wragge being pushed around the house in her silent chair, chatting and nodding happily at everyone she met, kept us from completely succumbing to the gloom that affected most people. Seeing her was like a ray of sunshine breaking through a dark forest, and just as we were about to leave, I saw her being wheeled by her helper into the sunlight of the back lawn, and I caught her warm smile as she turned her head and wished us good luck.

The morning was October at its best. Sunshine glistened on the dew-drenched grass and on leaves turned golden-red. The dainty messengers of coming hoar-frost were already in the air, asearch for permanent winter quarters. From the wide moors that everywhere swept up against the sky, like a purple sea splashed by the occasional grey of rocky clefts, there stole down the cool and perfumed wind of the west. And the keen taste of the sea ran through all like a master-flavour, borne over the spaces perhaps by the seagulls that cried and circled high in the air.

The morning was October at its finest. Sunshine sparkled on the dew-covered grass and on leaves turned brilliant shades of red and gold. The delicate signs of impending frost were already in the air, searching for a place to settle for winter. From the vast moors that rolled up against the sky, resembling a purple sea dotted with the occasional gray rocky outcrop, a cool, fragrant breeze blew in from the west. The sharp taste of the sea was present everywhere, carried over the landscape, perhaps by the seagulls that cried out and circled high above.

But our host took little interest in this sparkling beauty, and had no thought of showing off the scenery of his property. His mind was otherwise intent, and, for that matter, so were our own.

But our host paid little attention to this sparkling beauty and had no intention of showcasing the scenery of his property. His mind was focused elsewhere, and, for that matter, so were ours.

“Those bleak moors and hills stretch unbroken for hours,” he said, with a sweep of the hand; “and over there, some four miles,” pointing in another direction, “lies S—— Bay, a long, swampy inlet of the sea, haunted by myriads of seabirds. On the other side of the house are the plantations and pine-woods. I thought we would get the dogs and go first to the Twelve Acre Wood I told you about last night. It’s quite near.”

“Those desolate moors and hills go on for hours,” he said, waving his hand; “and over there, about four miles away,” pointing in another direction, “is S—— Bay, a long, marshy inlet of the sea, filled with countless seabirds. On the other side of the house are the fields and pine forests. I thought we could grab the dogs and head first to the Twelve Acre Wood I mentioned last night. It's pretty close.”

We found the dogs in the stable, and I recalled the deep baying of the night when a fine bloodhound and two great Danes leaped out to greet us. Singular companions for guns, I thought to myself, as we struck out across the fields and the great creatures bounded and ran beside us, nose to ground.

We found the dogs in the stable, and I remembered the deep barking from the night when a great bloodhound and two huge Great Danes jumped out to welcome us. Unusual companions for hunting, I thought to myself, as we headed out across the fields and the big dogs bounded and ran alongside us, noses to the ground.

The conversation was scanty. John Silence’s grave face did not encourage talk. He wore the expression I knew well—that look of earnest solicitude which meant that his whole being was deeply absorbed and preoccupied. Frightened, I had never seen him, but anxious often—it always moved me to witness it—and he was anxious now.

The conversation was minimal. John Silence’s serious face didn’t invite discussion. He had that familiar expression—that look of genuine concern which indicated that he was completely absorbed and preoccupied. I had never seen him frightened, but I had often seen him anxious—it always affected me to witness it—and he was anxious now.

“On the way back you shall see the laundry building,” Colonel Wragge observed shortly, for he, too, found little to say. “We shall attract less attention then.”

“On the way back, you’ll see the laundry building,” Colonel Wragge remarked briefly, as he also had little to say. “We’ll attract less attention then.”

Yet not all the crisp beauty of the morning seemed able to dispel the feelings of uneasy dread that gathered increasingly about our minds as we went.

Yet not all the sharp beauty of the morning seemed able to shake off the feelings of uneasy dread that increasingly filled our minds as we continued.

In a very few minutes a clump of pine trees concealed the house from view, and we found ourselves on the outskirts of a densely-grown plantation of conifers. Colonel Wragge stopped abruptly, and, producing a map from his pocket, explained once more very briefly its position with regard to the house. He showed how it ran up almost to the walls of the laundry building—though at the moment beyond our actual view—and pointed to the windows of his sister’s bedroom where the fires had been. The room, now empty, looked straight on to the wood. Then, glancing nervously about him, and calling the dogs to heel, he proposed that we should enter the plantation and make as thorough examination of it as we thought worth while. The dogs, he added, might perhaps be persuaded to accompany us a little way—and he pointed to where they cowered at his feet—but he doubted it. “Neither voice nor whip will get them very far, I’m afraid,” he said. “I know by experience.”

In just a few minutes, a cluster of pine trees hid the house from view, and we found ourselves on the edge of a thick plantation of conifers. Colonel Wragge stopped suddenly, pulled out a map from his pocket, and briefly explained its location in relation to the house. He pointed out how it almost reached the walls of the laundry building—though we couldn’t see it at the moment—and indicated the windows of his sister’s bedroom where the fires had been. The room, now empty, faced directly towards the woods. Then, looking around nervously and calling the dogs to come, he suggested that we should enter the plantation and examine it as thoroughly as we thought was necessary. He mentioned that the dogs might be persuaded to follow us a little way—and he gestured to where they were huddled at his feet—but he wasn’t sure. “I’m afraid neither voice nor whip will get them very far,” he said. “I know from experience.”

“If you have no objection,” replied Dr. Silence, with decision, and speaking almost for the first time, “we will make our examination alone—Mr. Hubbard and myself. It will be best so.”

“If you don’t mind,” Dr. Silence replied firmly, speaking almost for the first time, “Mr. Hubbard and I will conduct our examination on our own. It will be better that way.”

His tone was absolutely final, and the Colonel acquiesced so politely that even a less intuitive man than myself must have seen that he was genuinely relieved.

His tone was completely conclusive, and the Colonel agreed so politely that even someone less perceptive than me would have noticed that he was truly relieved.

“You doubtless have good reasons,” he said.

"You definitely have good reasons," he said.

“Merely that I wish to obtain my impressions uncoloured. This delicate clue I am working on might be so easily blurred by the thought-currents of another mind with strongly preconceived ideas.”

“I just want to get my impressions as they are. This subtle clue I'm following could easily be distorted by the thought processes of someone else who has strong preconceived ideas.”

“Perfectly. I understand,” rejoined the soldier, though with an expression of countenance that plainly contradicted his words. “Then I will wait here with the dogs; and we’ll have a look at the laundry on our way home.”

“Got it. I understand,” the soldier replied, though his face clearly showed otherwise. “So I'll stay here with the dogs; and we’ll check out the laundry on our way back.”

I turned once to look back as we clambered over the low stone wall built by the late owner, and saw his straight, soldierly figure standing in the sunlit field watching us with a curiously intent look on his face. There was something to me incongruous, yet distinctly pathetic, in the man’s efforts to meet all far-fetched explanations of the mystery with contempt, and at the same time in his stolid, unswerving investigation of it all. He nodded at me and made a gesture of farewell with his hand. That picture of him, standing in the sunshine with his big dogs, steadily watching us, remains with me to this day.

I turned back once as we scrambled over the low stone wall built by the previous owner and saw his tall, soldierly figure standing in the sunlit field, watching us with a strangely focused look on his face. There was something about the man's attempts to dismiss all the wild theories about the mystery that felt both out of place and downright sad, especially when paired with his determined, unwavering investigation of it all. He nodded at me and waved goodbye with his hand. That image of him, standing in the sunshine with his big dogs, keeping a steady watch on us, stays with me to this day.

Dr. Silence led the way in among the twisted trunks, planted closely together in serried ranks, and I followed sharp at his heels. The moment we were out of sight he turned and put down his gun against the roots of a big tree, and I did likewise.

Dr. Silence moved ahead through the twisted trunks, which were planted closely together in tight rows, and I followed closely behind him. As soon as we were out of sight, he turned and set his gun down against the roots of a large tree, and I did the same.

“We shall hardly want these cumbersome weapons of murder,” he observed, with a passing smile.

“We probably won’t need these heavy weapons for killing,” he said, with a brief smile.

“You are sure of your clue, then?” I asked at once, bursting with curiosity, yet fearing to betray it lest he should think me unworthy. His own methods were so absolutely simple and untheatrical.

“You're confident about your clue, then?” I asked right away, filled with curiosity but worried that showing it would make him think I wasn’t worthy. His approach was so straightforward and non-dramatic.

“I am sure of my clue,” he answered gravely. “And I think we have come just in time. You shall know in due course. For the present—be content to follow and observe. And think steadily. The support of your mind will help me.”

“I’m sure about my clue,” he said seriously. “And I think we’ve arrived just in time. You’ll find out soon enough. For now—just follow and watch. And stay focused. Your thoughts will support me.”

His voice had that quiet mastery in it which leads men to face death with a sort of happiness and pride. I would have followed him anywhere at that moment. At the same time his words conveyed a sense of dread seriousness. I caught the thrill of his confidence; but also, in this broad light of day, I felt the measure of alarm that lay behind.

His voice had a calm authority that made people confront death with a kind of joy and pride. I would have followed him anywhere in that moment. Yet, his words carried a heavy seriousness. I felt the excitement of his confidence, but also, in the bright light of day, I sensed the underlying fear that was there.

“You still have no strong impressions?” he asked. “Nothing happened in the night, for instance? No vivid dreamings?”

“You still don’t have any strong impressions?” he asked. “Nothing happened overnight, for example? No vivid dreams?”

He looked closely for my answer, I was aware.

He watched me closely for my answer, and I knew it.

“I slept almost an unbroken sleep. I was tremendously tired, you know, and, but for the oppressive heat——”

“I slept almost without interruption. I was extremely tired, you know, and if it weren’t for the suffocating heat——”

“Good! You still notice the heat, then,” he said to himself, rather than expecting an answer. “And the lightning?” he added, “that lightning out of a clear sky—that flashing—did you notice that?”

“Good! You can still feel the heat, then,” he said to himself, not really expecting a reply. “And the lightning?” he continued, “that lightning out of a clear sky—that flash—did you catch that?”

I answered truly that I thought I had seen a flash during a moment of wakefulness, and he then drew my attention to certain facts before moving on.

I honestly replied that I believed I had seen a flash during a brief moment of being awake, and then he pointed out some specific facts before continuing.

“You remember the sensation of warmth when you put the letter to your forehead in the train; the heat generally in the house last evening, and, as you now mention, in the night. You heard, too, the Colonel’s stories about the appearances of fire in this wood and in the house itself, and the way his brother and the gamekeeper came to their deaths twenty years ago.”

“You remember the warm feeling when you pressed the letter to your forehead on the train; the heat in the house last night, and, as you just mentioned, during the night. You also heard the Colonel’s stories about the sightings of fire in this woods and in the house itself, and how his brother and the gamekeeper died twenty years ago.”

I nodded, wondering what in the world it all meant.

I nodded, trying to figure out what it all meant.

“And you get no clue from these facts?” he asked, a trifle surprised.

“And you don’t see anything from these facts?” he asked, a little surprised.

I searched every corner of my mind and imagination for some inkling of his meaning, but was obliged to admit that I understood nothing so far.

I searched every part of my mind and imagination for a clue to his meaning, but I had to admit that I understood nothing so far.

“Never mind; you will later. And now,” he added, “we will go over the wood and see what we can find.”

“Don’t worry; you will later. And now,” he added, “let’s head over the woods and see what we can find.”

His words explained to me something of his method. We were to keep our minds alert and report to each other the least fancy that crossed the picture-gallery of our thoughts. Then, just as we started, he turned again to me with a final warning.

His words clarified a bit about his approach. We were to stay sharp and share even the smallest idea that crossed our minds. Then, just as we began, he turned to me one last time with a final warning.

“And, for your safety,” he said earnestly, “imagine now—and for that matter, imagine always until we leave this place—imagine with the utmost keenness, that you are surrounded by a shell that protects you. Picture yourself inside a protective envelope, and build it up with the most intense imagination you can evoke. Pour the whole force of your thought and will into it. Believe vividly all through this adventure that such a shell, constructed of your thought, will and imagination, surrounds you completely, and that nothing can pierce it to attack.”

“And for your safety,” he said seriously, “just picture this now—and really, keep this in mind until we leave this place—imagine as vividly as you can that you’re surrounded by a protective shell. Visualize yourself inside this shield, and amplify it using the strongest imagination you can muster. Put all your energy and focus into it. Truly believe throughout this journey that this shell, built from your thoughts, determination, and creativity, completely surrounds you, and that nothing can break through to harm you.”

He spoke with dramatic conviction, gazing hard at me as though to enforce his meaning, and then moved forward and began to pick his way over the rough, tussocky ground into the wood. And meanwhile, knowing the efficacy of his prescription, I adopted it to the best of my ability.

He spoke with strong conviction, looking at me intently as if to emphasize his point, then stepped forward and started carefully making his way over the uneven, grassy ground into the woods. Meanwhile, aware of how effective his advice was, I followed it as best as I could.

The trees at once closed about us like the night. Their branches met overhead in a continuous tangle, their stems crept closer and closer, the brambly undergrowth thickened and multiplied. We tore our trousers, scratched our hands, and our eyes filled with fine dust that made it most difficult to avoid the clinging, prickly network of branches and creepers. Coarse white grass that caught our feet like string grew here and there in patches. It crowned the lumps of peaty growth that stuck up like human heads, fantastically dressed, thrusting up at us out of the ground with crests of dead hair. We stumbled and floundered among them. It was hard going, and I could well conceive it impossible to find a way at all in the night-time. We jumped, when possible, from tussock to tussock, and it seemed as though we were springing among heads on a battlefield, and that this dead white grass concealed eyes that turned to stare as we passed.

The trees immediately closed around us like night. Their branches intertwined overhead in a continuous tangle, their trunks came closer and closer, and the thick underbrush increased. We tore our pants, scratched our hands, and our eyes filled with fine dust, making it really hard to avoid the clingy, prickly web of branches and vines. Coarse white grass that caught our feet like string grew in patches here and there. It topped the mounds of peaty growth that poked up like human heads, oddly dressed, pushing up at us from the ground with tufts of dead hair. We stumbled and floundered among them. It was tough going, and I could easily imagine it being impossible to find a way in the dark. We jumped, when we could, from tuft to tuft, and it felt like we were leaping among heads on a battlefield, with this dead white grass hiding eyes that seemed to watch us as we passed.

Here and there the sunlight shot in with vivid spots of white light, dazzling the sight, but only making the surrounding gloom deeper by contrast And on two occasions we passed dark circular places in the grass where fires had eaten their mark and left a ring of ashes. Dr. Silence pointed to them, but without comment and without pausing, and the sight of them woke in me a singular realisation of the dread that lay so far only just out of sight in this adventure.

Here and there, the sunlight broke through, creating bright spots of white light that dazzled the eye, but only made the surrounding darkness seem deeper by contrast. And twice, we came across dark circular patches in the grass where fires had left their mark, resulting in a ring of ashes. Dr. Silence pointed them out without saying anything and continued walking, and seeing them sparked a unique realization in me about the fear that was lurking just out of sight in this adventure.

It was exhausting work, and heavy going. We kept close together. The warmth, too, was extraordinary. Yet it did not seem the warmth of the body due to violent exertion, but rather an inner heat of the mind that laid glowing hands of fire upon the heart and set the brain in a kind of steady blaze. When my companion found himself too far in advance, he waited for me to come up. The place had evidently been untouched by hand of man, keeper, forester or sportsman, for many a year; and my thoughts, as we advanced painfully, were not unlike the state of the wood itself—dark, confused, full of a haunting wonder and the shadow of fear.

It was tiring work and tough going. We stayed close together. The warmth was incredible, but it didn’t feel like the heat from physical effort; it was more like an inner heat of the mind that pressed down like glowing flames on the heart and set my brain ablaze. When my companion got too far ahead, he paused for me to catch up. The area clearly hadn’t been touched by humans—neither keepers, foresters, nor hunters—for many years; and as we struggled forward, my thoughts mirrored the state of the forest itself—dark, confusing, full of mysterious wonder and a hint of fear.

By this time all signs of the open field behind us were hid. No single gleam penetrated. We might have been groping in the heart of some primeval forest. Then, suddenly, the brambles and tussocks and string-like grass came to an end; the trees opened out; and the ground began to slope upwards towards a large central mound. We had reached the middle of the plantation, and before us stood the broken Druid stones our host had mentioned. We walked easily up the little hill, between the sparser stems, and, resting upon one of the ivy-covered boulders, looked round upon a comparatively open space, as large, perhaps, as a small London Square.

By this time, all signs of the open field behind us were hidden. Not a single ray of light seeped in. We could have been stumbling through the depths of some ancient forest. Then, suddenly, the thorny bushes, tufts of grass, and stringy grass came to an end; the trees spread apart; and the ground started to rise toward a large central mound. We had arrived at the center of the plantation, and before us stood the shattered Druid stones our host had talked about. We walked easily up the small hill, surrounded by sparser tree trunks, and, resting on one of the ivy-covered boulders, looked around at a relatively open space, about the size of a small London square.

Thinking of the ceremonies and sacrifices this rough circle of prehistoric monoliths might have witnessed, I looked up into my companion’s face with an unspoken question. But he read my thought and shook his head.

Thinking about the ceremonies and sacrifices this rough circle of prehistoric stones might have seen, I looked up into my companion’s face with a silent question. But he understood what I was thinking and shook his head.

“Our mystery has nothing to do with these dead symbols,” he said, “but with something perhaps even more ancient, and of another country altogether.”

“Our mystery has nothing to do with these lifeless symbols,” he said, “but with something maybe even older, and from a completely different place.”

“Egypt?” I said half under my breath, hopelessly puzzled, but recalling his words in my bedroom.

“Egypt?” I said quietly, totally confused, but remembering his words in my bedroom.

He nodded. Mentally I still floundered, but he seemed intensely preoccupied and it was no time for asking questions; so while his words circled unintelligibly in my mind I looked round at the scene before me, glad of the opportunity to recover breath and some measure of composure. But hardly had I time to notice the twisted and contorted shapes of many of the pine trees close at hand when Dr. Silence leaned over and touched me on the shoulder. He pointed down the slope. And the look I saw in his eyes keyed up every nerve in my body to its utmost pitch.

He nodded. I was still struggling to understand, but he looked really focused, and it wasn't the right moment to ask questions. As his words swirled around in my mind without making sense, I glanced at the scene in front of me, thankful for a chance to catch my breath and regain some composure. But I barely had time to notice the twisted and gnarled shapes of the pine trees nearby when Dr. Silence leaned over and touched my shoulder. He pointed down the slope. The look in his eyes fired up every nerve in my body to its highest intensity.

A thin, almost imperceptible column of blue smoke was rising among the trees some twenty yards away at the foot of the mound. It curled up and up, and disappeared from sight among the tangled branches overhead. It was scarcely thicker than the smoke from a small brand of burning wood.

A thin, barely noticeable column of blue smoke was rising among the trees about twenty yards away at the base of the hill. It spiraled upward and vanished from view among the tangled branches above. It was only slightly thicker than the smoke from a small piece of burning wood.

“Protect yourself! Imagine your shell strongly,” whispered the doctor sharply, “and follow me closely.”

“Stay safe! Picture your shield as solid,” the doctor whispered urgently, “and keep right behind me.”

He rose at once and moved swiftly down the slope towards the smoke, and I followed, afraid to remain alone. I heard the soft crunching of our steps on the pine needles. Over his shoulder I watched the thin blue spiral, without once taking my eyes off it. I hardly know how to describe the peculiar sense of vague horror inspired in me by the sight of that streak of smoke pencilling its way upwards among the dark trees. And the sensation of increasing heat as we approached was phenomenal. It was like walking towards a glowing yet invisible fire.

He immediately got up and quickly headed down the slope toward the smoke, and I followed, scared to be left alone. I heard the soft crunch of our footsteps on the pine needles. Over his shoulder, I watched the thin blue spiral, not taking my eyes off it once. I can barely describe the strange feeling of vague horror that the sight of that streak of smoke tracing its path upward among the dark trees gave me. And the feeling of rising heat as we got closer was incredible. It was like walking toward a glowing but invisible fire.

As we drew nearer his pace slackened. Then he stopped and pointed, and I saw a small circle of burnt grass upon the ground. The tussocks were blackened and smouldering, and from the centre rose this line of smoke, pale, blue, steady. Then I noticed a movement of the atmosphere beside us, as if the warm air were rising and the cooler air rushing in to take its place: a little centre of wind in the stillness. Overhead the boughs stirred and trembled where the smoke disappeared. Otherwise, not a tree sighed, not a sound made itself heard. The wood was still as a graveyard. A horrible idea came to me that the course of nature was about to change without warning, had changed a little already, that the sky would drop, or the surface of the earth crash inwards like a broken bubble. Something, certainly, reached up to the citadel of my reason, causing its throne to shake.

As we got closer, his pace slowed down. Then he stopped and pointed, and I saw a small circle of burnt grass on the ground. The clumps were charred and smoldering, and from the center rose a steady, pale blue line of smoke. Then I noticed a shift in the air around us, as if the warm air was rising and cooler air was rushing in to fill the space: a small pocket of wind in the stillness. Above us, the branches stirred and trembled where the smoke disappeared. Other than that, not a single tree rustled, not a sound could be heard. The woods were as silent as a graveyard. A terrifying thought struck me that the course of nature was about to change unexpectedly, had already changed a bit, that the sky would fall, or the ground would cave in like a shattered bubble. Something, for sure, reached up to the stronghold of my reason, causing its throne to wobble.

John Silence moved forward again. I could not see his face, but his attitude was plainly one of resolution, of muscles and mind ready for vigorous action. We were within ten feet of the blackened circle when the smoke of a sudden ceased to rise, and vanished. The tail of the column disappeared in the air above, and at the same instant it seemed to me that the sensation of heat passed from my face, and the motion of the wind was gone. The calm spirit of the fresh October day resumed command.

John Silence moved forward again. I couldn’t see his face, but his posture clearly showed determination, with his body and mind prepared for action. We were ten feet away from the blackened circle when the smoke suddenly stopped rising and disappeared. The end of the column vanished into the air above, and at that moment, it felt like the heat faded from my face, and the wind stopped blowing. The peaceful atmosphere of the fresh October day took over once more.

Side by side we advanced and examined the place. The grass was smouldering, the ground still hot. The circle of burned earth was a foot to a foot and a half in diameter. It looked like an ordinary picnic fire-place. I bent down cautiously to look, but in a second I sprang back with an involuntary cry of alarm, for, as the doctor stamped on the ashes to prevent them spreading, a sound of hissing rose from the spot as though he had kicked a living creature. This hissing was faintly audible in the air. It moved past us, away towards the thicker portion of the wood in the direction of our field, and in a second Dr. Silence had left the fire and started in pursuit.

Side by side, we moved forward to inspect the area. The grass was smoldering, and the ground was still hot. The circle of burned earth measured about a foot to a foot and a half in diameter. It resembled a typical picnic fire pit. I crouched down to take a closer look, but in an instant, I jumped back with an involuntary cry of alarm. As the doctor stomped on the ashes to keep them from spreading, a hissing sound rose from the spot, as if he’d disturbed a living creature. This hissing was faintly audible in the air. It moved past us towards the denser part of the woods in the direction of our field, and in a moment, Dr. Silence left the fire and took off in pursuit.

And then began the most extraordinary hunt of invisibility I can ever conceive.

And then started the most amazing search for invisibility I can imagine.

He went fast even at the beginning, and, of course, it was perfectly obvious that he was following something. To judge by the poise of his head he kept his eyes steadily at a certain level—just above the height of a man—and the consequence was he stumbled a good deal over the roughness of the ground. The hissing sound had stopped. There was no sound of any kind, and what he saw to follow was utterly beyond me. I only know, that in mortal dread of being left behind, and with a biting curiosity to see whatever there was to be seen, I followed as quickly as I could, and even then barely succeeded in keeping up with him.

He moved quickly right from the start, and it was clear he was following something. Judging by the way he held his head, he kept his eyes fixed at a certain height—just above a man's eye level—which caused him to trip a lot over the uneven ground. The hissing sound had stopped. There was complete silence, and what he was following was totally beyond my understanding. All I knew was that, terrified of being left behind, and out of a strong curiosity to see whatever was out there, I followed as fast as I could, and even then, I barely managed to keep up with him.

And, as we went, the whole mad jumble of the Colonel’s stories ran through my brain, touching a sense of frightened laughter that was only held in check by the sight of this earnest, hurrying figure before me. For John Silence at work inspired me with a kind of awe. He looked so diminutive among these giant twisted trees, while yet I knew that his purpose and his knowledge were so great, and even in hurry he was dignified. The fancy that we were playing some queer, exaggerated game together met the fact that we were two men dancing upon the brink of some possible tragedy, and the mingling of the two emotions in my mind was both grotesque and terrifying.

And as we moved along, the chaotic mix of the Colonel’s stories ran through my mind, stirring up a sense of nervous laughter that I could barely suppress because of the serious, hurried figure in front of me. John Silence at work filled me with a kind of respect. He seemed so small among these massive, twisted trees, yet I knew his purpose and knowledge were immense, and even in his rush, he remained dignified. The idea that we were involved in some strange, exaggerated game together collided with the reality that we were two men teetering on the edge of a possible tragedy, and the blend of those feelings in my mind was both absurd and frightening.

He never turned in his mad chase, but pushed rapidly on, while I panted after him like a figure in some unreasoning nightmare. And, as I ran, it came upon me that he had been aware all the time, in his quiet, internal way, of many things that he had kept for his own secret consideration; he had been watching, waiting, planning from the very moment we entered the shade of the wood. By some inner, concentrated process of mind, dynamic if not actually magical, he had been in direct contact with the source of the whole adventure, the very essence of the real mystery. And now the forces were moving to a climax. Something was about to happen, something important, something possibly dreadful. Every nerve, every sense, every significant gesture of the plunging figure before me proclaimed the fact just as surely as the skies, the winds, and the face of the earth tell the birds the time to migrate and warn the animals that danger lurks and they must move.

He never slowed down in his wild chase but pressed on quickly, while I struggled to keep up with him like a character in some irrational nightmare. As I ran, I realized that he had been aware all along, in his quiet, internal way, of many things he kept to himself; he had been observing, waiting, and planning from the moment we entered the shade of the woods. Through some intense mental process, dynamic if not actually magical, he had been directly in touch with the core of the entire adventure, the very essence of the real mystery. And now the forces were building to a climax. Something was about to happen, something significant, possibly terrifying. Every nerve, every sense, every meaningful movement of the rushing figure in front of me signaled the truth just as clearly as the skies, the winds, and the land tell the birds when to migrate and warn the animals that danger is near and they must flee.

In a few moments we reached the foot of the mound and entered the tangled undergrowth that lay between us and the sunlight of the field. Here the difficulties of fast travelling increased a hundredfold. There were brambles to dodge, low boughs to dive under, and countless tree trunks closing up to make a direct path impossible. Yet Dr. Silence never seemed to falter or hesitate. He went, diving, jumping, dodging, ducking, but ever in the same main direction, following a clean trail. Twice I tripped and fell, and both times, when I picked myself up again, I saw him ahead of me, still forcing a way like a dog after its quarry. And sometimes, like a dog, he stopped and pointed—human pointing it was, psychic pointing,—and each time he stopped to point I heard that faint high hissing in the air beyond us. The instinct of an infallible dowser possessed him, and he made no mistakes.

In just a few moments, we reached the bottom of the mound and stepped into the thick underbrush that separated us from the sunlight of the field. Here, the challenges of moving quickly increased dramatically. We had to dodge brambles, duck under low branches, and navigate around countless tree trunks that blocked a direct path. Yet Dr. Silence never seemed to hesitate. He dove, jumped, dodged, and ducked, but always kept moving in the same general direction, following a clear trail. Twice I tripped and fell, and each time I got back up, I saw him ahead of me, pushing through like a dog chasing its prey. Sometimes, like a dog, he would stop and point—human pointing, psychic pointing—and each time he did, I heard that faint high hissing in the air ahead of us. He had the instinct of an infallible dowser and made no mistakes.

At length, abruptly, I caught up with him, and found that we stood at the edge of the shallow pond Colonel Wragge had mentioned in his account the night before. It was long and narrow, filled with dark brown water, in which the trees were dimly reflected. Not a ripple stirred its surface.

At last, suddenly, I caught up with him and found that we were standing at the edge of the shallow pond Colonel Wragge had talked about the night before. It was long and narrow, filled with dark brown water, where the trees were faintly reflected. Not a ripple broke its surface.

“Watch!” he cried out, as I came up. “It’s going to cross. It’s bound to betray itself. The water is its natural enemy, and we shall see the direction.”

“Watch!” he shouted as I approached. “It’s going to cross. It’s sure to reveal itself. The water is its natural enemy, and we’ll see the direction.”

And, even as he spoke, a thin line like the track of a water-spider, shot swiftly across the shiny surface; there was a ghost of steam in the air above; and immediately I became aware of an odour of burning.

And, even as he spoke, a thin line like the trail of a water spider zipped quickly across the shiny surface; there was a wisp of steam in the air above; and right away, I noticed the smell of something burning.

Dr. Silence turned and shot a glance at me that made me think of lightning. I began to shake all over.

Dr. Silence turned and gave me a look that reminded me of lightning. I started to shake all over.

“Quick!” he cried with excitement, “to the trail again! We must run round. It’s going to the house!”

“Quick!” he shouted with excitement, “let's get back to the trail! We need to run around. It's heading to the house!”

The alarm in his voice quite terrified me. Without a false step I dashed round the slippery banks and dived again at his heels into the sea of bushes and tree trunks. We were now in the thick of the very dense belt that ran round the outer edge of the plantation, and the field was near; yet so dark was the tangle that it was some time before the first shafts of white sunlight became visible. The doctor now ran in zigzags. He was following something that dodged and doubled quite wonderfully, yet had begun, I fancied, to move more slowly than before.

The urgency in his voice really scared me. Without missing a beat, I ran around the slippery banks and dove again at his heels into the thicket of bushes and tree trunks. We were now deep in the very dense area that surrounded the outer edge of the plantation, and the field was close; yet it was so dark in the tangle that it took a while before the first rays of white sunlight became visible. The doctor started running in zigzags. He was chasing something that was dodging and weaving brilliantly, but I thought it had begun to move more slowly than before.

“Quick!” he cried. “In the light we shall lose it!”

“Quick!” he shouted. “We'll lose it in the light!”

I still saw nothing, heard nothing, caught no suggestion of a trail; yet this man, guided by some interior divining that seemed infallible, made no false turns, though how we failed to crash headlong into the trees has remained a mystery to me ever since. And then, with a sudden rush, we found ourselves on the skirts of the wood with the open field lying in bright sunshine before our eyes.

I still saw nothing, heard nothing, caught no hint of a trail; yet this guy, guided by some inner intuition that seemed foolproof, didn’t take any wrong turns, though I've never understood how we didn’t slam straight into the trees. Then, all of a sudden, we found ourselves on the edge of the woods with the open field shining in bright sunlight in front of us.

“Too late!” I heard him cry, a note of anguish in his voice. “It’s out—and, by God, it’s making for the house!”

“Too late!” I heard him shout, a tone of desperation in his voice. “It’s out—and, damn it, it’s heading for the house!”

I saw the Colonel standing in the field with his dogs where we had left him. He was bending double, peering into the wood where he heard us running, and he straightened up like a bent whip released. John Silence dashed passed, calling him to follow.

I saw the Colonel standing in the field with his dogs where we had left him. He was bent over, looking into the woods where he heard us running, and then he stood up straight like a whip that had just been released. John Silence rushed past, urging him to follow.

“We shall lose the trail in the light,” I heard him cry as he ran. “But quick! We may yet get there in time!”

“We're going to lose the trail in the light,” I heard him shout as he ran. “But hurry! We might still make it there on time!”

That wild rush across the open field, with the dogs at our heels, leaping and barking, and the elderly Colonel behind us running as though for his life, shall I ever forget it? Though I had only vague ideas of the meaning of it all, I put my best foot forward, and, being the youngest of the three, I reached the house an easy first. I drew up, panting, and turned to wait for the others. But, as I turned, something moving a little distance away caught my eye, and in that moment I swear I experienced the most overwhelming and singular shock of surprise and terror I have ever known, or can conceive as possible.

That crazy dash across the open field, with the dogs chasing us, barking and jumping, and the old Colonel behind us running like he was trying to escape, will I ever forget it? Even though I only had a vague idea of what it all meant, I sprinted ahead, and since I was the youngest of the three, I got to the house first without any trouble. I stopped, panting, and turned to wait for the others. But as I turned, something moving a short distance away caught my eye, and in that instant, I swear I felt the most intense and shocking mix of surprise and fear I’ve ever experienced or could even imagine.

For the front door was open, and the waist of the house being narrow, I could see through the hall into the dining-room beyond, and so out on to the back lawn, and there I saw no less a sight than the figure of Miss Wragge—running. Even at that distance it was plain that she had seen me, and was coming fast towards me, running with the frantic gait of a terror-stricken woman. She had recovered the use of her legs.

For the front door was open, and since the house was narrow, I could see through the hall into the dining room beyond, and then out onto the back lawn. There, I saw no less a sight than Miss Wragge—running. Even from that distance, it was clear that she had spotted me and was rushing toward me, running with the frantic pace of a terrified woman. She had regained her ability to run.

Her face was a livid grey, as of death itself, but the general expression was one of laughter, for her mouth was gaping, and her eyes, always bright shone with the light of a wild merriment that seemed the merriment of a child, yet was singularly ghastly. And that very second, as she fled past me into her brother’s arms behind, I smelt again most unmistakably the odour of burning, and to this day the smell of smoke and fire can come very near to turning me sick with the memory of what I had seen.

Her face was a pale gray, almost like she was dead, but the overall look was one of laughter, since her mouth was wide open and her eyes, bright as always, sparkled with a wild joy that seemed childish but was oddly haunting. And just then, as she rushed past me into her brother’s arms behind her, I distinctly smelled the scent of something burning, and to this day, the smell of smoke and fire can almost make me feel sick with the memory of what I witnessed.

Fast on her heels, too, came the terrified attendant, more mistress of herself, and able to speak—which the old lady could not do—but with a face almost, if not quite, as fearful.

Right behind her was the terrified attendant, who was more in control of herself and able to speak—which the old lady couldn't do—but with a face that was almost, if not quite, as scared.

“We were down by the bushes in the sun,”—she gasped and screamed in reply to Colonel Wragge’s distracted questionings,—“I was wheeling the chair as usual when she shrieked and leaped—I don’t know exactly—I was too frightened to see—Oh, my God! she jumped clean out of the chair—and ran! There was a blast of hot air from the wood, and she hid her face and jumped. She didn’t make a sound—she didn’t cry out, or make a sound. She just ran.”

“We were by the bushes in the sun,”—she gasped and screamed in response to Colonel Wragge’s distracted questions,—“I was pushing the chair as usual when she screamed and jumped—I don’t know exactly—I was too scared to see—Oh, my God! she jumped right out of the chair—and ran! There was a rush of hot air from the woods, and she covered her face and jumped. She didn’t make a sound—she didn’t cry out, or make a noise. She just ran.”

But the nightmare horror of it all reached the breaking point a few minutes later, and while I was still standing in the hall temporarily bereft of speech and movement; for while the doctor, the Colonel and the attendant were half-way up the staircase, helping the fainting woman to the privacy of her room, and all in a confused group of dark figures, there sounded a voice behind me, and I turned to see the butler, his face dripping with perspiration, his eyes starting out of his head.

But the sheer terror of it all hit a peak a few minutes later, and while I was still standing in the hallway, momentarily unable to speak or move; as the doctor, the Colonel, and the attendant were halfway up the stairs, helping the fainting woman to the privacy of her room, all muddled together in a dark group, I heard a voice behind me. I turned to see the butler, his face dripping with sweat, his eyes bulging.

“The laundry’s on fire!” he cried; “the laundry building’s a-caught!”

“The laundry’s on fire!” he shouted; “the laundry building’s on fire!”

I remember his odd expression “a-caught,” and wanting to laugh, but finding my face rigid and inflexible.

I remember his strange expression "a-caught," and wanting to laugh, but finding my face stiff and unyielding.

“The devil’s about again, s’help me Gawd!” he cried, in a voice thin with terror, running about in circles.

“The devil's back again, I swear!” he shouted, his voice trembling with fear as he ran in circles.

And then the group on the stairs scattered as at the sound of a shot, and the Colonel and Dr. Silence came down three steps at a time, leaving the afflicted Miss Wragge to the care of her single attendant.

And then the group on the stairs scattered like it was the sound of a gunshot, and the Colonel and Dr. Silence rushed down three steps at a time, leaving the troubled Miss Wragge in the care of her lone attendant.

We were out across the front lawn in a moment and round the corner of the house, the Colonel leading, Silence and I at his heels, and the portly butler puffing some distance in the rear, getting more and more mixed in his addresses to God and the devil; and the moment we passed the stables and came into view of the laundry building, we saw a wicked-looking volume of smoke pouring out of the narrow windows, and the frightened women-servants and grooms running hither and thither, calling aloud as they ran.

We quickly crossed the front lawn and rounded the corner of the house, with the Colonel in the lead, Silence and I following closely behind, and the plump butler trailing some distance back, increasingly confused in his prayers to God and the devil. As soon as we passed the stables and spotted the laundry building, we noticed a large, threatening plume of smoke pouring from the narrow windows, while terrified maidservants and grooms ran back and forth, shouting as they went.

The arrival of the master restored order instantly, and this retired soldier, poor thinker perhaps, but capable man of action, had the matter in hand from the start. He issued orders like a martinet, and, almost before I could realise it, there were streaming buckets on the scene and a line of men and women formed between the building and the stable pump.

The arrival of the master immediately brought everything back into order, and this retired soldier, who might not have been a deep thinker but was definitely a man of action, managed the situation from the beginning. He gave orders like a drill sergeant, and before I even had a chance to grasp what was happening, buckets were streaming in, and a line of men and women had formed between the building and the stable pump.

“Inside,” I heard John Silence cry, and the Colonel followed him through the door, while I was just quick enough at their heels to hear him add, “the smoke’s the worst part of it. There’s no fire yet, I think.”

“Inside,” I heard John Silence shout, and the Colonel went in after him while I was just fast enough to catch what he said next: “the smoke’s the worst part. I don’t think there’s a fire yet.”

And, true enough, there was no fire. The interior was thick with smoke, but it speedily cleared and not a single bucket was used upon the floor or walls. The air was stifling, the heat fearful.

And sure enough, there was no fire. The inside was filled with smoke, but it quickly cleared and not a single bucket was used on the floor or walls. The air was suffocating, the heat intense.

“There’s precious little to burn in here; it’s all stone,” the Colonel exclaimed, coughing. But the doctor was pointing to the wooden covers of the great cauldron in which the clothes were washed, and we saw that these were smouldering and charred. And when we sprinkled half a bucket of water on them the surrounding bricks hissed and fizzed and sent up clouds of steam. Through the open door and windows this passed out with the rest of the smoke, and we three stood there on the brick floor staring at the spot and wondering, each in our own fashion, how in the name of natural law the place could have caught fire or smoked at all. And each was silent—myself from sheer incapacity and befuddlement, the Colonel from the quiet pluck that faces all things yet speaks little, and John Silence from the intense mental grappling with this latest manifestation of a profound problem that called for concentration of thought rather than for any words.

“There's hardly anything to burn in here; it's all stone,” the Colonel said, coughing. But the doctor was pointing at the wooden lids of the large cauldron where the clothes were washed, and we noticed that they were smoldering and burnt. When we splashed half a bucket of water on them, the surrounding bricks hissed and fizzed, sending up clouds of steam. This steam drifted out through the open door and windows along with the rest of the smoke, and the three of us stood there on the brick floor, staring at the spot and wondering, each in our own way, how in the world this place could have caught fire or even smoked at all. Each of us was silent—me from sheer confusion and disbelief, the Colonel from the quiet courage that faces everything yet says little, and John Silence from the deep mental struggle with this latest sign of a serious problem that needed focused thought rather than words.

There was really nothing to say. The facts were indisputable.

There was really nothing to say. The facts were undeniable.

Colonel Wragge was the first to utter.

Colonel Wragge was the first to speak.

“My sister,” he said briefly, and moved off. In the yard I heard him sending the frightened servants about their business in an excellently matter-of-fact voice, scolding some one roundly for making such a big fire and letting the flues get over-heated, and paying no heed to the stammering reply that no fire had been lit there for several days. Then he dispatched a groom on horseback for the local doctor.

“My sister,” he said shortly, and walked away. In the yard, I could hear him directing the scared servants to get back to work in a very straightforward tone, reprimanding someone strongly for making such a huge fire and causing the flues to overheat, completely ignoring the stammering response that no fire had been set there for several days. Then he sent a groom on horseback to fetch the local doctor.

Then Dr. Silence turned and looked at me. The absolute control he possessed, not only over the outward expression of emotion by gesture, change of colour, light in the eyes, and so forth, but also, as I well knew, over its very birth in his heart, the mask-like face of the dead he could assume at will, made it extremely difficult to know at any given moment what was at work in his inner consciousness. But now, when he turned and looked at me, there was no sphinx-expression there, but rather the keen, triumphant face of a man who had solved a dangerous and complicated problem, and saw his way to a clean victory.

Then Dr. Silence turned to look at me. His complete control, not just over his outward expressions like gestures, changes in color, or the light in his eyes, but also, as I well knew, over the emotions brewing in his heart, made it really hard to tell what was going on in his mind at any given moment. But now, when he turned to me, there was no mysterious look on his face; instead, it was the sharp, triumphant face of a man who had figured out a tricky and dangerous problem and could see a clear path to victory.

Now do you guess?” he asked quietly, as though it were the simplest matter in the world, and ignorance were impossible.

So do you get it now?” he asked softly, as if it were the easiest thing in the world, and not knowing was unthinkable.

I could only stare stupidly and remain silent. He glanced down at the charred cauldron-lids, and traced a figure in the air with his finger. But I was too excited, or too mortified, or still too dazed, perhaps, to see what it was he outlined, or what it was he meant to convey. I could only go on staring and shaking my puzzled head.

I could only stare blankly and stay quiet. He looked down at the burned cauldron lids and traced a shape in the air with his finger. But I was either too excited, too embarrassed, or still too confused, maybe, to see what he was drawing or what he meant to say. I could only keep staring and shaking my puzzled head.

“A fire-elemental,” he cried, “a fire-elemental of the most powerful and malignant kind——”

“A fire-elemental,” he shouted, “a fire-elemental of the most powerful and evil kind——”

“A what?” thundered the voice of Colonel Wragge behind us, having returned suddenly and overheard.

“A what?” boomed Colonel Wragge's voice from behind us, having come back unexpectedly and overheard.

“It’s a fire-elemental,” repeated Dr. Silence more calmly, but with a note of triumph in his voice he could not keep out, “and a fire-elemental enraged.”

“It’s a fire elemental,” Dr. Silence repeated more calmly, but with a hint of triumph in his voice that he couldn't hide, “and an enraged fire elemental.”

The light began to dawn in my mind at last. But the Colonel—who had never heard the term before, and was besides feeling considerably worked-up for a plain man with all this mystery he knew not how to grapple with—the Colonel stood, with the most dumfoundered look ever seen on a human countenance, and continued to roar, and stammer, and stare.

The light finally started to break through in my mind. But the Colonel—who had never encountered the term before and was feeling quite overwhelmed for an ordinary guy dealing with all this mystery he didn't know how to handle—stood there with the most stunned expression ever seen on a human face, and kept roaring, stammering, and staring.

“And why,” he began, savage with the desire to find something visible he could fight—“why, in the name of all the blazes——?” and then stopped as John Silence moved up and took his arm.

“And why,” he started, filled with the need to find something tangible to fight—“why, in the name of all that’s holy——?” and then paused as John Silence came over and took his arm.

“There, my dear Colonel Wragge,” he said gently, “you touch the heart of the whole thing. You ask ‘Why.’ That is precisely our problem.” He held the soldier’s eyes firmly with his own. “And that, too, I think, we shall soon know. Come and let us talk over a plan of action—that room with the double doors, perhaps.”

“There, my dear Colonel Wragge,” he said softly, “you’ve hit the nail on the head. You ask ‘Why?’ That’s exactly our issue.” He looked the soldier in the eye. “And I believe we’ll figure that out soon. Let’s discuss a plan of action—maybe in that room with the double doors.”

The word “action” calmed him a little, and he led the way, without further speech, back into the house, and down the long stone passage to the room where we had heard his stories on the night of our arrival. I understood from the doctor’s glance that my presence would not make the interview easier for our host, and I went upstairs to my own room—shaking.

The word “action” eased him a bit, and he took the lead, without saying anything more, back into the house, and down the long stone hallway to the room where we had listened to his stories on the night we arrived. I could tell from the doctor’s look that my presence wouldn’t help our host during the meeting, so I went upstairs to my own room—shaking.

But in the solitude of my room the vivid memories of the last hour revived so mercilessly that I began to feel I should never in my whole life lose the dreadful picture of Miss Wragge running—that dreadful human climax after all the non-human mystery in the wood—and I was not sorry when a servant knocked at my door and said that Colonel Wragge would be glad if I would join them in the little smoking-room.

But in the solitude of my room, the vivid memories of the last hour came flooding back so intensely that I felt I would never be able to forget the horrifying image of Miss Wragge running—that terrible human climax after all the mysterious non-human events in the woods—and I was relieved when a servant knocked at my door and said that Colonel Wragge would be happy if I joined them in the small smoking room.

“I think it is better you should be present,” was all Colonel Wragge said as I entered the room. I took the chair with my back to the window. There was still an hour before lunch, though I imagine that the usual divisions of the day hardly found a place in the thoughts of any one of us.

“I think it’s better if you’re here,” was all Colonel Wragge said as I walked into the room. I sat down in the chair with my back to the window. There was still an hour before lunch, but I think that the usual divisions of the day hardly crossed anyone's mind.

The atmosphere of the room was what I might call electric. The Colonel was positively bristling; he stood with his back to the fire, fingering an unlit black cigar, his face flushed, his being obviously roused and ready for action. He hated this mystery. It was poisonous to his nature, and he longed to meet something face to face—something he could gauge and fight. Dr. Silence, I noticed at once, was sitting before the map of the estate which was spread upon a table. I knew by his expression the state of his mind. He was in the thick of it all, knew it, delighted in it, and was working at high pressure. He recognised my presence with a lifted eyelid, and the flash of the eye, contrasted with his stillness and composure, told me volumes.

The room had an electric feel to it. The Colonel was practically vibrating with energy; he stood with his back to the fire, fiddling with an unlit black cigar, his face flushed and clearly ready for action. He despised this mystery. It was suffocating to him, and he wanted to confront something directly—something he could measure up to and battle. I noticed that Dr. Silence was seated in front of the estate map laid out on the table. By his expression, I could tell what was going on in his mind. He was fully immersed in it all, aware of it, enjoying it, and working at full capacity. He acknowledged my presence with a slight lift of his eyelid, and the flash in his eye, contrasting with his calm and composed demeanor, communicated a lot to me.

“I was about to explain to our host briefly what seems to me afoot in all this business,” he said without looking up, “when he asked that you should join us so that we can all work together.” And, while signifying my assent, I caught myself wondering what quality it was in the calm speech of this undemonstrative man that was so full of power, so charged with the strange, virile personality behind it, and that seemed to inspire us with his own confidence as by a process of radiation.

“I was just about to briefly explain to our host what I think is going on in all this,” he said without looking up, “when he asked that you join us so we can all work together.” And, while I nodded my agreement, I found myself wondering what it was about the calm tone of this reserved man that held so much power, so infused with the unique, strong personality behind it, that seemed to fill us with his confidence like a wave of energy.

“Mr. Hubbard,” he went on gravely, turning to the soldier, “knows something of my methods, and in more than one—er—interesting situation has proved of assistance. What we want now”—and here he suddenly got up and took his place on the mat beside the Colonel, and looked hard at him—“is men who have self-control, who are sure of themselves, whose minds at the critical moment will emit positive forces, instead of the wavering and uncertain currents due to negative feelings—due, for instance, to fear.”

“Mr. Hubbard,” he continued seriously, turning to the soldier, “is familiar with my methods, and in more than one—uh—interesting situation, he has been helpful. What we need now”—and here he suddenly stood up and took his place on the mat next to the Colonel, looking intently at him—“are men who have self-control, who are confident in themselves, whose minds at critical moments will project positive energy, rather than the wavering and uncertain currents brought on by negative emotions—like fear, for example.”

He looked at us each in turn. Colonel Wragge moved his feet farther apart, and squared his shoulders; and I felt guilty but said nothing, conscious that my latent store of courage was being deliberately hauled to the front. He was winding me up like a clock.

He looked at each of us in turn. Colonel Wragge spread his feet wider and squared his shoulders; I felt guilty but said nothing, aware that my hidden reserves of courage were being intentionally brought to the surface. He was winding me up like a clock.

“So that, in what is yet to come,” continued our leader, “each of us will contribute his share of power, and ensure success for my plan.”

“So that, in what’s coming next,” continued our leader, “each of us will contribute our part of the power, and make sure my plan succeeds.”

“I’m not afraid of anything I can see,” said the Colonel bluntly.

“I’m not afraid of anything I can see,” the Colonel said straightforwardly.

“I’m ready,” I heard myself say, as it were automatically, “for anything,” and then added, feeling the declaration was lamely insufficient, “and everything.”

“I’m ready,” I heard myself say, almost like it was automatic, “for anything,” and then I added, feeling like the statement was kind of weak, “and everything.”

Dr. Silence left the mat and began walking to and fro about the room, both hands plunged deep into the pockets of his shooting-jacket. Tremendous vitality streamed from him. I never took my eyes off the small, moving figure; small, yes,—and yet somehow making me think of a giant plotting the destruction of worlds. And his manner was gentle, as always, soothing almost, and his words uttered quietly without emphasis or emotion. Most of what he said was addressed, though not too obviously, to the Colonel.

Dr. Silence got off the mat and started pacing back and forth in the room, both hands shoved deep into the pockets of his jacket. A powerful energy radiated from him. I couldn't take my eyes off the small, moving figure; small, yes—but somehow he reminded me of a giant scheming to destroy worlds. His demeanor was gentle, as always, almost calming, and he spoke softly without emphasis or emotion. Most of what he said was directed, though not too obviously, at the Colonel.

“The violence of this sudden attack,” he said softly, pacing to and fro beneath the bookcase at the end of the room, “is due, of course, partly to the fact that to-night the moon is at the full”—here he glanced at me for a moment—“and partly to the fact that we have all been so deliberately concentrating upon the matter. Our thinking, our investigation, has stirred it into unusual activity. I mean that the intelligent force behind these manifestations has realised that some one is busied about its destruction. And it is now on the defensive: more, it is aggressive.”

“The brutality of this sudden attack,” he said softly, pacing back and forth beneath the bookcase at the end of the room, “is due, of course, partly to the fact that tonight the moon is full”—here he glanced at me for a moment—“and partly to the fact that we have all been so intentionally focused on the matter. Our thoughts, our investigation, have stirred it into heightened activity. I mean that the intelligent force behind these occurrences has realized that someone is trying to destroy it. And it is now on the defensive: more so, it is aggressive.”

“But ‘it’—what is ‘it’?” began the soldier, fuming. “What, in the name of all that’s dreadful, is a fire-elemental?”

“But ‘it’—what is ‘it’?” the soldier started, fuming. “What, in the name of all that’s terrible, is a fire-elemental?”

“I cannot give you at this moment,” replied Dr. Silence, turning to him, but undisturbed by the interruption, “a lecture on the nature and history of magic, but can only say that an Elemental is the active force behind the elements,—whether earth, air, water, or fire,—it is impersonal in its essential nature, but can be focused, personified, ensouled, so to say, by those who know how—by magicians, if you will—for certain purposes of their own, much in the same way that steam and electricity can be harnessed by the practical man of this century.

“I can't give you,” Dr. Silence said, turning to him but unaffected by the interruption, “a lecture on the nature and history of magic right now. I can only say that an Elemental is the active force behind the elements—whether it’s earth, air, water, or fire. It's impersonal in its essential nature, but it can be focused, personified, or, so to speak, given a soul by those who know how—by magicians, if you prefer—for their own specific purposes, much like how steam and electricity can be harnessed by the practical people of this century.”

“Alone, these blind elemental energies can accomplish little, but governed and directed by the trained will of a powerful manipulator they may become potent activities for good or evil. They are the basis of all magic, and it is the motive behind them that constitutes the magic ‘black’ or ‘white’; they can be the vehicles of curses or of blessings, for a curse is nothing more than the thought of a violent will perpetuated. And in such cases—cases like this—the conscious, directing will of the mind that is using the elemental stands always behind the phenomena——”

“On their own, these blind elemental energies can achieve very little, but when they are controlled and directed by the skilled will of a strong manipulator, they can become powerful forces for good or evil. They are the foundation of all magic, and the intent behind them determines whether the magic is 'black' or 'white'; they can be channels for curses or blessings, as a curse is simply the thought of a violent will carried out. In such situations—situations like this—the conscious, directing will of the mind utilizing the elemental always stands behind the phenomena——”

“You think that my brother——!” broke in the Colonel, aghast.

“You think that my brother——!” interrupted the Colonel, shocked.

“Has nothing whatever to do with it—directly. The fire-elemental that has here been tormenting you and your household was sent upon its mission long before you, or your family, or your ancestors, or even the nation you belong to—unless I am much mistaken—was even in existence. We will come to that a little later; after the experiment I propose to make we shall be more positive. At present I can only say we have to deal now, not only with the phenomenon of Attacking Fire merely, but with the vindictive and enraged intelligence that is directing it from behind the scenes—vindictive and enraged,”—he repeated the words.

“It has nothing to do with you directly. The fire elemental that's been tormenting you and your family was sent on its mission long before you, your family, your ancestors, or even your nation—unless I'm very mistaken—ever existed. We'll get to that a bit later; after the experiment I plan to conduct, we'll have clearer answers. For now, I can only say that we have to deal not just with the phenomenon of Attacking Fire itself, but also with the vengeful and furious intelligence that's controlling it from behind the scenes—vengeful and furious,”—he repeated the words.

“That explains——” began Colonel Wragge, seeking furiously for words he could not find quickly enough.

“That explains——” started Colonel Wragge, desperately searching for the words that he couldn’t seem to find fast enough.

“Much,” said John Silence, with a gesture to restrain him.

“Enough,” said John Silence, with a gesture to hold him back.

He stopped a moment in the middle of his walk, and a deep silence came down over the little room. Through the windows the sunlight seemed less bright, the long line of dark hills less friendly, making me think of a vast wave towering to heaven and about to break and overwhelm us. Something formidable had crept into the world about us. For, undoubtedly, there was a disquieting thought, holding terror as well as awe, in the picture his words conjured up: the conception of a human will reaching its deathless hand, spiteful and destructive, down through the ages, to strike the living and afflict the innocent.

He paused for a moment in the middle of his walk, and a heavy silence settled over the small room. The sunlight streaming through the windows seemed less bright, and the long dark hills looked less welcoming, making me think of a massive wave rising to the heavens, ready to crash down and overwhelm us. Something imposing had entered the world around us. For, there was undeniably an unsettling thought, filled with both fear and awe, in the image his words created: the idea of a human will extending its eternal, spiteful, and destructive reach through time, to harm the living and torment the innocent.

“But what is its object?” burst out the soldier, unable to restrain himself longer in the silence. “Why does it come from that plantation? And why should it attack us, or any one in particular?” Questions began to pour from him in a stream.

“But what is its purpose?” the soldier exclaimed, unable to hold back any longer in the quiet. “Why does it come from that plantation? And why should it attack us, or anyone in particular?” He began to shower them with questions.

“All in good time,” the doctor answered quietly, having let him run on for several minutes. “But I must first discover positively what, or who, it is that directs this particular fire-elemental. And, to do that, we must first”—he spoke with slow deliberation—“seek to capture—to confine by visibility—to limit its sphere in a concrete form.”

“All in good time,” the doctor answered softly, letting him talk for several minutes. “But first, I need to find out exactly what or who controls this specific fire-elemental. And to do that, we must first”—he spoke slowly and carefully—“try to capture it—to make it visible—to confine it in a tangible form.”

“Good heavens almighty!” exclaimed the soldier, mixing his words in his unfeigned surprise.

“Good heavens!” exclaimed the soldier, stumbling over his words in genuine surprise.

“Quite so,” pursued the other calmly; “for in so doing I think we can release it from the purpose that binds it, restore it to its normal condition of latent fire, and also”—he lowered his voice perceptibly—“also discover the face and form of the Being that ensouls it.”

“Exactly,” the other continued calmly; “by doing this, I believe we can free it from the purpose that holds it back, return it to its usual state of hidden energy, and also”—he lowered his voice noticeably—“also uncover the identity and shape of the Being that gives it life.”

“The man behind the gun!” cried the Colonel, beginning to understand something, and leaning forward so as not to miss a single syllable.

“The man behind the gun!” shouted the Colonel, starting to grasp something, and leaning in so he wouldn’t miss a single word.

“I mean that in the last resort, before it returns to the womb of potential fire, it will probably assume the face and figure of its Director, of the man of magical knowledge who originally bound it with his incantations and sent it forth upon its mission of centuries.”

“I mean that ultimately, before it goes back to the source of potential energy, it will likely take on the appearance and form of its Creator, the knowledgeable person who initially enchanted it and set it off on its centuries-long mission.”

The soldier sat down and gasped openly in his face, breathing hard; but it was a very subdued voice that framed the question.

The soldier sat down and gasped, breathing heavily; but the voice that asked the question was very quiet.

“And how do you propose to make it visible? How capture and confine it? What d’ye mean, Dr. John Silence?”

“And how do you plan to make it visible? How do you capture and contain it? What do you mean, Dr. John Silence?”

“By furnishing it with the materials for a form. By the process of materialisation simply. Once limited by dimensions, it will become slow, heavy, visible. We can then dissipate it. Invisible fire, you see, is dangerous and incalculable; locked up in a form we can perhaps manage it. We must betray it—to its death.”

“By providing it with the materials for a shape. Through the process of materialization simply. Once limited by size, it will become slow, heavy, and visible. We can then disperse it. Invisible fire, you see, is dangerous and unpredictable; contained in a shape, we can perhaps control it. We must betray it—to its end.”

“And this material?” we asked in the same breath, although I think I had already guessed.

“And what about this material?” we asked at the same time, although I think I had already figured it out.

“Not pleasant, but effective,” came the quiet reply; “the exhalations of freshly-spilled blood.”

“Not great, but it works,” came the quiet response; “the smell of freshly spilled blood.”

“Not human blood!” cried Colonel Wragge, starting up from his chair with a voice like an explosion. I thought his eyes would start from their sockets.

“Not human blood!” shouted Colonel Wragge, jumping up from his chair with a voice like an explosion. I thought his eyes would pop out of their sockets.

The face of Dr. Silence relaxed in spite of himself, and his spontaneous little laugh brought a welcome though momentary relief.

The expression on Dr. Silence's face softened despite himself, and his spontaneous little laugh provided a brief but welcome relief.

“The days of human sacrifice, I hope, will never come again,” he explained. “Animal blood will answer the purpose, and we can make the experiment as pleasant as possible. Only, the blood must be freshly spilled and strong with the vital emanations that attract this peculiar class of elemental creature. Perhaps—perhaps if some pig on the estate is ready for the market——”

“The days of human sacrifice, I hope, will never come back,” he said. “Animal blood will do the trick, and we can make the experience as pleasant as possible. But, the blood has to be freshly spilled and rich with the vital energies that attract this specific type of elemental being. Maybe—maybe if some pig on the estate is ready for the market——”

He turned to hide a smile; but the passing touch of comedy found no echo in the mind of our host, who did not understand how to change quickly from one emotion to another. Clearly he was debating many things laboriously in his honest brain. But, in the end, the earnestness and scientific disinterestedness of the doctor, whose influence over him was already very great, won the day, and he presently looked up more calmly, and observed shortly that he thought perhaps the matter could be arranged.

He turned away to hide a smile, but the moment of humor didn’t register with our host, who struggled to shift from one emotion to another. It was obvious he was wrestling with multiple thoughts in his sincere mind. However, in the end, the seriousness and unbiased perspective of the doctor, who had a strong influence over him, prevailed, and he soon looked up more composed and remarked briefly that he believed the issue could possibly be resolved.

“There are other and pleasanter methods,” Dr. Silence went on to explain, “but they require time and preparation, and things have gone much too far, in my opinion, to admit of delay. And the process need cause you no distress: we sit round the bowl and await results. Nothing more. The emanations of blood—which, as Levi says, is the first incarnation of the universal fluid—furnish the materials out of which the creatures of discarnate life, spirits if you prefer, can fashion themselves a temporary appearance. The process is old, and lies at the root of all blood sacrifice. It was known to the priests of Baal, and it is known to the modern ecstasy dancers who cut themselves to produce objective phantoms who dance with them. And the least gifted clairvoyant could tell you that the forms to be seen in the vicinity of slaughterhouses, or hovering above the deserted battlefield, are—well, simply beyond all description. I do not mean,” he added, noticing the uneasy fidgeting of his host, “that anything in our laundry-experiment need appear to terrify us, for this case seems a comparatively simple one, and it is only the vindictive character of the intelligence directing this fire-elemental that causes anxiety and makes for personal danger.”

“There are other, more pleasant methods,” Dr. Silence continued to explain, “but they require time and preparation, and things have progressed too far, in my opinion, to allow for any delays. The process shouldn’t cause you any distress: we simply gather around the bowl and wait for results. That’s all there is to it. The energies from blood—which, as Levi mentions, is the first manifestation of the universal fluid—supply the materials from which the beings of non-physical life, or spirits if you prefer, can create a temporary form. This process is ancient and is at the heart of all blood sacrifices. It was known to the priests of Baal, and it’s recognized by modern ecstasy dancers who injure themselves to produce physical phantoms that dance with them. Even the least skilled clairvoyant could tell you that the shapes seen near slaughterhouses or hovering over abandoned battlefields are—well, simply indescribable. I don’t mean,” he added, noticing his host’s anxious fidgeting, “that anything in our laundry experiment should frighten us, since this case seems relatively straightforward, and it’s only the vengeful nature of the intelligence behind this fire-elemental that causes concern and poses a personal threat.”

“It is curious,” said the Colonel, with a sudden rush of words, drawing a deep breath, and as though speaking of things distasteful to him, “that during my years among the Hill Tribes of Northern India I came across—personally came across—instances of the sacrifices of blood to certain deities being stopped suddenly, and all manner of disasters happening until they were resumed. Fires broke out in the huts, and even on the clothes, of the natives—and—and I admit I have read, in the course of my studies,”—he made a gesture towards his books and heavily laden table,—“of the Yezidis of Syria evoking phantoms by means of cutting their bodies with knives during their whirling dances—enormous globes of fire which turned into monstrous and terrible forms—and I remember an account somewhere, too, how the emaciated forms and pallid countenances of the spectres, that appeared to the Emperor Julian, claimed to be the true Immortals, and told him to renew the sacrifices of blood ‘for the fumes of which, since the establishment of Christianity, they had been pining’—that these were in reality the phantoms evoked by the rites of blood.”

“It’s interesting,” said the Colonel, with a rush of words, taking a deep breath, as if discussing something unpleasant, “that during my time among the Hill Tribes of Northern India, I personally encountered instances where blood sacrifices to certain deities were abruptly halted, leading to all sorts of disasters until they were resumed. Fires broke out in the huts and even on the clothes of the natives—and—I admit I have read, during my studies,”—he gestured toward his books and heavily cluttered table,—“about the Yezidis of Syria summoning phantoms by cutting their bodies with knives during their whirling dances—huge balls of fire that transformed into monstrous and terrifying forms—and I also recall an account somewhere about how the weak forms and pale faces of the apparitions that appeared to Emperor Julian claimed to be the true Immortals, urging him to renew the blood sacrifices ‘for the fumes of which, since the establishment of Christianity, they had been pining’—that these were, in fact, the phantoms summoned by the blood rituals.”

Both Dr. Silence and myself listened in amazement, for this sudden speech was so unexpected, and betrayed so much more knowledge than we had either of us suspected in the old soldier.

Both Dr. Silence and I listened in amazement, as this sudden speech was so unexpected and revealed much more knowledge than either of us had suspected the old soldier possessed.

“Then perhaps you have read, too,” said the doctor, “how the Cosmic Deities of savage races, elemental in their nature, have been kept alive through many ages by these blood rites?”

“Then maybe you’ve read, too,” said the doctor, “how the Cosmic Deities of primitive cultures, fundamental in their nature, have been sustained through countless ages by these blood rituals?”

“No,” he answered; “that is new to me.”

“No,” he replied; “that’s new to me.”

“In any case,” Dr. Silence added, “I am glad you are not wholly unfamiliar with the subject, for you will now bring more sympathy, and therefore more help, to our experiment. For, of course, in this case, we only want the blood to tempt the creature from its lair and enclose it in a form——”

“In any case,” Dr. Silence added, “I’m glad you’re not completely unfamiliar with the subject, because you’ll bring more understanding, and thus more support, to our experiment. Because, of course, in this situation, we just need the blood to lure the creature out of its hiding place and trap it in a form——”

“I quite understand. And I only hesitated just now,” he went on, his words coming much more slowly, as though he felt he had already said too much, “because I wished to be quite sure it was no mere curiosity, but an actual sense of necessity that dictated this horrible experiment.”

“I completely understand. And I only paused just now,” he continued, his words coming out much more slowly, as if he felt he had already said too much, “because I wanted to be absolutely sure it wasn't just curiosity, but a real sense of necessity that drove this terrible experiment.”

“It is your safety, and that of your household, and of your sister, that is at stake,” replied the doctor. “Once I have seen, I hope to discover whence this elemental comes, and what its real purpose is.”

“It’s your safety, and that of your household and your sister, that’s at risk,” the doctor replied. “Once I have seen, I hope to find out where this force comes from and what its true purpose is.”

Colonel Wragge signified his assent with a bow.

Colonel Wragge nodded in agreement.

“And the moon will help us,” the other said, “for it will be full in the early hours of the morning, and this kind of elemental-being is always most active at the period of full moon. Hence, you see, the clue furnished by your diary.”

“And the moon will help us,” the other said, “because it will be full in the early hours of the morning, and this type of elemental being is always most active during a full moon. So, you see, there’s the clue provided by your diary.”

So it was finally settled. Colonel Wragge would provide the materials for the experiment, and we were to meet at midnight. How he would contrive at that hour—but that was his business. I only know we both realised that he would keep his word, and whether a pig died at midnight, or at noon, was after all perhaps only a question of the sleep and personal comfort of the executioner.

So it was finally decided. Colonel Wragge would supply the materials for the experiment, and we were to meet at midnight. How he would manage that at such a late hour was his concern. I only know we both understood that he would fulfill his promise, and whether a pig died at midnight or at noon was ultimately just a matter of the executioner's sleep and comfort.

“To-night, then, in the laundry,” said Dr. Silence finally, to clinch the plan; “we three alone—and at midnight, when the household is asleep and we shall be free from disturbance.”

“To-night, then, in the laundry,” Dr. Silence said at last, to finalize the plan; “just the three of us—and at midnight, when everyone is asleep and we won’t have any interruptions.”

He exchanged significant glances with our host, who, at that moment, was called away by the announcement that the family doctor had arrived, and was ready to see him in his sister’s room.

He shared meaningful looks with our host, who was then called away by the news that the family doctor had arrived and was ready to see him in his sister’s room.

For the remainder of the afternoon John Silence disappeared. I had my suspicions that he made a secret visit to the plantation and also to the laundry building; but, in any case, we saw nothing of him, and he kept strictly to himself. He was preparing for the night, I felt sure, but the nature of his preparations I could only guess. There was movement in his room, I heard, and an odour like incense hung about the door, and knowing that he regarded rites as the vehicles of energies, my guesses were probably not far wrong.

For the rest of the afternoon, John Silence vanished. I suspected he secretly visited the plantation and the laundry building; however, we didn't see him at all. He kept to himself. I was pretty sure he was getting ready for the night, but I could only guess what that involved. I heard movement in his room, and an incense-like smell lingered near the door. Knowing he viewed rituals as ways to channel energy, my guesses were likely on the mark.

Colonel Wragge, too, remained absent the greater part of the afternoon, and, deeply afflicted, had scarcely left his sister’s bedside, but in response to my inquiry when we met for a moment at tea-time, he told me that although she had moments of attempted speech, her talk was quite incoherent and hysterical, and she was still quite unable to explain the nature of what she had seen. The doctor, he said, feared she had recovered the use of her limbs, only to lose that of her memory, and perhaps even of her mind.

Colonel Wragge also stayed away for most of the afternoon, and, feeling very troubled, had barely left his sister’s bedside. When we briefly met at tea-time, he told me that while she sometimes tried to speak, her words were completely garbled and frantic, and she still couldn't explain what she'd experienced. The doctor, he said, was concerned that she had regained the use of her limbs but might have lost her memory, or even her mind.

“Then the recovery of her legs, I trust, may be permanent, at any rate,” I ventured, finding it difficult to know what sympathy to offer. And he replied with a curious short laugh, “Oh yes; about that there can be no doubt whatever.”

“Then I hope her leg recovery will be permanent, at least,” I said, struggling to figure out what kind of sympathy to show. He responded with a strange little laugh, “Oh yes; there’s absolutely no doubt about that.”

And it was due merely to the chance of my overhearing a fragment of conversation—unwillingly, of course—that a little further light was thrown upon the state in which the old lady actually lay. For, as I came out of my room, it happened that Colonel Wragge and the doctor were going downstairs together, and their words floated up to my ears before I could make my presence known by so much as a cough.

And it was just by chance that I overheard part of a conversation—unintentionally, of course—that shed a bit more light on how the old lady was really doing. As I was leaving my room, I happened to hear Colonel Wragge and the doctor going downstairs together, and their words reached my ears before I could even announce myself with a cough.

“Then you must find a way,” the doctor was saying with decision; “for I cannot insist too strongly upon that—and at all costs she must be kept quiet. These attempts to go out must be prevented—if necessary, by force. This desire to visit some wood or other she keeps talking about is, of course, hysterical in nature. It cannot be permitted for a moment.”

“Then you need to find a way,” the doctor said firmly; “because I can’t stress enough how important this is—and at all costs, she has to be kept calm. We have to stop her from trying to leave—if it comes to it, by force. This constant talk about wanting to visit some woods is clearly a result of hysteria. We cannot allow it for even a moment.”

“It shall not be permitted,” I heard the soldier reply, as they reached the hall below.

“It won’t be allowed,” I heard the soldier say as they reached the hall below.

“It has impressed her mind for some reason——” the doctor went on, by way evidently of soothing explanation, and then the distance made it impossible for me to hear more.

“It has made a strong impression on her for some reason——” the doctor continued, clearly trying to offer a comforting explanation, and then the distance made it impossible for me to hear more.

At dinner Dr. Silence was still absent, on the public plea of a headache, and though food was sent to his room, I am inclined to believe he did not touch it, but spent the entire time fasting.

At dinner, Dr. Silence was still missing, claiming he had a headache, and although food was sent to his room, I think he didn’t eat any of it and spent the whole time fasting.

We retired early, desiring that the household should do likewise, and I must confess that at ten o’clock when I bid my host a temporary good-night, and sought my room to make what mental preparation I could, I realised in no very pleasant fashion that it was a singular and formidable assignation, this midnight meeting in the laundry building, and that there were moments in every adventure of life when a wise man, and one who knew his own limitations, owed it to his dignity to withdraw discreetly. And, but for the character of our leader, I probably should have then and there offered the best excuse I could think of, and have allowed myself quietly to fall asleep and wait for an exciting story in the morning of what had happened. But with a man like John Silence, such a lapse was out of the question, and I sat before my fire counting the minutes and doing everything I could think of to fortify my resolution and fasten my will at the point where I could be reasonably sure that my self-control would hold against all attacks of men, devils, or elementals.

We went to bed early, hoping the rest of the household would do the same, and I have to admit that at ten o’clock, when I wished my host a temporary goodnight and headed to my room to mentally prepare, I realized in a rather unpleasant way that this midnight meeting in the laundry building was quite an unusual and daunting situation. There are times in every adventure when a wise person, who knows their own limits, should discreetly step back to maintain their dignity. If it hadn't been for our leader's character, I probably would have come up with the best excuse I could think of and let myself drift off to sleep, waiting for an exciting story in the morning about what had happened. But with a guy like John Silence, that wasn’t an option, so I sat by my fire, counting the minutes and trying everything I could think of to bolster my resolve and strengthen my will to a point where I could be fairly certain that my self-control would hold up against any challenges from men, devils, or elementals.

III

At a quarter before midnight, clad in a heavy ulster, and with slippered feet, I crept cautiously from my room and stole down the passage to the top of the stairs. Outside the doctor’s door I waited a moment to listen. All was still; the house in utter darkness; no gleam of light beneath any door; only, down the length of the corridor, from the direction of the sick-room, came faint sounds of laughter and incoherent talk that were not things to reassure a mind already half a-tremble, and I made haste to reach the hall and let myself out through the front door into the night.

At a quarter to midnight, wearing a heavy coat and with my feet in slippers, I quietly left my room and crept down the hallway to the top of the stairs. I paused outside the doctor’s door to listen. Everything was quiet; the house was completely dark; there was no light under any door; only faint sounds of laughter and slurred conversation came from the direction of the sick-room, which did nothing to calm my already jittery nerves. I hurried to the hall and let myself out through the front door into the night.

The air was keen and frosty, perfumed with night smells, and exquisitely fresh; all the million candles of the sky were alight, and a faint breeze rose and fell with far-away sighings in the tops of the pine trees. My blood leaped for a moment in the spaciousness of the night, for the splendid stars brought courage; but the next instant, as I turned the corner of the house, moving stealthily down the gravel drive, my spirits sank again ominously. For, yonder, over the funereal plumes of the Twelve Acre Plantation, I saw the huge and yellow face of the full moon just rising in the east, staring down like some vast Being come to watch upon the progress of our doom. Seen through the distorting vapours of the earth’s atmosphere, her face looked weirdly unfamiliar, her usual expression of benignant vacancy somehow a-twist. I slipped along by the shadows of the wall, keeping my eyes upon the ground.

The air was sharp and cold, filled with night scents, and incredibly fresh; all the millions of stars in the sky were shining brightly, and a soft breeze rose and fell with distant sighs in the tops of the pine trees. For a moment, my blood raced in the openness of the night because the brilliant stars gave me strength; but the next moment, as I turned the corner of the house, quietly moving down the gravel driveway, my spirits sank again uneasily. For there, above the dark swaths of the Twelve Acre Plantation, I saw the huge yellow face of the full moon rising in the east, looking down like some enormous presence come to observe the progress of our doom. Seen through the hazy layers of the Earth's atmosphere, her face looked strangely unfamiliar, her usual expression of gentle vacancy somehow twisted. I moved along in the shadows of the wall, keeping my eyes on the ground.

The laundry-house, as already described, stood detached from the other offices, with laurel shrubberies crowding thickly behind it, and the kitchen-garden so close on the other side that the strong smells of soil and growing things came across almost heavily. The shadows of the haunted plantation, hugely lengthened by the rising moon behind them, reached to the very walls and covered the stone tiles of the roof with a dark pall. So keenly were my senses alert at this moment that I believe I could fill a chapter with the endless small details of the impression I received—shadows, odour, shapes, sounds—in the space of the few seconds I stood and waited before the closed wooden door.

The laundry house, as previously described, stood separate from the other buildings, with dense laurel shrubs crowding thickly behind it, and the kitchen garden so close on the other side that the strong smells of soil and growing plants came across almost heavily. The shadows of the eerie plantation, made much longer by the rising moon behind them, stretched to the very walls and covered the stone tiles of the roof with a dark shroud. My senses were so heightened at that moment that I believe I could write a chapter filled with the countless small details of the impression I received—shadows, scents, shapes, sounds—in the few seconds I stood and waited before the closed wooden door.

Then I became aware of some one moving towards me through the moonlight, and the figure of John Silence, without overcoat and bareheaded, came quickly and without noise to join me. His eyes, I saw at once, were wonderfully bright, and so marked was the shining pallor of his face that I could hardly tell when he passed from the moonlight into the shade.

Then I noticed someone moving toward me through the moonlight, and the figure of John Silence, without a coat and bareheaded, quickly and silently approached me. I saw immediately that his eyes were strikingly bright, and the pale shine of his face was so distinct that I could hardly tell when he moved from the moonlight into the shadow.

He passed without a word, beckoning me to follow, and then pushed the door open, and went in.

He walked by without saying anything, motioning for me to follow, then opened the door and stepped inside.

The chill air of the place met us like that of an underground vault; and the brick floor and whitewashed walls, streaked with damp and smoke, threw back the cold in our faces. Directly opposite gaped the black throat of the huge open fireplace, the ashes of wood fires still piled and scattered about the hearth, and on either side of the projecting chimney-column were the deep recesses holding the big twin cauldrons for boiling clothes. Upon the lids of these cauldrons stood the two little oil lamps, shaded red, which gave all the light there was, and immediately in front of the fireplace there was a small circular table with three chairs set about it. Overhead, the narrow slit windows, high up the walls, pointed to a dim network of wooden rafters half lost among the shadows, and then came the dark vault of the roof. Cheerless and unalluring, for all the red light, it certainly was, reminding me of some unused conventicle, bare of pews or pulpit, ugly and severe, and I was forcibly struck by the contrast between the normal uses to which the place was ordinarily put, and the strange and mediæval purpose which had brought us under its roof to-night.

The cold air of the place hit us like that of an underground vault; the brick floor and whitewashed walls, streaked with damp and smoke, reflected the cold right back at us. Directly opposite was the wide opening of the huge fireplace, with the ashes of wood fires still piled and scattered around the hearth, and on either side of the chimney column were the deep recesses holding the big twin cauldrons for boiling clothes. On top of these cauldrons sat two small red-shaded oil lamps, providing the only light available. Right in front of the fireplace was a small circular table with three chairs surrounding it. Above, the narrow slit windows high up on the walls revealed a dim network of wooden rafters lost among the shadows, leading up to the dark vault of the roof. Despite the red light, the atmosphere was bleak and uninviting, reminding me of some abandoned chapel, stripped of pews or a pulpit, ugly and harsh. I was struck by the sharp contrast between the usual purpose of the place and the strange, medieval reason that had brought us here tonight.

Possibly an involuntary shudder ran over me, for my companion turned with a confident look to reassure me, and he was so completely master of himself that I at once absorbed from his abundance, and felt the chinks of my failing courage beginning to close up. To meet his eye in the presence of danger was like finding a mental railing that guided and supported thought along the giddy edges of alarm.

Possibly an involuntary shiver ran over me, as my companion turned with a confident look to reassure me. He was so completely in control that I instantly drew from his confidence and felt my wavering courage start to strengthen. Meeting his gaze in the face of danger was like finding a mental support that guided and steadied my thoughts along the dizzying edges of fear.

“I am quite ready,” I whispered, turning to listen for approaching footsteps.

“I’m all set,” I whispered, turning to listen for any approaching footsteps.

He nodded, still keeping his eyes on mine. Our whispers sounded hollow as they echoed overhead among the rafters.

He nodded, still keeping his gaze on mine. Our whispers felt empty as they echoed above us among the beams.

“I’m glad you are here,” he said. “Not all would have the courage. Keep your thoughts controlled, and imagine the protective shell round you—round your inner being.”

“I’m glad you’re here,” he said. “Not everyone would have the courage. Keep your thoughts in check, and picture the protective shield around you—around your inner self.”

“I’m all right,” I repeated, cursing my chattering teeth.

“I’m fine,” I repeated, cursing my chattering teeth.

He took my hand and shook it, and the contact seemed to shake into me something of his supreme confidence. The eyes and hands of a strong man can touch the soul. I think he guessed my thought, for a passing smile flashed about the corners of his mouth.

He took my hand and shook it, and the contact felt like it infused me with some of his absolute confidence. The eyes and hands of a strong person can reach the soul. I think he sensed my thoughts because a brief smile appeared at the corners of his mouth.

“You will feel more comfortable,” he said, in a low tone, “when the chain is complete. The Colonel we can count on, of course. Remember, though,” he added warningly, “he may perhaps become controlled—possessed—when the thing comes, because he won’t know how to resist. And to explain the business to such a man——!” He shrugged his shoulders expressively. “But it will only be temporary, and I will see that no harm comes to him.”

“You’ll feel more at ease,” he said quietly, “once the chain is complete. We can definitely rely on the Colonel. But remember,” he added with caution, “he might get overwhelmed—possessed—when the time comes because he won’t know how to fight it. And trying to explain this to someone like him——!” He shrugged his shoulders in frustration. “But it will only be for a short while, and I’ll make sure he stays safe.”

He glanced round at the arrangements with approval.

He looked around at the setup with approval.

“Red light,” he said, indicating the shaded lamps, “has the lowest rate of vibration. Materialisations are dissipated by strong light—won’t form, or hold together—in rapid vibrations.”

“Red light,” he said, pointing to the shaded lamps, “has the lowest vibration rate. Strong light breaks down materializations—they won’t form or hold together in fast vibrations.”

I was not sure that I approved altogether of this dim light, for in complete darkness there is something protective—the knowledge that one cannot be seen, probably—which a half-light destroys, but I remembered the warning to keep my thoughts steady, and forbore to give them expression.

I wasn’t entirely comfortable with this dim light because in complete darkness there's a sense of protection—the awareness that I can’t be seen, which the half-light takes away. But I recalled the advice to keep my thoughts steady and held back from expressing them.

There was a step outside, and the figure of Colonel Wragge stood in the doorway. Though entering on tiptoe, he made considerable noise and clatter, for his free movements were impeded by the burden he carried, and we saw a large yellowish bowl held out at arms’ length from his body, the mouth covered with a white cloth. His face, I noted, was rigidly composed. He, too, was master of himself. And, as I thought of this old soldier moving through the long series of alarms, worn with watching and wearied with assault, unenlightened yet undismayed, even down to the dreadful shock of his sister’s terror, and still showing the dogged pluck that persists in the face of defeat, I understood what Dr. Silence meant when he described him as a man “to be counted on.”

There was a step outside, and Colonel Wragge appeared in the doorway. Even though he was stepping lightly, he made quite a bit of noise and clatter because his movements were restricted by what he was carrying. We saw a large yellowish bowl held out at arm's length from his body, with the mouth covered by a white cloth. I noticed his face was rigidly composed. He, too, had control over himself. As I thought about this old soldier moving through a long series of alarms, worn out from watching and tired from fighting, undeterred despite his ignorance, and still showing the stubborn courage that remains in the face of defeat—even in light of his sister’s terrifying shock—I realized what Dr. Silence meant when he described him as a man “to be counted on.”

I think there was nothing beyond this rigidity of his stern features, and a certain greyness of the complexion, to betray the turmoil of the emotions that was doubtless going on within; and the quality of these two men, each in his own way, so keyed me up that, by the time the door was shut and we had exchanged silent greetings, all the latent courage I possessed was well to the fore, and I felt as sure of myself as I knew I ever could feel.

I think there was nothing beyond the stiffness of his serious face and a certain paleness to show the emotional turbulence going on inside; and the presence of these two men, each in his own way, got me so worked up that by the time the door closed and we silently greeted each other, all the hidden courage I had was front and center, and I felt as confident in myself as I ever could be.

Colonel Wragge set the bowl carefully in the centre of the table.

Colonel Wragge placed the bowl carefully in the center of the table.

“Midnight,” he said shortly, glancing at his watch, and we all three moved to our chairs.

“Midnight,” he said briefly, checking his watch, and the three of us took our seats.

There, in the middle of that cold and silent place, we sat, with the vile bowl before us, and a thin, hardly perceptible steam rising through the damp air from the surface of the white cloth and disappearing upwards the moment it passed beyond the zone of red light and entered the deep shadows thrown forward by the projecting wall of chimney.

There, in the middle of that cold and silent place, we sat, with the disgusting bowl in front of us, and a faint, almost invisible steam rising through the damp air from the surface of the white cloth and fading away the moment it moved beyond the red light and entered the dark shadows cast by the protruding wall of the chimney.

The doctor had indicated our respective places, and I found myself seated with my back to the door and opposite the black hearth. The Colonel was on my left, and Dr. Silence on my right, both half facing me, the latter more in shadow than the former. We thus divided the little table into even sections, and sitting back in our chairs we awaited events in silence.

The doctor had pointed out where we should sit, and I ended up positioned with my back to the door, directly across from the dark fireplace. The Colonel sat to my left, and Dr. Silence was on my right, both slightly turned towards me, with Dr. Silence being more in shadow than the Colonel. This arrangement split the small table into equal parts, and as we leaned back in our chairs, we waited silently for things to unfold.

For something like an hour I do not think there was even the faintest sound within those four walls and under the canopy of that vaulted roof. Our slippers made no scratching on the gritty floor, and our breathing was suppressed almost to nothing; even the rustle of our clothes as we shifted from time to time upon our seats was inaudible. Silence smothered us absolutely—the silence of night, of listening, the silence of a haunted expectancy. The very gurgling of the lamps was too soft to be heard, and if light itself had sound, I do not think we should have noticed the silvery tread of the moonlight as it entered the high narrow windows and threw upon the floor the slender traces of its pallid footsteps.

For about an hour, I don't think there was even the slightest sound within those four walls and beneath the arching roof. Our slippers didn’t make a sound on the gritty floor, and we almost held our breaths; even the rustling of our clothes as we shifted in our seats was unheard. Silence completely enveloped us—the silence of night, of listening, a silence filled with haunting anticipation. The soft gurgling of the lamps was too quiet to perceive, and if light itself had a sound, I don't think we would have noticed the silvery glow of the moonlight as it slipped through the high narrow windows and cast the faint traces of its pale footsteps on the floor.

Colonel Wragge and the doctor, and myself too for that matter, sat thus like figures of stone, without speech and without gesture. My eyes passed in ceaseless journeys from the bowl to their faces, and from their faces to the bowl. They might have been masks, however, for all the signs of life they gave; and the light steaming from the horrid contents beneath the white cloth had long ceased to be visible.

Colonel Wragge, the doctor, and I sat there like stone statues, silent and still. My eyes constantly moved from the bowl to their faces and back again. They could have been masks for all the life they showed, and the steam rising from the disgusting contents under the white cloth had long stopped being noticeable.

Then presently, as the moon rose higher, the wind rose with it. It sighed, like the lightest of passing wings, over the roof; it crept most softly round the walls; it made the brick floor like ice beneath our feet. With it I saw mentally the desolate moorland flowing like a sea about the old house, the treeless expanse of lonely hills, the nearer copses, sombre, and mysterious in the night. The plantation, too, in particular I saw, and imagined I heard the mournful whisperings that must now be a-stirring among its tree-tops as the breeze played down between the twisted stems. In the depth of the room behind us the shafts of moonlight met and crossed in a growing network.

Then, as the moon rose higher, the wind picked up with it. It sighed, like the lightest of passing wings, over the roof; it crept softly around the walls; it made the brick floor feel like ice beneath our feet. I envisioned the desolate moorland stretching like a sea around the old house, the treeless expanse of lonely hills, and the nearby thickets, dark and mysterious in the night. The plantation, in particular, stood out in my mind, and I imagined I could hear the mournful whispers stirring among its treetops as the breeze played through the twisted stems. In the depth of the room behind us, the beams of moonlight crossed and connected, forming a growing network.

It was after an hour of this wearing and unbroken attention, and I should judge about one o’clock in the morning, when the baying of the dogs in the stable-yard first began, and I saw John Silence move suddenly in his chair and sit up in an attitude of attention. Every force in my being instantly leaped into the keenest vigilance. Colonel Wragge moved too, though slowly, and without raising his eyes from the table before him.

It was after an hour of intense and continuous focus, and I would guess around one o’clock in the morning, when the barking of the dogs in the stable yard started, and I noticed John Silence suddenly shift in his chair and sit up straight, alert. Every part of me instantly became highly alert. Colonel Wragge also shifted, but slowly, without lifting his gaze from the table in front of him.

The doctor stretched his arm out and took the white cloth from the bowl.

The doctor reached out and picked up the white cloth from the bowl.

It was perhaps imagination that persuaded me the red glare of the lamps grew fainter and the air over the table before us thickened. I had been expecting something for so long that the movement of my companions, and the lifting of the cloth, may easily have caused the momentary delusion that something hovered in the air before my face, touching the skin of my cheeks with a silken run. But it was certainly not a delusion that the Colonel looked up at the same moment and glanced over his shoulder, as though his eyes followed the movements of something to and fro about the room, and that he then buttoned his overcoat more tightly about him and his eyes sought my own face first, and then the doctor’s. And it was no delusion that his face seemed somehow to have turned dark, become spread as it were with a shadowy blackness. I saw his lips tighten and his expression grow hard and stern, and it came to me then with a rush that, of course, this man had told us but a part of the experiences he had been through in the house, and that there was much more he had never been able to bring himself to reveal at all. I felt sure of it. The way he turned and stared about him betrayed a familiarity with other things than those he had described to us. It was not merely a sight of fire he looked for; it was a sight of something alive, intelligent, something able to evade his searching; it was a person. It was the watch for the ancient Being who sought to obsess him.

It was probably just my imagination that made me think the red glow of the lamps was fading and the air above the table was thickening. I had been waiting for something for so long that the movement of my friends and the lifting of the cloth might have easily created the brief illusion that something was hovering in front of my face, brushing my cheeks with a silky touch. But it definitely wasn't an illusion when the Colonel looked up at the same moment and glanced over his shoulder, as if his eyes were tracking something moving back and forth in the room. He then buttoned his overcoat more tightly around him, and his eyes sought my face first, then the doctor’s. It was also no illusion that his face seemed to darken, appearing to be cast in shadow. I noticed his lips tighten and his expression harden, and it suddenly hit me that he had only shared part of what he had experienced in the house, and there was much more he could never bring himself to reveal. I was sure of it. The way he turned and scanned his surroundings showed that he was familiar with things beyond what he had described to us. He wasn’t just looking for a hint of fire; he was searching for something alive, something intelligent, something that could slip away from his gaze—it was a person. He was on the lookout for the ancient Being that sought to possess him.

And the way in which Dr. Silence answered his look—though it was only by a glance of subtlest sympathy—confirmed my impression.

And the way Dr. Silence responded to his gaze—just with a glance of the deepest sympathy—reinforced my impression.

“We may be ready now,” I heard him say in a whisper, and I understood that his words were intended as a steadying warning, and braced myself mentally to the utmost of my power.

“We might be ready now,” I heard him say softly, and I realized that his words were meant as a calming warning, so I mentally prepared myself as much as I could.

Yet long before Colonel Wragge had turned to stare about the room, and long before the doctor had confirmed my impression that things were at last beginning to stir, I had become aware in most singular fashion that the place held more than our three selves. With the rising of the wind this increase to our numbers had first taken place. The baying of the hounds almost seemed to have signalled it. I cannot say how it may be possible to realise that an empty place has suddenly become—not empty, when the new arrival is nothing that appeals to any one of the senses; for this recognition of an “invisible,” as of the change in the balance of personal forces in a human group, is indefinable and beyond proof. Yet it is unmistakable. And I knew perfectly well at what given moment the atmosphere within these four walls became charged with the presence of other living beings besides ourselves. And, on reflection, I am convinced that both my companions knew it too.

Yet long before Colonel Wragge turned to look around the room, and long before the doctor confirmed my feeling that things were finally starting to change, I became aware in a very peculiar way that the place contained more than just the three of us. The rising wind seemed to signal this increase in our numbers. The baying of the hounds almost felt like an announcement. I can’t explain how it’s possible to sense that a vacant space has suddenly become—not vacant—when the new presence doesn’t appeal to any of our senses; the awareness of an “invisible” presence, as well as the shift in the dynamics of personal energy within a group, is unmeasurable and beyond proof. Yet it is undeniable. I knew exactly when the atmosphere within these four walls became charged with the presence of other living beings besides us. On reflection, I’m sure that both my companions sensed it too.

“Watch the light,” said the doctor under his breath, and, then I knew too that it was no fancy of my own that had turned the air darker, and the way he turned to examine the face of our host sent an electric thrill of wonder and expectancy shivering along every nerve in my body.

“Watch the light,” the doctor said quietly, and then I realized it wasn't just my imagination that had made the air feel heavier. The way he turned to examine our host's face sent a thrilling wave of wonder and anticipation through every nerve in my body.

Yet it was no kind of terror that I experienced, but rather a sort of mental dizziness, and a sensation as of being suspended in some remote and dreadful altitude where things might happen, indeed were about to happen, that had never before happened within the ken of man. Horror may have formed an ingredient, but it was not chiefly horror, and in no sense ghostly horror.

Yet it wasn't really terror that I felt, but more like a kind of mental dizziness, and a feeling of being suspended in some distant and terrifying height where things could happen, and were actually about to happen, that had never before occurred within the knowledge of humanity. Horror might have been a part of it, but it wasn't mostly about horror, and in no way was it a ghostly horror.

Uncommon thoughts kept beating on my brain like tiny hammers, soft yet persistent, seeking admission; their unbidden tide began to wash along the far fringes of my mind, the currents of unwonted sensations to rise over the remote frontiers of my consciousness. I was aware of thoughts, and the fantasies of thoughts, that I never knew before existed. Portions of my being stirred that had never stirred before, and things ancient and inexplicable rose to the surface and beckoned me to follow. I felt as though I were about to fly off, at some immense tangent, into an outer space hitherto unknown even in dreams. And so singular was the result produced upon me that I was uncommonly glad to anchor my mind, as well as my eyes, upon the masterful personality of the doctor at my side, for there, I realised, I could draw always upon the forces of sanity and safety.

Unusual thoughts kept pounding in my head like little hammers, soft yet relentless, trying to get in; their unexpected flood started to wash over the edges of my mind, with waves of unfamiliar feelings rising beyond the distant boundaries of my awareness. I sensed thoughts, and the fantasies of thoughts, that I never knew existed before. Parts of me stirred that had never stirred before, and ancient, mysterious feelings surfaced, urging me to follow. I felt like I was about to soar off on some incredible tangent into a realm of space I had never even dreamed of. The effect this had on me was so unique that I was surprisingly glad to focus my mind, and my gaze, on the impressive presence of the doctor next to me because I realized I could always rely on his sense of sanity and safety.

With a vigorous effort of will I returned to the scene before me, and tried to focus my attention, with steadier thoughts, upon the table, and upon the silent figures seated round it. And then I saw that certain changes had come about in the place where we sat.

With strong determination, I came back to the scene in front of me and tried to concentrate, with clearer thoughts, on the table and the quiet figures seated around it. Then I noticed that some changes had occurred in the place where we were sitting.

The patches of moonlight on the floor, I noted, had become curiously shaded; the faces of my companions opposite were not so clearly visible as before; and the forehead and cheeks of Colonel Wragge were glistening with perspiration. I realised further, that an extraordinary change had come about in the temperature of the atmosphere. The increased warmth had a painful effect, not alone on Colonel Wragge, but upon all of us. It was oppressive and unnatural. We gasped figuratively as well as actually.

The patches of moonlight on the floor, I noticed, had become oddly shaded; the faces of my companions across from me were not as clearly visible as before; and Colonel Wragge’s forehead and cheeks were shining with sweat. I also realized that there had been a strange change in the temperature of the air. The rising warmth was uncomfortable, not just for Colonel Wragge, but for all of us. It felt heavy and unnatural. We struggled to breathe both metaphorically and literally.

“You are the first to feel it,” said Dr. Silence in low tones, looking across at him. “You are in more intimate touch, of course——”

“You're the first to feel it,” Dr. Silence said quietly, looking across at him. “You're in closer touch, of course——”

The Colonel was trembling, and appeared to be in considerable distress. His knees shook, so that the shuffling of his slippered feet became audible. He inclined his head to show that he had heard, but made no other reply. I think, even then, he was sore put to it to keep himself in hand. I knew what he was struggling against. As Dr. Silence had warned me, he was about to be obsessed, and was savagely, though vainly, resisting.

The Colonel was shaking and seemed to be in a lot of pain. His knees trembled, making the sound of his slippered feet shuffle noticeable. He nodded his head to indicate he had heard, but didn't say anything else. Even then, I think he was really struggling to control himself. I knew what he was fighting against. As Dr. Silence had warned me, he was about to be taken over by some force, and was fiercely, though unsuccessfully, resisting.

But, meanwhile, a curious and whirling sense of exhilaration began to come over me. The increasing heat was delightful, bringing a sensation of intense activity, of thoughts pouring through the mind at high speed, of vivid pictures in the brain, of fierce desires and lightning energies alive in every part of the body. I was conscious of no physical distress, such as the Colonel felt, but only of a vague feeling that it might all grow suddenly too intense—that I might be consumed—that my personality as well as my body, might become resolved into the flame of pure spirit. I began to live at a speed too intense to last. It was as if a thousand ecstasies besieged me——

But, at the same time, a weird and exhilarating sense of excitement started to wash over me. The rising heat felt amazing, sparking a feeling of intense energy, with thoughts racing through my mind, vibrant images flashing in my head, strong desires, and bursts of energy coursing through every part of my body. I didn’t feel any physical discomfort like the Colonel did; instead, there was just a vague sense that it might all become overwhelming—that I could be consumed—that my personality and my body might dissolve into pure spirit. I began to live at a pace that couldn't last. It was as if a thousand ecstasies were surrounding me—

“Steady!” whispered the voice of John Silence in my ear, and I looked up with a start to see that the Colonel had risen from his chair. The doctor rose too. I followed suit, and for the first time saw down into the bowl. To my amazement and horror I saw that the contents were troubled. The blood was astir with movement.

“Steady!” whispered John Silence in my ear, and I looked up in shock to see that the Colonel had gotten up from his chair. The doctor stood up too. I followed suit, and for the first time, I looked down into the bowl. To my amazement and horror, I saw that the contents were disturbed. The blood was swirling with movement.

The rest of the experiment was witnessed by us standing. It came, too, with a curious suddenness. There was no more dreaming, for me at any rate.

The rest of the experiment was observed by us while standing. It also happened quite suddenly. There was no more dreaming for me, at least.

I shall never forget the figure of Colonel Wragge standing there beside me, upright and unshaken, squarely planted on his feet, looking about him, puzzled beyond belief, yet full of a fighting anger. Framed by the white walls, the red glow of the lamps upon his streaming cheeks, his eyes glowing against the deathly pallor of his skin, breathing hard and making convulsive efforts of hands and body to keep himself under control, his whole being roused to the point of savage fighting, yet with nothing visible to get at anywhere—he stood there, immovable against odds. And the strange contrast of the pale skin and the burning face I had never seen before, or wish to seen again.

I’ll never forget Colonel Wragge standing beside me, straight and unshaken, firmly planted on his feet, looking around, incredibly confused but filled with fighting anger. Framed by the white walls, the red glow of the lamps illuminating his wet cheeks, his eyes shining against the deathly pallor of his skin, breathing heavily and making frantic gestures with his hands and body to keep himself composed. His whole being was on edge, ready to fight fiercely, yet there was nothing visible to confront—he stood there, immovable against overwhelming odds. The strange contrast of his pale skin and fiery face was something I had never seen before and hope to never see again.

But what has left an even sharper impression on my memory was the blackness that then began crawling over his face, obliterating the features, concealing their human outline, and hiding him inch by inch from view. This was my first realisation that the process of materialisation was at work. His visage became shrouded. I moved from one side to the other to keep him in view, and it was only then I understood that, properly speaking, the blackness was not upon the countenance of Colonel Wragge, but that something had inserted itself between me and him, thus screening his face with the effect of a dark veil. Something that apparently rose through the floor was passing slowly into the air above the table and above the bowl. The blood in the bowl, moreover, was considerably less than before.

But what stood out even more in my memory was the darkness that started to creep over his face, wiping out his features, hiding his human shape, and slowly obscuring him from view. This was my first real realization that the process of materialization was happening. His face became covered. I shifted from one side to the other to keep him in sight, and it was only then that I understood that, technically speaking, the darkness wasn't on Colonel Wragge's face, but something had come between us, creating the effect of a dark veil over his features. Something that seemed to rise from the floor was slowly ascending into the air above the table and the bowl. The blood in the bowl, by the way, was significantly less than before.

And, with this change in the air before us, there came at the same time a further change, I thought, in the face of the soldier. One-half was turned towards the red lamps, while the other caught the pale illumination of the moonlight falling aslant from the high windows, so that it was difficult to estimate this change with accuracy of detail. But it seemed to me that, while the features—eyes, nose, mouth—remained the same, the life informing them had undergone some profound transformation. The signature of a new power had crept into the face and left its traces there—an expression dark, and in some unexplained way, terrible.

And with this change in the atmosphere around us, I noticed at the same time another shift in the soldier’s face. One half was lit by the red lamps, while the other caught the pale light of the moon streaming in from the high windows, making it hard to see this change in detail. But it looked to me like, although the features—eyes, nose, mouth—were the same, there was a deep transformation in the life behind them. A mark of new power had appeared on the face and left its impressions there—an expression that was dark and in some mysterious way, terrifying.

Then suddenly he opened his mouth and spoke, and the sound of this changed voice, deep and musical though it was, made me cold and set my heart beating with uncomfortable rapidity. The Being, as he had dreaded, was already in control of his brain, using his mouth.

Then suddenly he opened his mouth and spoke, and the sound of this changed voice, deep and musical though it was, sent chills down my spine and made my heart race uncomfortably fast. The Being, as he had feared, was already taking over his brain, using his mouth.

“I see a blackness like the blackness of Egypt before my face,” said the tones of this unknown voice that seemed half his own and half another’s. “And out of this darkness they come, they come.”

“I see a darkness like the darkness of Egypt right in front of me,” said the voice that felt like it was part his and part someone else’s. “And from this darkness, they come, they come.”

I gave a dreadful start. The doctor turned to look at me for an instant, and then turned to centre his attention upon the figure of our host, and I understood in some intuitive fashion that he was there to watch over the strangest contest man ever saw—to watch over and, if necessary, to protect.

I jumped in shock. The doctor glanced at me for a moment, then shifted his focus to our host, and I instinctively realized that he was there to oversee the most unusual contest anyone had ever witnessed—to observe and, if needed, to protect.

“He is being controlled—possessed,” he whispered to me through the shadows. His face wore a wonderful expression, half triumph, half admiration.

“He's being controlled—possessed,” he whispered to me from the shadows. His face had an amazing look, half triumph, half admiration.

Even as Colonel Wragge spoke, it seemed to me that this visible darkness began to increase, pouring up thickly out of the ground by the hearth, rising up in sheets and veils, shrouding our eyes and faces. It stole up from below—an awful blackness that seemed to drink in all the radiations of light in the building, leaving nothing but the ghost of a radiance in their place. Then, out of this rising sea of shadows, issued a pale and spectral light that gradually spread itself about us, and from the heart of this light I saw the shapes of fire crowd and gather. And these were not human shapes, or the shapes of anything I recognised as alive in the world, but outlines of fire that traced globes, triangles, crosses, and the luminous bodies of various geometrical figures. They grew bright, faded, and then grew bright again with an effect almost of pulsation. They passed swiftly to and fro through the air, rising and falling, and particularly in the immediate neighbourhood of the Colonel, often gathering about his head and shoulders, and even appearing to settle upon him like giant insects of flame. They were accompanied, moreover, by a faint sound of hissing—the same sound we had heard that afternoon in the plantation.

Even as Colonel Wragge spoke, I felt like the visible darkness was growing thicker, rising up from the ground by the hearth in sheets and veils, covering our eyes and faces. It crept up from below—an overwhelming blackness that seemed to absorb all the light in the building, leaving only a faint glow in its place. Then, from this rising sea of shadows, a pale and ghostly light began to spread around us, and from the center of this light, I saw shapes of fire forming and gathering. These weren’t human shapes or anything I recognized as living in the world, but outlines of fire tracing globes, triangles, crosses, and various luminous geometric figures. They brightened, dimmed, and then brightened again in a rhythmic way. They moved quickly through the air, rising and falling, especially around the Colonel, often gathering around his head and shoulders, even seeming to land on him like giant flaming insects. They were accompanied by a faint hissing sound—the same sound we had heard earlier that afternoon in the plantation.

“The fire-elementals that precede their master,” the doctor said in an undertone. “Be ready.”

“The fire elementals that come before their master,” the doctor said quietly. “Be ready.”

And while this weird display of the shapes of fire alternately flashed and faded, and the hissing echoed faintly among the dim rafters overhead, we heard the awful voice issue at intervals from the lips of the afflicted soldier. It was a voice of power, splendid in some way I cannot describe, and with a certain sense of majesty in its cadences, and, as I listened to it with quickly-beating heart, I could fancy it was some ancient voice of Time itself, echoing down immense corridors of stone, from the depths of vast temples, from the very heart of mountain tombs.

And while this strange display of fire shapes flashed and faded, and the hissing echoed softly among the dim rafters above, we heard the terrible voice occasionally coming from the lips of the suffering soldier. It had a powerful tone, magnificent in a way I can't quite explain, with a kind of majesty in its rhythm. As I listened to it with a racing heart, I could imagine it was some ancient voice of Time itself, resonating through vast stone corridors, from the depths of enormous temples, from the very heart of mountain tombs.

“I have seen my divine Father, Osiris,” thundered the great tones. “I have scattered the gloom of the night. I have burst through the earth, and am one with the starry Deities!”

“I have seen my divine Father, Osiris,” thundered the great tones. “I have scattered the darkness of the night. I have broken through the earth and am one with the starry Gods!”

Something grand came into the soldier’s face. He was staring fixedly before him, as though seeing nothing.

Something impressive appeared on the soldier’s face. He was staring straight ahead, as if he couldn’t see anything.

“Watch,” whispered Dr. Silence in my ear, and his whisper seemed to come from very far away.

“Watch,” Dr. Silence whispered in my ear, and his whisper felt like it was coming from a great distance.

Again the mouth opened and the awesome voice issued forth.

Once again, the mouth opened and the powerful voice came out.

“Thoth,” it boomed, “has loosened the bandages of Set which fettered my mouth. I have taken my place in the great winds of heaven.”

“Thoth,” it echoed, “has removed the bindings of Set that restricted my speech. I have assumed my position in the vast winds of the sky.”

I heard the little wind of night, with its mournful voice of ages, sighing round the walls and over the roof.

I heard the soft night wind, with its sad voice from the past, sighing around the walls and over the roof.

“Listen!” came from the doctor at my side, and the thunder of the voice continued—

“Listen!” came from the doctor beside me, and the thunder of the voice continued—

“I have hidden myself with you, O ye stars that never diminish. I remember my name—in—the—House—of—Fire!”

“I have hidden myself with you, oh you stars that never fade. I remember my name—in—the—House—of—Fire!”

The voice ceased and the sound died away. Something about the face and figure of Colonel Wragge relaxed, I thought. The terrible look passed from his face. The Being that obsessed him was gone.

The voice stopped and the sound faded. I noticed that Colonel Wragge's face and posture seemed to relax. The dreadful expression disappeared from his face. The presence that haunted him was gone.

“The great Ritual,” said Dr. Silence aside to me, very low, “the Book of the Dead. Now it’s leaving him. Soon the blood will fashion it a body.”

“The great Ritual,” Dr. Silence whispered to me, “the Book of the Dead. It's leaving him now. Soon the blood will give it a body.”

Colonel Wragge, who had stood absolutely motionless all this time, suddenly swayed, so that I thought he was going to fall,—and, but for the quick support of the doctor’s arm, he probably would have fallen, for he staggered as in the beginning of collapse.

Colonel Wragge, who had been completely still this whole time, suddenly swayed, making me think he was about to fall—and, if it hadn't been for the quick support of the doctor’s arm, he probably would have fallen, as he staggered like he was about to collapse.

“I am drunk with the wine of Osiris,” he cried,—and it was half with his own voice this time—“but Horus, the Eternal Watcher, is about my path—for—safety.” The voice dwindled and failed, dying away into something almost like a cry of distress.

“I’m intoxicated with the wine of Osiris,” he shouted, and this time it was partly his own voice—“but Horus, the Eternal Watcher, is watching over my path—for—safety.” The voice faded and weakened, trailing off into what almost sounded like a cry for help.

“Now, watch closely,” said Dr. Silence, speaking loud, “for after the cry will come the Fire!”

“Now, pay attention,” said Dr. Silence, speaking loudly, “because after the shout comes the Fire!”

I began to tremble involuntarily; an awful change had come without warning into the air; my legs grew weak as paper beneath my weight and I had to support myself by leaning on the table. Colonel Wragge, I saw, was also leaning forward with a kind of droop. The shapes of fire had vanished all, but his face was lit by the red lamps and the pale shifting moonlight rose behind him like mist.

I started to shake uncontrollably; a terrible change suddenly filled the air; my legs felt as weak as paper under my weight and I had to prop myself up by leaning on the table. Colonel Wragge, I noticed, was also leaning forward in a sort of slouch. The flames had completely disappeared, but his face was illuminated by the red lamps, and the pale, shifting moonlight rose behind him like fog.

We were both gazing at the bowl, now almost empty; the Colonel stooped so low I feared every minute he would lose his balance and drop into it; and the shadow, that had so long been in process of forming, now at length began to assume material outline in the air before us.

We were both staring at the bowl, which was now nearly empty; the Colonel leaned forward so much that I worried he'd lose his balance and fall into it; and the shadow, which had been forming for so long, finally started to take shape in the air in front of us.

Then John Silence moved forward quickly. He took his place between us and the shadow. Erect, formidable, absolute master of the situation, I saw him stand there, his face calm and almost smiling, and fire in his eyes. His protective influence was astounding and incalculable. Even the abhorrent dread I felt at the sight of the creature growing into life and substance before us, lessened in some way so that I was able to keep my eyes fixed on the air above the bowl without too vivid a terror.

Then John Silence stepped up quickly. He positioned himself between us and the shadow. Standing tall, powerful, and completely in control, I saw him there, his face calm and almost smiling, with fire in his eyes. His protective presence was remarkable and immeasurable. Even the horrible fear I felt at the sight of the creature coming to life before us eased a bit, allowing me to keep my eyes on the air above the bowl without being overly terrified.

But as it took shape, rising out of nothing as it were, and growing momentarily more defined in outline, a period of utter and wonderful silence settled down upon the building and all it contained. A hush of ages, like the sudden centre of peace at the heart of the travelling cyclone, descended through the night, and out of this hush, as out of the emanations of the steaming blood, issued the form of the ancient being who had first sent the elemental of fire upon its mission. It grew and darkened and solidified before our eyes. It rose from just beyond the table so that the lower portions remained invisible, but I saw the outline limn itself upon the air, as though slowly revealed by the rising of a curtain. It apparently had not then quite concentrated to the normal proportions, but was spread out on all sides into space, huge, though rapidly condensing, for I saw the colossal shoulders, the neck, the lower portion of the dark jaws, the terrible mouth, and then the teeth and lips—and, as the veil seemed to lift further upon the tremendous face—I saw the nose and cheek bones. In another moment I should have looked straight into the eyes——

But as it began to form, rising up from nothing and becoming momentarily clearer in shape, a deep and amazing silence settled over the building and everything inside it. A timeless hush, like the sudden calm at the center of a storm, fell through the night, and from this silence, like the essence of warm blood, emerged the figure of the ancient being who had first sent the elemental of fire on its mission. It grew and darkened and became solid before our eyes. It rose just beyond the table so that the lower parts remained hidden, but I could see the outline shape itself in the air, as if slowly revealed by the lifting of a curtain. It didn’t quite take on its normal size yet, but was spread out in all directions into space, massive, though quickly condensing, as I saw the enormous shoulders, the neck, the lower part of the dark jaws, the fearsome mouth, and then the teeth and lips—and as the veil seemed to lift further to reveal the immense face—I saw the nose and cheekbones. In another moment, I would have looked straight into the eyes——

But what Dr. Silence did at that moment was so unexpected, and took me so by surprise, that I have never yet properly understood its nature, and he has never yet seen fit to explain in detail to me. He uttered some sound that had a note of command in it—and, in so doing, stepped forward and intervened between me and the face. The figure, just nearing completeness, he therefore hid from my sight—and I have always thought purposely hid from my sight.

But what Dr. Silence did in that moment was so surprising and caught me off guard that I’ve never really understood what it meant, and he hasn’t chosen to explain it to me in detail. He made a sound that had a commanding tone, and while doing that, he stepped forward and got in between me and the face. The figure, which was almost complete, was therefore hidden from my view—and I’ve always believed he purposely concealed it from me.

“The fire!” he cried out. “The fire! Beware!”

“The fire!” he shouted. “The fire! Watch out!”

There was a sudden roar as of flame from the very mouth of the pit, and for the space of a single second all grew light as day. A blinding flash passed across my face, and there was heat for an instant that seemed to shrivel skin, and flesh, and bone. Then came steps, and I heard Colonel Wragge utter a great cry, wilder than any human cry I have ever known. The heat sucked all the breath out of my lungs with a rush, and the blaze of light, as it vanished, swept my vision with it into enveloping darkness.

There was a sudden roar like flames coming from the very mouth of the pit, and for a brief moment, everything lit up like daytime. A blinding flash crossed my face, and for an instant, there was heat that felt like it could shrivel skin, flesh, and bone. Then I heard footsteps, and I heard Colonel Wragge let out a cry, more intense than any human cry I have ever heard. The heat sucked all the breath out of my lungs in an instant, and as the light disappeared, it took my vision with it into complete darkness.

When I recovered the use of my senses a few moments later I saw that Colonel Wragge with a face of death, its whiteness strangely stained, had moved closer to me. Dr. Silence stood beside him, an expression of triumph and success in his eyes. The next minute the soldier tried to clutch me with his hand. Then he reeled, staggered, and, unable to save himself, fell with a great crash upon the brick floor.

When I regained my senses a few moments later, I saw that Colonel Wragge, looking pale as death with a strangely blotched face, had moved closer to me. Dr. Silence stood next to him, a look of triumph and success in his eyes. The next moment, the soldier tried to grab me with his hand. Then he swayed, stumbled, and, unable to catch himself, fell with a loud crash onto the brick floor.

After the sheet of flame, a wind raged round the building as though it would lift the roof off, but then passed as suddenly as it came. And in the intense calm that followed I saw that the form had vanished, and the doctor was stooping over Colonel Wragge upon the floor, trying to lift him to a sitting position.

After the burst of flames, a strong wind whipped around the building as if it wanted to blow the roof off, but then it disappeared just as quickly. In the intense quiet that followed, I noticed that the figure had disappeared, and the doctor was bending over Colonel Wragge on the floor, trying to help him sit up.

“Light,” he said quietly, “more light. Take the shades off.”

“Light,” he said softly, “more light. Remove the shades.”

Colonel Wragge sat up and the glare of the unshaded lamps fell upon his face. It was grey and drawn, still running heat, and there was a look in the eyes and about the corners of the mouth that seemed in this short space of time to have added years to its age. At the same time, the expression of effort and anxiety had left it. It showed relief.

Colonel Wragge sat up, and the harsh light from the unshaded lamps illuminated his face. It was grey and gaunt, still flushed with heat, and there was a look in his eyes and around the corners of his mouth that seemed to have aged him considerably in such a short time. At the same time, the look of struggle and worry had faded away. It showed relief.

“Gone!” he said, looking up at the doctor in a dazed fashion, and struggling to his feet. “Thank God! it’s gone at last.” He stared round the laundry as though to find out where he was. “Did it control me—take possession of me? Did I talk nonsense?” he asked bluntly. “After the heat came, I remember nothing——”

“Gone!” he said, looking up at the doctor in a dazed way and struggling to get to his feet. “Thank God! It’s finally gone.” He glanced around the laundry as if trying to figure out where he was. “Did it have control over me—take over me? Did I talk nonsense?” he asked directly. “After the heat hit, I don’t remember anything——”

“You’ll feel yourself again in a few minutes,” the doctor said. To my infinite horror I saw that he was surreptitiously wiping sundry dark stains from the face. “Our experiment has been a success and——”

"You’ll feel like yourself again in a few minutes," the doctor said. To my absolute horror, I saw that he was secretly wiping various dark stains off his face. "Our experiment has been a success and——"

He gave me a swift glance to hide the bowl, standing between me and our host while I hurriedly stuffed it down under the lid of the nearest cauldron.

He shot me a quick look to cover the bowl, standing between me and our host while I quickly shoved it under the lid of the nearest cauldron.

“——and none of us the worse for it,” he finished.

“——and none of us are worse off for it,” he finished.

“And fires?” he asked, still dazed, “there’ll be no more fires?”

“And fires?” he asked, still confused, “there won’t be any more fires?”

“It is dissipated—partly, at any rate,” replied Dr. Silence cautiously.

“It’s gone—at least, partly,” Dr. Silence replied carefully.

“And the man behind the gun,” he went on, only half realising what he was saying, I think; “have you discovered that?”

“And the guy behind the gun,” he continued, only half aware of what he was saying, I think; “have you figured out that?”

“A form materialised,” said the doctor briefly. “I know for certain now what the directing intelligence was behind it all.”

“A form appeared,” the doctor said shortly. “I now know for sure what the guiding intelligence was behind it all.”

Colonel Wragge pulled himself together and got upon his feet. The words conveyed no clear meaning to him yet. But his memory was returning gradually, and he was trying to piece together the fragments into a connected whole. He shivered a little, for the place had grown suddenly chilly. The air was empty again, lifeless.

Colonel Wragge gathered himself and stood up. The words didn’t make much sense to him yet. But his memory was slowly coming back, and he was trying to connect the pieces into one complete picture. He shivered slightly because the place had suddenly become cold. The air was empty again, lifeless.

“You feel all right again now,” Dr. Silence said, in the tone of a man stating a fact rather than asking a question.

“You feel okay again now,” Dr. Silence said, in a tone that suggested he was stating a fact rather than asking a question.

“Thanks to you—both, yes.” He drew a deep breath, and mopped his face, and even attempted a smile. He made me think of a man coming from the battlefield with the stains of fighting still upon him, but scornful of his wounds. Then he turned gravely towards the doctor with a question in his eyes. Memory had returned and he was himself again.

“Thanks to you—both, yes.” He took a deep breath, wiped his face, and even tried to smile. He reminded me of a man coming from the battlefield, still marked by the fight, but indifferent to his wounds. Then he turned seriously towards the doctor, a question in his eyes. His memory had come back, and he was himself again.

“Precisely what I expected,” the doctor said calmly; “a fire-elemental sent upon its mission in the days of Thebes, centuries before Christ, and to-night, for the first time all these thousands of years, released from the spell that originally bound it.”

“Exactly what I expected,” the doctor said calmly; “a fire elemental sent on its mission during the days of Thebes, centuries before Christ, and tonight, for the first time in all these thousands of years, released from the spell that originally bound it.”

We stared at him in amazement, Colonel Wragge opening his lips for words that refused to shape themselves.

We stared at him in disbelief, Colonel Wragge opening his mouth for words that wouldn’t come out.

“And, if we dig,” he continued significantly, pointing to the floor where the blackness had poured up, “we shall find some underground connection—a tunnel most likely—leading to the Twelve Acre Wood. It was made by—your predecessor.”

“And, if we dig,” he continued meaningfully, pointing to the floor where the blackness had overflowed, “we will find some kind of underground connection—a tunnel most likely—that leads to the Twelve Acre Wood. It was created by—your predecessor.”

“A tunnel made by my brother!” gasped the soldier. “Then my sister should know—she lived here with him——” He stopped suddenly.

“A tunnel made by my brother!” the soldier exclaimed. “Then my sister should know—she lived here with him——” He stopped abruptly.

John Silence inclined his head slowly. “I think so,” he said quietly. “Your brother, no doubt, was as much tormented as you have been,” he continued after a pause in which Colonel Wragge seemed deeply preoccupied with his thoughts, “and tried to find peace by burying it in the wood, and surrounding the wood then, like a large magic circle, with the enchantments of the old formulæ. So the stars the man saw blazing——”

John Silence nodded slowly. “I think so,” he said softly. “Your brother, no doubt, was just as troubled as you have been,” he continued after a pause during which Colonel Wragge appeared lost in thought, “and he tried to find peace by hiding it in the woods, surrounding the woods then, like a big magic circle, with the charms of the old formulas. So the stars that the man saw blazing——”

“But burying what?” asked the soldier faintly, stepping backwards towards the support of the wall.

“But burying what?” the soldier asked weakly, taking a step back towards the wall for support.

Dr. Silence regarded us both intently for a moment before he replied. I think he weighed in his mind whether to tell us now, or when the investigation was absolutely complete.

Dr. Silence looked at both of us closely for a moment before he answered. I think he was considering whether to tell us now or wait until the investigation was completely finished.

“The mummy,” he said softly, after a moment; “the mummy that your brother took from its resting-place of centuries, and brought home—here.”

“The mummy,” he said quietly, after a moment; “the mummy that your brother took from its resting place of centuries and brought home—here.”

Colonel Wragge dropped down upon the nearest chair, hanging breathlessly on every word. He was far too amazed for speech.

Colonel Wragge collapsed into the nearest chair, hanging on every word with bated breath. He was too stunned to speak.

“The mummy of some important person—a priest most likely—protected from disturbance and desecration by the ceremonial magic of the time. For they understood how to attach to the mummy, to lock up with it in the tomb, an elemental force that would direct itself even after ages upon any one who dared to molest it. In this case it was an elemental of fire.”

“The mummy of a significant individual—probably a priest—was safeguarded from disturbance and disrespect by the ceremonial magic of the era. They knew how to bind an elemental force to the mummy, locking it away in the tomb, which would act against anyone who dared to disturb it, even after centuries. In this instance, it was a fire elemental.”

Dr. Silence crossed the floor and turned out the lamps one by one. He had nothing more to say for the moment. Following his example, I folded the table together and took up the chairs, and our host, still dazed and silent, mechanically obeyed him and moved to the door.

Dr. Silence walked across the room and switched off the lamps one by one. He didn't have anything more to say at that moment. Following his lead, I folded the table and gathered the chairs, and our host, still stunned and quiet, automatically followed his cue and headed for the door.

We removed all traces of the experiment, taking the empty bowl back to the house concealed beneath an ulster.

We got rid of all evidence of the experiment, taking the empty bowl back to the house hidden under a long coat.

The air was cool and fragrant as we walked to the house, the stars beginning to fade overhead and a fresh wind of early morning blowing up out of the east where the sky was already hinting of the coming day. It was after five o’clock.

The air was cool and fresh as we walked to the house, the stars starting to fade overhead and a gentle morning breeze coming in from the east where the sky was already hinting at the approaching day. It was after five o’clock.

Stealthily we entered the front hall and locked the door, and as we went on tiptoe upstairs to our rooms, the Colonel, peering at us over his candle as he nodded good-night, whispered that if we were ready the digging should be begun that very day.

Stealthily, we slipped into the front hall and locked the door. As we tiptoed upstairs to our rooms, the Colonel, peering at us over his candle, nodded good-night and whispered that if we were ready, the digging should start that very day.

Then I saw him steal along to his sister’s room and disappear.

Then I saw him sneak into his sister’s room and vanish.

IV

But not even the mysterious references to the mummy, or the prospect of a revelation by digging, were able to hinder the reaction that followed the intense excitement of the past twelve hours, and I slept the sleep of the dead, dreamless and undisturbed. A touch on the shoulder woke me, and I saw Dr. Silence standing beside the bed, dressed to go out.

But even the mysterious hints about the mummy, or the possibility of uncovering something by digging, couldn’t stop the reaction that came after the intense excitement of the past twelve hours. I drifted into a deep, dreamless sleep. A touch on my shoulder woke me, and I saw Dr. Silence standing next to the bed, ready to go out.

“Come,” he said, “it’s tea-time. You’ve slept the best part of a dozen hours.”

“Come on,” he said, “it’s tea time. You’ve slept for almost twelve hours.”

I sprang up and made a hurried toilet, while my companion sat and talked. He looked fresh and rested, and his manner was even quieter than usual.

I jumped up and quickly got ready while my friend sat and chatted. He looked refreshed and relaxed, and he was even calmer than usual.

“Colonel Wragge has provided spades and pickaxes. We’re going out to unearth this mummy at once,” he said; “and there’s no reason we should not get away by the morning train.”

“Colonel Wragge has given us shovels and pickaxes. We're heading out to dig up this mummy right away,” he said, “and there's no reason we can't catch the morning train.”

“I’m ready to go to-night, if you are,” I said honestly.

“I’m ready to go tonight, if you are,” I said honestly.

But Dr. Silence shook his head.

But Dr. Silence shook his head.

“I must see this through to the end,” he said gravely, and in a tone that made me think he still anticipated serious things, perhaps. He went on talking while I dressed.

“I have to see this through to the end,” he said seriously, in a way that made me think he still expected serious things, maybe. He kept talking while I got dressed.

“This case is really typical of all stories of mummy-haunting, and none of them are cases to trifle with,” he explained, “for the mummies of important people—kings, priests, magicians—were laid away with profoundly significant ceremonial, and were very effectively protected, as you have seen, against desecration, and especially against destruction.

“This case is really typical of all stories of mummy-haunting, and none of them are cases to take lightly,” he explained, “because the mummies of important people—kings, priests, magicians—were buried with deeply meaningful ceremonies and were very well protected, as you’ve seen, against desecration and, especially, against destruction.

“The general belief,” he went on, anticipating my questions, “held, of course, that the perpetuity of the mummy guaranteed that of its Ka,—the owner’s spirit,—but it is not improbable that the magical embalming was also used to retard reincarnation, the preservation of the body preventing the return of the spirit to the toil and discipline of earth-life; and, in any case, they knew how to attach powerful guardian-forces to keep off trespassers. And any one who dared to remove the mummy, or especially to unwind it—well,” he added, with meaning, “you have seen—and you will see.”

“The common belief,” he continued, anticipating my questions, “was that the mummy’s preservation ensured the immortality of its Ka—the owner’s spirit. However, it’s quite possible that the magical embalming was also meant to delay reincarnation, as keeping the body intact would stop the spirit from returning to the hardships of earthly life. In any case, they knew how to use powerful guardian forces to ward off intruders. And anyone who dared to take the mummy, or especially to unwrap it—well,” he added, with significance, “you’ve seen—and you will see.”

I caught his face in the mirror while I struggled with my collar. It was deeply serious. There could be no question that he spoke of what he believed and knew.

I caught his face in the mirror while I fumbled with my collar. It looked very serious. There was no doubt that he was talking about what he believed and knew.

“The traveller-brother who brought it here must have been haunted too,” he continued, “for he tried to banish it by burial in the wood, making a magic circle to enclose it. Something of genuine ceremonial he must have known, for the stars the man saw were of course the remains of the still flaming pentagrams he traced at intervals in the circle. Only he did not know enough, or possibly was ignorant that the mummy’s guardian was a fire-force. Fire cannot be enclosed by fire, though, as you saw, it can be released by it.”

“The traveler-brother who brought it here must have been haunted too,” he continued, “because he tried to get rid of it by burying it in the woods, creating a magic circle to contain it. He must have known something about real ceremonial practices, since the stars he saw were actually the remnants of the still-burning pentagrams he drew at intervals in the circle. But he didn't know enough, or maybe he was unaware that the mummy’s guardian was a fire-force. Fire can’t be contained by fire, but as you saw, it can be unleashed by it.”

“Then that awful figure in the laundry?” I asked, thrilled to find him so communicative.

“Then what about that creepy figure in the laundry?” I asked, excited to discover he was so talkative.

“Undoubtedly the actual Ka of the mummy operating always behind its agent, the elemental, and most likely thousands of years old.”

“Without a doubt, the real essence of the mummy is always at work behind its agent, the elemental, and is probably thousands of years old.”

“And Miss Wragge——?” I ventured once more.

“And Miss Wragge?” I asked again.

“Ah, Miss Wragge,” he repeated with increased gravity, “Miss Wragge——”

“Ah, Miss Wragge,” he said with more seriousness, “Miss Wragge——”

A knock at the door brought a servant with word that tea was ready, and the Colonel had sent to ask if we were coming down. The thread was broken. Dr. Silence moved to the door and signed to me to follow. But his manner told me that in any case no real answer would have been forthcoming to my question.

A knock at the door brought in a servant who said that tea was ready, and the Colonel wanted to know if we were coming down. The moment was interrupted. Dr. Silence went to the door and motioned for me to follow. But the way he acted made it clear that I wouldn’t have gotten a real answer to my question anyway.

“And the place to dig in,” I asked, unable to restrain my curiosity, “will you find it by some process of divination or——?”

“And the place to dig in,” I asked, unable to hold back my curiosity, “are you going to find it through some kind of divination or—?”

He paused at the door and looked back at me, and with that he left me to finish my dressing.

He stopped at the door and glanced back at me, then he left me to finish getting ready.

It was growing dark when the three of us silently made our way to the Twelve Acre Plantation; the sky was overcast, and a black wind came out of the east. Gloom hung about the old house and the air seemed full of sighings. We found the tools ready laid at the edge of the wood, and each shouldering his piece, we followed our leader at once in among the trees. He went straight forward for some twenty yards and then stopped. At his feet lay the blackened circle of one of the burned places. It was just discernible against the surrounding white grass.

It was getting dark when the three of us quietly headed to the Twelve Acre Plantation; the sky was cloudy, and a cold wind blew in from the east. A sense of dread surrounded the old house, and the air felt heavy with whispers. We found the tools already placed at the edge of the woods, and each of us grabbed our tool as we followed our leader into the trees. He walked straight ahead for about twenty yards and then stopped. At his feet lay the charred circle of one of the burn sites. It was barely visible against the surrounding white grass.

“There are three of these,” he said, “and they all lie in a line with one another. Any one of them will tap the tunnel that connects the laundry—the former Museum—with the chamber where the mummy now lies buried.”

“There are three of these,” he said, “and they all line up with each other. Any one of them will access the tunnel that links the laundry—the former Museum—with the chamber where the mummy is now buried.”

He at once cleared away the burnt grass and began to dig; we all began to dig. While I used the pick, the others shovelled vigorously. No one spoke. Colonel Wragge worked the hardest of the three. The soil was light and sandy, and there were only a few snake-like roots and occasional loose stones to delay us. The pick made short work of these. And meanwhile the darkness settled about us and the biting wind swept roaring through the trees overhead.

He immediately cleared away the burnt grass and started digging; we all started digging. While I used the pick, the others shoveled with enthusiasm. No one said a word. Colonel Wragge worked the hardest of the three. The soil was light and sandy, and there were only a few snake-like roots and some loose stones that slowed us down. The pick dealt with those quickly. Meanwhile, the darkness surrounded us, and the biting wind howled through the trees above.

Then, quite suddenly, without a cry, Colonel Wragge disappeared up to his neck.

Then, all of a sudden, without a sound, Colonel Wragge vanished up to his neck.

“The tunnel!” cried the doctor, helping to drag him out, red, breathless, and covered with sand and perspiration. “Now, let me lead the way.” And he slipped down nimbly into the hole, so that a moment later we heard his voice, muffled by sand and distance, rising up to us.

“The tunnel!” shouted the doctor, helping to pull him out, red-faced, breathless, and covered in sand and sweat. “Now, let me take the lead.” He quickly slipped into the hole, and a moment later we heard his voice, muffled by sand and distance, calling up to us.

“Hubbard, you come next, and then Colonel Wragge—if he wishes,” we heard.

“Hubbard, you’re next, and then Colonel Wragge—if he wants to,” we heard.

“I’ll follow you, of course,” he said, looking at me as I scrambled in.

“I’ll follow you, of course,” he said, watching me as I hurried inside.

The hole was bigger now, and I got down on all-fours in a channel not much bigger than a large sewer-pipe and found myself in total darkness. A minute later a heavy thud, followed by a cataract of loose sand, announced the arrival of the Colonel.

The hole was bigger now, and I got down on all fours in a space not much wider than a large sewer pipe and found myself in total darkness. A minute later, a heavy thud, followed by a rush of loose sand, announced the arrival of the Colonel.

“Catch hold of my heel,” called Dr. Silence, “and Colonel Wragge can take yours.”

“Grab my heel,” called Dr. Silence, “and Colonel Wragge can take yours.”

In this slow, laborious fashion we wormed our way along a tunnel that had been roughly dug out of the shifting sand, and was shored up clumsily by means of wooden pillars and posts. Any moment, it seemed to me, we might be buried alive. We could not see an inch before our eyes, but had to grope our way feeling the pillars and the walls. It was difficult to breathe, and the Colonel behind me made but slow progress, for the cramped position of our bodies was very severe.

In this slow, exhausting way, we made our way through a tunnel that had been roughly dug out of the shifting sand, supported awkwardly with wooden pillars and posts. It felt like we could get buried alive at any moment. We couldn’t see even a foot in front of us and had to feel our way along the pillars and walls. Breathing was tough, and the Colonel behind me struggled to move forward, as the tight space was very uncomfortable for our bodies.

We had travelled in this way for ten minutes, and gone perhaps as much as ten yards, when I lost my grasp of the doctor’s heel.

We had been moving like this for ten minutes and covered maybe about ten yards when I let go of the doctor's heel.

“Ah!” I heard his voice, sounding above me somewhere. He was standing up in a clear space, and the next moment I was standing beside him. Colonel Wragge came heavily after, and he too rose up and stood. Then Dr. Silence produced his candles and we heard preparations for striking matches.

“Ah!” I heard his voice calling from above me. He was standing in an open area, and the next moment I was right next to him. Colonel Wragge followed closely behind and he too stood up. Then Dr. Silence took out his candles and we heard him getting ready to light some matches.

Yet even before there was light, an indefinable sensation of awe came over us all. In this hole in the sand, some three feet under ground, we stood side by side, cramped and huddled, struck suddenly with an overwhelming apprehension of something ancient, something formidable, something incalculably wonderful, that touched in each one of us a sense of the sublime and the terrible even before we could see an inch before our faces. I know not how to express in language this singular emotion that caught us here in utter darkness, touching no sense directly, it seemed, yet with the recognition that before us in the blackness of this underground night there lay something that was mighty with the mightiness of long past ages.

Yet even before there was light, an unexplainable feeling of awe washed over us all. In this hole in the sand, about three feet underground, we stood close together, cramped and huddled, suddenly struck by an overwhelming sense of something ancient, something powerful, something indescribably wonderful, that stirred in each of us a feeling of the sublime and the terrifying even before we could see anything in front of us. I can't find the words to describe this unique emotion that engulfed us in complete darkness, touching no sense directly, yet with the awareness that before us in the darkness of this underground night lay something immense with the strength of ages long gone.

I felt Colonel Wragge press in closely to my side, and I understood the pressure and welcomed it. No human touch, to me at least, has ever been more eloquent.

I felt Colonel Wragge move in closely beside me, and I felt the weight of it and welcomed it. No human touch, at least for me, has ever been more expressive.

Then the match flared, a thousand shadows fled on black wings, and I saw John Silence fumbling with the candle, his face lit up grotesquely by the flickering light below it.

Then the match lit up, and a thousand shadows raced away on black wings. I saw John Silence struggling with the candle, his face looking strangely distorted by the flickering light underneath it.

I had dreaded this light, yet when it came there was apparently nothing to explain the profound sensations of dread that preceded it. We stood in a small vaulted chamber in the sand, the sides and roof shored with bars of wood, and the ground laid roughly with what seemed to be tiles. It was six feet high, so that we could all stand comfortably, and may have been ten feet long by eight feet wide. Upon the wooden pillars at the side I saw that Egyptian hieroglyphics had been rudely traced by burning.

I had feared this light, but when it finally arrived, there was seemingly nothing to explain the deep feelings of dread that came before it. We stood in a small vaulted room in the sand, with the walls and ceiling supported by wooden beams, and the floor covered roughly with what looked like tiles. It was six feet tall, allowing us all to stand comfortably, and was probably ten feet long by eight feet wide. On the wooden pillars at the sides, I noticed that Egyptian hieroglyphics had been roughly burned into them.

Dr. Silence lit three candles and handed one to each of us. He placed a fourth in the sand against the wall on his right, and another to mark the entrance to the tunnel. We stood and stared about us, instinctively holding our breath.

Dr. Silence lit three candles and gave one to each of us. He set a fourth one in the sand against the wall on his right, and another to mark the entrance to the tunnel. We stood still and looked around, instinctively holding our breath.

“Empty, by God!” exclaimed Colonel Wragge. His voice trembled with excitement. And then, as his eyes rested on the ground, he added, “And footsteps—look—footsteps in the sand!”

“Empty, by God!” exclaimed Colonel Wragge. His voice shook with excitement. Then, as he looked down at the ground, he added, “And footprints—look—footprints in the sand!”

Dr. Silence said nothing. He stooped down and began to make a search of the chamber, and as he moved, my eyes followed his crouching figure and noted the queer distorted shadows that poured over the walls and ceiling after him. Here and there thin trickles of loose sand ran fizzing down the sides. The atmosphere, heavily charged with faint yet pungent odours, lay utterly still, and the flames of the candles might have been painted on the air for all the movement they betrayed.

Dr. Silence didn’t say anything. He bent down and started searching the room, and as he moved, I followed his hunched figure with my eyes and noticed the strange, distorted shadows that stretched over the walls and ceiling behind him. Here and there, thin streams of loose sand trickled down the sides. The atmosphere, thick with faint yet strong smells, was completely still, and the candle flames looked like they were painted in the air for all the movement they showed.

And, as I watched, it was almost necessary to persuade myself forcibly that I was only standing upright with difficulty in this little sand-hole of a modern garden in the south of England, for it seemed to me that I stood, as in vision, at the entrance of some vast rock-hewn Temple far, far down the river of Time. The illusion was powerful, and persisted. Granite columns, that rose to heaven, piled themselves about me, majestically uprearing, and a roof like the sky itself spread above a line of colossal figures that moved in shadowy procession along endless and stupendous aisles. This huge and splendid fantasy, borne I knew not whence, possessed me so vividly that I was actually obliged to concentrate my attention upon the small stooping figure of the doctor, as he groped about the walls, in order to keep the eye of imagination on the scene before me.

And as I watched, I had to really convince myself that I was just barely standing in this little sandy patch of a modern garden in southern England, because it felt like I was standing, almost like in a vision, at the entrance of some massive rock-hewn temple deep down the river of Time. The illusion was strong and wouldn’t go away. Towering granite columns rose to the sky, surrounding me, and a roof like the sky itself stretched above a line of huge figures that moved in a shadowy procession along endless and impressive aisles. This huge and magnificent fantasy, coming from who knows where, held my attention so completely that I actually had to focus on the small, hunched figure of the doctor as he searched along the walls, just to keep my imagination grounded in the scene in front of me.

But the limited space rendered a long search out of the question, and his footsteps, instead of shuffling through loose sand, presently struck something of a different quality that gave forth a hollow and resounding echo. He stooped to examine more closely.

But the small space made a long search impossible, and his footsteps, instead of shuffling through loose sand, soon hit something of a different quality that produced a hollow and resounding echo. He bent down to take a closer look.

He was standing exactly in the centre of the little chamber when this happened, and he at once began scraping away the sand with his feet. In less than a minute a smooth surface became visible—the surface of a wooden covering. The next thing I saw was that he had raised it and was peering down into a space below. Instantly, a strong odour of nitre and bitumen, mingled with the strange perfume of unknown and powdered aromatics, rose up from the uncovered space and filled the vault, stinging the throat and making the eyes water and smart.

He was standing right in the center of the small room when this happened, and he immediately started scraping away the sand with his feet. In less than a minute, a smooth surface was visible—the surface of a wooden covering. The next thing I saw was that he had lifted it and was looking down into a space below. Suddenly, a strong smell of saltpeter and bitumen, mixed with the strange fragrance of unknown powdered spices, rushed up from the uncovered space and filled the chamber, stinging the throat and making the eyes water and burn.

“The mummy!” whispered Dr. Silence, looking up into our faces over his candle; and as he said the word I felt the soldier lurch against me, and heard his breathing in my very ear.

“The mummy!” whispered Dr. Silence, looking up into our faces over his candle; and as he said the word, I felt the soldier lurch against me and heard his breathing right in my ear.

“The mummy!” he repeated under his breath, as we pressed forward to look.

“The mummy!” he muttered to himself as we moved closer to see.

It is difficult to say exactly why the sight should have stirred in me so prodigious an emotion of wonder and veneration, for I have had not a little to do with mummies, have unwound scores of them, and even experimented magically with not a few. But there was something in the sight of that grey and silent figure, lying in its modern box of lead and wood at the bottom of this sandy grave, swathed in the bandages of centuries and wrapped in the perfumed linen that the priests of Egypt had prayed over with their mighty enchantments thousands of years before—something in the sight of it lying there and breathing its own spice-laden atmosphere even in the darkness of its exile in this remote land, something that pierced to the very core of my being and touched that root of awe which slumbers in every man near the birth of tears and the passion of true worship.

It's tough to pinpoint exactly why the sight filled me with such an overwhelming sense of wonder and respect. I've dealt with mummies quite a bit, have unwrapped dozens of them, and even tried some magic tricks with a few. But there was something about that gray and silent figure, lying in its modern lead and wood coffin at the bottom of this sandy grave, wrapped in centuries-old bandages and perfumed linen that Egyptian priests had blessed with their powerful spells thousands of years ago—something about seeing it there, exuding its own spice-laden atmosphere even in the darkness of this remote place, that struck me deep and touched the deep-rooted sense of awe that lies within every person, just beneath the surface, close to the point of tears and the feeling of true reverence.

I remember turning quickly from the Colonel, lest he should see my emotion, yet fail to understand its cause, turn and clutch John Silence by the arm, and then fall trembling to see that he, too, had lowered his head and was hiding his face in his hands.

I remember spinning away from the Colonel so he wouldn’t notice how I felt, but also wouldn’t get why. I turned and grabbed John Silence by the arm, then froze when I saw that he had also hung his head and was hiding his face in his hands.

A kind of whirling storm came over me, rising out of I know not what utter deeps of memory, and in a whiteness of vision I heard the magical old chauntings from the Book of the Dead, and saw the Gods pass by in dim procession, the mighty, immemorial Beings who were yet themselves only the personified attributes of the true Gods, the God with the Eyes of Fire, the God with the Face of Smoke. I saw again Anubis, the dog-faced deity, and the children of Horus, eternal watcher of the ages, as they swathed Osiris, the first mummy of the world, in the scented and mystic bands, and I tasted again something of the ecstasy of the justified soul as it embarked in the golden Boat of Ra, and journeyed onwards to rest in the fields of the blessed.

A kind of spinning storm overcame me, rising from I don’t know what deep memory, and in a bright flash of vision, I heard the enchanting old chants from the Book of the Dead, and saw the gods pass by in a hazy procession—powerful, ancient beings who were also just the personifications of the true gods, the God with the Eyes of Fire, the God with the Face of Smoke. I saw Anubis, the dog-faced god, and the children of Horus, eternal watchers of the ages, as they wrapped Osiris, the first mummy of the world, in fragrant and mystical bands, and I felt again a bit of the ecstasy of the justified soul as it boarded the golden Boat of Ra and journeyed onward to find peace in the fields of the blessed.

And then, as Dr. Silence, with infinite reverence, stooped and touched the still face, so dreadfully staring with its painted eyes, there rose again to our nostrils wave upon wave of this perfume of thousands of years, and time fled backwards like a thing of naught, showing me in haunted panorama the most wonderful dream of the whole world.

And then, as Dr. Silence, with deep respect, bent down and touched the lifeless face, which stared so eerily with its painted eyes, we were hit again with waves of this perfume, rich with the scent of thousands of years, and time seemed to rewind, presenting me with a haunting panorama of the most incredible dream of the entire world.

A gentle hissing became audible in the air, and the doctor moved quickly backwards. It came close to our faces and then seemed to play about the walls and ceiling.

A soft hissing sound filled the air, and the doctor quickly stepped back. It got close to our faces and then appeared to dance around the walls and ceiling.

“The last of the Fire—still waiting for its full accomplishment,” he muttered; but I heard both words and hissing as things far away, for I was still busy with the journey of the soul through the Seven Halls of Death, listening for echoes of the grandest ritual ever known to men.

“The last of the Fire—still waiting for its full completion,” he muttered; but I perceived both the words and hissing as distant sounds, as I was still focused on the soul's journey through the Seven Halls of Death, listening for echoes of the greatest ritual ever known to humanity.

The earthen plates covered with hieroglyphics still lay beside the mummy, and round it, carefully arranged at the points of the compass, stood the four jars with the heads of the hawk, the jackal, the cynocephalus, and man, the jars in which were placed the hair, the nail parings, the heart, and other special portions of the body. Even the amulets, the mirror, the blue clay statues of the Ka, and the lamp with seven wicks were there. Only the sacred scarabæus was missing.

The clay plates covered with hieroglyphics still lay next to the mummy, and surrounding it, carefully arranged at the cardinal points, were the four jars with the heads of the hawk, the jackal, the cynocephalus, and a man. These jars contained the hair, nail clippings, the heart, and other important parts of the body. Even the amulets, the mirror, the blue clay statues of the Ka, and the lamp with seven wicks were present. The only thing missing was the sacred scarab.

“Not only has it been torn from its ancient resting-place,” I heard Dr. Silence saying in a solemn voice as he looked at Colonel Wragge with fixed gaze, “but it has been partially unwound,”—he pointed to the wrappings of the breast,—“and—the scarabæus has been removed from the throat.”

“Not only has it been taken from its ancient resting place,” I heard Dr. Silence say in a serious tone as he looked at Colonel Wragge with a steady gaze, “but it has been partially unwrapped,”—he pointed to the wrappings around the chest,—“and—the scarab has been taken out from the throat.”

The hissing, that was like the hissing of an invisible flame, had ceased; only from time to time we heard it as though it passed backwards and forwards in the tunnel; and we stood looking into each other’s faces without speaking.

The hissing, similar to an invisible flame, had stopped; occasionally, we heard it seem to move back and forth in the tunnel; and we stood there, looking into each other’s faces in silence.

Presently Colonel Wragge made a great effort and braced himself. I heard the sound catch in his throat before the words actually became audible.

Presently, Colonel Wragge gathered himself and prepared to speak. I heard the sound catch in his throat before the words finally came out.

“My sister,” he said, very low. And then there followed a long pause, broken at length by John Silence.

“My sister,” he said quietly. After a long pause, John Silence finally broke the silence.

“It must be replaced,” he said significantly.

“It needs to be replaced,” he said importantly.

“I knew nothing,” the soldier said, forcing himself to speak the words he hated saying. “Absolutely nothing.”

“I knew nothing,” the soldier said, pushing himself to say the words he despised. “Absolutely nothing.”

“It must be returned,” repeated the other, “if it is not now too late. For I fear—I fear——”

“It needs to be returned,” the other repeated, “if it's not too late now. Because I’m afraid—I’m afraid——”

Colonel Wragge made a movement of assent with his head.

Colonel Wragge nodded in agreement.

“It shall be,” he said.

“It will be,” he said.

The place was still as the grave.

The place was as quiet as a grave.

I do not know what it was then that made us all three turn round with so sudden a start, for there was no sound audible to my ears, at least.

I don’t know what caused all three of us to turn around so suddenly, because there was no sound that I could hear, at least.

The doctor was on the point of replacing the lid over the mummy, when he straightened up as if he had been shot.

The doctor was just about to put the lid back on the mummy when he suddenly stood up straight as if he had been shot.

“There’s something coming,” said Colonel Wragge under his breath, and the doctor’s eyes, peering down the small opening of the tunnel, showed me the true direction.

“There’s something coming,” Colonel Wragge said quietly, and the doctor’s eyes, looking down the narrow opening of the tunnel, revealed the true direction to me.

A distant shuffling noise became distinctly audible coming from a point about half-way down the tunnel we had so laboriously penetrated.

A faint shuffling noise became clearly audible from a spot about halfway down the tunnel we had worked so hard to get through.

“It’s the sand falling in,” I said, though I knew it was foolish.

“It’s the sand falling in,” I said, even though I knew it was silly.

“No,” said the Colonel calmly, in a voice that seemed to have the ring of iron, “I’ve heard it for some time past. It is something alive—and it is coming nearer.”

“No,” said the Colonel calmly, in a voice that had a tough edge to it, “I’ve been hearing it for a while now. It’s something alive—and it’s getting closer.”

He stared about him with a look of resolution that made his face almost noble. The horror in his heart was overmastering, yet he stood there prepared for anything that might come.

He looked around with a determined expression that made his face seem almost noble. The fear in his heart was overwhelming, yet he stood there ready for whatever might happen.

“There’s no other way out,” John Silence said.

“There's no other way out,” John Silence said.

He leaned the lid against the sand, and waited. I knew by the mask-like expression of his face, the pallor, and the steadiness of the eyes, that he anticipated something that might be very terrible—appalling.

He leaned the lid against the sand and waited. I could tell by the mask-like look on his face, the paleness, and the steadiness of his eyes that he was expecting something that could be very terrible—horrifying.

The Colonel and myself stood on either side of the opening. I still held my candle and was ashamed of the way it shook, dripping the grease all over me; but the soldier had set his into the sand just behind his feet.

The Colonel and I stood on either side of the opening. I still held my candle and was embarrassed by how it trembled, dripping the grease all over me; but the soldier had placed his into the sand right behind his feet.

Thoughts of being buried alive, of being smothered like rats in a trap, of being caught and done to death by some invisible and merciless force we could not grapple with, rushed into my mind. Then I thought of fire—of suffocation—of being roasted alive. The perspiration began to pour from my face.

Thoughts of being buried alive, being smothered like rats in a trap, getting caught and killed by some unseen and ruthless force we couldn't fight against flooded my mind. Then I thought of fire—of suffocation—of being burned alive. Sweat started to pour down my face.

“Steady!” came the voice of Dr. Silence to me through the vault.

“Steady!” Dr. Silence’s voice came to me through the vault.

For five minutes, that seemed fifty, we stood waiting, looking from each other’s faces to the mummy, and from the mummy to the hole, and all the time the shuffling sound, soft and stealthy, came gradually nearer. The tension, for me at least, was very near the breaking point when at last the cause of the disturbance reached the edge. It was hidden for a moment just behind the broken rim of soil. A jet of sand, shaken by the close vibration, trickled down on to the ground; I have never in my life seen anything fall with such laborious leisure. The next second, uttering a cry of curious quality, it came into view.

For five minutes, which felt like fifty, we stood there waiting, glancing from each other's faces to the mummy and then to the hole, while the soft, sneaky shuffling sound grew closer. The tension, at least for me, was nearly unbearable when finally the source of the disturbance reached the edge. It was hidden for a moment just behind the broken soil. A stream of sand, disturbed by the vibrations, trickled down to the ground; I’ve never seen anything fall so slowly and with such effort. The next second, letting out a strangely curious cry, it came into view.

And it was far more distressingly horrible than anything I had anticipated.

And it was way more distressing and terrible than anything I had expected.

For the sight of some Egyptian monster, some god of the tombs, or even of some demon of fire, I think I was already half prepared; but when, instead, I saw the white visage of Miss Wragge framed in that round opening of sand, followed by her body crawling on all-fours, her eyes bulging and reflecting the yellow glare of the candles, my first instinct was to turn and run like a frantic animal seeking a way of escape.

For the sight of some Egyptian monster, some god of the tombs, or even some fire demon, I think I was already half ready; but when I saw the pale face of Miss Wragge framed in that round opening of sand, followed by her crawling on all-fours, her eyes bulging and reflecting the yellow light of the candles, my first instinct was to turn and run like a panicked animal looking for a way to escape.

But Dr. Silence, who seemed no whit surprised, caught my arm and steadied me, and we both saw the Colonel then drop upon his knees and come thus to a level with his sister. For more than a whole minute, as though struck in stone, the two faces gazed silently at each other: her’s, for all the dreadful emotion in it, more like a gargoyle than anything human; and his, white and blank with an expression that was beyond either astonishment or alarm. She looked up; he looked down. It was a picture in a nightmare, and the candle, stuck in the sand close to the hole, threw upon it the glare of impromptu footlights.

But Dr. Silence, who didn’t seem at all surprised, caught my arm and steadied me, and we both watched the Colonel drop to his knees, bringing him closer to his sister. For over a full minute, as if frozen in stone, the two faces stared silently at each other: hers, despite the awful emotion in it, resembled a gargoyle more than anything human; and his, pale and blank, showed an expression that was beyond surprise or fear. She looked up; he looked down. It was a scene from a nightmare, and the candle, stuck in the sand near the hole, illuminated it like makeshift stage lights.

Then John Silence moved forward and spoke in a voice that was very low, yet perfectly calm and natural.

Then John Silence stepped forward and spoke in a voice that was very quiet, yet completely calm and natural.

“I am glad you have come,” he said. “You are the one person whose presence at this moment is most required. And I hope that you may yet be in time to appease the anger of the Fire, and to bring peace again to your household, and,” he added lower still so that no one heard it but myself, “safety to yourself.”

“I’m glad you’re here,” he said. “You’re the one person whose presence is most needed right now. I hope you can still calm the Fire's anger and restore peace to your home, and,” he added in a whisper so that no one else could hear, “safety for yourself.”

And while her brother stumbled backwards, crushing a candle into the sand in his awkwardness, the old lady crawled farther into the vaulted chamber and slowly rose upon her feet.

And while her brother tripped backward, smashing a candle into the sand in his clumsiness, the old woman crawled deeper into the vaulted room and gradually stood up.

At the sight of the wrapped figure of the mummy I was fully prepared to see her scream and faint, but on the contrary, to my complete amazement, she merely bowed her head and dropped quietly upon her knees. Then, after a pause of more than a minute, she raised her eyes to the roof and her lips began to mutter as in prayer. Her right hand, meanwhile, which had been fumbling for some time at her throat, suddenly came away, and before the gaze of all of us she held it out, palm upwards, over the grey and ancient figure outstretched below. And in it we beheld glistening the green jasper of the stolen scarabæus.

At the sight of the wrapped mummy, I expected her to scream and faint, but to my surprise, she simply bowed her head and quietly dropped to her knees. Then, after a pause of more than a minute, she looked up at the ceiling and began to mutter as if in prayer. Meanwhile, her right hand, which had been searching at her throat for a while, suddenly came away. With all our eyes on her, she held it out, palm up, over the grey, ancient figure laid out below. And in it, we saw the green jasper of the stolen scarab shining.

Her brother, leaning heavily against the wall behind, uttered a sound that was half cry, half exclamation, but John Silence, standing directly in front of her, merely fixed his eyes on her and pointed downwards to the staring face below.

Her brother, leaning against the wall behind him, made a noise that was part cry, part exclamation, but John Silence, standing right in front of her, just locked his gaze onto her and pointed down at the wide-eyed face below.

“Replace it,” he said sternly, “where it belongs.”

“Put it back,” he said firmly, “where it belongs.”

Miss Wragge was kneeling at the feet of the mummy when this happened. We three men all had our eyes riveted on what followed. Only the reader who by some remote chance may have witnessed a line of mummies, freshly laid from their tombs upon the sand, slowly stir and bend as the heat of the Egyptian sun warms their ancient bodies into the semblance of life, can form any conception of the ultimate horror we experienced when the silent figure before us moved in its grave of lead and sand. Slowly, before our eyes, it writhed, and, with a faint rustling of the immemorial cerements, rose up, and, through sightless and bandaged eyes, stared across the yellow candle-light at the woman who had violated it.

Miss Wragge was kneeling at the feet of the mummy when this happened. The three of us were completely focused on what happened next. Only someone who has coincidentally seen a row of mummies, freshly removed from their tombs and laid out on the sand, slowly begin to stir and bend as the heat of the Egyptian sun warms their ancient bodies back to life can understand the intense horror we felt when the silent figure in front of us stirred in its grave of lead and sand. Slowly, right in front of us, it twisted, and, with a faint rustling of the ancient wrappings, rose up, and, with its sightless and bandaged eyes, stared across the flickering candlelight at the woman who had disturbed it.

I tried to move—her brother tried to move—but the sand seemed to hold our feet. I tried to cry—her brother tried to cry—but the sand seemed to fill our lungs and throat. We could only stare—and, even so, the sand seemed to rise like a desert storm and cloud our vision....

I tried to move—her brother tried to move—but the sand felt like it was keeping our feet stuck. I tried to cry—her brother tried to cry—but the sand felt like it was filling our lungs and throats. We could only stare—and even then, the sand seemed to rise like a desert storm and blur our vision....

And when I managed at length to open my eyes again, the mummy was lying once more upon its back, motionless, the shrunken and painted face upturned towards the ceiling, and the old lady had tumbled forward and was lying in the semblance of death with her head and arms upon its crumbling body.

And when I finally managed to open my eyes again, the mummy was lying on its back, still and silent, its shriveled and painted face turned toward the ceiling, while the old lady had fallen forward, resting on its decaying body, looking as if she were dead, with her head and arms sprawled across it.

But upon the wrappings of the throat I saw the green jasper of the sacred scarabæus shining again like a living eye.

But on the wrappings around the throat, I saw the green jasper of the sacred scarab shining again like a living eye.

Colonel Wragge and the doctor recovered themselves long before I did, and I found myself helping them clumsily and unintelligently to raise the frail body of the old lady, while John Silence carefully replaced the covering over the grave and scraped back the sand with his foot, while he issued brief directions.

Colonel Wragge and the doctor got themselves together much faster than I did, and I ended up awkwardly and cluelessly helping them lift the fragile body of the old lady, while John Silence thoughtfully put the covering back over the grave and kicked some sand back with his foot, giving short instructions as he did so.

I heard his voice as in a dream; but the journey back along that cramped tunnel, weighted by a dead woman, blinded with sand, suffocated with heat, was in no sense a dream. It took us the best part of half an hour to reach the open air. And, even then, we had to wait a considerable time for the appearance of Dr. Silence. We carried her undiscovered into the house and up to her own room.

I heard his voice as if it were a dream; but the trip back through that cramped tunnel, weighed down by a dead woman, blinded by sand, and suffocated by heat, was definitely not a dream. It took us nearly half an hour to get to the fresh air. And, even after that, we had to wait quite a while for Dr. Silence to show up. We carried her in unnoticed and took her up to her own room.

“The mummy will cause no further disturbance,” I heard Dr. Silence say to our host later that evening as we prepared to drive for the night train, “provided always,” he added significantly, “that you, and yours, cause it no disturbance.”

“The mummy won’t cause any more trouble,” I heard Dr. Silence say to our host later that evening as we got ready to head to the night train, “as long as,” he added meaningfully, “you and your people don’t disturb it.”

It was in a dream, too, that we left.

It was also in a dream that we left.

“You did not see her face, I know,” he said to me as we wrapped our rugs about us in the empty compartment. And when I shook my head, quite unable to explain the instinct that had come to me not to look, he turned towards me, his face pale, and genuinely sad.

“You didn’t see her face, I know,” he said to me as we wrapped our rugs around us in the empty compartment. And when I shook my head, unable to explain the instinct that made me not want to look, he turned towards me, his face pale and truly sad.

“Scorched and blasted,” he whispered.

“Burned and destroyed,” he whispered.


CASE IV
SECRET WORSHIP


CASE IV
SECRET WORSHIP

Harris, the silk merchant, was in South Germany on his way home from a business trip when the idea came to him suddenly that he would take the mountain railway from Strassbourg and run down to revisit his old school after an interval of something more than thirty years. And it was to this chance impulse of the junior partner in Harris Brothers of St. Paul’s Churchyard that John Silence owed one of the most curious cases of his whole experience, for at that very moment he happened to be tramping these same mountains with a holiday knapsack, and from different points of the compass the two men were actually converging towards the same inn.

Harris, the silk merchant, was in South Germany on his way home from a business trip when he suddenly had the idea to take the mountain railway from Strasbourg and head down to revisit his old school after more than thirty years. It was this chance decision by the junior partner of Harris Brothers in St. Paul’s Churchyard that led John Silence to one of the most intriguing cases of his entire career, as he happened to be hiking through those same mountains with a holiday backpack, and the two men were actually heading toward the same inn from different directions.

Now, deep down in the heart that for thirty years had been concerned chiefly with the profitable buying and selling of silk, this school had left the imprint of its peculiar influence, and, though perhaps unknown to Harris, had strongly coloured the whole of his subsequent existence. It belonged to the deeply religious life of a small Protestant community (which it is unnecessary to specify), and his father had sent him there at the age of fifteen, partly because he would learn the German requisite for the conduct of the silk business, and partly because the discipline was strict, and discipline was what his soul and body needed just then more than anything else.

Now, deep down in the heart that had been focused mainly on the profitable buying and selling of silk for thirty years, this school had left a mark of its unique influence, and, although Harris may not have realized it, it had significantly shaped his entire life afterward. It was part of the deeply religious life of a small Protestant community (which doesn't need to be named), and his father had sent him there at the age of fifteen, partly so he would learn the German necessary for running the silk business, and partly because the strict discipline was exactly what his soul and body needed at that moment more than anything else.

The life, indeed, had proved exceedingly severe, and young Harris benefited accordingly; for though corporal punishment was unknown, there was a system of mental and spiritual correction which somehow made the soul stand proudly erect to receive it, while it struck at the very root of the fault and taught the boy that his character was being cleaned and strengthened, and that he was not merely being tortured in a kind of personal revenge.

The life had definitely been really tough, and young Harris learned a lot from it; even though physical punishment didn’t exist, there was a way of mental and spiritual correction that somehow made him hold his head high while it hit at the core of his flaws. It taught him that his character was being refined and strengthened, and that he wasn't just being punished out of personal spite.

That was over thirty years ago, when he was a dreamy and impressionable youth of fifteen; and now, as the train climbed slowly up the winding mountain gorges, his mind travelled back somewhat lovingly over the intervening period, and forgotten details rose vividly again before him out of the shadows. The life there had been very wonderful, it seemed to him, in that remote mountain village, protected from the tumults of the world by the love and worship of the devout Brotherhood that ministered to the needs of some hundred boys from every country in Europe. Sharply the scenes came back to him. He smelt again the long stone corridors, the hot pinewood rooms, where the sultry hours of summer study were passed with bees droning through open windows in the sunshine, and German characters struggling in the mind with dreams of English lawns—and then the sudden awful cry of the master in German—

That was over thirty years ago when he was a dreamy and impressionable fifteen-year-old. Now, as the train slowly climbed up the winding mountain gorges, his mind fondly drifted back over the years that had passed, and forgotten details came rushing back to him vividly from the shadows. Life in that remote mountain village had been truly wonderful, as he remembered, sheltered from the chaos of the world by the love and devotion of the Brotherhood that cared for the needs of about a hundred boys from every country in Europe. The scenes flashed back to him. He could smell the long stone corridors, the hot pinewood rooms where the sweltering summer study hours were spent with bees buzzing through open windows in the sunshine, and German words clashing in his mind with visions of English lawns—and then the sudden, terrifying shout from the master in German—

“Harris, stand up! You sleep!”

“Harris, get up! You’re sleeping!”

And he recalled the dreadful standing motionless for an hour, book in hand, while the knees felt like wax and the head grew heavier than a cannon-ball.

And he remembered the awful experience of standing still for an hour, book in hand, while his knees felt like jelly and his head became heavier than a cannonball.

The very smell of the cooking came back to him—the daily Sauerkraut, the watery chocolate on Sundays, the flavour of the stringy meat served twice a week at Mittagessen; and he smiled to think again of the half-rations that was the punishment for speaking English. The very odour of the milk-bowls,—the hot sweet aroma that rose from the soaking peasant-bread at the six-o’clock breakfast,—came back to him pungently, and he saw the huge Speisesaal with the hundred boys in their school uniform, all eating sleepily in silence, gulping down the coarse bread and scalding milk in terror of the bell that would presently cut them short—and, at the far end where the masters sat, he saw the narrow slit windows with the vistas of enticing field and forest beyond.

The smell of the cooking hit him again—the daily Sauerkraut, the watery chocolate on Sundays, the taste of the tough meat served twice a week at Mittagessen; and he smiled at the thought of the half-rations that were the punishment for speaking English. The scent of the milk bowls—the hot sweet aroma rising from the soaking peasant bread at the six o’clock breakfast—came back to him vividly, and he imagined the large Speisesaal filled with a hundred boys in their school uniforms, all eating sleepily in silence, gulping down the rough bread and scalding milk in fear of the bell that would soon interrupt them—and, at the far end where the teachers sat, he noticed the narrow slit windows overlooking inviting fields and forests beyond.

And this, in turn, made him think of the great barn-like room on the top floor where all slept together in wooden cots, and he heard in memory the clamour of the cruel bell that woke them on winter mornings at five o’clock and summoned them to the stone-flagged Waschkammer, where boys and masters alike, after scanty and icy washing, dressed in complete silence.

And this made him think of the big barn-like room on the top floor where everyone slept together in wooden cots. He could recall the loud ringing of the harsh bell that woke them up on winter mornings at five o’clock and called them to the stone-flagged Waschkammer, where both boys and teachers, after a quick and cold wash, got dressed in complete silence.

From this his mind passed swiftly, with vivid picture-thoughts, to other things, and with a passing shiver he remembered how the loneliness of never being alone had eaten into him, and how everything—work, meals, sleep, walks, leisure—was done with his “division” of twenty other boys and under the eyes of at least two masters. The only solitude possible was by asking for half an hour’s practice in the cell-like music rooms, and Harris smiled to himself as he recalled the zeal of his violin studies.

From there, his mind quickly shifted, filled with vivid thoughts, to other things, and with a slight shiver he remembered how the loneliness of never being alone had consumed him, and how everything—work, meals, sleep, walks, leisure—was done with his “division” of twenty other boys and under the watchful eyes of at least two teachers. The only way to find solitude was by asking for half an hour of practice in the cramped music rooms, and Harris smiled to himself as he thought back on his dedication to his violin studies.

Then, as the train puffed laboriously through the great pine forests that cover these mountains with a giant carpet of velvet, he found the pleasanter layers of memory giving up their dead, and he recalled with admiration the kindness of the masters, whom all addressed as Brother, and marvelled afresh at their devotion in burying themselves for years in such a place, only to leave it, in most cases, for the still rougher life of missionaries in the wild places of the world.

Then, as the train struggled through the vast pine forests that blanket these mountains like a giant velvet carpet, he discovered the nicer memories resurfacing, and he remembered with gratitude the kindness of the masters, whom everyone called Brother. He was once again amazed by their commitment to spending years in such a place, only to leave it, in most cases, for the even tougher life of missionaries in the remote areas of the world.

He thought once more of the still, religious atmosphere that hung over the little forest community like a veil, barring the distressful world; of the picturesque ceremonies at Easter, Christmas, and New Year; of the numerous feast-days and charming little festivals. The Beschehr-Fest, in particular, came back to him,—the feast of gifts at Christmas,—when the entire community paired off and gave presents, many of which had taken weeks to make or the savings of many days to purchase. And then he saw the midnight ceremony in the church at New Year, with the shining face of the Prediger in the pulpit,—the village preacher who, on the last night of the old year, saw in the empty gallery beyond the organ loft the faces of all who were to die in the ensuing twelve months, and who at last recognised himself among them, and, in the very middle of his sermon, passed into a state of rapt ecstasy and burst into a torrent of praise.

He thought again about the calm, spiritual vibe that surrounded the small forest community like a veil, shielding them from the troubling outside world; about the lovely ceremonies during Easter, Christmas, and New Year; about the many feast days and delightful little festivals. The Beschehr-Fest, in particular, came to mind—the gift-giving celebration at Christmas—when the whole community paired up to exchange presents, many of which took weeks to make or savings from many days to buy. Then he pictured the midnight service at the church on New Year’s, with the radiant face of the Prediger in the pulpit—the village preacher who, on the last night of the old year, looked into the empty gallery beyond the organ loft and saw the faces of everyone who would die in the coming twelve months, finally recognizing himself among them, and in the middle of his sermon, he fell into a state of ecstatic rapture and erupted into a flood of praise.

Thickly the memories crowded upon him. The picture of the small village dreaming its unselfish life on the mountain-tops, clean, wholesome, simple, searching vigorously for its God, and training hundreds of boys in the grand way, rose up in his mind with all the power of an obsession. He felt once more the old mystical enthusiasm, deeper than the sea and more wonderful than the stars; he heard again the winds sighing from leagues of forest over the red roofs in the moonlight; he heard the Brothers’ voices talking of the things beyond this life as though they had actually experienced them in the body; and, as he sat in the jolting train, a spirit of unutterable longing passed over his seared and tired soul, stirring in the depths of him a sea of emotions that he thought had long since frozen into immobility.

Memories flooded his mind. The image of the small village living selflessly on the mountaintops—clean, wholesome, simple, passionately searching for its God and guiding hundreds of boys in an inspiring way—rose up with all the intensity of an obsession. He once again felt the old mystical enthusiasm, deeper than the ocean and more amazing than the stars; he heard the winds whispering from miles of forest over the red rooftops in the moonlight; he heard the Brothers discussing things beyond this life as if they had actually experienced them physically; and as he sat in the jarring train, a wave of profound longing swept over his weary and scarred soul, awakening a torrent of emotions he thought had long since frozen into stillness.

And the contrast pained him,—the idealistic dreamer then, the man of business now,—so that a spirit of unworldly peace and beauty known only to the soul in meditation laid its feathered finger upon his heart, moving strangely the surface of the waters.

And the contrast bothered him—the idealistic dreamer he once was, the businessman he had become—so that a sense of otherworldly peace and beauty, known only to a soul in meditation, gently touched his heart, stirring the surface of the waters.

Harris shivered a little and looked out of the window of his empty carriage. The train had long passed Hornberg, and far below the streams tumbled in white foam down the limestone rocks. In front of him, dome upon dome of wooded mountain stood against the sky. It was October, and the air was cool and sharp, wood-smoke and damp moss exquisitely mingled in it with the subtle odours of the pines. Overhead, between the tips of the highest firs, he saw the first stars peeping, and the sky was a clean, pale amethyst that seemed exactly the colour all these memories clothed themselves with in his mind.

Harris shivered a bit and looked out of the window of his empty train carriage. The train had already passed Hornberg, and far below, streams cascaded in white foam down the limestone rocks. In front of him, dome after dome of wooded mountains stood against the sky. It was October, and the air was cool and crisp, with the scents of wood smoke and damp moss blending beautifully with the subtle aromas of the pines. Above, between the tops of the tallest firs, he spotted the first stars peeking out, and the sky was a clear, pale amethyst that seemed to be exactly the color that all these memories took on in his mind.

He leaned back in his corner and sighed. He was a heavy man, and he had not known sentiment for years; he was a big man, and it took much to move him, literally and figuratively; he was a man in whom the dreams of God that haunt the soul in youth, though overlaid by the scum that gathers in the fight for money, had not, as with the majority, utterly died the death.

He leaned back in his corner and sighed. He was a big guy, and he hadn’t felt emotions in years; he was a large man, and it took a lot to move him, both physically and emotionally; he was someone in whom the dreams of God that linger in the soul during youth, despite being obscured by the grime that builds up in the struggle for money, had not, like with most people, completely faded away.

He came back into this little neglected pocket of the years, where so much fine gold had collected and lain undisturbed, with all his semi-spiritual emotions aquiver; and, as he watched the mountain-tops come nearer, and smelt the forgotten odours of his boyhood, something melted on the surface of his soul and left him sensitive to a degree he had not known since, thirty years before, he had lived here with his dreams, his conflicts, and his youthful suffering.

He returned to this little forgotten corner of time, where so much precious gold had gathered and stayed untouched, with all his half-spiritual feelings buzzing; and, as he saw the mountain tops get closer and caught the long-lost scents of his childhood, something softened in his soul and made him more sensitive than he had been in thirty years since he lived here with his dreams, struggles, and youthful pain.

A thrill ran through him as the train stopped with a jolt at a tiny station and he saw the name in large black lettering on the grey stone building, and below it, the number of metres it stood above the level of the sea.

A rush of excitement went through him as the train came to a sudden stop at a small station, and he saw the name in big black letters on the gray stone building, along with the number of meters it was above sea level.

“The highest point on the line!” he exclaimed. “How well I remember it—Sommerau—Summer Meadow. The very next station is mine!”

“The highest point on the line!” he exclaimed. “I remember it so well—Sommerau—Summer Meadow. The very next station is mine!”

And, as the train ran downhill with brakes on and steam shut off, he put his head out of the window and one by one saw the old familiar landmarks in the dusk. They stared at him like dead faces in a dream. Queer, sharp feelings, half poignant, half sweet, stirred in his heart.

And, as the train went downhill with the brakes on and the steam turned off, he stuck his head out of the window and one by one saw the old familiar landmarks in the fading light. They looked at him like lifeless faces in a dream. Strange, intense feelings, half bittersweet, half comforting, stirred in his heart.

“There’s the hot, white road we walked along so often with the two Brüder always at our heels,” he thought; “and there, by Jove, is the turn through the forest to ‘Die Galgen,’ the stone gallows where they hanged the witches in olden days!”

“There's the hot, white road we walked down so often with the two Brüder always right behind us,” he thought; “and there, by God, is the turn into the forest to ‘Die Galgen,’ the stone gallows where they hanged the witches in the old days!"

He smiled a little as the train slid past.

He smiled a bit as the train whizzed by.

“And there’s the copse where the Lilies of the Valley powdered the ground in spring; and, I swear,”—he put his head out with a sudden impulse,—“if that’s not the very clearing where Calame, the French boy, chased the swallow-tail with me, and Bruder Pagel gave us half-rations for leaving the road without permission, and for shouting in our mother tongues!” And he laughed again as the memories came back with a rush, flooding his mind with vivid detail.

“And there’s the small woods where the Lilies of the Valley covered the ground in spring; and, I swear,”—he leaned his head out with a sudden impulse,—“if that’s not the exact clearing where Calame, the French boy, chased the swallowtail with me, and Bruder Pagel gave us half-rations for leaving the road without permission, and for shouting in our native languages!” And he laughed again as the memories came rushing back, filling his mind with vivid detail.

The train stopped, and he stood on the grey gravel platform like a man in a dream. It seemed half a century since he last waited there with corded wooden boxes, and got into the train for Strassbourg and home after the two years’ exile. Time dropped from him like an old garment and he felt a boy again. Only, things looked so much smaller than his memory of them; shrunk and dwindled they looked, and the distances seemed on a curiously smaller scale.

The train came to a halt, and he stood on the gray gravel platform like someone in a dream. It felt like it had been ages since he last waited there with his tied wooden boxes and boarded the train to Strasbourg and home after two years away. Time felt like it had fallen away from him like an old piece of clothing, and he felt like a kid again. But everything seemed so much smaller than he remembered; it all looked shrunk and diminished, and the distances felt oddly smaller too.

He made his way across the road to the little Gasthaus, and, as he went, faces and figures of former schoolfellows,—German, Swiss, Italian, French, Russian,—slipped out of the shadowy woods and silently accompanied him. They flitted by his side, raising their eyes questioningly, sadly, to his. But their names he had forgotten. Some of the Brothers, too, came with them, and most of these he remembered by name—Bruder Röst, Bruder Pagel, Bruder Schliemann, and the bearded face of the old preacher who had seen himself in the haunted gallery of those about to die—Bruder Gysin. The dark forest lay all about him like a sea that any moment might rush with velvet waves upon the scene and sweep all the faces away. The air was cool and wonderfully fragrant, but with every perfumed breath came also a pallid memory....

He walked across the road to the small inn, and as he did, the faces and figures of former classmates—German, Swiss, Italian, French, Russian—emerged from the shadowy woods and quietly accompanied him. They drifted by his side, looking up at him with questioning, sad eyes. But he had forgotten their names. Some of the Brothers also joined them, and he remembered most of them by name—Brother Röst, Brother Pagel, Brother Schliemann, and the bearded face of the old preacher who had seen himself in the haunted gallery of those about to die—Brother Gysin. The dark forest surrounded him like a sea that could at any moment rush in with soft waves and sweep all the faces away. The air was cool and wonderfully fragrant, but with every fragrant breath came a haunting memory....

Yet, in spite of the underlying sadness inseparable from such an experience, it was all very interesting, and held a pleasure peculiarly its own, so that Harris engaged his room and ordered supper feeling well pleased with himself, and intending to walk up to the old school that very evening. It stood in the centre of the community’s village, some four miles distant through the forest, and he now recollected for the first time that this little Protestant settlement dwelt isolated in a section of the country that was otherwise Catholic. Crucifixes and shrines surrounded the clearing like the sentries of a beleaguring army. Once beyond the square of the village, with its few acres of field and orchard, the forest crowded up in solid phalanxes, and beyond the rim of trees began the country that was ruled by the priests of another faith. He vaguely remembered, too, that the Catholics had showed sometimes a certain hostility towards the little Protestant oasis that flourished so quietly and benignly in their midst. He had quite forgotten this. How trumpery it all seemed now with his wide experience of life and his knowledge of other countries and the great outside world. It was like stepping back, not thirty years, but three hundred.

Yet, despite the sadness that comes with such an experience, it was really interesting and had a unique pleasure of its own. So, Harris booked a room and ordered supper, feeling quite pleased with himself, and planned to walk up to the old school that very evening. It was located in the center of the village, about four miles away through the forest. For the first time, he remembered that this little Protestant settlement was isolated in a part of the country that was mostly Catholic. Crucifixes and shrines surrounded the clearing like sentinels of a besieged army. Once past the village square, with its few acres of fields and orchards, the forest pressed in tightly, and beyond the line of trees lay land governed by priests of a different faith. He also vaguely recalled that the Catholics had sometimes shown a certain hostility towards the little Protestant oasis that thrived so quietly and kindly in their midst. He had completely forgotten this. Now, with his broad life experience and knowledge of other countries and the wider world, it all seemed so trivial. It felt like stepping back not thirty years, but three hundred.

There were only two others besides himself at supper. One of them, a bearded, middle-aged man in tweeds, sat by himself at the far end, and Harris kept out of his way because he was English. He feared he might be in business, possibly even in the silk business, and that he would perhaps talk on the subject. The other traveller, however, was a Catholic priest. He was a little man who ate his salad with a knife, yet so gently that it was almost inoffensive, and it was the sight of “the cloth” that recalled his memory of the old antagonism. Harris mentioned by way of conversation the object of his sentimental journey, and the priest looked up sharply at him with raised eyebrows and an expression of surprise and suspicion that somehow piqued him. He ascribed it to his difference of belief.

There were only two others at dinner besides him. One of them, a bearded, middle-aged man in tweed, sat by himself at the far end, and Harris avoided him because he was English. He worried that the man might be in business, possibly in the silk trade, and would start talking about it. The other traveler, however, was a Catholic priest. He was a short man who ate his salad with a knife, but so gently that it was almost unnoticeable, and seeing "the cloth" reminded him of their old rivalry. Harris brought up the reason for his sentimental journey as a conversation starter, and the priest looked up at him sharply with raised eyebrows and an expression of surprise and suspicion that somehow intrigued him. He attributed it to their differing beliefs.

“Yes,” went on the silk merchant, pleased to talk of what his mind was so full, “and it was a curious experience for an English boy to be dropped down into a school of a hundred foreigners. I well remember the loneliness and intolerable Heimweh of it at first.” His German was very fluent.

“Yes,” continued the silk merchant, happy to discuss what was on his mind, “and it was a strange experience for an English boy to be thrown into a school with a hundred foreigners. I clearly remember the loneliness and unbearable homesickness of it at first.” His German was very fluent.

The priest opposite looked up from his cold veal and potato salad and smiled. It was a nice face. He explained quietly that he did not belong here, but was making a tour of the parishes of Württemberg and Baden.

The priest across from him looked up from his cold veal and potato salad and smiled. He had a nice face. He quietly explained that he didn’t belong here, but was touring the parishes of Württemberg and Baden.

“It was a strict life,” added Harris. “We English, I remember, used to call it Gefängnisleben—prison life!”

“It was a strict life,” added Harris. “We English, I remember, used to call it Gefängnisleben—prison life!”

The face of the other, for some unaccountable reason, darkened. After a slight pause, and more by way of politeness than because he wished to continue the subject, he said quietly—

The other person's face, for some unknown reason, fell. After a brief pause, and more out of politeness than a desire to keep the conversation going, he said quietly—

“It was a flourishing school in those days, of course. Afterwards, I have heard——” He shrugged his shoulders slightly, and the odd look—it almost seemed a look of alarm—came back into his eyes. The sentence remained unfinished.

“It was a thriving school back then, of course. After that, I heard——” He shrugged his shoulders a bit, and the strange look—it almost looked like alarm—returned to his eyes. The sentence was left hanging.

Something in the tone of the man seemed to his listener uncalled for—in a sense reproachful, singular. Harris bridled in spite of himself.

Something in the man's tone felt unnecessary to his listener—in a way, it was reproachful and unusual. Harris couldn't help but feel defensive.

“It has changed?” he asked. “I can hardly believe——”

"Has it changed?" he asked. "I can barely believe——"

“You have not heard, then?” observed the priest gently, making a gesture as though to cross himself, yet not actually completing it. “You have not heard what happened there before it was abandoned——?”

“You haven't heard, then?” the priest noted softly, making a gesture as if to cross himself but not actually doing it. “You haven't heard what happened there before it was abandoned—?”

It was very childish, of course, and perhaps he was overtired and overwrought in some way, but the words and manner of the little priest seemed to him so offensive—so disproportionately offensive—that he hardly noticed the concluding sentence. He recalled the old bitterness and the old antagonism, and for a moment he almost lost his temper.

It was definitely childish, and maybe he was just exhausted and stressed out, but the words and attitude of the little priest felt so offensive—so incredibly offensive—that he barely registered the last sentence. He remembered the past bitterness and the old hostility, and for a moment, he nearly lost his cool.

“Nonsense,” he interrupted with a forced laugh, “Unsinn! You must forgive me, sir, for contradicting you. But I was a pupil there myself. I was at school there. There was no place like it. I cannot believe that anything serious could have happened to—to take away its character. The devotion of the Brothers would be difficult to equal anywhere——”

“Nonsense,” he interrupted with a forced laugh, “Unsinn! You have to forgive me, sir, for disagreeing with you. But I was a student there myself. I went to school there. There was no place like it. I can’t believe that anything serious could have happened to—to change its character. The dedication of the Brothers would be hard to match anywhere——”

He broke off suddenly, realising that his voice had been raised unduly and that the man at the far end of the table might understand German; and at the same moment he looked up and saw that this individual’s eyes were fixed upon his face intently. They were peculiarly bright. Also they were rather wonderful eyes, and the way they met his own served in some way he could not understand to convey both a reproach and a warning. The whole face of the stranger, indeed, made a vivid impression upon him, for it was a face, he now noticed for the first time, in whose presence one would not willingly have said or done anything unworthy. Harris could not explain to himself how it was he had not become conscious sooner of its presence.

He suddenly stopped, realizing that he had raised his voice too much and that the man at the far end of the table might understand German. At the same moment, he looked up and saw that this person's eyes were focused intently on his face. They were unusually bright. In fact, they were quite striking, and the way they met his own somehow conveyed both a reproach and a warning that he couldn't quite grasp. The stranger's entire face left a strong impression on him; he now noticed for the first time that it was a face in the presence of which one wouldn’t want to say or do anything unworthy. Harris couldn’t figure out why he hadn’t been aware of it sooner.

But he could have bitten off his tongue for having so far forgotten himself. The little priest lapsed into silence. Only once he said, looking up and speaking in a low voice that was not intended to be overheard, but that evidently was overheard, “You will find it different.” Presently he rose and left the table with a polite bow that included both the others.

But he could have bitten off his tongue for forgetting himself so completely. The little priest fell silent. Only once did he look up and speak in a low voice that wasn't meant to be overheard, but clearly was, “You’ll find it different.” Soon after, he got up and left the table with a polite bow that included both of the others.

And, after him, from the far end rose also the figure in the tweed suit, leaving Harris by himself.

And after him, the figure in the tweed suit rose from the far end, leaving Harris alone.

He sat on for a bit in the darkening room, sipping his coffee and smoking his fifteen-pfennig cigar, till the girl came in to light the oil lamps. He felt vexed with himself for his lapse from good manners, yet hardly able to account for it. Most likely, he reflected, he had been annoyed because the priest had unintentionally changed the pleasant character of his dream by introducing a jarring note. Later he must seek an opportunity to make amends. At present, however, he was too impatient for his walk to the school, and he took his stick and hat and passed out into the open air.

He sat for a while in the darkening room, sipping his coffee and smoking his fifteen-pfennig cigar, until the girl came in to light the oil lamps. He felt annoyed with himself for his bad manners, but couldn’t really explain why. Most likely, he thought, he had been irritated because the priest had accidentally disrupted the pleasant feel of his dream with a jarring note. Later, he would need to find a chance to apologize. For now, though, he was too anxious to walk to the school, so he grabbed his stick and hat and stepped out into the fresh air.

And, as he crossed before the Gasthaus, he noticed that the priest and the man in the tweed suit were engaged already in such deep conversation that they hardly noticed him as he passed and raised his hat.

And, as he walked by the Gasthaus, he saw that the priest and the guy in the tweed suit were so deep in conversation that they barely noticed him as he walked past and tipped his hat.

He started off briskly, well remembering the way, and hoping to reach the village in time to have a word with one of the Brüder. They might even ask him in for a cup of coffee. He felt sure of his welcome, and the old memories were in full possession once more. The hour of return was a matter of no consequence whatever.

He set off quickly, clearly remembering the path, and hoping to reach the village in time to chat with one of the Brüder. They might even invite him in for a cup of coffee. He was confident he would be welcomed, and the old memories flooded back to him once more. The time of his return was completely unimportant.

It was then just after seven o’clock, and the October evening was drawing in with chill airs from the recesses of the forest. The road plunged straight from the railway clearing into its depths, and in a very few minutes the trees engulfed him and the clack of his boots fell dead and echoless against the serried stems of a million firs. It was very black; one trunk was hardly distinguishable from another. He walked smartly, swinging his holly stick. Once or twice he passed a peasant on his way to bed, and the guttural “Gruss Got,” unheard for so long, emphasised the passage of time, while yet making it seem as nothing. A fresh group of pictures crowded his mind. Again the figures of former schoolfellows flitted out of the forest and kept pace by his side, whispering of the doings of long ago. One reverie stepped hard upon the heels of another. Every turn in the road, every clearing of the forest, he knew, and each in turn brought forgotten associations to life. He enjoyed himself thoroughly.

It was just after seven o’clock, and the October evening was closing in with cool breezes from the depths of the forest. The road plunged straight from the railway clearing into the woods, and in just a few minutes, the trees surrounded him, muffling the sound of his boots against the many firs. It was very dark; one trunk was barely distinguishable from another. He walked quickly, swinging his holly stick. Once or twice, he passed a peasant heading to bed, and the guttural “Gruss Got,” which he hadn’t heard in so long, highlighted the passage of time while somehow making it feel insignificant. A new series of memories crowded his mind. Once more, the figures of old schoolmates emerged from the forest and walked alongside him, whispering about things from long ago. One daydream collided with another. He recognized every turn in the road, every clearing in the forest, and each one brought forgotten memories back to life. He was thoroughly enjoying himself.

He marched on and on. There was powdered gold in the sky till the moon rose, and then a wind of faint silver spread silently between the earth and stars. He saw the tips of the fir trees shimmer, and heard them whisper as the breeze turned their needles towards the light. The mountain air was indescribably sweet. The road shone like the foam of a river through the gloom. White moths flitted here and there like silent thoughts across his path, and a hundred smells greeted him from the forest caverns across the years.

He kept walking and walking. There was golden powder in the sky until the moon rose, and then a soft silver wind spread quietly between the earth and stars. He noticed the tips of the fir trees glimmer, and heard them whisper as the breeze turned their needles toward the light. The mountain air was incredibly sweet. The road sparkled like river foam in the dark. White moths flitted here and there like silent thoughts crossing his path, and a hundred scents welcomed him from the forest depths over the years.

Then, when he least expected it, the trees fell away abruptly on both sides, and he stood on the edge of the village clearing.

Then, when he least expected it, the trees suddenly dropped away on both sides, and he found himself at the edge of the village clearing.

He walked faster. There lay the familiar outlines of the houses, sheeted with silver; there stood the trees in the little central square with the fountain and small green lawns; there loomed the shape of the church next to the Gasthof der Brüdergemeinde; and just beyond, dimly rising into the sky, he saw with a sudden thrill the mass of the huge school building, blocked castle-like with deep shadows in the moonlight, standing square and formidable to face him after the silences of more than a quarter of a century.

He walked faster. There were the familiar outlines of the houses, covered in silver; there stood the trees in the small central square with the fountain and little green lawns; there loomed the shape of the church next to the Gasthof der Brüdergemeinde; and just beyond, faintly rising into the sky, he saw with a sudden thrill the bulk of the massive school building, castle-like and shrouded in deep shadows in the moonlight, standing strong and imposing to face him after the quiet of more than twenty-five years.

He passed quickly down the deserted village street and stopped close beneath its shadow, staring up at the walls that had once held him prisoner for two years—two unbroken years of discipline and homesickness. Memories and emotions surged through his mind; for the most vivid sensations of his youth had focused about this spot, and it was here he had first begun to live and learn values. Not a single footstep broke the silence, though lights glimmered here and there through cottage windows; but when he looked up at the high walls of the school, draped now in shadow, he easily imagined that well-known faces crowded to the windows to greet him—closed windows that really reflected only moonlight and the gleam of stars.

He hurried down the empty village street and stopped right under its shadow, looking up at the walls that had once trapped him for two years—two long years of strict discipline and longing for home. Memories and feelings rushed through his mind; the most intense experiences of his youth were tied to this place, where he had first started to live and learn important values. Not a single sound disrupted the quiet, even though lights shimmered here and there through cottage windows; but when he glanced up at the tall walls of the school, now covered in shadow, he could easily imagine familiar faces gathering at the windows to welcome him—closed windows that only reflected moonlight and the shine of stars.

This, then, was the old school building, standing foursquare to the world, with its shuttered windows, its lofty, tiled roof, and the spiked lightning-conductors pointing like black and taloned fingers from the corners. For a long time he stood and stared. Then, presently, he came to himself again, and realised to his joy that a light still shone in the windows of the Bruderstube.

This was the old school building, standing proudly against the world, with its closed windows, tall tiled roof, and the spiked lightning rods pointing like dark, clawed fingers from the corners. For a long time he stood and stared. Then, eventually, he came back to his senses and realized with joy that a light was still shining in the windows of the Bruderstube.

He turned from the road and passed through the iron railings; then climbed the twelve stone steps and stood facing the black wooden door with the heavy bars of iron, a door he had once loathed and dreaded with the hatred and passion of an imprisoned soul, but now looked upon tenderly with a sort of boyish delight.

He turned off the road and went through the iron railings; then climbed the twelve stone steps and stood in front of the black wooden door with the heavy iron bars, a door he had once hated and feared with the bitterness of a trapped soul, but now looked at with a kind of youthful joy.

Almost timorously he pulled the rope and listened with a tremor of excitement to the clanging of the bell deep within the building. And the long-forgotten sound brought the past before him with such a vivid sense of reality that he positively shivered. It was like the magic bell in the fairy-tale that rolls back the curtain of Time and summons the figures from the shadows of the dead. He had never felt so sentimental in his life. It was like being young again. And, at the same time, he began to bulk rather large in his own eyes with a certain spurious importance. He was a big man from the world of strife and action. In this little place of peaceful dreams would he, perhaps, not cut something of a figure?

Almost nervously, he pulled the rope and listened with a thrill of excitement to the ringing of the bell deep inside the building. The long-forgotten sound brought the past back to him so vividly that he actually shivered. It was like the magical bell in a fairy tale that rolls back the curtain of Time and calls forth the figures from the shadows of the dead. He had never felt so sentimental in his life. It was like being young again. At the same time, he started to see himself as somewhat important. He was a big man from the world of struggle and action. In this little place of peaceful dreams, wouldn’t he stand out a bit?

“I’ll try once more,” he thought after a long pause, seizing the iron bell-rope, and was just about to pull it when a step sounded on the stone passage within, and the huge door slowly swung open.

“I’ll try one more time,” he thought after a long pause, grabbing the iron bell rope, and was just about to pull it when a step echoed in the stone passage inside, and the massive door slowly swung open.

A tall man with a rather severe cast of countenance stood facing him in silence.

A tall man with a pretty serious expression stood facing him in silence.

“I must apologise—it is somewhat late,” he began a trifle pompously, “but the fact is I am an old pupil. I have only just arrived and really could not restrain myself.” His German seemed not quite so fluent as usual. “My interest is so great. I was here in ’70.”

“I’m sorry—it’s a bit late,” he started a bit dramatically, “but I have to say, I’m an old student. I just arrived and honestly couldn’t hold myself back.” His German didn’t sound quite as smooth as usual. “I’m really interested. I was here in ’70.”

The other opened the door wider and at once bowed him in with a smile of genuine welcome.

The other person opened the door wider and immediately welcomed him in with a sincere smile.

“I am Bruder Kalkmann,” he said quietly in a deep voice. “I myself was a master here about that time. It is a great pleasure always to welcome a former pupil.” He looked at him very keenly for a few seconds, and then added, “I think, too, it is splendid of you to come—very splendid.”

“I am Bruder Kalkmann,” he said softly in a deep voice. “I was a master here around that time. It’s always a great pleasure to welcome a former student.” He looked at him closely for a few seconds, then added, “I also think it’s wonderful of you to come—really wonderful.”

“It is a very great pleasure,” Harris replied, delighted with his reception.

“It’s such a pleasure,” Harris replied, thrilled with his welcome.

The dimly-lighted corridor with its flooring of grey stone, and the familiar sound of a German voice echoing through it,—with the peculiar intonation the Brothers always used in speaking,—all combined to lift him bodily, as it were, into the dream-atmosphere of long-forgotten days. He stepped gladly into the building and the door shut with the familiar thunder that completed the reconstruction of the past. He almost felt the old sense of imprisonment, of aching nostalgia, of having lost his liberty.

The dimly lit corridor with its gray stone floor and the familiar sound of a German voice echoing through it—using the unique tone the Brothers always had—made him feel like he was being lifted into the dreamlike atmosphere of long-forgotten days. He happily stepped into the building, and the door slammed shut with a familiar bang that completed the revival of the past. He almost felt that old sense of being trapped, of deep nostalgia, of having lost his freedom.

Harris sighed involuntarily and turned towards his host, who returned his smile faintly and then led the way down the corridor.

Harris let out a sigh and turned to his host, who gave a slight smile in return and then led the way down the hallway.

“The boys have retired,” he explained, “and, as you remember, we keep early hours here. But, at least, you will join us for a little while in the Bruderstube and enjoy a cup of coffee.” This was precisely what the silk merchant had hoped, and he accepted with an alacrity that he intended to be tempered by graciousness. “And tomorrow,” continued the Bruder, “you must come and spend a whole day with us. You may even find acquaintances, for several pupils of your day have come back here as masters.”

“The boys have gone to bed,” he explained, “and, as you know, we keep early hours here. But at least you can join us for a little while in the Bruderstube and enjoy a cup of coffee.” This was exactly what the silk merchant had hoped for, and he accepted with enthusiasm that he intended to temper with politeness. “And tomorrow,” the Bruder continued, “you must come and spend the whole day with us. You might even meet some familiar faces, since several of your former classmates are back here as teachers.”

For one brief second there passed into the man’s eyes a look that made the visitor start. But it vanished as quickly as it came. It was impossible to define. Harris convinced himself it was the effect of a shadow cast by the lamp they had just passed on the wall. He dismissed it from his mind.

For one brief second, a look crossed the man’s face that startled the visitor. But it disappeared as quickly as it appeared. It was impossible to pinpoint. Harris told himself it was just a shadow cast by the lamp they had just walked past on the wall. He pushed it out of his mind.

“You are very kind, I’m sure,” he said politely. “It is perhaps a greater pleasure to me than you can imagine to see the place again. Ah,”—he stopped short opposite a door with the upper half of glass and peered in—“surely there is one of the music rooms where I used to practise the violin. How it comes back to me after all these years!”

“You're very kind, I’m sure,” he said politely. “It’s probably an even greater pleasure for me than you can imagine to see this place again. Ah,”—he paused suddenly in front of a door with a glass upper half and looked inside—“surely that’s one of the music rooms where I used to practice the violin. It all comes back to me after all these years!”

Bruder Kalkmann stopped indulgently, smiling, to allow his guest a moment’s inspection.

Bruder Kalkmann paused with a smile, giving his guest a moment to look around.

“You still have the boys’ orchestra? I remember I used to play ‘zweite Geige’ in it. Bruder Schliemann conducted at the piano. Dear me, I can see him now with his long black hair and—and——” He stopped abruptly. Again the odd, dark look passed over the stern face of his companion. For an instant it seemed curiously familiar.

“You still have the boys' orchestra? I remember I used to play ‘zweite Geige’ in it. Bruder Schliemann conducted at the piano. Wow, I can picture him now with his long black hair and—and——” He paused suddenly. Once more, that strange, dark expression crossed the serious face of his companion. For a moment, it seemed oddly familiar.

“We still keep up the pupils’ orchestra,” he said, “but Bruder Schliemann, I am sorry to say——” he hesitated an instant, and then added, “Bruder Schliemann is dead.”

“We still have the students' orchestra,” he said, “but Brother Schliemann, I'm sorry to say——” he paused for a moment, and then added, “Brother Schliemann is dead.”

“Indeed, indeed,” said Harris quickly. “I am sorry to hear it.” He was conscious of a faint feeling of distress, but whether it arose from the news of his old music teacher’s death, or—from something else—he could not quite determine. He gazed down the corridor that lost itself among shadows. In the street and village everything had seemed so much smaller than he remembered, but here, inside the school building, everything seemed so much bigger. The corridor was loftier and longer, more spacious and vast, than the mental picture he had preserved. His thoughts wandered dreamily for an instant.

“Yeah, yeah,” Harris said quickly. “I’m really sorry to hear that.” He felt a slight pang of sadness, but he couldn't tell if it came from the news about his old music teacher’s death or something else entirely. He looked down the corridor that faded into shadows. In the street and village, everything had felt so much smaller than he remembered, but here, inside the school building, everything felt much bigger. The corridor was taller and longer, more spacious and expansive than the mental image he had kept. His thoughts drifted off dreamily for a moment.

He glanced up and saw the face of the Bruder watching him with a smile of patient indulgence.

He looked up and saw the Bruder's face smiling at him with a look of patient understanding.

“Your memories possess you,” he observed gently, and the stern look passed into something almost pitying.

“Your memories control you,” he said softly, and the serious expression turned into something almost sympathetic.

“You are right,” returned the man of silk, “they do. This was the most wonderful period of my whole life in a sense. At the time I hated it——” He hesitated, not wishing to hurt the Brother’s feelings.

“You're right,” replied the man in silk, “they do. This was the most incredible time of my life in a way. Back then, I hated it——” He paused, not wanting to hurt the Brother's feelings.

“According to English ideas it seemed strict, of course,” the other said persuasively, so that he went on.

“According to English views, it definitely seemed strict,” the other said convincingly, prompting him to continue.

“——Yes, partly that; and partly the ceaseless nostalgia, and the solitude which came from never being really alone. In English schools the boys enjoy peculiar freedom, you know.”

“——Yes, partly that; and partly the endless longing for the past and the loneliness that came from never being truly alone. In English schools, the boys have a unique sense of freedom, you know.”

Bruder Kalkmann, he saw, was listening intently.

Brother Kalkmann was listening closely.

“But it produced one result that I have never wholly lost,” he continued self-consciously, “and am grateful for.”

“But it gave me one result that I’ve never completely lost,” he continued with some hesitation, “and I'm thankful for.”

Ach! Wie so, denn?

"Ah! Why is that?"

“The constant inner pain threw me headlong into your religious life, so that the whole force of my being seemed to project itself towards the search for a deeper satisfaction—a real resting-place for the soul. During my two years here I yearned for God in my boyish way as perhaps I have never yearned for anything since. Moreover, I have never quite lost that sense of peace and inward joy which accompanied the search. I can never quite forget this school and the deep things it taught me.”

“The ongoing inner pain pushed me straight into your religious life, making it feel like every part of me was focused on finding a deeper satisfaction—a true resting place for my soul. During my two years here, I craved God in a boyish way, perhaps in a way I haven’t craved anything since. Also, I’ve never really lost that sense of peace and inner joy that came with the search. I can never fully forget this school and the profound lessons it taught me.”

He paused at the end of his long speech, and a brief silence fell between them. He feared he had said too much, or expressed himself clumsily in the foreign language, and when Bruder Kalkmann laid a hand upon his shoulder, he gave a little involuntary start.

He paused at the end of his long speech, and a brief silence hung between them. He worried that he had said too much or had awkwardly expressed himself in the foreign language, and when Bruder Kalkmann placed a hand on his shoulder, he flinched a bit involuntarily.

“So that my memories perhaps do possess me rather strongly,” he added apologetically; “and this long corridor, these rooms, that barred and gloomy front door, all touch chords that—that——” His German failed him and he glanced at his companion with an explanatory smile and gesture. But the brother had removed the hand from his shoulder and was standing with his back to him, looking down the passage.

“So maybe my memories do have a strong hold on me,” he said apologetically; “and this long hallway, these rooms, that locked and dark front door, all strike a chord that—that——” His German let him down, and he looked at his companion with an explanatory smile and gesture. But the brother had taken his hand away from his shoulder and was standing with his back to him, looking down the hallway.

“Naturally, naturally so,” he said hastily without turning round. “Es ist doch selbstverständlich. We shall all understand.”

“Of course, of course,” he said quickly without turning around. “It’s obvious. We’ll all get it.”

Then he turned suddenly, and Harris saw that his face had turned most oddly and disagreeably sinister. It may only have been the shadows again playing their tricks with the wretched oil lamps on the wall, for the dark expression passed instantly as they retraced their steps down the corridor, but the Englishman somehow got the impression that he had said something to give offence, something that was not quite to the other’s taste. Opposite the door of the Bruderstube they stopped. Harris realised that it was late and he had possibly stayed talking too long. He made a tentative effort to leave, but his companion would not hear of it.

Then he suddenly turned, and Harris noticed that his face had taken on an oddly and uncomfortably sinister look. It might just have been the shadows playing tricks with the miserable oil lamps on the wall, as the dark expression faded away quickly when they walked back down the corridor, but the Englishman somehow felt he had said something offensive, something that didn't sit well with the other guy. They paused in front of the door to the Bruderstube. Harris realized it was late and he might have talked too long. He tried to leave tentatively, but his companion was having none of it.

“You must have a cup of coffee with us,” he said firmly as though he meant it, “and my colleagues will be delighted to see you. Some of them will remember you, perhaps.”

“You have to have a cup of coffee with us,” he said confidently as if he truly meant it, “and my coworkers will be really happy to see you. Maybe some of them will recognize you.”

The sound of voices came pleasantly through the door, men’s voices talking together. Bruder Kalkmann turned the handle and they entered a room ablaze with light and full of people.

The sound of voices drifted pleasantly through the door, men chatting together. Bruder Kalkmann turned the handle, and they stepped into a brightly lit room packed with people.

“Ah,—but your name?” he whispered, bending down to catch the reply; “you have not told me your name yet.”

“Ah—but what’s your name?” he whispered, leaning down to hear the answer; “you haven’t told me your name yet.”

“Harris,” said the Englishman quickly as they went in. He felt nervous as he crossed the threshold, but ascribed the momentary trepidation to the fact that he was breaking the strictest rule of the whole establishment, which forbade a boy under severest penalties to come near this holy of holies where the masters took their brief leisure.

“Harris,” said the Englishman quickly as they went in. He felt nervous as he crossed the threshold, but he attributed the brief anxiety to the fact that he was breaking the strictest rule of the entire establishment, which prohibited a boy under severe penalties from coming near this sacred place where the masters took their short breaks.

“Ah, yes, of course—Harris,” repeated the other as though he remembered it “Come in, Herr Harris, come in, please. Your visit will be immensely appreciated. It is really very fine, very wonderful of you to have come in this way.”

“Ah, yes, of course—Harris,” the other repeated as if he recalled it. “Come in, Mr. Harris, come in, please. Your visit is greatly appreciated. It’s really very nice, very kind of you to stop by like this.”

The door closed behind them and, in the sudden light which made his sight swim for a moment, the exaggeration of the language escaped his attention. He heard the voice of Bruder Kalkmann introducing him. He spoke very loud, indeed, unnecessarily,—absurdly loud, Harris thought.

The door shut behind them, and the sudden light made his vision blur for a moment, causing him to miss the exaggeration in the language. He heard Bruder Kalkmann's voice introducing him. He was speaking really loudly, almost too loud—Harris thought it was ridiculous.

“Brothers,” he announced, “it is my pleasure and privilege to introduce to you Herr Harris from England. He has just arrived to make us a little visit, and I have already expressed to him on behalf of us all the satisfaction we feel that he is here. He was, as you remember, a pupil in the year ’70.”

“Brothers,” he announced, “I’m happy to introduce Herr Harris from England. He just arrived to visit us, and I’ve already told him how pleased we all are that he is here. As you may recall, he was a student in ’70.”

It was a very formal, a very German introduction, but Harris rather liked it. It made him feel important and he appreciated the tact that made it almost seem as though he had been expected.

It was a really formal, very German introduction, but Harris actually liked it. It made him feel important, and he appreciated the thoughtfulness that made it seem like he had been expected.

The black forms rose and bowed; Harris bowed; Kalkmann bowed. Every one was very polite and very courtly. The room swam with moving figures; the light dazzled him after the gloom of the corridor; there was thick cigar smoke in the atmosphere. He took the chair that was offered to him between two of the Brothers, and sat down, feeling vaguely that his perceptions were not quite as keen and accurate as usual. He felt a trifle dazed perhaps, and the spell of the past came strongly over him, confusing the immediate present and making everything dwindle oddly to the dimensions of long ago. He seemed to pass under the mastery of a great mood that was a composite reproduction of all the moods of his forgotten boyhood.

The dark figures rose and bowed; Harris bowed; Kalkmann bowed. Everyone was very polite and very formal. The room was filled with moving figures; the light blinded him after the darkness of the hallway; there was thick cigar smoke in the air. He took the chair that was offered to him between two of the Brothers and sat down, feeling that his senses weren't quite as sharp and clear as usual. He felt a bit dazed maybe, and the spell of the past hit him hard, blending the present with memories and making everything shrink oddly to the size of long ago. He seemed to fall under the influence of a powerful emotion that combined all the feelings of his forgotten childhood.

Then he pulled himself together with a sharp effort and entered into the conversation that had begun again to buzz round him. Moreover, he entered into it with keen pleasure, for the Brothers—there were perhaps a dozen of them in the little room—treated him with a charm of manner that speedily made him feel one of themselves. This, again, was a very subtle delight to him. He felt that he had stepped out of the greedy, vulgar, self-seeking world, the world of silk and markets and profit-making—stepped into the cleaner atmosphere where spiritual ideals were paramount and life was simple and devoted. It all charmed him inexpressibly, so that he realised—yes, in a sense—the degradation of his twenty years’ absorption in business. This keen atmosphere under the stars where men thought only of their souls, and of the souls of others, was too rarefied for the world he was now associated with. He found himself making comparisons to his own disadvantage,—comparisons with the mystical little dreamer that had stepped thirty years before from the stern peace of this devout community, and the man of the world that he had since become,—and the contrast made him shiver with a keen regret and something like self-contempt.

Then he gathered himself with a sharp effort and joined in the conversation that had started buzzing around him again. Moreover, he engaged in it with genuine pleasure, as the Brothers—there were probably about a dozen of them in the small room—treated him with a charm that quickly made him feel like one of them. This, in turn, gave him a subtle delight. He felt like he had stepped out of the greedy, superficial, self-interested world, the world of luxury and markets and profit-making—into a cleaner atmosphere where spiritual ideals were central and life was straightforward and dedicated. It enchanted him inexpressibly, so much so that he realized—yes, in a way—the degradation of his twenty years spent in business. This vibrant atmosphere under the stars, where men thought only of their souls and the souls of others, seemed too lofty compared to the world he was now part of. He found himself making comparisons that put him at a disadvantage—comparing himself to the mystical little dreamer who had stepped thirty years earlier from the stern peace of this devout community, to the man of the world he had become since—and the contrast made him shiver with deep regret and something like self-disgust.

He glanced round at the other faces floating towards him through tobacco smoke—this acrid cigar smoke he remembered so well: how keen they were, how strong, placid, touched with the nobility of great aims and unselfish purposes. At one or two he looked particularly. He hardly knew why. They rather fascinated him. There was something so very stern and uncompromising about them, and something, too, oddly, subtly, familiar, that yet just eluded him. But whenever their eyes met his own they held undeniable welcome in them; and some held more—a kind of perplexed admiration, he thought, something that was between esteem and deference. This note of respect in all the faces was very flattering to his vanity.

He looked around at the other faces drifting toward him through the tobacco smoke—this sharp cigar smoke he remembered so well: how eager they were, how strong, calm, infused with the nobility of great goals and selfless intentions. He focused on one or two in particular. He couldn't quite understand why. They intrigued him. There was something very serious and unwavering about them, and oddly, subtly, something familiar that he couldn't quite grasp. But whenever their eyes met his, they reflected undeniable warmth; and some had more—a kind of confused admiration, he thought, something between respect and submission. This sense of respect on all their faces was very flattering to his ego.

Coffee was served presently, made by a black-haired Brother who sat in the corner by the piano and bore a marked resemblance to Bruder Schliemann, the musical director of thirty years ago. Harris exchanged bows with him when he took the cup from his white hands, which he noticed were like the hands of a woman. He lit a cigar, offered to him by his neighbour, with whom he was chatting delightfully, and who, in the glare of the lighted match, reminded him sharply for a moment of Bruder Pagel, his former room-master.

Coffee was served soon, made by a dark-haired Brother who was sitting in the corner by the piano and looked a lot like Bruder Schliemann, the music director from thirty years ago. Harris nodded at him when he took the cup from his pale hands, which he noticed looked like a woman's hands. He lit a cigar offered to him by his neighbor, with whom he was happily chatting, and who, in the bright light of the match, suddenly reminded him of Bruder Pagel, his old room-master.

Es ist wirklich merkwürdig,” he said, “how many resemblances I see, or imagine. It is really very curious!”

“Its really strange,” he said, “how many similarities I see, or think I see. It’s really very curious!”

“Yes,” replied the other, peering at him over his coffee cup, “the spell of the place is wonderfully strong. I can well understand that the old faces rise before your mind’s eye—almost to the exclusion of ourselves perhaps.”

“Yes,” replied the other, looking at him over his coffee cup, “the charm of this place is incredibly powerful. I can totally see how the old faces come to mind—maybe even pushing us out of the picture.”

They both laughed pleasantly. It was soothing to find his mood understood and appreciated. And they passed on to talk of the mountain village, its isolation, its remoteness from worldly life, its peculiar fitness for meditation and worship, and for spiritual development—of a certain kind.

They both laughed happily. It was comforting to feel that his mood was understood and valued. They moved on to discuss the mountain village, its isolation, its distance from everyday life, its unique suitability for meditation and worship, and for a certain kind of spiritual growth.

“And your coming back in this way, Herr Harris, has pleased us all so much,” joined in the Bruder on his left. “We esteem you for it most highly. We honour you for it.”

“And your return like this, Mr. Harris, has made us all very happy,” added the brother on his left. “We really appreciate it. We respect you for it.”

Harris made a deprecating gesture. “I fear, for my part, it is only a very selfish pleasure,” he said a trifle unctuously.

Harris shrugged it off. “I’m afraid, for my part, it’s just a pretty selfish pleasure,” he said somewhat insincerely.

“Not all would have had the courage,” added the one who resembled Bruder Pagel.

“Not everyone would have had the courage,” added the one who looked like Bruder Pagel.

“You mean,” said Harris, a little puzzled, “the disturbing memories——?”

"You mean," Harris said, a bit confused, "the troubling memories——?"

Bruder Pagel looked at him steadily, with unmistakable admiration and respect. “I mean that most men hold so strongly to life, and can give up so little for their beliefs,” he said gravely.

Bruder Pagel looked at him steadily, filled with clear admiration and respect. “I mean that most men cling so tightly to life and can sacrifice so little for their beliefs,” he said seriously.

The Englishman felt slightly uncomfortable. These worthy men really made too much of his sentimental journey. Besides, the talk was getting a little out of his depth. He hardly followed it.

The Englishman felt a bit uneasy. These respectable men really overemphasized his sentimental journey. Plus, the conversation was becoming a bit beyond his understanding. He could hardly keep up with it.

“The worldly life still has some charms for me,” he replied smilingly, as though to indicate that sainthood was not yet quite within his grasp.

“The worldly life still has some charms for me,” he replied with a smile, as if to suggest that sainthood was not yet fully attainable for him.

“All the more, then, must we honour you for so freely coming,” said the Brother on his left; “so unconditionally!”

“All the more, we should honor you for coming so freely,” said the Brother on his left, “without any conditions!”

A pause followed, and the silk merchant felt relieved when the conversation took a more general turn, although he noted that it never travelled very far from the subject of his visit and the wonderful situation of the lonely village for men who wished to develop their spiritual powers and practise the rites of a high worship. Others joined in, complimenting him on his knowledge of the language, making him feel utterly at his ease, yet at the same time a little uncomfortable by the excess of their admiration. After all, it was such a very small thing to do, this sentimental journey.

A pause followed, and the silk merchant felt relieved when the conversation shifted to more general topics, although he noticed it never strayed too far from the purpose of his visit and the unique setting of the secluded village for those wanting to enhance their spiritual skills and practice high worship rituals. Others joined in, praising his command of the language, making him feel completely at ease, yet slightly uncomfortable due to their overwhelming admiration. After all, this sentimental journey was really a small feat.

The time passed along quickly; the coffee was excellent, the cigars soft and of the nutty flavour he loved. At length, fearing to outstay his welcome, he rose reluctantly to take his leave. But the others would not hear of it. It was not often a former pupil returned to visit them in this simple, unaffected way. The night was young. If necessary they could even find him a corner in the great Schlafzimmer upstairs. He was easily persuaded to stay a little longer. Somehow he had become the centre of the little party. He felt pleased, flattered, honoured.

The time flew by; the coffee was great, and the cigars were soft with the nutty flavor he loved. Eventually, worried about overstaying his welcome, he stood up reluctantly to leave. But the others insisted he stay. It wasn’t often that a former student came back to visit them in such a genuine way. The night was still young. If needed, they could even find him a spot in the big Schlafzimmer upstairs. He was easily convinced to stay a bit longer. Somehow, he had become the center of the little gathering. He felt pleased, flattered, and honored.

“And perhaps Bruder Schliemann will play something for us—now.”

“And maybe Brother Schliemann will play something for us—right now.”

It was Kalkmann speaking, and Harris started visibly as he heard the name, and saw the black-haired man by the piano turn with a smile. For Schliemann was the name of his old music director, who was dead. Could this be his son? They were so exactly alike.

It was Kalkmann speaking, and Harris jumped slightly when he heard the name and saw the black-haired man by the piano turn with a smile. Schliemann was the name of his old music director, who had passed away. Could this be his son? They looked so much alike.

“If Bruder Meyer has not put his Amati to bed, I will accompany him,” said the musician suggestively, looking across at a man whom Harris had not yet noticed, and who, he now saw, was the very image of a former master of that name.

“If Bruder Meyer hasn’t put his Amati away, I’ll go with him,” said the musician with a hint of suggestion, glancing at a man Harris hadn’t noticed before, who he now realized looked exactly like a former master with the same name.

Meyer rose and excused himself with a little bow, and the Englishman quickly observed that he had a peculiar gesture as though his neck had a false join on to the body just below the collar and feared it might break. Meyer of old had this trick of movement. He remembered how the boys used to copy it.

Meyer stood up and politely bowed, and the Englishman quickly noticed that he had a weird way of moving, almost like his neck was loosely connected to his body just below the collar and might snap. Meyer had always had this quirky movement. He recalled how the boys used to mimic it.

He glanced sharply from face to face, feeling as though some silent, unseen process were changing everything about him. All the faces seemed oddly familiar. Pagel, the Brother he had been talking with, was of course the image of Pagel, his former room-master; and Kalkmann, he now realised for the first time, was the very twin of another master whose name he had quite forgotten, but whom he used to dislike intensely in the old days. And, through the smoke, peering at him from the corners of the room, he saw that all the Brothers about him had the faces he had known and lived with long ago—Röst, Fluheim, Meinert, Rigel, Gysin.

He quickly looked from one face to another, feeling like some silent, invisible force was changing everything around him. All the faces seemed strangely familiar. Pagel, the Brother he had just spoken with, was obviously a reflection of Pagel, his former room-master; and Kalkmann, he realized for the first time, was the exact twin of another teacher whose name he had completely forgotten, but whom he had strongly disliked back in the day. And, through the smoke, glancing at him from the corners of the room, he noticed that all the Brothers around him had the faces he had known and lived with long ago—Röst, Fluheim, Meinert, Rigel, Gysin.

He stared hard, suddenly grown more alert, and everywhere saw, or fancied he saw, strange likenesses, ghostly resemblances,—more, the identical faces of years ago. There was something queer about it all, something not quite right, something that made him feel uneasy. He shook himself, mentally and actually, blowing the smoke from before his eyes with a long breath, and as he did so he noticed to his dismay that every one was fixedly staring. They were watching him.

He stared intensely, suddenly more aware, and everywhere he looked, or thought he saw, strange similarities, ghostly resemblances—more like the exact faces from years ago. There was something odd about it all, something off, something that made him feel uncomfortable. He shook himself, both in his mind and physically, blowing the smoke away from his eyes with a deep breath, and as he did that, he realized with dismay that everyone was staring intently. They were watching him.

This brought him to his senses. As an Englishman, and a foreigner, he did not wish to be rude, or to do anything to make himself foolishly conspicuous and spoil the harmony of the evening. He was a guest, and a privileged guest at that. Besides, the music had already begun. Bruder Schliemann’s long white fingers were caressing the keys to some purpose.

This snapped him back to reality. As an Englishman and a foreigner, he didn’t want to be rude or do anything to draw unnecessary attention to himself and mess up the vibe of the evening. He was a guest, and a special one at that. Plus, the music had already started. Bruder Schliemann’s long white fingers were skillfully dancing over the keys for a reason.

He subsided into his chair and smoked with half-closed eyes that yet saw everything.

He settled into his chair and smoked with half-closed eyes that still took in everything.

But the shudder had established itself in his being, and, whether he would or not, it kept repeating itself. As a town, far up some inland river, feels the pressure of the distant sea, so he became aware that mighty forces from somewhere beyond his ken were urging themselves up against his soul in this smoky little room. He began to feel exceedingly ill at ease.

But the shudder had taken root in him, and, whether he liked it or not, it kept coming back. Just like a town, far upstream on a river, senses the pull of the distant ocean, he realized that powerful forces from somewhere beyond his understanding were pressing against his soul in this smoky little room. He started to feel very uneasy.

And as the music filled the air his mind began to clear. Like a lifted veil there rose up something that had hitherto obscured his vision. The words of the priest at the railway inn flashed across his brain unbidden: “You will find it different.” And also, though why he could not tell, he saw mentally the strong, rather wonderful eyes of that other guest at the supper-table, the man who had overhead his conversation, and had later got into earnest talk with the priest. He took out his watch and stole a glance at it. Two hours had slipped by. It was already eleven o’clock.

And as the music filled the air, his mind started to clear. Like a lifted veil, something that had previously clouded his vision emerged. The words of the priest at the railway inn flashed through his mind unexpectedly: “You will find it different.” And also, for reasons he couldn’t explain, he mentally pictured the strong, somewhat remarkable eyes of that other guest at the supper table, the man who had overheard his conversation and later engaged in serious discussion with the priest. He pulled out his watch and took a quick look at it. Two hours had passed. It was already eleven o’clock.

Schliemann, meanwhile, utterly absorbed in his music, was playing a solemn measure. The piano sang marvellously. The power of a great conviction, the simplicity of great art, the vital spiritual message of a soul that had found itself—all this, and more, were in the chords, and yet somehow the music was what can only be described as impure—atrociously and diabolically impure. And the piece itself, although Harris did not recognise it as anything familiar, was surely the music of a Mass—huge, majestic, sombre? It stalked through the smoky room with slow power, like the passage of something that was mighty, yet profoundly intimate, and as it went there stirred into each and every face about him the signature of the enormous forces of which it was the audible symbol. The countenances round him turned sinister, but not idly, negatively sinister: they grew dark with purpose. He suddenly recalled the face of Bruder Kalkmann in the corridor earlier in the evening. The motives of their secret souls rose to the eyes, and mouths, and foreheads, and hung there for all to see like the black banners of an assembly of ill-starred and fallen creatures. Demons—was the horrible word that flashed through his brain like a sheet of fire.

Schliemann, completely immersed in his music, was playing a solemn piece. The piano sounded amazing. The strength of a deep conviction, the simplicity of great art, the powerful spiritual message of a soul that had discovered itself—all of this, and more, was in the chords, and yet somehow the music felt what can only be described as impure—atrociously and diabolically impure. The piece itself, though Harris didn’t recognize it as anything familiar, was definitely the music of a Mass—huge, majestic, dark? It moved through the smoky room with slow power, like something that was strong yet deeply personal, and as it played, it stirred the faces around him with the signature of the enormous forces it symbolized. The expressions surrounding him turned sinister, but not passively sinister: they became dark with intention. He suddenly remembered Bruder Kalkmann’s face in the corridor earlier that evening. The motives of their hidden souls surfaced in their eyes, mouths, and foreheads, hanging there for everyone to see like the black banners of a gathering of ill-fated and fallen beings. Demons—was the terrible word that flashed through his mind like a bolt of fire.

When this sudden discovery leaped out upon him, for a moment he lost his self-control. Without waiting to think and weigh his extraordinary impression, he did a very foolish but a very natural thing. Feeling himself irresistibly driven by the sudden stress to some kind of action, he sprang to his feet—and screamed! To his own utter amazement he stood up and shrieked aloud!

When this unexpected realization hit him, for a moment he lost control. Without taking the time to think through his overwhelming feelings, he did something really foolish but also quite normal. Feeling an intense urge to do something, he sprang to his feet—and screamed! To his own complete shock, he stood up and yelled out loud!

But no one stirred. No one, apparently, took the slightest notice of his absurdly wild behaviour. It was almost as if no one but himself had heard the scream at all—as though the music had drowned it and swallowed it up—as though after all perhaps he had not really screamed as loudly as he imagined, or had not screamed at all.

But no one moved. Apparently, no one took the slightest notice of his absurdly wild behavior. It was almost like no one but him had heard the scream at all—like the music had drowned it out and swallowed it whole—like maybe he hadn't really screamed as loudly as he thought, or hadn't screamed at all.

Then, as he glanced at the motionless, dark faces before him, something of utter cold passed into his being, touching his very soul.... All emotion cooled suddenly, leaving him like a receding tide. He sat down again, ashamed, mortified, angry with himself for behaving like a fool and a boy. And the music, meanwhile, continued to issue from the white and snake-like fingers of Bruder Schliemann, as poisoned wine might issue from the weirdly-fashioned necks of antique phials.

Then, as he looked at the still, dark faces in front of him, a wave of complete coldness washed over him, reaching deep into his soul.... All his emotions suddenly drained away, leaving him like a receding tide. He sat down again, feeling ashamed, humiliated, and angry with himself for acting like a fool and a kid. Meanwhile, the music kept flowing from the white, snake-like fingers of Bruder Schliemann, just like toxic wine might flow from the oddly shaped necks of ancient bottles.

And, with the rest of them, Harris drank it in.

And, along with the others, Harris drank it in.

Forcing himself to believe that he had been the victim of some kind of illusory perception, he vigorously restrained his feelings. Then the music presently ceased, and every one applauded and began to talk at once, laughing, changing seats, complimenting the player, and behaving naturally and easily as though nothing out of the way had happened. The faces appeared normal once more. The Brothers crowded round their visitor, and he joined in their talk and even heard himself thanking the gifted musician.

Forcing himself to accept that he had been the victim of some sort of illusion, he tightly controlled his emotions. Then the music suddenly stopped, and everyone clapped and began to talk at once, laughing, switching seats, praising the musician, and acting casually as if nothing unusual had happened. The expressions on their faces appeared normal again. The Brothers gathered around their guest, and he engaged in their conversation, even hearing himself thank the talented musician.

But, at the same time, he found himself edging towards the door, nearer and nearer, changing his chair when possible, and joining the groups that stood closest to the way of escape.

But, at the same time, he found himself moving closer to the door, inching closer and closer, shifting his chair when he could, and joining the groups that stood nearest to the exit.

“I must thank you all tausendmal for my little reception and the great pleasure—the very great honour you have done me,” he began in decided tones at length, “but I fear I have trespassed far too long already on your hospitality. Moreover, I have some distance to walk to my inn.”

“I must thank you all tausendmal for my little reception and the great pleasure—the very great honor you have given me,” he began in clear tones after a while, “but I’m afraid I’ve overstayed my welcome. Additionally, I have quite a walk ahead to my inn.”

A chorus of voices greeted his words. They would not hear of his going,—at least not without first partaking of refreshment. They produced pumpernickel from one cupboard, and rye-bread and sausage from another, and all began to talk again and eat. More coffee was made, fresh cigars lighted, and Bruder Meyer took out his violin and began to tune it softly.

A chorus of voices responded to what he said. They wouldn’t allow him to leave—not without having something to eat first. They pulled out pumpernickel from one cupboard, and rye bread and sausage from another, and everyone started chatting and eating again. More coffee was brewed, fresh cigars were lit, and Bruder Meyer took out his violin and began to tune it softly.

“There is always a bed upstairs if Herr Harris will accept it,” said one.

“There’s always a bed upstairs if Mr. Harris is okay with it,” said one.

“And it is difficult to find the way out now, for all the doors are locked,” laughed another loudly.

“And it’s hard to find a way out now, because all the doors are locked,” another person laughed loudly.

“Let us take our simple pleasures as they come,” cried a third. “Bruder Harris will understand how we appreciate the honour of this last visit of his.”

“Let’s enjoy our simple pleasures as they come,” shouted a third. “Brother Harris will understand how much we appreciate the honor of his last visit.”

They made a dozen excuses. They all laughed, as though the politeness of their words was but formal, and veiled thinly—more and more thinly—a very different meaning.

They came up with a dozen excuses. They all laughed, as if the niceness of their words was just a formality, hiding more and more thinly—a completely different meaning.

“And the hour of midnight draws near,” added Bruder Kalkmann with a charming smile, but in a voice that sounded to the Englishman like the grating of iron hinges.

“And the hour of midnight is approaching,” added Bruder Kalkmann with a charming smile, but in a voice that sounded to the Englishman like the grinding of iron hinges.

Their German seemed to him more and more difficult to understand. He noted that they called him “Bruder” too, classing him as one of themselves.

Their German sounded harder and harder for him to understand. He noticed that they also called him “Bruder,” treating him as one of their own.

And then suddenly he had a flash of keener perception, and realised with a creeping of his flesh that he had all along misinterpreted—grossly misinterpreted all they had been saying. They had talked about the beauty of the place, its isolation and remoteness from the world, its peculiar fitness for certain kinds of spiritual development and worship—yet hardly, he now grasped, in the sense in which he had taken the words. They had meant something different. Their spiritual powers, their desire for loneliness, their passion for worship, were not the powers, the solitude, or the worship that he meant and understood. He was playing a part in some horrible masquerade; he was among men who cloaked their lives with religion in order to follow their real purposes unseen of men.

And then suddenly he had a sharp realization and felt a chill run through him as he understood he had completely misunderstood everything they had been saying. They had talked about the beauty of the place, its isolation from the world, its unique suitability for certain types of spiritual growth and worship—but now he realized it wasn’t in the way he had interpreted those words. They meant something else. Their spiritual powers, their need for solitude, their passion for worship were not the same powers, isolation, or worship that he understood. He was playing a role in some horrible masquerade; he was among people who disguised their lives with religion to pursue their true intentions without being noticed.

What did it all mean? How had he blundered into so equivocal a situation? Had he blundered into it at all? Had he not rather been led into it, deliberately led? His thoughts grew dreadfully confused, and his confidence in himself began to fade. And why, he suddenly thought again, were they so impressed by the mere fact of his coming to revisit his old school? What was it they so admired and wondered at in his simple act? Why did they set such store upon his having the courage to come, to “give himself so freely,” “unconditionally” as one of them had expressed it with such a mockery of exaggeration?

What did it all mean? How had he stumbled into such a tricky situation? Had he really stumbled into it at all? Wasn’t he instead deliberately led into it? His thoughts became extremely jumbled, and his confidence in himself started to slip away. And why, he suddenly wondered again, were they so impressed by the fact that he came back to his old school? What was it that they admired and were so curious about in his simple action? Why did they place such importance on his having the guts to come, to “give himself so freely,” “unconditionally” as one of them had put it with such a sarcastic exaggeration?

Fear stirred in his heart most horribly, and he found no answer to any of his questionings. Only one thing he now understood quite clearly: it was their purpose to keep him here. They did not intend that he should go. And from this moment he realised that they were sinister, formidable and, in some way he had yet to discover, inimical to himself, inimical to his life. And the phrase one of them had used a moment ago—“this last visit of his”—rose before his eyes in letters of flame.

Fear gripped his heart intensely, and he couldn’t find answers to any of his questions. The only thing he clearly understood now was that they intended to keep him here. They didn’t plan for him to leave. And from that moment he realized they were sinister, formidable, and somehow, which he had yet to uncover, hostile to him, hostile to his very existence. The phrase one of them had used earlier—“this last visit of his”—flashed before his eyes in blazing letters.

Harris was not a man of action, and had never known in all the course of his career what it meant to be in a situation of real danger. He was not necessarily a coward, though, perhaps, a man of untried nerve. He realised at last plainly that he was in a very awkward predicament indeed, and that he had to deal with men who were utterly in earnest. What their intentions were he only vaguely guessed. His mind, indeed, was too confused for definite ratiocination, and he was only able to follow blindly the strongest instincts that moved in him. It never occurred to him that the Brothers might all be mad, or that he himself might have temporarily lost his senses and be suffering under some terrible delusion. In fact, nothing occurred to him—he realised nothing—except that he meant to escape—and the quicker the better. A tremendous revulsion of feeling set in and overpowered him.

Harris wasn't a man of action and had never experienced real danger throughout his career. He wasn't necessarily a coward, but perhaps someone with untested nerves. He finally realized that he was in a very tricky situation and had to deal with men who were completely serious. He only vaguely guessed at their intentions. His mind was too jumbled for clear thinking, so he could only follow the strongest instincts within him. It never crossed his mind that the Brothers might all be insane or that he might have temporarily lost his mind and be caught in a terrible delusion. In fact, nothing occurred to him—he realized nothing—except that he wanted to escape—and the sooner, the better. A powerful wave of emotion hit him and overwhelmed him.

Accordingly, without further protest for the moment, he ate his pumpernickel and drank his coffee, talking meanwhile as naturally and pleasantly as he could, and when a suitable interval had passed, he rose to his feet and announced once more that he must now take his leave. He spoke very quietly, but very decidedly. No one hearing him could doubt that he meant what he said. He had got very close to the door by this time.

Accordingly, without any more complaints for the moment, he ate his pumpernickel and drank his coffee, while chatting as naturally and pleasantly as he could. When the right moment came, he stood up and once again stated that he had to leave. He spoke very softly, but with conviction. No one who heard him could doubt that he was serious. By this time, he was almost at the door.

“I regret,” he said, using his best German, and speaking to a hushed room, “that our pleasant evening must come to an end, but it is now time for me to wish you all good-night.” And then, as no one said anything, he added, though with a trifle less assurance, “And I thank you all most sincerely for your hospitality.”

“I’m sorry,” he said, trying his best German, addressing the quiet room, “that our nice evening has to end, but it’s time for me to wish you all goodnight.” And then, since no one responded, he added, though with a bit less confidence, “And I sincerely thank you all for your hospitality.”

“On the contrary,” replied Kalkmann instantly, rising from his chair and ignoring the hand the Englishman had stretched out to him, “it is we who have to thank you; and we do so most gratefully and sincerely.”

“On the contrary,” replied Kalkmann immediately, getting up from his chair and ignoring the hand the Englishman had reached out to him, “it’s us who need to thank you; and we do so very gratefully and sincerely.”

And at the same moment at least half a dozen of the Brothers took up their position between himself and the door.

And at the same time, at least six of the Brothers positioned themselves between him and the door.

“You are very good to say so,” Harris replied as firmly as he could manage, noticing this movement out of the corner of his eye, “but really I had no conception that—my little chance visit could have afforded you so much pleasure.” He moved another step nearer the door, but Bruder Schliemann came across the room quickly and stood in front of him. His attitude was uncompromising. A dark and terrible expression had come into his face.

“You're really kind to say that,” Harris replied as confidently as he could, catching a glimpse of the movement out of the corner of his eye, “but honestly, I had no idea that—my little unexpected visit could have brought you so much joy.” He took another step closer to the door, but Bruder Schliemann quickly crossed the room and stood in front of him. His posture was resolute. A dark and unsettling expression had appeared on his face.

“But it was not by chance that you came, Bruder Harris,” he said so that all the room could hear; “surely we have not misunderstood your presence here?” He raised his black eyebrows.

“But it was not by chance that you came, Bruder Harris,” he said loudly enough for everyone in the room to hear; “surely we haven't misunderstood why you're here?” He raised his dark eyebrows.

“No, no,” the Englishman hastened to reply. “I was—I am delighted to be here. I told you what pleasure it gave me to find myself among you. Do not misunderstand me, I beg.” His voice faltered a little, and he had difficulty in finding the words. More and more, too, he had difficulty in understanding their words.

“No, no,” the Englishman quickly responded. “I was—I am really happy to be here. I told you how much joy it gave me to be among you. Please don’t misunderstand me, I beg.” His voice trailed off a bit, and he struggled with finding the right words. More and more, he also found it hard to understand their words.

“Of course,” interposed Bruder Kalkmann in his iron bass, “we have not misunderstood. You have come back in the spirit of true and unselfish devotion. You offer yourself freely, and we all appreciate it. It is your willingness and nobility that have so completely won our veneration and respect.” A faint murmur of applause ran round the room. “What we all delight in—what our great Master will especially delight in—is the value of your spontaneous and voluntary——”

“Of course,” interrupted Bruder Kalkmann in his deep voice, “we understand perfectly. You’ve returned with genuine and selfless dedication. You’re offering yourself willingly, and we truly appreciate it. It’s your readiness and generosity that have completely earned our admiration and respect.” A soft murmur of applause spread around the room. “What we all cherish—what our great Master will particularly appreciate—is the worth of your spontaneous and voluntary——”

He used a word Harris did not understand. He said “Opfer.” The bewildered Englishman searched his brain for the translation, and searched in vain. For the life of him he could not remember what it meant. But the word, for all his inability to translate it, touched his soul with ice. It was worse, far worse, than anything he had imagined. He felt like a lost, helpless creature, and all power to fight sank out of him from that moment.

He used a word that Harris didn’t understand. He said “Opfer.” The confused Englishman rummaged through his mind for the translation, but found nothing. No matter how hard he tried, he just couldn’t remember what it meant. But even with his inability to translate it, the word sent a chill through him. It was worse, much worse, than anything he had imagined. He felt like a lost, helpless being, and from that moment on, all his will to fight vanished.

“It is magnificent to be such a willing——” added Schliemann, sidling up to him with a dreadful leer on his face. He made use of the same word—“Opfer.”

“It’s amazing to be so willing——” added Schliemann, approaching him with a disturbing grin on his face. He used the same word—“Opfer.”

God! What could it all mean? “Offer himself!” “True spirit of devotion!” “Willing,” “unselfish,” “magnificent!” Opfer, Opfer, Opfer! What in the name of heaven did it mean, that strange, mysterious word that struck such terror into his heart?

God! What could it all mean? “Offer himself!” “True spirit of devotion!” “Willing,” “unselfish,” “magnificent!” Opfer, Opfer, Opfer! What in the world did it mean, that strange, mysterious word that filled him with such dread?

He made a valiant effort to keep his presence of mind and hold his nerves steady. Turning, he saw that Kalkmann’s face was a dead white. Kalkmann! He understood that well enough. Kalkmann meant “Man of Chalk”; he knew that. But what did Opfer” mean? That was the real key to the situation. Words poured through his disordered mind in an endless stream—unusual, rare words he had perhaps heard but once in his life—while “Opfer,” a word in common use, entirely escaped him. What an extraordinary mockery it all was!

He made a strong effort to stay calm and keep his nerves steady. Turning, he noticed that Kalkmann’s face was completely white. Kalkmann! He understood that well enough. Kalkmann meant “Man of Chalk”; he got that. But what did Opfer” mean? That was the real key to the situation. Words flooded through his chaotic mind in an endless stream—strange, rare words he had probably heard only once in his life—while “Opfer,” a word commonly used, completely eluded him. What an incredible mockery it all was!

Then Kalkmann, pale as death, but his face hard as iron, spoke a few low words that he did not catch, and the Brothers standing by the walls at once turned the lamps down so that the room became dim. In the half light he could only just discern their faces and movements.

Then Kalkmann, pale as a ghost but with a face as hard as iron, murmured a few quiet words that he didn't hear, and the Brothers standing by the walls immediately dimmed the lamps so that the room became dark. In the low light, he could barely make out their faces and movements.

“It is time,” he heard Kalkmann’s remorseless voice continue just behind him. “The hour of midnight is at hand. Let us prepare. He comes! He comes; Bruder Asmodelius comes!” His voice rose to a chant.

“It’s time,” he heard Kalkmann’s relentless voice continue just behind him. “Midnight is approaching. Let’s get ready. He’s coming! He’s coming; Brother Asmodelius is coming!” His voice lifted into a chant.

And the sound of that name, for some extraordinary reason, was terrible—utterly terrible; so that Harris shook from head to foot as he heard it. Its utterance filled the air like soft thunder, and a hush came over the whole room. Forces rose all about him, transforming the normal into the horrible, and the spirit of craven fear ran through all his being, bringing him to the verge of collapse.

And for some strange reason, the sound of that name was awful—completely awful; it made Harris shake all over when he heard it. Saying it filled the air like quiet thunder, and everyone in the room fell silent. A powerful energy surrounded him, turning the ordinary into something terrifying, and a deep fear coursed through him, pushing him to the brink of breaking down.

Asmodelius! Asmodelius! The name was appalling. For he understood at last to whom it referred and the meaning that lay between its great syllables. At the same instant, too, he suddenly understood the meaning of that unremembered word. The import of the word “Opfer” flashed upon his soul like a message of death.

Asmodelius! Asmodelius! The name was terrifying. He finally realized who it referred to and the significance behind its heavy syllables. At that same moment, he also suddenly grasped the meaning of that forgotten word. The impact of the word “Opfer” hit him like a death sentence.

He thought of making a wild effort to reach the door, but the weakness of his trembling knees, and the row of black figures that stood between, dissuaded him at once. He would have screamed for help, but remembering the emptiness of the vast building, and the loneliness of the situation, he understood that no help could come that way, and he kept his lips closed. He stood still and did nothing. But he knew now what was coming.

He considered making a desperate run for the door, but the weakness in his trembling knees and the line of dark figures blocking his path quickly stopped him. He wanted to scream for help, but remembering how empty the huge building was and feeling the weight of his isolation, he realized that no one would come to his aid, so he kept his mouth shut. He stood frozen and did nothing. But he knew what was coming.

Two of the brothers approached and took him gently by the arm.

Two of the brothers came up and gently took him by the arm.

“Bruder Asmodelius accepts you,” they whispered; “are you ready?”

“Brother Asmodelius accepts you,” they whispered; “are you ready?”

Then he found his tongue and tried to speak. “But what have I to do with this Bruder Asm—Asmo——?” he stammered, a desperate rush of words crowding vainly behind the halting tongue.

Then he found his voice and tried to speak. “But what do I have to do with this Bruder Asm—Asmo——?” he stumbled, a desperate rush of words crowding uselessly behind his hesitant speech.

The name refused to pass his lips. He could not pronounce it as they did. He could not pronounce it at all. His sense of helplessness then entered the acute stage, for this inability to speak the name produced a fresh sense of quite horrible confusion in his mind, and he became extraordinarily agitated.

The name wouldn't come out of his mouth. He couldn't say it like they did. He couldn't say it at all. His feeling of helplessness intensified, as this inability to speak the name created a new layer of dreadful confusion in his mind, and he grew extremely upset.

“I came here for a friendly visit,” he tried to say with a great effort, but, to his intense dismay, he heard his voice saying something quite different, and actually making use of that very word they had all used: “I came here as a willing Opfer,” he heard his own voice say, “and I am quite ready.”

“I came here for a friendly visit,” he tried to say with a lot of effort, but to his great dismay, he heard his voice saying something totally different and actually using that very word they had all used: “I came here as a willing Opfer,” he heard his own voice say, “and I am quite ready.”

He was lost beyond all recall now! Not alone his mind, but the very muscles of his body had passed out of control. He felt that he was hovering on the confines of a phantom or demon-world,—a world in which the name they had spoken constituted the Master-name, the word of ultimate power.

He was completely lost now! Not just his mind, but even the muscles in his body had gone out of control. He felt like he was teetering on the edge of a ghostly or demonic realm—a place where the name they had mentioned was the Master-name, the word of ultimate power.

What followed he heard and saw as in a nightmare.

What came next felt like a nightmare to him.

“In the half light that veils all truth, let us prepare to worship and adore,” chanted Schliemann, who had preceded him to the end of the room.

“In the dim light that hides all truth, let's get ready to worship and honor,” chanted Schliemann, who had moved to the far end of the room.

“In the mists that protect our faces before the Black Throne, let us make ready the willing victim,” echoed Kalkmann in his great bass.

“In the fog that hides our faces in front of the Black Throne, let’s prepare the willing victim,” Kalkmann said in his deep voice.

They raised their faces, listening expectantly, as a roaring sound, like the passing of mighty projectiles, filled the air, far, far away, very wonderful, very forbidding. The walls of the room trembled.

They lifted their faces, listening eagerly, as a roaring sound, like the rush of powerful projectiles, filled the air, far off, both amazing and intimidating. The walls of the room shook.

“He comes! He comes! He comes!” chanted the Brothers in chorus.

“He's coming! He's coming! He's coming!” chanted the Brothers in unison.

The sound of roaring died away, and an atmosphere of still and utter cold established itself over all. Then Kalkmann, dark and unutterably stern, turned in the dim light and faced the rest.

The sound of the roar faded, and a chilling stillness settled over everything. Then Kalkmann, grim and incredibly serious, turned in the dim light to face the others.

“Asmodelius, our Hauptbruder, is about us,” he cried in a voice that even while it shook was yet a voice of iron; “Asmodelius is about us. Make ready.”

“Asmodelius, our Hauptbruder, is here with us,” he shouted, his voice strong despite its tremor; “Asmodelius is here with us. Get ready.”

There followed a pause in which no one stirred or spoke. A tall Brother approached the Englishman; but Kalkmann held up his hand.

There was a moment of silence where no one moved or said anything. A tall Brother walked up to the Englishman, but Kalkmann raised his hand.

“Let the eyes remain uncovered,” he said, “in honour of so freely giving himself.” And to his horror Harris then realised for the first time that his hands were already fastened to his sides.

“Let the eyes stay uncovered,” he said, “in honor of such a generous gift of himself.” And to his shock, Harris then realized for the first time that his hands were already tied to his sides.

The Brother retreated again silently, and in the pause that followed all the figures about him dropped to their knees, leaving him standing alone, and as they dropped, in voices hushed with mingled reverence and awe, they cried softly, odiously, appallingly, the name of the Being whom they momentarily expected to appear.

The Brother quietly stepped back again, and in the silence that followed, everyone around him knelt down, leaving him standing alone. As they knelt, their voices, filled with a mix of respect and fear, softly murmured, in a creepy and unsettling way, the name of the Being they were anticipating would appear at any moment.

Then, at the end of the room, where the windows seemed to have disappeared so that he saw the stars, there rose into view far up against the night sky, grand and terrible, the outline of a man. A kind of grey glory enveloped it so that it resembled a steel-cased statue, immense, imposing, horrific in its distant splendour; while, at the same time, the face was so spiritually mighty, yet so proudly, so austerely sad, that Harris felt as he stared, that the sight was more than his eyes could meet, and that in another moment the power of vision would fail him altogether, and he must sink into utter nothingness.

Then, at the end of the room, where it felt like the windows had vanished and he could see the stars, a figure rose up against the night sky—a man, grand and terrifying. A sort of grey light surrounded him, making him look like a massive steel statue, impressive and horrifying in its distant beauty; yet at the same time, the face was spiritually powerful, yet so proud, so solemnly sad, that as Harris stared, he felt the sight was more than he could handle, and soon, he feared his ability to see would fade completely, and he would slip into total nothingness.

So remote and inaccessible hung this figure that it was impossible to gauge anything as to its size, yet at the same time so strangely close, that when the grey radiance from its mightily broken visage, august and mournful, beat down upon his soul, pulsing like some dark star with the powers of spiritual evil, he felt almost as though he were looking into a face no farther removed from him in space than the face of any one of the Brothers who stood by his side.

So distant and unreachable hung this figure that it was impossible to determine its size, yet at the same time so strangely close that when the gray light from its powerfully shattered face, majestic and sorrowful, beat down upon his soul, throbbing like a dark star with forces of spiritual wickedness, he felt almost as if he were gazing into a face no farther away from him than the face of any of the Brothers standing beside him.

And then the room filled and trembled with sounds that Harris understood full well were the failing voices of others who had preceded him in a long series down the years. There came first a plain, sharp cry, as of a man in the last anguish, choking for his breath, and yet, with the very final expiration of it, breathing the name of the Worship—of the dark Being who rejoiced to hear it. The cries of the strangled; the short, running gasp of the suffocated; and the smothered gurgling of the tightened throat, all these, and more, echoed back and forth between the walls, the very walls in which he now stood a prisoner, a sacrificial victim. The cries, too, not alone of the broken bodies, but—far worse—of beaten, broken souls. And as the ghastly chorus rose and fell, there came also the faces of the lost and unhappy creatures to whom they belonged, and, against that curtain of pale grey light, he saw float past him in the air, an array of white and piteous human countenances that seemed to beckon and gibber at him as though he were already one of themselves.

And then the room filled and vibrated with sounds that Harris fully recognized as the fading voices of those who had come before him in a long line throughout the years. First, there was a sharp, desperate cry, like a man in his final agony, gasping for breath, and yet, with his very last breath, uttering the name of the Worship—of the dark Being who thrilled to hear it. The screams of the strangled, the short, quick gasps of the suffocated, and the muffled gurgling of a constricted throat—all these and more echoed back and forth between the walls, the very walls in which he now stood a prisoner, a sacrificial victim. The cries came not just from broken bodies, but—far worse—from beaten, shattered souls. And as the horrific chorus rose and fell, he also saw the faces of the lost and sorrowful beings to whom these cries belonged, and against that pale grey light, he saw float by him in the air, a collection of white and pitiful human faces that seemed to beckon and whisper at him as if he were already one of them.

Slowly, too, as the voices rose, and the pallid crew sailed past, that giant form of grey descended from the sky and approached the room that contained the worshippers and their prisoner. Hands rose and sank about him in the darkness, and he felt that he was being draped in other garments than his own; a circlet of ice seemed to run about his head, while round the waist, enclosing the fastened arms, he felt a girdle tightly drawn. At last, about his very throat, there ran a soft and silken touch which, better than if there had been full light, and a mirror held to his face, he understood to be the cord of sacrifice—and of death.

Slowly, as the voices rose and the pale crew sailed past, that massive grey figure descended from the sky and approached the room where the worshippers and their prisoner were. Hands rose and fell around him in the darkness, and he sensed that he was being wrapped in clothes that weren’t his own; a band of ice seemed to encircle his head, while around his waist, binding his arms, he felt a belt pulled tight. Finally, around his very throat, there was a soft and silky sensation that, clearer than if there had been bright light and a mirror held up to his face, he realized was the cord of sacrifice—and of death.

At this moment the Brothers, still prostrate upon the floor, began again their mournful, yet impassioned chanting, and as they did so a strange thing happened. For, apparently without moving or altering its position, the huge Figure seemed, at once and suddenly, to be inside the room, almost beside him, and to fill the space around him to the exclusion of all else.

At that moment, the Brothers, still lying flat on the floor, started their sad but intense chanting once more, and as they did, something strange occurred. It seemed that, without moving or changing its position, the massive Figure was suddenly inside the room, nearly beside him, and filled the space around him completely.

He was now beyond all ordinary sensations of fear, only a drab feeling as of death—the death of the soul—stirred in his heart. His thoughts no longer even beat vainly for escape. The end was near, and he knew it.

He was now beyond any ordinary feelings of fear; only a dull sensation like death—the death of the soul—stirred in his heart. His thoughts no longer even struggled vainly for escape. The end was near, and he knew it.

The dreadfully chanting voices rose about him in a wave: “We worship! We adore! We offer!” The sounds filled his ears and hammered, almost meaningless, upon his brain.

The terrifying chanting voices swelled around him: “We worship! We adore! We offer!” The sounds filled his ears and pounded, almost senselessly, against his mind.

Then the majestic grey face turned slowly downwards upon him, and his very soul passed outwards and seemed to become absorbed in the sea of those anguished eyes. At the same moment a dozen hands forced him to his knees, and in the air before him he saw the arm of Kalkmann upraised, and felt the pressure about his throat grow strong.

Then the majestic gray face slowly tilted down towards him, and his very soul seemed to drift outward, becoming lost in the sea of those pained eyes. At the same time, a dozen hands pushed him to his knees, and he saw Kalkmann's arm raised in front of him, feeling the grip around his throat tighten.

It was in this awful moment, when he had given up all hope, and the help of gods or men seemed beyond question, that a strange thing happened. For before his fading and terrified vision, there slid, as in a dream of light,—yet without apparent rhyme or reason—wholly unbidden and unexplained,—the face of that other man at the supper table of the railway inn. And the sight, even mentally, of that strong, wholesome, vigorous English face, inspired him suddenly with a new courage.

It was in this terrible moment, when he had lost all hope and the help of gods or people seemed impossible, that something strange happened. For before his fading and scared vision, there appeared, like a dream of light—yet without any clear reason or explanation—the face of that other man from the dinner table at the railway inn. And the sight, even in his mind, of that strong, healthy, energetic English face filled him suddenly with new courage.

It was but a flash of fading vision before he sank into a dark and terrible death, yet, in some inexplicable way, the sight of that face stirred in him unconquerable hope and the certainty of deliverance. It was a face of power, a face, he now realised, of simple goodness such as might have been seen by men of old on the shores of Galilee; a face, by heaven, that could conquer even the devils of outer space.

It was just a brief glimpse before he fell into a dark and terrible death, but somehow, seeing that face awakened in him an unbeatable hope and the promise of rescue. It was a powerful face, a face that he now understood embodied pure goodness, like those men from ancient times who walked along the shores of Galilee; a face, for goodness' sake, that could defeat even the devils of outer space.

And, in his despair and abandonment, he called upon it, and called with no uncertain accents. He found his voice in this overwhelming moment to some purpose; though the words he actually used, and whether they were in German or English, he could never remember. Their effect, nevertheless, was instantaneous. The Brothers understood, and that grey Figure of evil understood.

And, in his despair and feeling all alone, he called out to it, and he called out clearly. In that overwhelming moment, he found his voice for some purpose; although he could never recall the exact words he used or whether they were in German or English. Their impact, however, was immediate. The Brothers understood, and that gray Figure of evil understood.

For a second the confusion was terrific. There came a great shattering sound. It seemed that the very earth trembled. But all Harris remembered afterwards was that voices rose about him in the clamour of terrified alarm—

For a moment, the confusion was intense. There was a loud crashing sound. It felt like the ground was shaking. But all Harris recalled later was that voices surrounded him in the chaos of panic—

“A man of power is among us! A man of God!”

“A powerful man is here with us! A man of God!”

The vast sound was repeated—the rushing through space as of huge projectiles—and he sank to the floor of the room, unconscious. The entire scene had vanished, vanished like smoke over the roof of a cottage when the wind blows.

The loud noise echoed again—the rush through the air like giant missiles—and he collapsed to the floor of the room, unconscious. The whole scene had disappeared, gone like smoke drifting over the roof of a cottage when the wind blows.

And, by his side, sat down a slight, un-German figure,—the figure of the stranger at the inn,—the man who had the “rather wonderful eyes.”

And, by his side, sat a slender, un-German figure—the stranger from the inn—the man with the “pretty amazing eyes.”


When Harris came to himself he felt cold. He was lying under the open sky, and the cool air of field and forest was blowing upon his face. He sat up and looked about him. The memory of the late scene was still horribly in his mind, but no vestige of it remained. No walls or ceiling enclosed him; he was no longer in a room at all. There were no lamps turned low, no cigar smoke, no black forms of sinister worshippers, no tremendous grey Figure hovering beyond the windows.

When Harris regained consciousness, he felt cold. He was lying under the open sky, and the cool air from the fields and forest was blowing on his face. He sat up and looked around. The memory of what had just happened was still horrifyingly clear in his mind, but there was no trace of it left. No walls or ceiling surrounded him; he was no longer in a room at all. There were no dim lamps, no cigar smoke, no shadowy figures of ominous worshippers, and no huge grey figure hovering outside the windows.

Open space was about him, and he was lying on a pile of bricks and mortar, his clothes soaked with dew, and the kind stars shining brightly overhead. He was lying, bruised and shaken, among the heaped-up débris of a ruined building.

Open space surrounded him, and he was lying on a pile of bricks and mortar, his clothes wet with dew, and the kind stars shining brightly above. He was lying, bruised and shaken, among the stacked debris of a collapsed building.

He stood up and stared about him. There, in the shadowy distance, lay the surrounding forest, and here, close at hand, stood the outline of the village buildings. But, underfoot, beyond question, lay nothing but the broken heaps of stones that betokened a building long since crumbled to dust. Then he saw that the stones were blackened, and that great wooden beams, half burnt, half rotten, made lines through the general débris. He stood, then, among the ruins of a burnt and shattered building, the weeds and nettles proving conclusively that it had lain thus for many years.

He got up and looked around. In the dim distance, he could see the surrounding forest, and close by, the outline of the village buildings was visible. But beneath him, there was nothing but broken piles of stones that signaled a structure long since turned to dust. Then he noticed that the stones were charred, and that large wooden beams, half burnt and half decayed, lay scattered among the debris. He stood there among the ruins of a burned and collapsed building, with weeds and nettles clearly showing that it had been this way for many years.

The moon had already set behind the encircling forest, but the stars that spangled the heavens threw enough light to enable him to make quite sure of what he saw. Harris, the silk merchant, stood among these broken and burnt stones and shivered.

The moon had already gone down behind the surrounding forest, but the stars scattered across the sky provided enough light for him to clearly see what was around him. Harris, the silk merchant, stood among these shattered and charred stones and shivered.

Then he suddenly became aware that out of the gloom a figure had risen and stood beside him. Peering at him, he thought he recognised the face of the stranger at the railway inn.

Then he suddenly realized that a figure had emerged from the darkness and was standing next to him. Squinting at the person, he thought he recognized the face of the stranger from the railway inn.

“Are you real?” he asked in a voice he hardly recognised as his own.

“Are you real?” he asked in a voice he barely recognized as his own.

“More than real—I’m friendly,” replied the stranger; “I followed you up here from the inn.”

“More than real—I’m friendly,” replied the stranger. “I followed you up here from the inn.”

Harris stood and stared for several minutes without adding anything. His teeth chattered. The least sound made him start; but the simple words in his own language, and the tone in which they were uttered, comforted him inconceivably.

Harris stood and stared for several minutes without saying anything. His teeth were chattering. The slightest sound made him jump, but the simple words in his own language and the tone they were spoken in comforted him in a way he couldn’t believe.

“You’re English too, thank God,” he said inconsequently. “These German devils——” He broke off and put a hand to his eyes. “But what’s become of them all—and the room—and—and——” The hand travelled down to his throat and moved nervously round his neck. He drew a long, long breath of relief. “Did I dream everything—everything?” he said distractedly.

“You’re English too, thank goodness,” he said offhandedly. “These German devils——” He broke off and put a hand to his eyes. “But what happened to them all—and the room—and—and——” The hand traveled down to his throat and moved nervously around his neck. He took a long, deep breath of relief. “Did I dream everything—everything?” he said, feeling confused.

He stared wildly about him, and the stranger moved forward and took his arm. “Come,” he said soothingly, yet with a trace of command in the voice, “we will move away from here. The high-road, or even the woods will be more to your taste, for we are standing now on one of the most haunted—and most terribly haunted—spots of the whole world.”

He looked around frantically, and the stranger stepped closer and took his arm. “Come on,” he said in a calming but slightly authoritative tone, “let’s get out of here. The main road or even the woods will be better for you, because we’re currently standing on one of the most haunted—and absolutely terrifyingly haunted—places in the entire world.”

He guided his companion’s stumbling footsteps over the broken masonry until they reached the path, the nettles stinging their hands, and Harris feeling his way like a man in a dream. Passing through the twisted iron railing they reached the path, and thence made their way to the road, shining white in the night. Once safely out of the ruins, Harris collected himself and turned to look back.

He helped his friend navigate the uneven ground of the crumbling stones until they got to the path, with the nettles stinging their hands, and Harris moving as if he were in a dream. After getting through the bent iron fence, they arrived at the path and then made their way to the road, which was shining white in the night. Once they were safely out of the ruins, Harris took a moment to gather himself and turned to look back.

“But, how is it possible?” he exclaimed, his voice still shaking. “How can it be possible? When I came in here I saw the building in the moonlight. They opened the door. I saw the figures and heard the voices and touched, yes touched their very hands, and saw their damned black faces, saw them far more plainly than I see you now.” He was deeply bewildered. The glamour was still upon his eyes with a degree of reality stronger than the reality even of normal life. “Was I so utterly deluded?”

“But how is that even possible?” he shouted, his voice trembling. “How can that be? When I walked in here, I saw the building in the moonlight. They opened the door. I saw the figures, heard the voices, and even touched—yes, touched their very hands. I saw their damn black faces, clearer than I see you now.” He was completely perplexed. The enchantment still clouded his eyes, giving a sense of reality that was even stronger than what normal life offered. “Was I really that totally deceived?”

Then suddenly the words of the stranger, which he had only half heard or understood, returned to him.

Then suddenly the words of the stranger, which he had only partially heard or understood, came back to him.

“Haunted?” he asked, looking hard at him; “haunted, did you say?” He paused in the roadway and stared into the darkness where the building of the old school had first appeared to him. But the stranger hurried him forward.

“Haunted?” he asked, looking intently at him; “haunted, did you say?” He paused in the street and stared into the dark where the old school building had first come into view for him. But the stranger urged him to keep going.

“We shall talk more safely farther on,” he said. “I followed you from the inn the moment I realised where you had gone. When I found you it was eleven o’clock——”

“We can talk more safely later,” he said. “I followed you from the inn as soon as I realized where you had gone. When I found you, it was eleven o’clock——”

“Eleven o’clock,” said Harris, remembering with a shudder.

“Eleven o’clock,” said Harris, recalling it with a shiver.

“——I saw you drop. I watched over you till you recovered consciousness of your own accord, and now—now I am here to guide you safely back to the inn. I have broken the spell—the glamour——”

“——I saw you fall. I stayed with you until you came to on your own, and now—now I’m here to help you safely back to the inn. I’ve broken the spell—the enchantment——”

“I owe you a great deal, sir,” interrupted Harris again, beginning to understand something of the stranger’s kindness, “but I don’t understand it all. I feel dazed and shaken.” His teeth still chattered, and spells of violent shivering passed over him from head to foot. He found that he was clinging to the other’s arm. In this way they passed beyond the deserted and crumbling village and gained the high-road that led homewards through the forest.

“I owe you a lot, sir,” Harris interrupted again, starting to grasp some of the stranger’s kindness, “but I don’t get everything. I feel confused and shaken up.” His teeth were still chattering, and waves of intense shivering swept over him from head to toe. He realized he was holding onto the other man's arm. This way, they moved beyond the abandoned and decaying village and reached the main road that led home through the forest.

“That school building has long been in ruins,” said the man at his side presently; “it was burnt down by order of the Elders of the community at least ten years ago. The village has been uninhabited ever since. But the simulacra of certain ghastly events that took place under that roof in past days still continue. And the ‘shells’ of the chief participants still enact there the dreadful deeds that led to its final destruction, and to the desertion of the whole settlement. They were devil-worshippers!”

“That school building has been in ruins for a long time,” said the man next to him. “It was burned down by the Elders of the community at least ten years ago. The village has been empty ever since. But echoes of some terrible events that happened under that roof long ago still linger. And the ‘shells’ of the main people involved still act out the horrific things that caused its final destruction and led to the abandonment of the entire settlement. They were devil-worshippers!”

Harris listened with beads of perspiration on his forehead that did not come alone from their leisurely pace through the cool night. Although he had seen this man but once before in his life, and had never before exchanged so much as a word with him, he felt a degree of confidence and a subtle sense of safety and well-being in his presence that were the most healing influences he could possibly have wished after the experience he had been through. For all that, he still felt as if he were walking in a dream, and though he heard every word that fell from his companion’s lips, it was only the next day that the full import of all he said became fully clear to him. The presence of this quiet stranger, the man with the wonderful eyes which he felt now, rather than saw, applied a soothing anodyne to his shattered spirit that healed him through and through. And this healing influence, distilled from the dark figure at his side, satisfied his first imperative need, so that he almost forgot to realise how strange and opportune it was that the man should be there at all.

Harris listened, beads of sweat on his forehead that didn't solely come from their relaxed stroll through the cool night. Even though he had only seen this man once before in his life and had never exchanged a word with him, he felt a sense of confidence and a subtle feeling of safety and well-being in his presence that were the most healing influences he could have wished for after what he had been through. Still, he felt like he was walking in a dream, and although he heard every word his companion said, it wasn't until the next day that the full meaning of everything became clear to him. The presence of this quiet stranger, the man with the extraordinary eyes, seemed to apply a soothing balm to his shattered spirit that healed him completely. This healing influence, coming from the dark figure beside him, met his deepest need so well that he almost forgot how strange and fortuitous it was that the man was there at all.

It somehow never occurred to him to ask his name, or to feel any undue wonder that one passing tourist should take so much trouble on behalf of another. He just walked by his side, listening to his quiet words, and allowing himself to enjoy the very wonderful experience after his recent ordeal, of being helped, strengthened, blessed. Only once, remembering vaguely something of his reading of years ago, he turned to the man beside him, after some more than usually remarkable words, and heard himself, almost involuntarily it seemed, putting the question: “Then are you a Rosicrucian, sir, perhaps?” But the stranger had ignored the words, or possibly not heard them, for he continued with his talk as though unconscious of any interruption, and Harris became aware that another somewhat unusual picture had taken possession of his mind, as they walked there side by side through the cool reaches of the forest, and that he had found his imagination suddenly charged with the childhood memory of Jacob wrestling with an angel,—wrestling all night with a being of superior quality whose strength eventually became his own.

It never crossed his mind to ask the man's name, nor did he find it strange that a passing tourist would go out of their way to help someone else. He just walked alongside him, listening to his calm words and allowing himself to savor the incredible experience of being supported, strengthened, and blessed after his recent struggles. Only once, remembering something he had read years ago, he turned to the man beside him after some particularly striking comments and found himself, almost without thinking, asking, “So, are you a Rosicrucian, maybe?” But the stranger seemed to ignore the question, or perhaps he just didn’t hear it, as he continued speaking as if unaware of any interruption. Harris then realized that another rather unusual image had taken hold of his mind while they walked side by side through the cool forest, and he suddenly recalled the childhood memory of Jacob wrestling with an angel—wrestling all night with a being of greater strength whose power eventually became his own.

“It was your abrupt conversation with the priest at supper that first put me upon the track of this remarkable occurrence,” he heard the man’s quiet voice beside him in the darkness, “and it was from him I learned after you left the story of the devil-worship that became secretly established in the heart of this simple and devout little community.”

“It was your sudden chat with the priest at dinner that first got me interested in this incredible event,” he heard the man’s calm voice next to him in the darkness, “and from him, I found out after you left about the devil-worship that secretly took root in the heart of this humble and devoted little community.”

“Devil-worship! Here——!” Harris stammered, aghast.

“Devil-worship! Look——!” Harris stammered, aghast.

“Yes—here;—conducted secretly for years by a group of Brothers before unexplained disappearances in the neighbourhood led to its discovery. For where could they have found a safer place in the whole wide world for their ghastly traffic and perverted powers than here, in the very precincts—under cover of the very shadow of saintliness and holy living?”

“Yes—here;—secretly run for years by a group of Brothers until mysterious disappearances in the area revealed it. Because where else could they have found a safer location in the whole wide world for their horrific dealings and twisted abilities than right here, in the very vicinity—sheltered by the very shadow of righteousness and holy living?”

“Awful, awful!” whispered the silk merchant, “and when I tell you the words they used to me——”

“Awful, awful!” whispered the silk merchant, “and when I tell you the words they used with me——”

“I know it all,” the stranger said quietly. “I saw and heard everything. My plan first was to wait till the end and then to take steps for their destruction, but in the interest of your personal safety,”—he spoke with the utmost gravity and conviction,—“in the interest of the safety of your soul, I made my presence known when I did, and before the conclusion had been reached——”

“I know everything,” the stranger said quietly. “I saw and heard it all. My initial plan was to wait until the end and then take action against them, but for your personal safety,”—he spoke with the utmost seriousness and conviction,—“for the safety of your soul, I revealed myself when I did, and before the final outcome had been decided——”

“My safety! The danger, then, was real. They were alive and——” Words failed him. He stopped in the road and turned towards his companion, the shining of whose eyes he could just make out in the gloom.

“My safety! The danger was real. They were alive and——” He couldn't find the words. He stopped in the road and turned towards his companion, whose shining eyes he could barely make out in the darkness.

“It was a concourse of the shells of violent men, spiritually-developed but evil men, seeking after death—the death of the body—to prolong their vile and unnatural existence. And had they accomplished their object you, in turn, at the death of your body, would have passed into their power and helped to swell their dreadful purposes.”

“It was a gathering of the shells of violent men, spiritually advanced yet malevolent men, pursuing death—the death of the body—to extend their vile and unnatural existence. If they had achieved their goal, you, at the moment of your own death, would have fallen into their control and contributed to their horrifying ambitions.”

Harris made no reply. He was trying hard to concentrate his mind upon the sweet and common things of life. He even thought of silk and St. Paul’s Churchyard and the faces of his partners in business.

Harris didn't respond. He was really trying to focus on the simple, enjoyable things in life. He even thought about silk, St. Paul’s Churchyard, and the faces of his business partners.

“For you came all prepared to be caught,” he heard the other’s voice like some one talking to him from a distance; “your deeply introspective mood had already reconstructed the past so vividly, so intensely, that you were en rapport at once with any forces of those days that chanced still to be lingering. And they swept you up all unresistingly.”

“For you came all ready to be caught,” he heard the other’s voice as if someone were talking to him from far away; “your deeply reflective mood had already rebuilt the past so vividly, so intensely, that you were en rapport right away with any remnants of those days that happened to still be around. And they swept you up without any resistance.”

Harris tightened his hold upon the stranger’s arm as he heard. At the moment he had room for one emotion only. It did not seem to him odd that this stranger should have such intimate knowledge of his mind.

Harris gripped the stranger’s arm tighter as he listened. Right then, he could only feel one emotion. It didn’t strike him as strange that this stranger had such a close understanding of his thoughts.

“It is, alas, chiefly the evil emotions that are able to leave their photographs upon surrounding scenes and objects,” the other added, “and who ever heard of a place haunted by a noble deed, or of beautiful and lovely ghosts revisiting the glimpses of the moon? It is unfortunate. But the wicked passions of men’s hearts alone seem strong enough to leave pictures that persist; the good are ever too lukewarm.”

“It is, unfortunately, mostly the negative emotions that can leave their marks on the places and things around us,” the other added, “and who ever heard of a location haunted by a noble deed, or of beautiful and lovely spirits revisiting the moonlit scenes? It’s a shame. But the wicked passions of people’s hearts alone seem strong enough to create lasting impressions; the good ones are always just too indifferent.”

The stranger sighed as he spoke. But Harris, exhausted and shaken as he was to the very core, paced by his side, only half listening. He moved as in a dream still. It was very wonderful to him, this walk home under the stars in the early hours of the October morning, the peaceful forest all about them, mist rising here and there over the small clearings, and the sound of water from a hundred little invisible streams filling in the pauses of the talk. In after life he always looked back to it as something magical and impossible, something that had seemed too beautiful, too curiously beautiful, to have been quite true. And, though at the time he heard and understood but a quarter of what the stranger said, it came back to him afterwards, staying with him till the end of his days, and always with a curious, haunting sense of unreality, as though he had enjoyed a wonderful dream of which he could recall only faint and exquisite portions.

The stranger sighed as he spoke. But Harris, worn out and shaken to his core, walked beside him, only half-listening. He felt like he was in a dream. The walk home under the stars in the early hours of an October morning was incredible to him—the peaceful forest surrounding them, mist rising here and there over the small clearings, and the sound of water from countless little invisible streams filling the pauses in their conversation. Later in life, he always remembered it as something magical and impossible, something that felt too beautiful, too oddly beautiful, to have been entirely real. And though at the time he only grasped about a quarter of what the stranger said, it lingered in his mind until his final days, always accompanied by a strange, haunting sense of unreality, as if he had experienced a beautiful dream of which he could only recall vague and exquisite fragments.

But the horror of the earlier experience was effectually dispelled; and when they reached the railway inn, somewhere about three o’clock in the morning, Harris shook the stranger’s hand gratefully, effusively, meeting the look of those rather wonderful eyes with a full heart, and went up to his room, thinking in a hazy, dream-like way of the words with which the stranger had brought their conversation to an end as they left the confines of the forest—

But the terror of the earlier experience was completely gone; and when they arrived at the railway inn around three o’clock in the morning, Harris shook the stranger’s hand gratefully and warmly, meeting the gaze of those somewhat amazing eyes with a full heart. He then went up to his room, thinking in a foggy, dream-like way about the words the stranger had used to wrap up their conversation as they left the edge of the forest—

“And if thought and emotion can persist in this way so long after the brain that sent them forth has crumbled into dust, how vitally important it must be to control their very birth in the heart, and guard them with the keenest possible restraint.”

“And if thoughts and feelings can endure like this long after the brain that created them has turned to dust, how crucial it must be to manage their very emergence in the heart, and protect them with the most intense restraint possible.”

But Harris, the silk merchant, slept better than might have been expected, and with a soundness that carried him half-way through the day. And when he came downstairs and learned that the stranger had already taken his departure, he realised with keen regret that he had never once thought of asking his name.

But Harris, the silk merchant, slept better than expected, and the quality of his sleep carried him halfway through the day. When he came downstairs and found out that the stranger had already left, he felt a sharp regret that he had never thought to ask for his name.

“Yes, he signed in the visitors’ book,” said the girl in reply to his question.

“Yes, he signed the visitors’ book,” the girl replied to his question.

And he turned over the blotted pages and found there, the last entry, in a very delicate and individual handwriting—

And he flipped over the smudged pages and saw there, the last entry, in a very fine and unique handwriting—

John Silence, London.”

John Silence, London.”


CASE V
THE CAMP OF THE DOG


CASE V
THE CAMP OF THE DOG

I

Islands of all shapes and sizes troop northward from Stockholm by the hundred, and the little steamer that threads their intricate mazes in summer leaves the traveller in a somewhat bewildered state as regards the points of the compass when it reaches the end of its journey at Waxholm. But it is only after Waxholm that the true islands begin, so to speak, to run wild, and start up the coast on their tangled course of a hundred miles of deserted loveliness, and it was in the very heart of this delightful confusion that we pitched our tents for a summer holiday. A veritable wilderness of islands lay about us: from the mere round button of a rock that bore a single fir, to the mountainous stretch of a square mile, densely wooded, and bounded by precipitous cliffs; so close together often that a strip of water ran between no wider than a country lane, or, again, so far that an expanse stretched like the open sea for miles.

Islands of all shapes and sizes head north from Stockholm by the hundreds, and the little steamer that navigates their complicated paths in summer leaves travelers feeling a bit lost when it finally reaches its destination at Waxholm. But the real adventure starts after Waxholm, where the true islands begin to go wild, continuing up the coast on a tangled journey of a hundred miles filled with untouched beauty. It was right in the heart of this charming chaos that we set up our tents for a summer getaway. A true wilderness of islands surrounded us: from a tiny rock with a single fir tree to a large area of square mile covered in dense woods and bordered by steep cliffs; sometimes so close together that a narrow strip of water separated them, like a country lane, or so far apart that the space looked like the open sea for miles.

Although the larger islands boasted farms and fishing stations, the majority were uninhabited. Carpeted with moss and heather, their coast-lines showed a series of ravines and clefts and little sandy bays, with a growth of splendid pine-woods that came down to the water’s edge and led the eye through unknown depths of shadow and mystery into the very heart of primitive forest.

Although the bigger islands had farms and fishing spots, most were uninhabited. Covered in moss and heather, their coastlines displayed a series of ravines and gaps, along with small sandy beaches, featuring beautiful pine forests that reached the water’s edge and drew the eye into unknown depths of shadow and mystery at the very heart of the wild forest.

The particular islands to which we had camping rights by virtue of paying a nominal sum to a Stockholm merchant lay together in a picturesque group far beyond the reach of the steamer, one being a mere reef with a fringe of fairy-like birches, and two others, cliff-bound monsters rising with wooded heads out of the sea. The fourth, which we selected because it enclosed a little lagoon suitable for anchorage, bathing, night-lines, and what-not, shall have what description is necessary as the story proceeds; but, so far as paying rent was concerned, we might equally well have pitched our tents on any one of a hundred others that clustered about us as thickly as a swarm of bees.

The islands where we had camping rights, thanks to paying a small fee to a Stockholm merchant, were part of a beautiful group far beyond the reach of the steamer. One was just a reef with a line of charming birches, and two others were massive cliffs rising from the sea with forested tops. We picked the fourth one because it had a small lagoon perfect for anchoring, swimming, night fishing, and more. I’ll describe it as needed as the story goes on, but when it came to paying rent, we could have easily set up our tents on any of the hundreds of others crowded around us like a swarm of bees.

It was in the blaze of an evening in July, the air clear as crystal, the sea a cobalt blue, when we left the steamer on the borders of civilisation and sailed away with maps, compasses, and provisions for the little group of dots in the Skärgård that were to be our home for the next two months. The dinghy and my Canadian canoe trailed behind us, with tents and dunnage carefully piled aboard, and when the point of cliff intervened to hide the steamer and the Waxholm hotel we realised for the first time that the horror of trains and houses was far behind us, the fever of men and cities, the weariness of streets and confined spaces. The wilderness opened up on all sides into endless blue reaches, and the map and compasses were so frequently called into requisition that we went astray more often than not and progress was enchantingly slow. It took us, for instance, two whole days to find our crescent-shaped home, and the camps we made on the way were so fascinating that we left them with difficulty and regret, for each island seemed more desirable than the one before it, and over all lay the spell of haunting peace, remoteness from the turmoil of the world, and the freedom of open and desolate spaces.

It was during a July evening, the air as clear as glass and the sea a bright blue, when we left the steamer at the edge of civilization and sailed off with maps, compasses, and supplies for the small group of islands in the Skärgård that would be our home for the next two months. The dinghy and my Canadian canoe followed us, packed with tents and gear, and when the cliff blocked our view of the steamer and the Waxholm hotel, we realized for the first time that the chaos of trains and buildings was far behind us, along with the hustle of people and cities, and the exhaustion of streets and cramped spaces. The wilderness opened up around us into endless blue horizons, and we pulled out the map and compasses so often that we ended up lost more often than not, and our progress was delightfully slow. For example, it took us two full days to locate our crescent-shaped home, and the camps we set up along the way were so captivating that we struggled to leave them, as each island seemed more appealing than the last, all enveloped in a spell of serene peace, far from the chaos of the world, and the freedom of vast, uninhabited spaces.

And so many of these spots of world-beauty have I sought out and dwelt in, that in my mind remains only a composite memory of their faces, a true map of heaven, as it were, from which this particular one stands forth with unusual sharpness because of the strange things that happened there, and also, I think, because anything in which John Silence played a part has a habit of fixing itself in the mind with a living and lasting quality of vividness.

And so many of these beautiful places in the world have I found and lived in that all that’s left in my mind is a mixed memory of their appearances, like a real map of paradise, which makes this specific one stand out with unusual clarity due to the unusual events that took place there. I also think it's because anything involving John Silence tends to stick in your mind with a lively and lasting brightness.

For the moment, however, Dr. Silence was not of the party. Some private case in the interior of Hungary claimed his attention, and it was not till later—the 15th of August, to be exact—that I had arranged to meet him in Berlin and then return to London together for our harvest of winter work. All the members of our party, however, were known to him more or less well, and on this third day as we sailed through the narrow opening into the lagoon and saw the circular ridge of trees in a gold and crimson sunset before us, his last words to me when we parted in London for some unaccountable reason came back very sharply to my memory, and recalled the curious impression of prophecy with which I had first heard them:

For now, though, Dr. Silence wasn't with us. He was tied up with a private case in Hungary, and it wasn't until later—on August 15th, to be exact—that I had plans to meet him in Berlin and then head back to London together for our winter projects. All the other members of our group were somewhat familiar to him, and on this third day as we sailed through the narrow entrance into the lagoon and saw the ring of trees glowing in the gold and crimson sunset ahead, his last words to me when we said goodbye in London for some unknown reason came back to me vividly, bringing to mind the strange feeling of prophecy I had when I first heard them:

“Enjoy your holiday and store up all the force you can,” he had said as the train slipped out of Victoria; “and we will meet in Berlin on the 15th—unless you should send for me sooner.”

“Enjoy your vacation and recharge as much as you can,” he had said as the train pulled away from Victoria; “and we will meet in Berlin on the 15th—unless you decide to call for me before then.”

And now suddenly the words returned to me so clearly that it seemed I almost heard his voice in my ear: “Unless you should send for me sooner;” and returned, moreover, with a significance I was wholly at a loss to understand that touched somewhere in the depths of my mind a vague sense of apprehension that they had all along been intended in the nature of a prophecy.

And now suddenly the words came back to me so clearly that it felt like I could almost hear his voice in my ear: “Unless you send for me sooner;” and they came back, too, with a meaning I couldn’t fully grasp, stirring up a vague feeling of unease in my mind that they had always held a prophetic kind of significance.

In the lagoon, then, the wind failed us this July evening, as was only natural behind the shelter of the belt of woods, and we took to the oars, all breathless with the beauty of this first sight of our island home, yet all talking in somewhat hushed voices of the best place to land, the depth of water, the safest place to anchor, to put up the tents in, the most sheltered spot for the camp-fires, and a dozen things of importance that crop up when a home in the wilderness has actually to be made.

In the lagoon, the wind died down this July evening, as you’d expect behind the cover of the wooded area, so we grabbed the oars, all amazed by the beauty of our first view of the island home, but we spoke in quieter tones about the best spot to land, the water depth, the safest place to anchor, where to set up the tents, the most sheltered area for the campfires, and a dozen important things that come up when you’re actually trying to make a home in the wild.

And during this busy sunset hour of unloading before the dark, the souls of my companions adopted the trick of presenting themselves very vividly anew before my mind, and introducing themselves afresh.

And during this hectic sunset hour of unloading before nightfall, the spirits of my companions seemed to come alive again in my mind, reintroducing themselves.

In reality, I suppose, our party was in no sense singular. In the conventional life at home they certainly seemed ordinary enough, but suddenly, as we passed through these gates of the wilderness, I saw them more sharply than before, with characters stripped of the atmosphere of men and cities. A complete change of setting often furnishes a startlingly new view of people hitherto held for well-known; they present another facet of their personalities. I seemed to see my own party almost as new people—people I had not known properly hitherto, people who would drop all disguises and henceforth reveal themselves as they really were. And each one seemed to say: “Now you will see me as I am. You will see me here in this primitive life of the wilderness without clothes. All my masks and veils I have left behind in the abodes of men. So, look out for surprises!”

In reality, I guess our group wasn’t unique at all. In our everyday life back home, they definitely seemed pretty ordinary, but suddenly, as we went through these gates into the wild, I noticed them more clearly than before, with their personalities stripped of the influence of society and urban life. A completely different setting often gives us a shocking new perspective on people we thought we knew; they show a different side of their personalities. I felt like I was seeing my own group almost as new individuals—people I hadn’t truly understood before, who would drop all pretenses and reveal their true selves from now on. Each one seemed to say: “Now you’ll see me as I am. You’ll see me here in this raw wilderness without any facades. All my masks and disguises are left behind in the cities. So, get ready for surprises!”

The Reverend Timothy Maloney helped me to put up the tents, long practice making the process easy, and while he drove in pegs and tightened ropes, his coat off, his flannel collar flying open without a tie, it was impossible to avoid the conclusion that he was cut out for the life of a pioneer rather than the church. He was fifty years of age, muscular, blue-eyed and hearty, and he took his share of the work, and more, without shirking. The way he handled the axe in cutting down saplings for the tent-poles was a delight to see, and his eye in judging the level was unfailing.

The Reverend Timothy Maloney helped me set up the tents. Years of experience made the process easy for him. While he hammered in pegs and tightened ropes, with his coat off and his flannel collar open without a tie, it was clear he was meant for a pioneer’s life rather than the church. He was fifty, strong, blue-eyed, and full of life, taking on his share of the work—and then some—without hesitation. Watching him chop down saplings for the tent poles was impressive, and he was always spot on when judging the level.

Bullied as a young man into a lucrative family living, he had in turn bullied his mind into some semblance of orthodox beliefs, doing the honours of the little country church with an energy that made one think of a coal-heaver tending china; and it was only in the past few years that he had resigned the living and taken instead to cramming young men for their examinations. This suited him better. It enabled him, too, to indulge his passion for spells of “wild life,” and to spend the summer months of most years under canvas in one part of the world or another where he could take his young men with him and combine “reading” with open air.

Bullied as a young man into a comfortable family job, he had, in turn, pressured his mind into some version of conventional beliefs, performing the duties of the small country church with an enthusiasm that made one think of a coal worker handling delicate china; and it was only in the last few years that he had stepped down from the position and started preparing young men for their exams instead. This suited him better. It also allowed him to indulge his love for adventures in the "wild," spending the summer months most years camping in various parts of the world where he could take his young men with him and combine “studying” with the outdoors.

His wife usually accompanied him, and there was no doubt she enjoyed the trips, for she possessed, though in less degree, the same joy of the wilderness that was his own distinguishing characteristic. The only difference was that while he regarded it as the real life, she regarded it as an interlude. While he camped out with his heart and mind, she played at camping out with her clothes and body. None the less, she made a splendid companion, and to watch her busy cooking dinner over the fire we had built among the stones was to understand that her heart was in the business for the moment and that she was happy even with the detail.

His wife usually went with him, and it was clear she enjoyed the trips too, as she shared, albeit to a lesser extent, the same love for the wilderness that defined him. The only difference was that he saw it as his true life, while she viewed it as a break. While he immersed himself in the experience, she approached it more like a fashionable outing. Nevertheless, she made a great companion, and watching her prepare dinner over the fire we had made among the rocks showed that she was fully engaged in the moment and genuinely happy, even with the little things.

Mrs. Maloney at home, knitting in the sun and believing that the world was made in six days, was one woman; but Mrs. Maloney, standing with bare arms over the smoke of a wood fire under the pine trees, was another; and Peter Sangree, the Canadian pupil, with his pale skin, and his loose, though not ungainly figure, stood beside her in very unfavourable contrast as he scraped potatoes and sliced bacon with slender white fingers that seemed better suited to hold a pen than a knife. She ordered him about like a slave, and he obeyed, too, with willing pleasure, for in spite of his general appearance of debility he was as happy to be in camp as any of them.

Mrs. Maloney at home, knitting in the sun and thinking the world was created in six days, was one person; but Mrs. Maloney, standing with bare arms over the smoke of a wood fire under the pine trees, was someone else; and Peter Sangree, the Canadian student, with his pale skin and his loose, yet not ungraceful build, stood next to her in very unfavorable contrast as he scraped potatoes and sliced bacon with slender white fingers that seemed better suited to hold a pen than a knife. She bossed him around like a servant, and he happily complied, for despite his generally fragile appearance, he was just as glad to be in camp as anyone else.

But more than any other member of the party, Joan Maloney, the daughter, was the one who seemed a natural and genuine part of the landscape, who belonged to it all just in the same way that the trees and the moss and the grey rocks running out into the water belonged to it. For she was obviously in her right and natural setting, a creature of the wilds, a gipsy in her own home.

But more than anyone else in the group, Joan Maloney, the daughter, felt completely at home in the environment, just like the trees, the moss, and the gray rocks that reached into the water. She was clearly in her element, a natural being from the wild, a free spirit in her own home.

To any one with a discerning eye this would have been more or less apparent, but to me, who had known her during all the twenty-two years of her life and was familiar with the ins and outs of her primitive, utterly un-modern type, it was strikingly clear. To see her there made it impossible to imagine her again in civilisation. I lost all recollection of how she looked in a town. The memory somehow evaporated. This slim creature before me, flitting to and fro with the grace of the woodland life, swift, supple, adroit, on her knees blowing the fire, or stirring the frying-pan through a veil of smoke, suddenly seemed the only way I had ever really seen her. Here she was at home; in London she became some one concealed by clothes, an artificial doll overdressed and moving by clockwork, only a portion of her alive. Here she was alive all over.

To anyone with a keen eye, this would have been pretty obvious, but to me, who had known her for all twenty-two years of her life and was familiar with the details of her simple, totally un-modern style, it was glaringly clear. Seeing her there made it impossible to picture her again in a city. I completely lost track of how she looked in town. That memory just faded away. This slender person in front of me, darting around with the grace of nature, quick, flexible, and skillful, kneeling to tend the fire or stir the frying pan through a cloud of smoke, suddenly seemed like the only way I had ever truly seen her. Here, she was at home; in London, she became someone hidden by clothes, an artificial doll overdone and moving like a robot, only part of her really alive. Here, she was fully alive.

I forget altogether how she was dressed, just as I forget how any particular tree was dressed, or how the markings ran on any one of the boulders that lay about the Camp. She looked just as wild and natural and untamed as everything else that went to make up the scene, and more than that I cannot say.

I completely forget how she was dressed, just like I forget how any specific tree looked or how the patterns appeared on any of the boulders scattered around the Camp. She seemed as wild, natural, and untamed as everything else that made up the scene, and beyond that, I can't say more.

Pretty, she was decidedly not. She was thin, skinny, dark-haired, and possessed of great physical strength in the form of endurance. She had, too, something of the force and vigorous purpose of a man, tempestuous sometimes and wild to passionate, frightening her mother, and puzzling her easy-going father with her storms of waywardness, while at the same time she stirred his admiration by her violence. A pagan of the pagans she was besides, and with some haunting suggestion of old-world pagan beauty about her dark face and eyes. Altogether an odd and difficult character, but with a generosity and high courage that made her very lovable.

She was definitely not pretty. She was thin, skinny, dark-haired, and had a lot of physical strength in the form of endurance. She also had a forceful and vigorous purpose, sometimes tempestuous and wild, which frightened her mother and confused her laid-back father with her storms of rebelliousness, while at the same time earning his admiration for her intensity. She was a true pagan, and her dark face and eyes carried a haunting hint of ancient pagan beauty. All in all, she was an unusual and complex character, but her generosity and courage made her very lovable.

In town life she always seemed to me to feel cramped, bored, a devil in a cage, in her eyes a hunted expression as though any moment she dreaded to be caught. But up in these spacious solitudes all this disappeared. Away from the limitations that plagued and stung her, she would show at her best, and as I watched her moving about the Camp I repeatedly found myself thinking of a wild creature that had just obtained its freedom and was trying its muscles.

In town, she always seemed cramped and bored, like a devil in a cage, with a hunted look in her eyes as if she feared being caught at any moment. But up here in these wide-open spaces, all of that vanished. Away from the limitations that weighed her down, she thrived, and as I watched her moving around the Camp, I often thought of a wild creature that had just gained its freedom and was testing its strength.

Peter Sangree, of course, at once went down before her. But she was so obviously beyond his reach, and besides so well able to take care of herself, that I think her parents gave the matter but little thought, and he himself worshipped at a respectful distance, keeping admirable control of his passion in all respects save one; for at his age the eyes are difficult to master, and the yearning, almost the devouring, expression often visible in them was probably there unknown even to himself. He, better than any one else, understood that he had fallen in love with something most hard of attainment, something that drew him to the very edge of life, and almost beyond it. It, no doubt, was a secret and terrible joy to him, this passionate worship from afar; only I think he suffered more than any one guessed, and that his want of vitality was due in large measure to the constant stream of unsatisfied yearning that poured for ever from his soul and body. Moreover, it seemed to me, who now saw them for the first time together, that there was an unnamable something—an elusive quality of some kind—that marked them as belonging to the same world, and that although the girl ignored him she was secretly, and perhaps unknown to herself, drawn by some attribute very deep in her own nature to some quality equally deep in his.

Peter Sangree immediately went down before her. But she was obviously out of his league, and since she could take care of herself so well, I think her parents didn’t think much of the situation. He admired her from a distance, keeping a great control over his feelings except for one thing; at his age, the eyes are hard to control, and the longing look was likely there even if he didn’t realize it. He understood better than anyone that he had fallen for something nearly impossible to attain, something that pulled him to the edge of life and almost beyond. It must have been a secret and intense joy for him to worship her from afar; yet I think he suffered more than anyone knew, and his lack of energy stemmed largely from the constant stream of unfulfilled longing that flowed endlessly from his soul and body. Moreover, it seemed to me, seeing them together for the first time, that there was an unnameable quality—a certain elusive essence—that marked them as belonging to the same world, and even though the girl didn’t acknowledge him, she was secretly, perhaps unknowingly, attracted by something very deep in herself to an equally profound quality in him.

This, then, was the party when we first settled down into our two months’ camp on the island in the Baltic Sea. Other figures flitted from time to time across the scene, and sometimes one reading man, sometimes another, came to join us and spend his four hours a day in the clergyman’s tent, but they came for short periods only, and they went without leaving much trace in my memory, and certainly they played no important part in what subsequently happened.

This was when we first set up our two-month camp on the island in the Baltic Sea. Other people occasionally moved through the scene, and sometimes one reader or another would come by to spend four hours a day in the clergyman’s tent, but they only stayed briefly and didn't leave a lasting impression on me. They definitely didn't have a significant role in what happened next.

The weather favoured us that night, so that by sunset the tents were up, the boats unloaded, a store of wood collected and chopped into lengths, and the candle-lanterns hung round ready for lighting on the trees. Sangree, too, had picked deep mattresses of balsam boughs for the women’s beds, and had cleared little paths of brushwood from their tents to the central fireplace. All was prepared for bad weather. It was a cosy supper and a well-cooked one that we sat down to and ate under the stars, and, according to the clergyman, the only meal fit to eat we had seen since we left London a week before.

The weather was on our side that night, so by sunset, we had set up the tents, unloaded the boats, gathered and chopped a pile of firewood, and hung the candle lanterns on the trees, ready to light. Sangree had also made comfy mattresses from balsam branches for the women’s beds and had cleared little paths of brushwood from their tents to the central fireplace. Everything was ready for bad weather. We enjoyed a cozy and delicious dinner under the stars, which the clergyman claimed was the only meal worth eating since we left London a week ago.

The deep stillness, after that roar of steamers, trains, and tourists, held something that thrilled, for as we lay round the fire there was no sound but the faint sighing of the pines and the soft lapping of the waves along the shore and against the sides of the boat in the lagoon. The ghostly outline of her white sails was just visible through the trees, idly rocking to and fro in her calm anchorage, her sheets flapping gently against the mast. Beyond lay the dim blue shapes of other islands floating in the night, and from all the great spaces about us came the murmur of the sea and the soft breathing of great woods. The odours of the wilderness—smells of wind and earth, of trees and water, clean, vigorous, and mighty—were the true odours of a virgin world unspoilt by men, more penetrating and more subtly intoxicating than any other perfume in the whole world. Oh!—and dangerously strong, too, no doubt, for some natures!

The deep stillness after the noise of steamers, trains, and tourists was electrifying. As we lay around the fire, the only sounds were the gentle sighing of the pines and the soft lapping of waves along the shore and against the sides of the boat in the lagoon. The ghostly outline of her white sails was barely visible through the trees, lazily rocking back and forth in her calm anchorage, her sheets gently flapping against the mast. Beyond, the dim blue shapes of other islands floated in the night, while the murmur of the sea and the soft breathing of vast woods surrounded us. The aromas of the wilderness—smells of wind and earth, trees and water, clean, powerful, and alive—were the true fragrances of an untouched world, more intoxicating and captivating than any perfume anywhere. Oh!—and undeniably powerful, too, for some temperaments!

“Ahhh!” breathed out the clergyman after supper, with an indescribable gesture of satisfaction and relief. “Here there is freedom, and room for body and mind to turn in. Here one can work and rest and play. Here one can be alive and absorb something of the earth-forces that never get within touching-distance in the cities. By George, I shall make a permanent camp here and come when it is time to die!”

“Ahhh!” sighed the clergyman after dinner, with an indescribable gesture of satisfaction and relief. “Here there’s freedom, and space for both body and mind to relax. Here, one can work, rest, and have fun. Here, one can truly live and connect with the natural forces that are never within reach in the cities. By George, I’m going to set up a permanent camp here and return when it’s time to die!”

The good man was merely giving vent to his delight at being under canvas. He said the same thing every year, and he said it often. But it more or less expressed the superficial feelings of us all. And when, a little later, he turned to compliment his wife on the fried potatoes, and discovered that she was snoring, with her back against a tree, he grunted with content at the sight and put a ground-sheet over her feet, as if it were the most natural thing in the world for her to fall asleep after dinner, and then moved back to his own corner, smoking his pipe with great satisfaction.

The good man was just expressing his happiness about being outdoors. He said the same thing every year, and often. But it pretty much captured everyone's surface feelings. A little later, when he turned to compliment his wife on the fried potatoes and found her snoring, leaning against a tree, he chuckled happily at the sight and covered her feet with a blanket, as if it was completely normal for her to fall asleep after dinner. Then he went back to his own spot, smoking his pipe with great satisfaction.

And I, smoking mine too, lay and fought against the most delicious sleep imaginable, while my eyes wandered from the fire to the stars peeping through the branches, and then back again to the group about me. The Rev. Timothy soon let his pipe go out, and succumbed as his wife had done, for he had worked hard and eaten well. Sangree, also smoking, leaned against a tree with his gaze fixed on the girl, a depth of yearning in his face that he could not hide, and that really distressed me for him. And Joan herself, with wide staring eyes, alert, full of the new forces of the place, evidently keyed up by the magic of finding herself among all the things her soul recognised as “home,” sat rigid by the fire, her thoughts roaming through the spaces, the blood stirring about her heart. She was as unconscious of the Canadian’s gaze as she was that her parents both slept. She looked to me more like a tree, or something that had grown out of the island, than a living girl of the century; and when I spoke across to her in a whisper and suggested a tour of investigation, she started and looked up at me as though she heard a voice in her dreams.

And I, smoking my pipe too, lay there fighting against the most amazing sleep, while my eyes wandered from the fire to the stars peeking through the branches, and then back again to the group around me. The Rev. Timothy soon let his pipe go out and gave in, just like his wife, since he had worked hard and eaten well. Sangree, also smoking, leaned against a tree with his eyes fixed on the girl, a deep longing on his face that he couldn’t hide, which genuinely distressed me for him. And Joan herself, with wide staring eyes, alert and full of the new energy of the place, obviously energized by the magic of being among all the things her soul recognized as “home,” sat stiff by the fire, her thoughts wandering through the spaces, her heart racing. She was as unaware of the Canadian’s gaze as she was of the fact that her parents were both asleep. To me, she looked more like a tree or something that had grown out of the island than a living girl of this time; and when I whispered to her suggesting an exploration, she startled and looked up at me as if she heard a voice in her dreams.

Sangree leaped up and joined us, and without waking the others we three went over the ridge of the island and made our way down to the shore behind. The water lay like a lake before us still coloured by the sunset. The air was keen and scented, wafting the smell of the wooded islands that hung about us in the darkening air. Very small waves tumbled softly on the sand. The sea was sown with stars, and everywhere breathed and pulsed the beauty of the northern summer night. I confess I speedily lost consciousness of the human presences beside me, and I have little doubt Joan did too. Only Sangree felt otherwise, I suppose for presently we heard him sighing; and I can well imagine that he absorbed the whole wonder and passion of the scene into his aching heart, to swell the pain there that was more searching even than the pain at the sight of such matchless and incomprehensible beauty.

Sangree jumped up and joined us, and without waking the others, the three of us went over the ridge of the island and made our way down to the shore behind. The water lay like a lake before us, still glowing from the sunset. The air was crisp and fragrant, carrying the scent of the wooded islands around us in the darkening night. Small waves gently rolled onto the sand. The sea was dotted with stars, and the beauty of the northern summer night surrounded us, breathing and pulsing. I admit I quickly lost awareness of the people beside me, and I'm pretty sure Joan did too. Only Sangree felt differently; soon we heard him sigh, and I can easily imagine that he absorbed all the wonder and passion of the scene into his aching heart, deepening the pain there, which was even more intense than the pain from witnessing such unmatched and incomprehensible beauty.

The splash of a fish jumping broke the spell.

The sound of a fish jumping interrupted the moment.

“I wish we had the canoe now,” remarked Joan; “we could paddle out to the other islands.”

“I wish we had the canoe right now,” said Joan; “we could paddle out to the other islands.”

“Of course,” I said; “wait here and I’ll go across for it,” and was turning to feel my way back through the darkness when she stopped me in a voice that meant what it said.

“Sure,” I said; “wait here and I’ll go get it,” and I was turning to navigate my way back through the darkness when she stopped me with a voice that was clear about what it meant.

“No; Mr. Sangree will get it. We will wait here and cooee to guide him.”

“No, Mr. Sangree will take care of it. We'll stay here and call out to guide him.”

The Canadian was off in a moment, for she had only to hint of her wishes and he obeyed.

The Canadian was off in an instant, as she only had to suggest her wishes and he complied.

“Keep out from shore in case of rocks,” I cried out as he went, “and turn to the right out of the lagoon. That’s the shortest way round by the map.”

“Stay away from the shore because of the rocks,” I yelled as he left, “and take a right out of the lagoon. That’s the quickest route according to the map.”

My voice travelled across the still waters and woke echoes in the distant islands that came back to us like people calling out of space. It was only thirty or forty yards over the ridge and down the other side to the lagoon where the boats lay, but it was a good mile to coast round the shore in the dark to where we stood and waited. We heard him stumbling away among the boulders, and then the sounds suddenly ceased as he topped the ridge and went down past the fire on the other side.

My voice carried across the calm waters and triggered echoes in the distant islands that returned to us like voices calling from afar. It was only thirty or forty yards over the ridge and down the other side to the lagoon where the boats were, but it was a good mile to skirt the shore in the dark to where we stood and waited. We heard him stumbling among the boulders, and then the noise suddenly stopped as he climbed over the ridge and passed the fire on the other side.

“I didn’t want to be left alone with him” the girl said presently in a low voice. “I’m always afraid he’s going to say or do something——” She hesitated a moment, looking quickly over her shoulder towards the ridge where he had just disappeared—“something that might lead to unpleasantness.”

“I didn’t want to be left alone with him,” the girl said quietly. “I’m always afraid he’s going to say or do something——” She hesitated for a moment, glancing quickly over her shoulder toward the ridge where he had just vanished—“something that could lead to trouble.”

She stopped abruptly.

She stopped suddenly.

You frightened, Joan!” I exclaimed, with genuine surprise. “This is a new light on your wicked character. I thought the human being who could frighten you did not exist.” Then I suddenly realised she was talking seriously—looking to me for help of some kind—and at once I dropped the teasing attitude.

You scared, Joan!” I said, genuinely surprised. “This is a new side to your wicked personality. I thought no one could ever scare you.” Then I suddenly realized she was serious—looking to me for help of some sort—and I immediately dropped the teasing tone.

“He’s very far gone, I think, Joan,” I added gravely. “You must be kind to him, whatever else you may feel. He’s exceedingly fond of you.”

“Honestly, I think he’s really not doing well, Joan,” I added seriously. “You need to be kind to him, no matter how you feel. He cares about you a lot.”

“I know, but I can’t help it,” she whispered, lest her voice should carry in the stillness; “there’s something about him that—that makes me feel creepy and half afraid.”

“I know, but I can’t help it,” she whispered, afraid her voice might echo in the silence; “there’s something about him that—makes me feel uneasy and a bit scared.”

“But, poor man, it’s not his fault if he is delicate and sometimes looks like death,” I laughed gently, by way of defending what I felt to be a very innocent member of my sex.

“But, poor guy, it’s not his fault if he’s delicate and sometimes looks like he’s on his last legs,” I laughed gently, trying to defend what I saw as a very innocent member of my gender.

“Oh, but it’s not that I mean,” she answered quickly; “it’s something I feel about him, something in his soul, something he hardly knows himself, but that may come out if we are much together. It draws me, I feel, tremendously. It stirs what is wild in me—deep down—oh, very deep down,—yet at the same time makes me feel afraid.”

“Oh, that’s not what I mean,” she replied quickly; “it’s something I feel about him, something in his soul, something he hardly knows himself, but that might come out if we spend enough time together. It pulls me in, I feel it strongly. It stirs something wild inside me—deep down—oh, very deep down—yet at the same time, it makes me feel scared.”

“I suppose his thoughts are always playing about you,” I said, “but he’s nice-minded and——”

“I guess he’s always thinking about you,” I said, “but he’s a good guy and——”

“Yes, yes,” she interrupted impatiently, “I can trust myself absolutely with him. He’s gentle and singularly pure-minded. But there’s something else that——” She stopped again sharply to listen. Then she came up close beside me in the darkness, whispering—

“Yes, yes,” she interrupted impatiently, “I can completely trust myself with him. He’s gentle and exceptionally pure-minded. But there’s something else that——” She paused abruptly to listen again. Then she came up close beside me in the darkness, whispering—

“You know, Mr. Hubbard, sometimes my intuitions warn me a little too strongly to be ignored. Oh yes, you needn’t tell me again that it’s difficult to distinguish between fancy and intuition. I know all that. But I also know that there’s something deep down in that man’s soul that calls to something deep down in mine. And at present it frightens me. Because I cannot make out what it is; and I know, I know, he’ll do something some day that—that will shake my life to the very bottom.” She laughed a little at the strangeness of her own description.

“You know, Mr. Hubbard, sometimes my gut feelings warn me a little too strongly to be ignored. Oh yes, you don’t have to tell me again that it’s tough to tell the difference between imagination and intuition. I get it. But I also know there’s something deep down in that man’s soul that resonates with something deep down in mine. And right now, it scares me. Because I can’t figure out what it is; and I know, I know, he will do something one day that—that will shake my life to its core.” She laughed a little at the weirdness of her own description.

I turned to look at her more closely, but the darkness was too great to show her face. There was an intensity, almost of suppressed passion, in her voice that took me completely by surprise.

I turned to look at her more closely, but the darkness was too thick to reveal her face. There was a depth, almost of hidden passion, in her voice that caught me completely off guard.

“Nonsense, Joan,” I said, a little severely; “you know him well. He’s been with your father for months now.”

“Nonsense, Joan,” I said, a bit sternly; “you know him well. He’s been working with your dad for months now.”

“But that was in London; and up here it’s different—I mean, I feel that it may be different. Life in a place like this blows away the restraints of the artificial life at home. I know, oh, I know what I’m saying. I feel all untied in a place like this; the rigidity of one’s nature begins to melt and flow. Surely you must understand what I mean!”

“But that was in London; and up here it’s different—I mean, I feel that it might be different. Life in a place like this shakes off the constraints of the fake life back home. I know, oh, I know what I’m saying. I feel completely free in a place like this; the rigidity of one’s nature starts to dissolve and blend. Surely you must understand what I mean!”

“Of course I understand,” I replied, yet not wishing to encourage her in her present line of thought, “and it’s a grand experience—for a short time. But you’re overtired to-night, Joan, like the rest of us. A few days in this air will set you above all fears of the kind you mention.”

“Of course I get it,” I said, not wanting to support her current train of thought, “and it's a great experience—for a little while. But you’re worn out tonight, Joan, just like the rest of us. A few days in this fresh air will lift you above all those worries you mentioned.”

Then, after a moment’s silence, I added, feeling I should estrange her confidence altogether if I blundered any more and treated her like a child—

Then, after a brief pause, I added, realizing that if I messed up any further and treated her like a child, I would completely lose her trust—

“I think, perhaps, the true explanation is that you pity him for loving you, and at the same time you feel the repulsion of the healthy, vigorous animal for what is weak and timid. If he came up boldly and took you by the throat and shouted that he would force you to love him—well, then you would feel no fear at all. You would know exactly how to deal with him. Isn’t it, perhaps, something of that kind?”

“I think maybe the real reason is that you feel sorry for him because he loves you, but at the same time, you feel a natural aversion as a strong and healthy person to what is weak and timid. If he approached you confidently, grabbed you by the throat, and yelled that he would make you love him—well, then you wouldn’t feel scared at all. You would know exactly how to handle him. Isn’t it something like that?”

The girl made no reply, and when I took her hand I felt that it trembled a little and was cold.

The girl didn't respond, and when I took her hand, I noticed it trembled slightly and felt cold.

“It’s not his love that I’m afraid of,” she said hurriedly, for at this moment we heard the dip of a paddle in the water, “it’s something in his very soul that terrifies me in a way I have never been terrified before,—yet fascinates me. In town I was hardly conscious of his presence. But the moment we got away from civilisation, it began to come. He seems so—so real up here. I dread being alone with him. It makes me feel that something must burst and tear its way out—that he would do something—or I should do something—I don’t know exactly what I mean, probably,—but that I should let myself go and scream——”

“It’s not his love that I’m afraid of,” she said quickly, because at that moment we heard the sound of a paddle dipping in the water, “it’s something in his very soul that terrifies me in a way I’ve never felt before—yet it draws me in. In town, I barely noticed him. But the moment we got away from civilization, it started to come. He feels so—so real up here. I dread being alone with him. It makes me feel like something has to burst out—like he would do something—or I would do something—I don’t know exactly what I mean, probably—but that I would just let go and scream——”

“Joan!”

“Joan!”

“Don’t be alarmed,” she laughed shortly; “I shan’t do anything silly, but I wanted to tell you my feelings in case I needed your help. When I have intuitions as strong as this they are never wrong, only I don’t know yet what it means exactly.”

“Don’t worry,” she chuckled briefly; “I won’t do anything crazy, but I wanted to share my feelings in case I need your help. When I have strong intuitions like this, they’re always right, I just don’t know what it means yet.”

“You must hold out for the month, at any rate,” I said in as matter-of-fact a voice as I could manage, for her manner had somehow changed my surprise to a subtle sense of alarm. “Sangree only stays the month, you know. And, anyhow, you are such an odd creature yourself that you should feel generously towards other odd creatures,” I ended lamely, with a forced laugh.

“You have to wait for the month, at least,” I said in as straightforward a tone as I could manage, because her attitude had somehow turned my surprise into a subtle feeling of worry. “Sangree only stays for a month, you know. And anyway, you’re such a unique person yourself that you should be open-minded towards other unique individuals,” I finished awkwardly, with a forced laugh.

She gave my hand a sudden pressure. “I’m glad I’ve told you at any rate,” she said quickly under her breath, for the canoe was now gliding up silently like a ghost to our feet, “and I’m glad you’re here too,” she added as we moved down towards the water to meet it.

She squeezed my hand suddenly. “I’m really glad I told you, anyway,” she said quickly in a whisper, since the canoe was now gliding up silently like a ghost to our feet. “And I’m glad you’re here too,” she added as we walked towards the water to meet it.

I made Sangree change into the bows and got into the steering seat myself, putting the girl between us so that I could watch them both by keeping their outlines against the sea and stars. For the intuitions of certain folk—women and children usually, I confess—I have always felt a great respect that has more often than not been justified by experience; and now the curious emotion stirred in me by the girl’s words remained somewhat vividly in my consciousness. I explained it in some measure by the fact that the girl, tired out by the fatigue of many days’ travel, had suffered a vigorous reaction of some kind from the strong, desolate scenery, and further, perhaps, that she had been treated to my own experience of seeing the members of the party in a new light—the Canadian, being partly a stranger, more vividly than the rest of us. But, at the same time, I felt it was quite possible that she had sensed some subtle link between his personality and her own, some quality that she had hitherto ignored and that the routine of town life had kept buried out of sight. The only thing that seemed difficult to explain was the fear she had spoken of, and this I hoped the wholesome effects of camp-life and exercise would sweep away naturally in the course of time.

I had Sangree change into the bows and took the steering seat myself, placing the girl between us so I could keep an eye on both of them against the backdrop of the sea and stars. I've always had a deep respect for the instincts of certain people—usually women and children, I admit—and this respect has often been validated by experience. Now, the strange emotion stirred in me by the girl's words stayed vividly in my mind. I partially explained it by noting that the girl, exhausted from many days of travel, was undergoing a strong reaction to the harsh, empty scenery. Moreover, she was likely perceiving the members of our group in a new way—the Canadian, partly a stranger, stood out more than the rest of us. But at the same time, I sensed she might have picked up on some subtle connection between his personality and hers, a trait she had previously overlooked and that the monotony of city life had kept hidden. The only thing I found hard to understand was the fear she mentioned, and I hoped that the positive effects of camp life and exercise would naturally alleviate that over time.

We made the tour of the island without speaking. It was all too beautiful for speech. The trees crowded down to the shore to hear us pass. We saw their fine dark heads, bowed low with splendid dignity to watch us, forgetting for a moment that the stars were caught in the needled network of their hair. Against the sky in the west, where still lingered the sunset gold, we saw the wild toss of the horizon, shaggy with forest and cliff, gripping the heart like the motive in a symphony, and sending the sense of beauty all a-shiver through the mind—all these surrounding islands standing above the water like low clouds, and like them seeming to post along silently into the engulfing night. We heard the musical drip-drip of the paddle, and the little wash of our waves on the shore, and then suddenly we found ourselves at the opening of the lagoon again, having made the complete circuit of our home.

We toured the island in silence. Everything was too beautiful to put into words. The trees lined the shore, eager to hear us pass by. We saw their elegant, dark tops gracefully bowed as they watched us, momentarily forgetting that the stars were caught in the delicate strands of their branches. In the western sky, where the sunset's gold still lingered, we saw the wild contours of the horizon, rugged with forests and cliffs, gripping our hearts like a melody in a symphony, sending waves of beauty shivering through our minds—all those surrounding islands rising above the water like low clouds, silently drifting into the approaching night. We heard the gentle drip of the paddle and the soft lapping of the waves on the shore, and then suddenly we found ourselves at the entrance of the lagoon again, having circled back to our home.

The Reverend Timothy had awakened from sleep and was singing to himself; and the sound of his voice as we glided down the fifty yards of enclosed water was pleasant to hear and undeniably wholesome. We saw the glow of the fire up among the trees on the ridge, and his shadow moving about as he threw on more wood.

The Reverend Timothy had woken up and was singing to himself; the sound of his voice as we floated down the fifty yards of enclosed water was nice to hear and definitely uplifting. We could see the glow of the fire among the trees on the ridge, and his shadow moving around as he added more wood.

“There you are!” he called aloud. “Good again! Been setting the night-lines, eh? Capital! And your mother’s still fast asleep, Joan.”

“There you are!” he shouted. “Great! Have you been setting up the night-lines? Awesome! And your mom’s still fast asleep, Joan.”

His cheery laugh floated across the water; he had not been in the least disturbed by our absence, for old campers are not easily alarmed.

His cheerful laugh carried over the water; he hadn’t been bothered at all by our absence because seasoned campers aren’t easily rattled.

“Now, remember,” he went on, after we had told our little tale of travel by the fire, and Mrs. Maloney had asked for the fourth time exactly where her tent was and whether the door faced east or south, “every one takes their turn at cooking breakfast, and one of the men is always out at sunrise to catch it first. Hubbard, I’ll toss you which you do in the morning and which I do!” He lost the toss. “Then I’ll catch it,” I said, laughing at his discomfiture, for I knew he loathed stirring porridge. “And mind you don’t burn it as you did every blessed time last year on the Volga,” I added by way of reminder.

“Now, remember,” he continued after we shared our little travel story by the fire, and Mrs. Maloney had asked for the fourth time exactly where her tent was and whether the door faced east or south, “everyone takes a turn cooking breakfast, and one of the guys is always up at sunrise to catch it first. Hubbard, I’ll flip a coin to see who cooks in the morning and who takes care of it!” He lost the toss. “Then I’ll get it,” I replied, laughing at his embarrassment, because I knew he hated stirring porridge. “And don’t burn it like you did every single time last year on the Volga,” I added as a reminder.

Mrs. Maloney’s fifth interruption about the door of her tent, and her further pointed observation that it was past nine o’clock, set us lighting lanterns and putting the fire out for safety.

Mrs. Maloney’s fifth time interrupting about the door of her tent, along with her comment that it was after nine o’clock, prompted us to light lanterns and put out the fire for safety.

But before we separated for the night the clergyman had a time-honoured little ritual of his own to go through that no one had the heart to deny him. He always did this. It was a relic of his pulpit habits. He glanced briefly from one to the other of us, his face grave and earnest, his hands lifted to the stars and his eyes all closed and puckered up beneath a momentary frown. Then he offered up a short, almost inaudible prayer, thanking Heaven for our safe arrival, begging for good weather, no illness or accidents, plenty of fish, and strong sailing winds.

But before we went our separate ways for the night, the clergyman had a cherished little ritual he always went through, and no one had the heart to deny him. He always did this. It was a leftover from his days in the pulpit. He looked briefly at each of us, his face serious and earnest, his hands raised to the stars, and his eyes closed tightly with a slight frown. Then he offered a short, almost silent prayer, thanking Heaven for our safe arrival, asking for good weather, no sickness or accidents, plenty of fish, and strong sailing winds.

And then, unexpectedly—no one knew why exactly—he ended up with an abrupt request that nothing from the kingdom of darkness should be allowed to afflict our peace, and no evil thing come near to disturb us in the night-time.

And then, out of nowhere—no one really knew why—he made a sudden request that nothing from the dark realm should be allowed to disturb our peace, and no evil thing should come near to trouble us at night.

And while he uttered these last surprising words, so strangely unlike his usual ending, it chanced that I looked up and let my eyes wander round the group assembled about the dying fire. And it certainly seemed to me that Sangree’s face underwent a sudden and visible alteration. He was staring at Joan, and as he stared the change ran over it like a shadow and was gone. I started in spite of myself, for something oddly concentrated, potent, collected, had come into the expression usually so scattered and feeble. But it was all swift as a passing meteor, and when I looked a second time his face was normal and he was looking among the trees.

As he spoke those last surprising words, which were so different from his usual way of finishing, I happened to look up and let my gaze drift around the group gathered around the fading fire. It really seemed to me that Sangree’s face changed suddenly and noticeably. He was staring at Joan, and as he watched her, the change swept over his face like a shadow and then disappeared. I jumped a bit, because something strangely intense, powerful, and focused had entered his normally scattered and weak expression. But it was all as fleeting as a shooting star, and when I looked again, his face was back to normal, and he was staring off among the trees.

And Joan, luckily, had not observed him, her head being bowed and her eyes tightly closed while her father prayed.

And Joan, fortunately, hadn't seen him, as her head was down and her eyes were tightly shut while her dad prayed.

“The girl has a vivid imagination indeed,” I thought, half laughing, as I lit the lanterns, “if her thoughts can put a glamour upon mine in this way;” and yet somehow, when we said good-night, I took occasion to give her a few vigorous words of encouragement, and went to her tent to make sure I could find it quickly in the night in case anything happened. In her quick way the girl understood and thanked me, and the last thing I heard as I moved off to the men’s quarters was Mrs. Maloney crying that there were beetles in her tent, and Joan’s laughter as she went to help her turn them out.

“The girl really has an amazing imagination,” I thought, half laughing, as I lit the lanterns, “if her thoughts can enchant mine like this;” and yet somehow, when we said good-night, I took the chance to offer her some strong words of encouragement and went to her tent to make sure I could find it quickly in the dark if anything happened. In her quick way, the girl understood and thanked me, and the last thing I heard as I moved off to the men’s quarters was Mrs. Maloney shouting that there were beetles in her tent, and Joan laughing as she went to help her get them out.

Half an hour later the island was silent as the grave, but for the mournful voices of the wind as it sighed up from the sea. Like white sentries stood the three tents of the men on one side of the ridge, and on the other side, half hidden by some birches, whose leaves just shivered as the breeze caught them, the women’s tents, patches of ghostly grey, gathered more closely together for mutual shelter and protection. Something like fifty yards of broken ground, grey rock, moss and lichen, lay between, and over all lay the curtain of the night and the great whispering winds from the forests of Scandinavia.

Half an hour later, the island was as silent as a grave, except for the sorrowful sounds of the wind rising from the sea. The three men's tents stood like white sentries on one side of the ridge, while on the other side, partially hidden by some birch trees, whose leaves quivered as the breeze caught them, were the women's tents, patches of ghostly gray, huddled closer together for shelter and protection. About fifty yards of rough terrain—gray rock, moss, and lichen—separated them, all covered by the cloak of night and the soft whispering winds from the forests of Scandinavia.

And the very last thing, just before floating away on that mighty wave that carries one so softly off into the deeps of forgetfulness, I again heard the voice of John Silence as the train moved out of Victoria Station; and by some subtle connection that met me on the very threshold of consciousness there rose in my mind simultaneously the memory of the girl’s half-given confidence, and of her distress. As by some wizardry of approaching dreams they seemed in that instant to be related; but before I could analyse the why and the wherefore, both sank away out of sight again, and I was off beyond recall.

And just before drifting away on that powerful wave that gently takes you into the depths of forgetfulness, I heard John Silence's voice again as the train pulled out of Victoria Station. Somehow, right at the edge of my awareness, the memory of the girl's half-revealed trust and her distress rose up in my mind at the same time. In that moment, they seemed magically connected; but before I could figure out the reason behind it, both slipped away from my view again, and I was beyond recall.

“Unless you should send for me sooner.”

“Unless you send for me sooner.”

II

Whether Mrs. Maloney’s tent door opened south or east I think she never discovered, for it is quite certain she always slept with the flap tightly fastened; I only know that my own little “five by seven, all silk” faced due east, because next morning the sun, pouring in as only the wilderness sun knows how to pour, woke me early, and a moment later, with a short run over soft moss and a flying dive from the granite ledge, I was swimming in the most sparkling water imaginable.

Whether Mrs. Maloney’s tent door opened to the south or east, I don’t think she ever found out, because it’s pretty clear she always slept with the flap tightly closed. I only know that my own little “five by seven, all silk” faced east, because the next morning, the sun, flooding in as only the wilderness sun can, woke me up early, and a moment later, with a quick dash over soft moss and a flying leap from the granite ledge, I was swimming in the clearest water imaginable.

It was barely four o’clock, and the sun came down a long vista of blue islands that led out to the open sea and Finland. Nearer by rose the wooded domes of our own property, still capped and wreathed with smoky trails of fast-melting mist, and looking as fresh as though it was the morning of Mrs. Maloney’s Sixth Day and they had just issued, clean and brilliant, from the hands of the great Architect.

It was just after four o’clock, and the sun lit up a long view of blue islands that stretched out to the open sea and Finland. Closer in were the tree-covered hills of our property, still topped and surrounded by smoky trails of quickly disappearing mist, looking as fresh as if it were the morning of Mrs. Maloney’s Sixth Day and they had just come, clean and bright, from the hands of the great Architect.

In the open spaces the ground was drenched with dew, and from the sea a cool salt wind stole in among the trees and set the branches trembling in an atmosphere of shimmering silver. The tents shone white where the sun caught them in patches. Below lay the lagoon, still dreaming of the summer night; in the open the fish were jumping busily, sending musical ripples towards the shore; and in the air hung the magic of dawn—silent, incommunicable.

In the open fields, the ground was soaked with dew, and a cool salt breeze from the sea drifted among the trees, making the branches shiver in a shimmering silver atmosphere. The tents looked bright white where the sun hit them in spots. Below was the lagoon, still lost in thoughts of the summer night; in the wide expanse, fish were jumping energetically, creating musical ripples that moved toward the shore; and the magic of dawn hung in the air—silent, unspoken.

I lit the fire, so that an hour later the clergyman should find good ashes to stir his porridge over, and then set forth upon an examination of the island, but hardly had I gone a dozen yards when I saw a figure standing a little in front of me where the sunlight fell in a pool among the trees.

I started the fire, so that an hour later the clergyman would have nice ashes to stir his porridge over, and then I began to explore the island. But I had barely walked a few yards when I spotted a figure standing slightly ahead of me in a patch of sunlight among the trees.

It was Joan. She had already been up an hour, she told me, and had bathed before the last stars had left the sky. I saw at once that the new spirit of this solitary region had entered into her, banishing the fears of the night, for her face was like the face of a happy denizen of the wilderness, and her eyes stainless and shining. Her feet were bare, and drops of dew she had shaken from the branches hung in her loose-flying hair. Obviously she had come into her own.

It was Joan. She said she had already been awake for an hour and had taken a bath before the last stars disappeared from the sky. I instantly noticed that the fresh energy of this quiet region had infused her, dispelling any fears from the night, as her face looked like that of a joyful inhabitant of the wilderness, with her eyes clear and bright. She was barefoot, and droplets of dew that she had shaken off the branches hung in her flowing hair. Clearly, she had found her place.

“I’ve been all over the island,” she announced laughingly, “and there are two things wanting.”

"I've been everywhere on the island," she said with a laugh, "and there are two things missing."

“You’re a good judge, Joan. What are they?”

“You’re really good at judging, Joan. What are they?”

“There’s no animal life, and there’s no—water.”

“There’s no animal life, and there’s no water.”

“They go together,” I said. “Animals don’t bother with a rock like this unless there’s a spring on it.”

“They go hand in hand,” I said. “Animals don’t mess with a rock like this unless there’s a spring near it.”

And as she led me from place to place, happy and excited, leaping adroitly from rock to rock, I was glad to note that my first impressions were correct. She made no reference to our conversation of the night before. The new spirit had driven out the old. There was no room in her heart for fear or anxiety, and Nature had everything her own way.

And as she took me from spot to spot, happy and excited, jumping skillfully from rock to rock, I was pleased to see that my initial thoughts were right. She didn't mention our conversation from the night before. The fresh energy had replaced the old one. There was no space in her heart for fear or worry, and nature had things just the way she wanted.

The island, we found, was some three-quarters of a mile from point to point, built in a circle, or wide horseshoe, with an opening of twenty feet at the mouth of the lagoon. Pine-trees grew thickly all over, but here and there were patches of silver birch, scrub oak, and considerable colonies of wild raspberry and gooseberry bushes. The two ends of the horseshoe formed bare slabs of smooth granite running into the sea and forming dangerous reefs just below the surface, but the rest of the island rose in a forty-foot ridge and sloped down steeply to the sea on either side, being nowhere more than a hundred yards wide.

The island, we discovered, was about three-quarters of a mile from end to end, shaped like a circle or a wide horseshoe, with a twenty-foot opening at the lagoon's entrance. Pine trees grew densely all over, but there were scattered patches of silver birch, scrub oak, and significant groups of wild raspberry and gooseberry bushes. The two ends of the horseshoe were bare slabs of smooth granite extending into the sea, creating dangerous reefs just below the surface. The rest of the island rose in a forty-foot ridge and sloped steeply down to the sea on both sides, never more than a hundred yards wide.

The outer shore-line was much indented with numberless coves and bays and sandy beaches, with here and there caves and precipitous little cliffs against which the sea broke in spray and thunder. But the inner shore, the shore of the lagoon, was low and regular, and so well protected by the wall of trees along the ridge that no storm could ever send more than a passing ripple along its sandy marges. Eternal shelter reigned there.

The outer shoreline was deeply shaped with countless coves, bays, and sandy beaches, along with some caves and steep little cliffs where the sea crashed with spray and thunder. In contrast, the inner shore, the lagoon's edge, was low and even, and so well protected by the row of trees on the ridge that no storm could ever create more than a slight ripple along its sandy borders. It was a place of perpetual shelter.

On one of the other islands, a few hundred yards away—for the rest of the party slept late this first morning, and we took to the canoe—we discovered a spring of fresh water untainted by the brackish flavour of the Baltic, and having thus solved the most important problem of the Camp, we next proceeded to deal with the second—fish. And in half an hour we reeled in and turned homewards, for we had no means of storage, and to clean more fish than may be stored or eaten in a day is no wise occupation for experienced campers.

On one of the nearby islands, just a few hundred yards away—while the rest of the group slept in on that first morning, we took to the canoe—we found a fresh water spring that wasn’t tainted by the salty taste of the Baltic. Having solved the most important issue for the camp, we then moved on to the second—fishing. In half an hour, we caught enough fish and started heading back, as we had no way to keep them fresh, and cleaning more fish than we could store or eat in a day isn’t a smart move for seasoned campers.

And as we landed towards six o’clock we heard the clergyman singing as usual and saw his wife and Sangree shaking out their blankets in the sun, and dressed in a fashion that finally dispelled all memories of streets and civilisation.

And as we landed around six o’clock, we heard the clergyman singing as usual and saw his wife and Sangree shaking out their blankets in the sun, dressed in a way that completely erased any memories of streets and civilization.

“The Little People lit the fire for me,” cried Maloney, looking natural and at home in his ancient flannel suit and breaking off in the middle of his singing, “so I’ve got the porridge going—and this time it’s not burnt.”

“The Little People started the fire for me,” shouted Maloney, looking comfortable and at ease in his old flannel suit and pausing in the middle of his singing, “so I’ve got the porridge cooking—and this time it’s not burnt.”

We reported the discovery of water and held up the fish.

We reported finding water and showed the fish.

“Good! Good again!” he cried. “We’ll have the first decent breakfast we’ve had this year. Sangree’ll clean ’em in no time, and the Bo’sun’s Mate——”

“Great! Really great!” he shouted. “We’re finally going to have a proper breakfast this year. Sangree will handle it in no time, and the Bo’sun’s Mate——”

“Will fry them to a turn,” laughed the voice of Mrs. Maloney, appearing on the scene in a tight blue jersey and sandals, and catching up the frying-pan. Her husband always called her the Bo’sun’s Mate in Camp, because it was her duty, among others, to pipe all hands to meals.

“Will fry them to perfection,” laughed Mrs. Maloney’s voice as she entered the scene in a snug blue sweater and sandals, grabbing the frying pan. Her husband always referred to her as the Bo’sun’s Mate in Camp because it was her job, among others, to call everyone to meals.

“And as for you, Joan,” went on the happy man, “you look like the spirit of the island, with moss in your hair and wind in your eyes, and sun and stars mixed in your face.” He looked at her with delighted admiration. “Here, Sangree, take these twelve, there’s a good fellow, they’re the biggest; and we’ll have ’em in butter in less time than you can say Baltic island!”

“And as for you, Joan,” continued the happy man, “you look like the spirit of the island, with moss in your hair and the wind in your eyes, and the sun and stars mixed on your face.” He gazed at her with joyful admiration. “Here, Sangree, take these twelve, you’re a good guy, they’re the biggest; and we’ll have them in butter in no time!”

I watched the Canadian as he slowly moved off to the cleaning pail. His eyes were drinking in the girl’s beauty, and a wave of passionate, almost feverish, joy passed over his face, expressive of the ecstasy of true worship more than anything else. Perhaps he was thinking that he still had three weeks to come with that vision always before his eyes; perhaps he was thinking of his dreams in the night. I cannot say. But I noticed the curious mingling of yearning and happiness in his eyes, and the strength of the impression touched my curiosity. Something in his face held my gaze for a second, something to do with its intensity. That so timid, so gentle a personality should conceal so virile a passion almost seemed to require explanation.

I watched the Canadian as he slowly walked over to the cleaning bucket. His eyes were taking in the girl’s beauty, and a wave of passionate, almost feverish, joy spread across his face, showing more the ecstasy of true admiration than anything else. Maybe he was thinking that he still had three weeks to keep that vision in his mind; maybe he was reflecting on his dreams at night. I can’t say for sure. But I noticed the strange mix of yearning and happiness in his eyes, and the strength of that impression piqued my curiosity. There was something in his expression that held my gaze for a moment, something about its intensity. The fact that such a timid, gentle personality could hide such a strong passion almost seemed to need an explanation.

But the impression was momentary, for that first breakfast in Camp permitted no divided attentions, and I dare swear that the porridge, the tea, the Swedish “flatbread,” and the fried fish flavoured with points of frizzled bacon, were better than any meal eaten elsewhere that day in the whole world.

But that feeling didn't last long, because that first breakfast in Camp demanded all my focus, and I can honestly say that the porridge, the tea, the Swedish flatbread, and the fried fish topped with crispy bacon bits were better than any meal eaten anywhere else that day in the entire world.

The first clear day in a new camp is always a furiously busy one, and we soon dropped into the routine upon which in large measure the real comfort of every one depends. About the cooking-fire, greatly improved with stones from the shore, we built a high stockade consisting of upright poles thickly twined with branches, the roof lined with moss and lichen and weighted with rocks, and round the interior we made low wooden seats so that we could lie round the fire even in rain and eat our meals in peace. Paths, too, outlined themselves from tent to tent, from the bathing places and the landing stage, and a fair division of the island was decided upon between the quarters of the men and the women. Wood was stacked, awkward trees and boulders removed, hammocks slung, and tents strengthened. In a word, Camp was established, and duties were assigned and accepted as though we expected to live on this Baltic island for years to come and the smallest detail of the Community life was important.

The first clear day at a new camp is always incredibly hectic, and we quickly fell into the routine that significantly contributes to everyone's real comfort. Around the cooking fire, which we improved by adding stones from the shore, we built a tall stockade made of upright poles tightly intertwined with branches. The roof was lined with moss and lichen and weighed down with rocks. Inside, we made low wooden seats so we could sit around the fire, even in the rain, and enjoy our meals in peace. Paths emerged connecting each tent to the bathing areas and the landing stage, and we decided on a clear division of the island between the men's and women's quarters. We stacked wood, removed awkward trees and boulders, hung up hammocks, and reinforced the tents. In short, Camp was established, and duties were assigned and accepted as if we planned to live on this Baltic island for years, with even the smallest details of community life being important.

Moreover, as the Camp came into being, this sense of a community developed, proving that we were a definite whole, and not merely separate human beings living for a while in tents upon a desert island. Each fell willingly into the routine. Sangree, as by natural selection, took upon himself the cleaning of the fish and the cutting of the wood into lengths sufficient for a day’s use. And he did it well. The pan of water was never without a fish, cleaned and scaled, ready to fry for whoever was hungry; the nightly fire never died down for lack of material to throw on without going farther afield to search.

Moreover, as the Camp was established, a sense of community formed, showing that we were a unified group, not just separate individuals temporarily living in tents on a desert island. Everyone fell into the routine willingly. Sangree, by natural selection, took it upon himself to clean the fish and cut the wood into lengths suitable for daily use. And he did it well. The pan of water was always filled with a cleaned and scaled fish, ready to fry for anyone who was hungry; the nightly fire never went out due to a lack of fuel, as there was always enough material on hand without needing to search farther.

And Timothy, once reverend, caught the fish and chopped down the trees. He also assumed responsibility for the condition of the boat, and did it so thoroughly that nothing in the little cutter was ever found wanting. And when, for any reason, his presence was in demand, the first place to look for him was—in the boat, and there, too, he was usually found, tinkering away with sheets, sails, or rudder and singing as he tinkered.

And Timothy, once a reverend, caught the fish and chopped down the trees. He also took care of the boat, making sure that nothing in the little sailboat was ever lacking. Whenever his help was needed, the first place to look for him was—in the boat, and there, he was usually found, working on the sheets, sails, or rudder and singing while he did it.

Nor was the “reading” neglected; for most mornings there came a sound of droning voices from the white tent by the raspberry bushes, which signified that Sangree, the tutor, and whatever other man chanced to be in the party at the time, were hard at it with history or the classics.

Nor was the “reading” overlooked; for most mornings, there was a sound of droning voices from the white tent by the raspberry bushes, indicating that Sangree, the tutor, and whichever guy happened to be with them at the time were deeply engaged in history or the classics.

And while Mrs. Maloney, also by natural selection, took charge of the larder and the kitchen, the mending and general supervision of the rough comforts, she also made herself peculiarly mistress of the megaphone which summoned to meals and carried her voice easily from one end of the island to the other; and in her hours of leisure she daubed the surrounding scenery on to a sketching block with all the honesty and devotion of her determined but unreceptive soul.

And while Mrs. Maloney naturally took control of the pantry and the kitchen, the repairs, and the overall management of the basic comforts, she also became quite adept at using the megaphone that called everyone to meals and easily projected her voice from one end of the island to the other. During her free time, she painted the surrounding scenery onto a sketch pad with all the sincerity and dedication of her determined but closed-off soul.

Joan, meanwhile, Joan, elusive creature of the wilds, became I know not exactly what. She did plenty of work in the Camp, yet seemed to have no very precise duties. She was everywhere and anywhere. Sometimes she slept in her tent, sometimes under the stars with a blanket. She knew every inch of the island and kept turning up in places where she was least expected—for ever wandering about, reading her books in sheltered corners, making little fires on sunless days to “worship by to the gods,” as she put it, ever finding new pools to dive and bathe in, and swimming day and night in the warm and waveless lagoon like a fish in a huge tank. She went bare-legged and bare-footed, with her hair down and her skirts caught up to the knees, and if ever a human being turned into a jolly savage within the compass of a single week, Joan Maloney was certainly that human being. She ran wild.

Joan, meanwhile, was an elusive creature of the wilds, becoming something I can’t quite define. She did a lot of work around the Camp, yet her duties were never really clear. She was everywhere and anywhere. Sometimes she slept in her tent, other times under the stars with just a blanket. She knew every inch of the island and would pop up in the most unexpected places—constantly wandering, reading her books in quiet spots, lighting small fires on gray days to “worship the gods,” as she called it, always discovering new pools to dive into and swim in day and night in the warm, calm lagoon like a fish in a giant tank. She went bare-legged and barefoot, with her hair down and her skirts rolled up to her knees, and if anyone ever transformed into a carefree wild spirit within the span of a single week, it was definitely Joan Maloney. She ran wild.

So completely, too, was she possessed by the strong spirit of the place that the little human fear she had yielded to so strangely on our arrival seemed to have been utterly dispossessed. As I hoped and expected, she made no reference to our conversation of the first evening. Sangree bothered her with no special attentions, and after all they were very little together. His behaviour was perfect in that respect, and I, for my part, hardly gave the matter another thought. Joan was ever a prey to vivid fancies of one kind or another, and this was one of them. Mercifully for the happiness of all concerned, it had melted away before the spirit of busy, active life and deep content that reigned over the island. Every one was intensely alive, and peace was upon all.

So completely was she influenced by the strong energy of the place that the little fear she had strangely felt when we arrived seemed to have completely vanished. As I hoped and expected, she didn't mention our conversation from the first evening. Sangree didn't bother her with any special attention, and they actually spent very little time together. His behavior was flawless in that regard, and I, for my part, hardly thought about it again. Joan was always vulnerable to vivid imaginations of one kind or another, and this was one of them. Thankfully, for everyone's happiness, it had faded away in the presence of the busy, active life and deep content that filled the island. Everyone was intensely alive, and there was a sense of peace among all.


Meanwhile the effect of the camp-life began to tell. Always a searching test of character, its results, sooner or later, are infallible, for it acts upon the soul as swiftly and surely as the hypo bath upon the negative of a photograph. A readjustment of the personal forces takes place quickly; some parts of the personality go to sleep, others wake up: but the first sweeping change that the primitive life brings about is that the artificial portions of the character shed themselves one after another like dead skins. Attitudes and poses that seemed genuine in the city, drop away. The mind, like the body, grows quickly hard, simple, uncomplex. And in a camp as primitive and close to nature as ours was, these effects became speedily visible.

Meanwhile, the impact of camp life started to show. Always a true test of character, its effects are certain to emerge over time, as it affects the soul just as quickly and reliably as a hypo bath develops a photo negative. A quick adjustment of personal dynamics occurs; some aspects of the personality fade away while others come to life. The first major shift that primitive life causes is that the artificial layers of character peel away one by one like dead skin. Attitudes and postures that seemed authentic in the city fall away. The mind, like the body, quickly becomes tough, straightforward, and uncomplicated. And in a camp as primitive and close to nature as ours was, these effects became evident very quickly.

Some folk, of course, who talk glibly about the simple life when it is safely out of reach, betray themselves in camp by for ever peering about for the artificial excitements of civilisation which they miss. Some get bored at once; some grow slovenly; some reveal the animal in most unexpected fashion; and some, the select few, find themselves in very short order and are happy.

Some people, of course, who casually discuss the simple life when it’s comfortably out of reach, reveal themselves in camp by constantly looking for the artificial thrills of civilization that they’re missing. Some get bored right away; some become messy; some show their wild side in surprising ways; and a few lucky ones quickly discover themselves and find happiness.

And, in our little party, we could flatter ourselves that we all belonged to the last category, so far as the general effect was concerned. Only there were certain other changes as well, varying with each individual, and all interesting to note.

And in our small group, we could convince ourselves that we all fit into the last category, at least in terms of the overall impression. However, there were also other changes, unique to each person, that were all interesting to observe.

It was only after the first week or two that these changes became marked, although this is the proper place, I think, to speak of them. For, having myself no other duty than to enjoy a well-earned holiday, I used to load my canoe with blankets and provisions and journey forth on exploration trips among the islands of several days together; and it was on my return from the first of these—when I rediscovered the party, so to speak—that these changes first presented themselves vividly to me, and in one particular instance produced a rather curious impression.

It was only after the first week or two that these changes became noticeable, although I think this is the right time to talk about them. Since I had no other responsibilities than to enjoy a well-deserved vacation, I would pack my canoe with blankets and supplies and set out on exploration trips among the islands for several days at a time. It was upon returning from the first of these trips—when I reconnected with the group, so to speak—that these changes first struck me clearly, and in one specific case, they left a rather intriguing impression.

In a word, then, while every one had grown wilder, naturally wilder, Sangree, it seemed to me, had grown much wilder, and what I can only call unnaturally wilder. He made me think of a savage.

In short, while everyone had become wilder, naturally wilder, Sangree, it seemed to me, had become much wilder, and what I can only describe as unnaturally wilder. He reminded me of a savage.

To begin with, he had changed immensely in mere physical appearance, and the full brown cheeks, the brighter eyes of absolute health, and the general air of vigour and robustness that had come to replace his customary lassitude and timidity, had worked such an improvement that I hardly knew him for the same man. His voice, too, was deeper and his manner bespoke for the first time a greater measure of confidence in himself. He now had some claims to be called nice-looking, or at least to a certain air of virility that would not lessen his value in the eyes of the opposite sex.

To start with, he had changed a lot in his physical appearance. His full brown cheeks, brighter eyes full of health, and overall vibe of energy and strength replaced his usual fatigue and shyness, resulting in such an improvement that I hardly recognized him as the same person. His voice was deeper, and for the first time, his manner showed a greater level of self-confidence. He now had some reason to be considered attractive, or at least had a certain masculine charm that would definitely enhance his appeal to women.

All this, of course, was natural enough, and most welcome. But, altogether apart from this physical change, which no doubt had also been going forward in the rest of us, there was a subtle note in his personality that came to me with a degree of surprise that almost amounted to shock.

All of this was, of course, completely normal and very welcome. However, aside from this physical change, which was likely happening to the rest of us as well, there was a subtle aspect of his personality that caught me off guard and was almost shocking.

And two things—as he came down to welcome me and pull up the canoe—leaped up in my mind unbidden, as though connected in some way I could not at the moment divine—first, the curious judgment formed of him by Joan; and secondly, that fugitive expression I had caught in his face while Maloney was offering up his strange prayer for special protection from Heaven.

And two things—when he came down to greet me and pull up the canoe—popped into my head unexpectedly, as if they were somehow linked in a way I couldn't figure out at that moment—first, the odd opinion Joan had of him; and second, that fleeting look I saw on his face while Maloney was saying his unusual prayer for special protection from Heaven.

The delicacy of manner and feature—to call it by no milder term—which had always been a distinguishing characteristic of the man, had been replaced by something far more vigorous and decided, that yet utterly eluded analysis. The change which impressed me so oddly was not easy to name. The others—singing Maloney, the bustling Bo’sun’s Mate, and Joan, that fascinating half-breed of undine and salamander—all showed the effects of a life so close to nature; but in their case the change was perfectly natural and what was to be expected, whereas with Peter Sangree, the Canadian, it was something unusual and unexpected.

The delicacy of his manner and features—no other term is appropriate—had always been a defining trait of the man, but it had been replaced by something much more robust and decisive that still completely defied explanation. The shift that struck me as so strange was hard to describe. The others—singing Maloney, the busy Bo’sun’s Mate, and Joan, that captivating blend of undine and salamander—all displayed the effects of a life so closely connected to nature; but in their case, the change was perfectly natural and to be expected, whereas with Peter Sangree, the Canadian, it was something out of the ordinary and surprising.

It is impossible to explain how he managed gradually to convey to my mind the impression that something in him had turned savage, yet this, more or less, is the impression that he did convey. It was not that he seemed really less civilised, or that his character had undergone any definite alteration, but rather that something in him, hitherto dormant, had awakened to life. Some quality, latent till now—so far, at least, as we were concerned, who, after all, knew him but slightly—had stirred into activity and risen to the surface of his being.

It’s hard to explain how he gradually gave me the impression that something in him had become wild, but that’s basically what he managed to communicate. It wasn’t that he seemed genuinely less civilized, or that his character had changed in any clear way, but rather that something in him, which had been sleeping, had come to life. Some quality, hidden until now—at least as far as we were concerned, since we only knew him a little—had activated and come to the forefront of his personality.

And while, for the moment, this seemed as far as I could get, it was but natural that my mind should continue the intuitive process and acknowledge that John Silence, owing to his peculiar faculties, and the girl, owing to her singularly receptive temperament, might each in a different way have divined this latent quality in his soul, and feared its manifestation later.

And while this seemed to be as far as I could go for now, it was only natural that my mind would continue the intuitive process and realize that John Silence, because of his unique abilities, and the girl, because of her exceptionally open nature, might each, in their own way, have sensed this hidden quality in his soul and worried about its later expression.

On looking back to this painful adventure, too, it now seems equally natural that the same process, carried to its logical conclusion, should have wakened some deep instinct in me that, wholly without direction from my will, set itself sharply and persistently upon the watch from that very moment. Thenceforward the personality of Sangree was never far from my thoughts, and I was for ever analysing and searching for the explanation that took so long in coming.

On reflecting on this difficult journey, it now feels just as natural that the same process, taken to its logical end, triggered a deep instinct in me that, completely independent of my will, started to stay alert from that moment on. From then on, Sangree's personality was always on my mind, and I constantly analyzed and searched for the explanation that took so long to arrive.

“I declare, Hubbard, you’re tanned like an aboriginal, and you look like one, too,” laughed Maloney.

“I swear, Hubbard, you’re so tanned like an Aboriginal, and you look like one too,” laughed Maloney.

“And I can return the compliment,” was my reply, as we all gathered round a brew of tea to exchange news and compare notes.

“And I can return the compliment,” I replied, as we all gathered around a pot of tea to catch up and share our thoughts.

And later, at supper, it amused me to observe that the distinguished tutor, once clergyman, did not eat his food quite as “nicely” as he did at home—he devoured it; that Mrs. Maloney ate more, and, to say the least, with less delay, than was her custom in the select atmosphere of her English dining-room; and that while Joan attacked her tin plateful with genuine avidity, Sangree, the Canadian, bit and gnawed at his, laughing and talking and complimenting the cook all the while, and making me think with secret amusement of a starved animal at its first meal. While, from their remarks about myself, I judged that I had changed and grown wild as much as the rest of them.

And later, at dinner, I found it amusing to notice that the distinguished tutor, who used to be a clergyman, didn't eat his food as "properly" as he did at home—he devoured it; that Mrs. Maloney ate more and, to put it mildly, with less delay than she did in the refined setting of her English dining room; and that while Joan attacked her tin plate with genuine enthusiasm, Sangree, the Canadian, chewed and gnawed at his, laughing and chatting and complimenting the cook the whole time, making me secretly think of a starved animal at its first meal. From their comments about me, I gathered that I had become just as wild and changed as the rest of them.

In this and in a hundred other little ways the change showed, ways difficult to define in detail, but all proving—not the coarsening effect of leading the primitive life, but, let us say, the more direct and unvarnished methods that became prevalent. For all day long we were in the bath of the elements—wind, water, sun—and just as the body became insensible to cold and shed unnecessary clothing, the mind grew straightforward and shed many of the disguises required by the conventions of civilisation.

In this and a hundred other small ways, the change was evident—ways that are hard to describe precisely, but all proving not the roughening effect of living a primitive life, but rather the more straightforward and unrefined methods that became common. All day long, we were immersed in the elements—wind, water, sun—and just as our bodies became numb to the cold and let go of unnecessary clothing, our minds became clear and shed many of the facades imposed by society's conventions.

And in each, according to temperament and character, there stirred the life-instincts that were natural, untamed, and, in a sense—savage.

And in each person, based on their temperament and character, there were life instincts that were natural, untamed, and, in a way—savage.

III

So it came about that I stayed with our island party, putting off my second exploring trip from day to day, and I think that this far-fetched instinct to watch Sangree was really the cause of my postponement.

So, I ended up staying with our island group, delaying my second exploration trip from day to day, and I believe that this strange urge to keep an eye on Sangree was really the reason for my delay.

For another ten days the life of the Camp pursued its even and delightful way, blessed by perfect summer weather, a good harvest of fish, fine winds for sailing, and calm, starry nights. Maloney’s selfish prayer had been favourably received. Nothing came to disturb or perplex. There was not even the prowling of night animals to vex the rest of Mrs. Maloney; for in previous camps it had often been her peculiar affliction that she heard the porcupines scratching against the canvas, or the squirrels dropping fir-cones in the early morning with a sound of miniature thunder upon the roof of her tent. But on this island there was not even a squirrel or a mouse. I think two toads and a small and harmless snake were the only living creatures that had been discovered during the whole of the first fortnight. And these two toads in all probability were not two toads, but one toad.

For another ten days, life at the Camp continued smoothly and pleasantly, blessed with perfect summer weather, a good catch of fish, nice winds for sailing, and calm, starry nights. Maloney's selfish prayer was answered positively. Nothing came to disturb or confuse them. There wasn't even the annoying sound of night animals to bother Mrs. Maloney; in past camps, it had often been her unusual problem to hear porcupines scratching against the canvas or squirrels dropping fir cones in the early morning, making a sound like tiny thunder on the roof of her tent. But on this island, there weren’t even squirrels or mice. I think two toads and a small, harmless snake were the only living creatures found during the entire first fortnight. And these two toads were probably just one toad.

Then, suddenly, came the terror that changed the whole aspect of the place—the devastating terror.

Then, suddenly, came the fear that changed everything about the place—the overwhelming fear.

It came, at first, gently, but from the very start it made me realise the unpleasant loneliness of our situation, our remote isolation in this wilderness of sea and rock, and how the islands in this tideless Baltic ocean lay about us like the advance guard of a vast besieging army. Its entry, as I say, was gentle, hardly noticeable, in fact, to most of us: singularly undramatic it certainly was. But, then, in actual life this is often the way the dreadful climaxes move upon us, leaving the heart undisturbed almost to the last minute, and then overwhelming it with a sudden rush of horror. For it was the custom at breakfast to listen patiently while each in turn related the trivial adventures of the night—how they slept, whether the wind shook their tent, whether the spider on the ridge pole had moved, whether they had heard the toad, and so forth—and on this particular morning Joan, in the middle of a little pause, made a truly novel announcement:

It started off gently, but right from the beginning, it made me realize the uncomfortable loneliness of our situation, our distant isolation in this wilderness of sea and rock, and how the islands in this calm Baltic Sea surrounded us like the advance guard of a massive besieging army. Its arrival, as I said, was gentle, barely noticeable to most of us: it was definitely not dramatic. But in real life, this is often how dreadful climaxes approach us, leaving our hearts calm almost until the last moment, then overwhelming us with a sudden wave of horror. At breakfast, it was customary to patiently listen while everyone took turns sharing the trivial happenings of the night—how they slept, if the wind shook their tent, if the spider on the ridge pole had moved, if they heard the toad, and so on—and on that particular morning, Joan, in the midst of a little pause, made a truly surprising announcement:

“In the night I heard the howling of a dog,” she said, and then flushed up to the roots of her hair when we burst out laughing. For the idea of there being a dog on this forsaken island that was only able to support a snake and two toads was distinctly ludicrous, and I remember Maloney, half-way through his burnt porridge, capping the announcement by declaring that he had heard a “Baltic turtle” in the lagoon, and his wife’s expression of frantic alarm before the laughter undeceived her.

“In the night, I heard a dog howling,” she said, blushing all the way to her roots when we broke into laughter. The idea of there being a dog on this deserted island, which could only support a snake and two toads, was pretty ridiculous. I remember Maloney, halfway through his burnt porridge, adding to the joke by saying he had heard a “Baltic turtle” in the lagoon, and I can still picture his wife’s frantic look of alarm before the laughter made her realize it was a joke.

But the next morning Joan repeated the story with additional and convincing detail.

But the next morning, Joan told the story again with more details that were convincing.

“Sounds of whining and growling woke me,” she said, “and I distinctly heard sniffing under my tent, and the scratching of paws.”

“Sounds of whining and growling woke me,” she said, “and I clearly heard sniffing under my tent, along with the scratching of paws.”

“Oh, Timothy! Can it be a porcupine?” exclaimed the Bo’sun’s Mate with distress, forgetting that Sweden was not Canada.

“Oh, Timothy! Could it be a porcupine?” exclaimed the Bo’sun’s Mate in distress, forgetting that Sweden wasn’t Canada.

But the girl’s voice had sounded to me in quite another key, and looking up I saw that her father and Sangree were staring at her hard. They, too, understood that she was in earnest, and had been struck by the serious note in her voice.

But the girl’s voice had come across to me in a totally different way, and when I looked up, I saw that her father and Sangree were watching her closely. They also understood that she was sincere and had noticed the serious tone in her voice.

“Rubbish, Joan! You are always dreaming something or other wild,” her father said a little impatiently.

“Come on, Joan! You're always daydreaming about something crazy,” her father said a bit impatiently.

“There’s not an animal of any size on the whole island,” added Sangree with a puzzled expression. He never took his eyes from her face.

“There's not a single animal of any size on the entire island,” Sangree said, looking confused. He couldn't take his eyes off her face.

“But there’s nothing to prevent one swimming over,” I put in briskly, for somehow a sense of uneasiness that was not pleasant had woven itself into the talk and pauses. “A deer, for instance, might easily land in the night and take a look round——”

“But there’s nothing stopping someone from swimming across,” I chimed in cheerfully, because for some reason a feeling of discomfort that wasn’t pleasant had woven itself into the conversation and pauses. “A deer, for example, could easily arrive at night and take a look around——”

“Or a bear!” gasped the Bo’sun’s Mate, with a look so portentous that we all welcomed the laugh.

“Or a bear!” gasped the Bo’sun’s Mate, with a look so serious that we all welcomed the laugh.

But Joan did not laugh. Instead, she sprang up and called to us to follow.

But Joan didn't laugh. Instead, she jumped up and called for us to follow.

“There,” she said, pointing to the ground by her tent on the side farthest from her mother’s; “there are the marks close to my head. You can see for yourselves.”

“There,” she said, pointing to the ground by her tent on the side farthest from her mother’s; “there are the marks near my head. You can see for yourselves.”

We saw plainly. The moss and lichen—for earth there was hardly any—had been scratched up by paws. An animal about the size of a large dog it must have been, to judge by the marks. We stood and stared in a row.

We could see clearly. The moss and lichen—there was hardly any soil—had been scratched up by paws. It must have been an animal about the size of a large dog, judging by the marks. We stood and stared in a line.

“Close to my head,” repeated the girl, looking round at us. Her face, I noticed, was very pale, and her lip seemed to quiver for an instant. Then she gave a sudden gulp—and burst into a flood of tears.

“Close to my head,” the girl repeated, glancing at us. I noticed her face was very pale, and her lip seemed to tremble for a moment. Then she suddenly gulped—and broke down in tears.

The whole thing had come about in the brief space of a few minutes, and with a curious sense of inevitableness, moreover, as though it had all been carefully planned from all time and nothing could have stopped it. It had all been rehearsed before—had actually happened before, as the strange feeling sometimes has it; it seemed like the opening movement in some ominous drama, and that I knew exactly what would happen next. Something of great moment was impending.

The whole thing had happened in just a few minutes, and there was an odd sense of inevitability to it, as if it had all been meticulously planned from the beginning and nothing could have prevented it. It felt familiar—like something that had actually occurred before, as that strange feeling sometimes goes; it seemed like the opening act of some dark play, and I knew exactly what would come next. Something significant was about to happen.

For this sinister sensation of coming disaster made itself felt from the very beginning, and an atmosphere of gloom and dismay pervaded the entire Camp from that moment forward.

For this ominous feeling of impending disaster was evident from the very start, and an atmosphere of gloom and distress filled the whole Camp from that moment on.

I drew Sangree to one side and moved away, while Maloney took the distressed girl into her tent, and his wife followed them, energetic and greatly flustered.

I pulled Sangree aside and stepped away, while Maloney took the upset girl into her tent, and his wife followed them, full of energy and clearly flustered.

For thus, in undramatic fashion, it was that the terror I have spoken of first attempted the invasion of our Camp, and, trivial and unimportant though it seemed, every little detail of this opening scene is photographed upon my mind with merciless accuracy and precision. It happened exactly as described. This was exactly the language used. I see it written before me in black and white. I see, too, the faces of all concerned with the sudden ugly signature of alarm where before had been peace. The terror had stretched out, so to speak, a first tentative feeler towards us and had touched the hearts of each with a horrid directness. And from this moment the Camp changed.

For this reason, in a rather uneventful way, the terror I mentioned first tried to invade our Camp, and although it seemed trivial and unimportant, every little detail of this opening scene is etched in my mind with brutal clarity and precision. It happened exactly as described. This was the exact language used. I can see it written before me in black and white. I can also see the faces of everyone involved, now marked by an unsettling look of alarm where there had once been peace. The terror reached out, so to speak, with a first tentative probe towards us and struck at each heart with a horrifying directness. From that moment on, the Camp was never the same.

Sangree in particular was visibly upset. He could not bear to see the girl distressed, and to hear her actually cry was almost more than he could stand. The feeling that he had no right to protect her hurt him keenly, and I could see that he was itching to do something to help, and liked him for it. His expression said plainly that he would tear in a thousand pieces anything that dared to injure a hair of her head.

Sangree was especially upset. He couldn't stand to see the girl distressed, and hearing her cry was almost more than he could handle. The fact that he felt he had no right to protect her hurt him deeply, and I could tell he was eager to do something to help, which I admired. His expression clearly showed that he would rip apart anything that threatened even a single hair on her head.

We lit our pipes and strolled over in silence to the men’s quarters, and it was his odd Canadian expression “Gee whiz!” that drew my attention to a further discovery.

We lit our pipes and walked silently to the men's quarters, and it was his strange Canadian expression "Gee whiz!" that caught my attention to another discovery.

“The brute’s been scratching round my tent too,” he cried, as he pointed to similar marks by the door and I stooped down to examine them. We both stared in amazement for several minutes without speaking.

“The brute’s been scratching around my tent too,” he shouted, pointing to similar marks by the door and I bent down to take a look. We both stared in disbelief for several minutes without saying a word.

“Only I sleep like the dead,” he added, straightening up again, “and so heard nothing, I suppose.”

“Only I sleep like a rock,” he added, sitting up again, “and so I didn’t hear anything, I guess.”

We traced the paw-marks from the mouth of his tent in a direct line across to the girl’s, but nowhere else about the Camp was there a sign of the strange visitor. The deer, dog, or whatever it was that had twice favoured us with a visit in the night, had confined its attentions to these two tents. And, after all, there was really nothing out of the way about these visits of an unknown animal, for although our own island was destitute of life, we were in the heart of a wilderness, and the mainland and larger islands must be swarming with all kinds of four-footed creatures, and no very prolonged swimming was necessary to reach us. In any other country it would not have caused a moment’s interest—interest of the kind we felt, that is. In our Canadian camps the bears were for ever grunting about among the provision bags at night, porcupines scratching unceasingly, and chipmunks scuttling over everything.

We followed the paw prints from the entrance of his tent straight across to the girl’s, but there were no other signs of the strange visitor anywhere else in the Camp. The deer, dog, or whatever it was that had visited us twice during the night seemed to focus only on these two tents. Honestly, there was nothing particularly unusual about these visits from an unknown animal; even though our own island lacked wildlife, we were right in the middle of a wilderness, and the mainland and bigger islands were probably filled with all sorts of four-legged creatures that could easily swim over to us. In any other place, this wouldn’t have sparked any interest—at least, not the kind we felt. In our Canadian camps, bears were always rummaging through the food bags at night, porcupines were constantly scratching, and chipmunks were racing around everywhere.

“My daughter is overtired, and that’s the truth of it,” explained Maloney presently when he rejoined us and had examined in turn the other paw-marks. “She’s been overdoing it lately, and camp-life, you know, always means a great excitement to her. It’s natural enough. If we take no notice she’ll be all right.” He paused to borrow my tobacco pouch and fill his pipe, and the blundering way he filled it and spilled the precious weed on the ground visibly belied the calm of his easy language. “You might take her out for a bit of fishing, Hubbard, like a good chap; she’s hardly up to the long day in the cutter. Show her some of the other islands in your canoe, perhaps. Eh?”

“My daughter is really tired, and that’s the plain truth,” Maloney explained when he came back to us and checked the other paw prints. “She’s been pushing herself too much lately, and camp life is always a big deal for her. It’s totally understandable. If we don’t fuss over it, she’ll be fine.” He stopped to borrow my tobacco pouch and fill his pipe, and the clumsy way he managed it, spilling tobacco on the ground, completely contradicted the calmness of his casual words. “You might take her out fishing for a while, Hubbard, if you could be so kind; she’s not really up for a long day in the boat. Maybe show her some of the other islands in your canoe, yeah?”

And by lunch-time the cloud had passed away as suddenly, and as suspiciously, as it had come.

And by lunchtime, the cloud had disappeared just as suddenly and suspiciously as it had appeared.

But in the canoe, on our way home, having till then purposely ignored the subject uppermost in our minds, she suddenly spoke to me in a way that again touched the note of sinister alarm—the note that kept on sounding and sounding until finally John Silence came with his great vibrating presence and relieved it; yes, and even after he came, too, for a while.

But in the canoe, on our way home, having until then deliberately avoided the topic that was on our minds, she suddenly talked to me in a way that struck a nerve of uneasy warning—the kind of warning that just kept ringing until John Silence arrived with his powerful, reassuring presence and eased it; yes, and even for a while after he arrived, too.

“I’m ashamed to ask it,” she said abruptly, as she steered me home, her sleeves rolled up, her hair blowing in the wind, “and ashamed of my silly tears too, because I really can’t make out what caused them; but, Mr. Hubbard, I want you to promise me not to go off for your long expeditions—just yet. I beg it of you.” She was so in earnest that she forgot the canoe, and the wind caught it sideways and made us roll dangerously. “I have tried hard not to ask this,” she added, bringing the canoe round again, “but I simply can’t help myself.”

“I’m embarrassed to ask this,” she said suddenly as she paddled us home, her sleeves rolled up, her hair blowing in the wind, “and I’m also embarrassed about my silly tears because I really can’t figure out why I’m crying; but, Mr. Hubbard, I want you to promise me that you won’t go off on your long trips—at least not yet. I’m begging you.” She was so serious that she forgot about the canoe, and the wind caught it sideways, making us tip dangerously. “I’ve really tried hard not to ask this,” she added, steering the canoe back again, “but I just can’t hold it in anymore.”

It was a good deal to ask, and I suppose my hesitation was plain; for she went on before I could reply, and her beseeching expression and intensity of manner impressed me very forcibly.

It was a lot to ask, and I guess my hesitation was obvious; because she continued before I could respond, and her pleading look and intensity really struck me.

“For another two weeks only——”

“Only for two more weeks——”

“Mr. Sangree leaves in a fortnight,” I said, seeing at once what she was driving at, but wondering if it was best to encourage her or not.

“Mr. Sangree is leaving in two weeks,” I said, instantly realizing what she was getting at, but unsure if it was better to support her or not.

“If I knew you were to be on the island till then,” she said, her face alternately pale and blushing, and her voice trembling a little, “I should feel so much happier.”

“If I knew you were going to be on the island until then,” she said, her face shifting between pale and flushed, and her voice shaking a little, “I would feel so much happier.”

I looked at her steadily, waiting for her to finish.

I stared at her patiently, waiting for her to wrap up.

“And safer,” she added almost in a whisper; “especially—at night, I mean.”

“And safer,” she added almost in a whisper; “especially—at night, I mean.”

“Safer, Joan?” I repeated, thinking I had never seen her eyes so soft and tender. She nodded her head, keeping her gaze fixed on my face.

“Safer, Joan?” I repeated, realizing I had never seen her eyes so soft and tender. She nodded, keeping her gaze locked on my face.

It was really difficult to refuse, whatever my thoughts and judgment may have been, and somehow I understood that she spoke with good reason, though for the life of me I could not have put it into words.

It was really hard to say no, no matter what I thought or judged, and somehow I realized she had good reasons, even though I couldn't have explained it if I tried.

“Happier—and safer,” she said gravely, the canoe giving a dangerous lurch as she leaned forward in her seat to catch my answer. Perhaps, after all, the wisest way was to grant her request and make light of it, easing her anxiety without too much encouraging its cause.

“Happier—and safer,” she said seriously, the canoe tipping dangerously as she leaned forward in her seat to hear my response. Maybe, after all, the smartest thing to do was to agree with her and lighten the mood, calming her nerves without supporting the reason for them too much.

“All right, Joan, you queer creature; I promise,” and the instant look of relief in her face, and the smile that came back like sunlight to her eyes, made me feel that, unknown to myself and the world, I was capable of considerable sacrifice after all.

“All right, Joan, you oddball; I promise,” and the immediate relief on her face, along with the smile that returned like sunlight to her eyes, made me realize that, unbeknownst to myself and the world, I was actually capable of making a significant sacrifice after all.

“But, you know, there’s nothing to be afraid of,” I added sharply; and she looked up in my face with the smile women use when they know we are talking idly, yet do not wish to tell us so.

“But, you know, there’s nothing to be afraid of,” I said sharply; and she looked up at me with the smile women give when they know we’re just talking nonsense, yet don’t want to let us know that.

You don’t feel afraid, I know,” she observed quietly.

You don’t feel scared, I know,” she said softly.

“Of course not; why should I?”

“Of course not; why would I?”

“So, if you will just humour me this once I—I will never ask anything foolish of you again as long as I live,” she said gratefully.

“So, if you could just indulge me this one time, I—I promise I’ll never ask anything silly of you again for as long as I live,” she said gratefully.

“You have my promise,” was all I could find to say.

“You have my word,” was all I could think to say.

She headed the nose of the canoe for the lagoon lying a quarter of a mile ahead, and paddled swiftly; but a minute or two later she paused again and stared hard at me with the dripping paddle across the thwarts.

She pointed the front of the canoe toward the lagoon a quarter of a mile ahead and paddled quickly; but a minute or two later, she stopped again and stared at me intently with the dripping paddle resting across the seats.

“You’ve not heard anything at night yourself, have you?” she asked.

“You haven’t heard anything at night yourself, have you?” she asked.

“I never hear anything at night,” I replied shortly, “from the moment I lie down till the moment I get up.”

“I don’t hear anything at night,” I answered briefly, “from the moment I lie down until I get up.”

“That dismal howling, for instance,” she went on, determined to get it out, “far away at first and then getting closer, and stopping just outside the Camp?”

“That chilling howling, for example,” she continued, determined to say it, “first far away and then getting closer, and stopping right outside the Camp?”

“Certainly not.”

"Definitely not."

“Because, sometimes I think I almost dreamed it.”

“Because sometimes I feel like I almost dreamt it.”

“Most likely you did,” was my unsympathetic response.

“Most likely you did,” was my unfeeling response.

“And you don’t think father has heard it either, then?”

“And you don’t think Dad has heard it either, then?”

“No. He would have told me if he had.”

“No. He would have told me if he had.”

This seemed to relieve her mind a little. “I know mother hasn’t,” she added, as if speaking to herself, “for she hears nothing—ever.”

This seemed to ease her mind a bit. “I know Mom hasn’t,” she added, almost to herself, “because she never hears anything—ever.”


It was two nights after this conversation that I woke out of deep sleep and heard sounds of screaming. The voice was really horrible, breaking the peace and silence with its shrill clamour. In less than ten seconds I was half dressed and out of my tent. The screaming had stopped abruptly, but I knew the general direction, and ran as fast as the darkness would allow over to the women’s quarters, and on getting close I heard sounds of suppressed weeping. It was Joan’s voice. And just as I came up I saw Mrs. Maloney, marvellously attired, fumbling with a lantern. Other voices became audible in the same moment behind me, and Timothy Maloney arrived, breathless, less than half dressed, and carrying another lantern that had gone out on the way from being banged against a tree. Dawn was just breaking, and a chill wind blew in from the sea. Heavy black clouds drove low overhead.

It was two nights after this conversation that I woke up from a deep sleep and heard screaming. The voice was really awful, shattering the peace and quiet with its piercing sound. In less than ten seconds, I was partly dressed and out of my tent. The screaming had stopped suddenly, but I knew the general direction and ran as fast as the darkness would let me towards the women’s quarters. As I got close, I heard the sounds of quiet weeping. It was Joan’s voice. Just as I arrived, I saw Mrs. Maloney, beautifully dressed, struggling with a lantern. Other voices became audible behind me at the same moment, and Timothy Maloney showed up, out of breath, barely dressed, and carrying another lantern that had gone out after hitting a tree. Dawn was just breaking, and a chilly wind blew in from the sea. Heavy black clouds hung low overhead.

The scene of confusion may be better imagined than described. Questions in frightened voices filled the air against this background of suppressed weeping. Briefly—Joan’s silk tent had been torn, and the girl was in a state bordering upon hysterics. Somewhat reassured by our noisy presence, however,—for she was plucky at heart,—she pulled herself together and tried to explain what had happened; and her broken words, told there on the edge of night and morning upon this wild island ridge, were oddly thrilling and distressingly convincing.

The chaotic scene is probably easier to picture than to explain. Frightened voices asking questions filled the air amid the muffled sobbing. To sum it up—Joan’s silk tent had been ripped, and the girl was on the verge of a breakdown. However, somewhat calmed by our loud presence—since she was brave at heart—she collected herself and attempted to explain what had happened; her fragmented words, spoken there on the boundary of night and morning on this rugged island ridge, were strangely exciting and painfully persuasive.

“Something touched me and I woke,” she said simply, but in a voice still hushed and broken with the terror of it, “something pushing against the tent; I felt it through the canvas. There was the same sniffing and scratching as before, and I felt the tent give a little as when wind shakes it. I heard breathing—very loud, very heavy breathing—and then came a sudden great tearing blow, and the canvas ripped open close to my face.”

“Something touched me and I woke up,” she said simply, but her voice was still soft and shaky from the fear of it. “Something was pushing against the tent; I could feel it through the canvas. There was the same sniffing and scratching as before, and I felt the tent move a bit like when the wind shakes it. I heard breathing—very loud, very heavy breathing—and then there was a sudden, powerful tearing blow, and the canvas ripped open right in front of my face.”

She had instantly dashed out through the open flap and screamed at the top of her voice, thinking the creature had actually got into the tent. But nothing was visible, she declared, and she heard not the faintest sound of an animal making off under cover of the darkness. The brief account seemed to exercise a paralysing effect upon us all as we listened to it. I can see the dishevelled group to this day, the wind blowing the women’s hair, and Maloney craning his head forward to listen, and his wife, open-mouthed and gasping, leaning against a pine tree.

She quickly rushed out through the open flap and yelled at the top of her lungs, thinking the creature had actually gotten into the tent. But there was nothing in sight, she said, and she didn’t hear the slightest sound of an animal escaping into the darkness. The short story seemed to have a paralyzing effect on all of us as we listened. I can still picture the disheveled group: the wind blowing the women’s hair, Maloney leaning forward to hear better, and his wife, mouth agape and breathless, leaning against a pine tree.

“Come over to the stockade and we’ll get the fire going,” I said; “that’s the first thing,” for we were all shaking with the cold in our scanty garments. And at that moment Sangree arrived wrapped in a blanket and carrying his gun; he was still drunken with sleep.

“Come over to the stockade and we’ll get the fire going,” I said; “that’s the first thing,” because we were all shivering from the cold in our thin clothes. Just then, Sangree showed up wrapped in a blanket and carrying his gun; he was still groggy from sleep.

“The dog again,” Maloney explained briefly, forestalling his questions; “been at Joan’s tent. Torn it, by Gad! this time. It’s time we did something.” He went on mumbling confusedly to himself.

“The dog again,” Maloney said briefly, cutting off his questions; “it’s been at Joan’s tent. It tore it, for sure! We need to do something.” He kept mumbling to himself in confusion.

Sangree gripped his gun and looked about swiftly in the darkness. I saw his eyes flame in the glare of the flickering lanterns. He made a movement as though to start out and hunt—and kill. Then his glance fell on the girl crouching on the ground, her face hidden in her hands, and there leaped into his features an expression of savage anger that transformed them. He could have faced a dozen lions with a walking-stick at that moment, and again I liked him for the strength of his anger, his self-control, and his hopeless devotion.

Sangree tightened his grip on his gun and quickly scanned the darkness. I saw his eyes light up in the glow of the flickering lanterns. He made a motion like he was about to go out and hunt—and kill. Then his gaze fell on the girl crouched on the ground, her face buried in her hands, and a look of fierce anger crossed his features, changing them completely. At that moment, he could have taken on a dozen lions with just a walking stick, and once again, I admired him for the intensity of his anger, his self-control, and his unwavering devotion.

But I stopped him going off on a blind and useless chase.

But I stopped him from going off on a pointless and futile chase.

“Come and help me start the fire, Sangree,” I said, anxious also to relieve the girl of our presence; and a few minutes later the ashes, still glowing from the night’s fire, had kindled the fresh wood, and there was a blaze that warmed us well while it also lit up the surrounding trees within a radius of twenty yards.

“Come and help me start the fire, Sangree,” I said, eager to also give the girl some space; and a few minutes later the ashes, still glowing from the night’s fire, had ignited the fresh wood, creating a blaze that warmed us nicely while also illuminating the trees around us for about twenty yards.

“I heard nothing,” he whispered; “what in the world do you think it is? It surely can’t be only a dog!”

“I didn’t hear anything,” he whispered. “What do you think it is? It can't just be a dog!”

“We’ll find that out later,” I said, as the others came up to the grateful warmth; “the first thing is to make as big a fire as we can.”

“We’ll figure that out later,” I said, as the others gathered around the welcoming warmth; “the first thing is to build the biggest fire we can.”

Joan was calmer now, and her mother had put on some warmer, and less miraculous, garments. And while they stood talking in low voices Maloney and I slipped off to examine the tent. There was little enough to see, but that little was unmistakable. Some animal had scratched up the ground at the head of the tent, and with a great blow of a powerful paw—a paw clearly provided with good claws—had struck the silk and torn it open. There was a hole large enough to pass a fist and arm through.

Joan was feeling more relaxed now, and her mother had put on some warmer, less fancy clothes. While they talked softly, Maloney and I snuck off to check out the tent. There wasn't much to see, but what we did find was clear. Some animal had dug up the ground at the front of the tent, and with a strong swipe of its paw—clearly equipped with sharp claws—it had hit the silk and ripped it open. There was a hole big enough to fit a fist and an arm through.

“It can’t be far away,” Maloney said excitedly. “We’ll organise a hunt at once; this very minute.”

“It can’t be far away,” Maloney said excitedly. “We’ll organize a hunt right now; this very minute.”

We hurried back to the fire, Maloney talking boisterously about his proposed hunt. “There’s nothing like prompt action to dispel alarm,” he whispered in my ear; and then turned to the rest of us.

We rushed back to the fire, Maloney loudly discussing his planned hunt. “Nothing beats quick action to calm fears,” he whispered in my ear, then turned to the rest of us.

“We’ll hunt the island from end to end at once,” he said, with excitement; “that’s what we’ll do. The beast can’t be far away. And the Bosun’s Mate and Joan must come too, because they can’t be left alone. Hubbard, you take the right shore, and you, Sangree, the left, and I’ll go in the middle with the women. In this way we can stretch clean across the ridge, and nothing bigger than a rabbit can possibly escape us.” He was extraordinarily excited, I thought. Anything affecting Joan, of course, stirred him prodigiously. “Get your guns and we’ll start the drive at once,” he cried. He lit another lantern and handed one each to his wife and Joan, and while I ran to fetch my gun I heard him singing to himself with the excitement of it all.

“We’ll search the island from one end to the other right now,” he said, excitedly; “that’s what we’ll do. The beast can't be far away. And the Bosun’s Mate and Joan need to come too, because we can't leave them alone. Hubbard, you take the right side, and you, Sangree, the left, and I’ll go in the middle with the women. This way, we can spread out across the ridge, and nothing bigger than a rabbit can possibly get away from us.” He was incredibly excited, I thought. Anything that involved Joan always stirred him up. “Grab your guns and let’s start the search right away,” he shouted. He lit another lantern and handed one to his wife and Joan, and while I ran to get my gun, I could hear him singing to himself, caught up in the excitement of it all.

Meanwhile the dawn had come on quickly. It made the flickering lanterns look pale. The wind, too, was rising, and I heard the trees moaning overhead and the waves breaking with increasing clamour on the shore. In the lagoon the boat dipped and splashed, and the sparks from the fire were carried aloft in a stream and scattered far and wide.

Meanwhile, dawn broke swiftly. It made the flickering lanterns appear faint. The wind was picking up, and I heard the trees groaning above me and the waves crashing louder on the shore. In the lagoon, the boat swayed and splashed, while the sparks from the fire rose in a stream and spread out widely.

We made our way to the extreme end of the island, measured our distances carefully, and then began to advance. None of us spoke. Sangree and I, with cocked guns, watched the shore lines, and all within easy touch and speaking distance. It was a slow and blundering drive, and there were many false alarms, but after the best part of half an hour we stood on the farther end, having made the complete tour, and without putting up so much as a squirrel. Certainly there was no living creature on that island but ourselves.

We made our way to the farthest point of the island, tracked our distances carefully, and then started to move forward. None of us said a word. Sangree and I, with our guns ready, kept an eye on the shorelines, all within earshot. It was a slow and clumsy trek, and there were plenty of false alarms, but after about half an hour we reached the other end, having done a full circuit, without seeing even a squirrel. Clearly, there was no living creature on that island except for us.

I know what it is!” cried Maloney, looking out over the dim expanse of grey sea, and speaking with the air of a man making a discovery; “it’s a dog from one of the farms on the larger islands”—he pointed seawards where the archipelago thickened—“and it’s escaped and turned wild. Our fires and voices attracted it, and it’s probably half starved as well as savage, poor brute!”

I know what it is!” shouted Maloney, gazing out at the dim stretch of gray sea, sounding like someone who just made a big discovery; “it’s a dog from one of the farms on the bigger islands”—he pointed toward the sea where the archipelago got denser—“and it’s escaped and gone wild. Our fires and voices drew it in, and it’s probably half-starved as well as fierce, poor thing!”

No one said anything in reply, and he began to sing again very low to himself.

No one responded, and he started to sing softly to himself again.

The point where we stood—a huddled, shivering group—faced the wider channels that led to the open sea and Finland. The grey dawn had broken in earnest at last, and we could see the racing waves with their angry crests of white. The surrounding islands showed up as dark masses in the distance, and in the east, almost as Maloney spoke, the sun came up with a rush in a stormy and magnificent sky of red and gold. Against this splashed and gorgeous background black clouds, shaped like fantastic and legendary animals, filed past swiftly in a tearing stream, and to this day I have only to close my eyes to see again that vivid and hurrying procession in the air. All about us the pines made black splashes against the sky. It was an angry sunrise. Rain, indeed, had already begun to fall in big drops.

The spot where we stood—a clustered, shivering group—faced the wider channels that led to the open sea and Finland. The grey dawn had finally broken at last, and we could see the racing waves with their furious white crests. The surrounding islands appeared as dark shapes in the distance, and in the east, just as Maloney spoke, the sun shot up in a stormy and stunning sky of red and gold. Against this vibrant and beautiful backdrop, black clouds, resembling fantastic and legendary creatures, sped by in a tearing stream, and to this day, all I have to do is close my eyes to see that vivid and rushing procession in the air again. All around us, the pines created black silhouettes against the sky. It was an angry sunrise. Rain had already started to fall in big drops.

We turned, as by a common instinct, and, without speech, made our way back slowly to the stockade, Maloney humming snatches of his songs, Sangree in front with his gun, prepared to shoot at a moment’s notice, and the women floundering in the rear with myself and the extinguished lanterns.

We turned, almost instinctively, and without saying a word, slowly made our way back to the stockade, Maloney humming bits of his songs, Sangree in front with his gun, ready to shoot at a moment’s notice, and the women struggling behind along with me and the turned-off lanterns.

Yet it was only a dog!

Yet it was just a dog!

Really, it was most singular when one came to reflect soberly upon it all. Events, say the occultists, have souls, or at least that agglomerate life due to the emotions and thoughts of all concerned in them, so that cities, and even whole countries, have great astral shapes which may become visible to the eye of vision; and certainly here, the soul of this drive—this vain, blundering, futile drive—stood somewhere between ourselves and—laughed.

Really, it was quite unusual when you took a moment to think about it all. Events, according to occultists, have souls, or at least a combined life because of the emotions and thoughts of everyone involved, so that cities, and even entire countries, have significant astral forms that can be seen by those who can perceive them; and certainly here, the essence of this drive—this pointless, clumsy, useless drive—was somewhere between us and—laughed.

All of us heard that laugh, and all of us tried hard to smother the sound, or at least to ignore it. Every one talked at once, loudly, and with exaggerated decision, obviously trying to say something plausible against heavy odds, striving to explain naturally that an animal might so easily conceal itself from us, or swim away before we had time to light upon its trail. For we all spoke of that “trail” as though it really existed, and we had more to go upon than the mere marks of paws about the tents of Joan and the Canadian. Indeed, but for these, and the torn tent, I think it would, of course, have been possible to ignore the existence of this beast intruder altogether.

All of us heard that laugh, and we all tried hard to muffle the sound, or at least to ignore it. Everyone was talking at once, loudly and with exaggerated certainty, clearly trying to come up with something believable against the odds, working to explain how an animal could so easily hide from us or swim away before we could find its trail. We all talked about that “trail” as if it really existed, and we had more evidence than just the paw prints around Joan's and the Canadian's tents. In fact, if it weren't for those prints and the ripped tent, I think we could have completely ignored the existence of this intruding beast.

And it was here, under this angry dawn, as we stood in the shelter of the stockade from the pouring rain, weary yet so strangely excited—it was here, out of this confusion of voices and explanations, that—very stealthily—the ghost of something horrible slipped in and stood among us. It made all our explanations seem childish and untrue; the false relation was instantly exposed. Eyes exchanged quick, anxious glances, questioning, expressive of dismay. There was a sense of wonder, of poignant distress, and of trepidation. Alarm stood waiting at our elbows. We shivered.

And it was here, under this furious dawn, as we sheltered from the pouring rain in the stockade, tired yet oddly excited—it was here, amidst this jumble of voices and explanations, that—very quietly—the ghost of something terrible slipped in and stood among us. It made all our explanations feel childish and false; the misleading connections were instantly revealed. Eyes darted quick, anxious glances, questioning and filled with dismay. There was a sense of wonder, deep distress, and fear. Anxiety hovered at our sides. We shivered.

Then, suddenly, as we looked into each other’s faces, came the long, unwelcome pause in which this new arrival established itself in our hearts.

Then, suddenly, as we looked into each other’s faces, there was a long, unwelcome silence during which this newcomer settled into our hearts.

And, without further speech, or attempt at explanation, Maloney moved off abruptly to mix the porridge for an early breakfast; Sangree to clean the fish; myself to chop wood and tend the fire; Joan and her mother to change their wet garments; and, most significant of all, to prepare her mother’s tent for its future complement of two.

And without saying anything more or trying to explain, Maloney quickly went off to make porridge for an early breakfast; Sangree went to clean the fish; I went to chop wood and take care of the fire; Joan and her mom went to change out of their wet clothes; and, most importantly, to get her mom’s tent ready for the two of them.

Each went to his duty, but hurriedly, awkwardly, silently; and this new arrival, this shape of terror and distress stalked, viewless, by the side of each.

Each person went to their duty, but they did so quickly, uncomfortably, and without a sound; and this new arrival, this figure of fear and distress, loomed invisibly beside each one.

“If only I could have traced that dog,” I think was the thought in the minds of all.

“If only I could have found that dog,” I think was the thought in everyone's mind.


But in Camp, where every one realises how important the individual contribution is to the comfort and well-being of all, the mind speedily recovers tone and pulls itself together.

But in Camp, where everyone understands how important each person's contribution is to the comfort and well-being of everyone, the mind quickly regains its composure and gets itself together.

During the day, a day of heavy and ceaseless rain, we kept more or less to our tents, and though there were signs of mysterious conferences between the three members of the Maloney family, I think that most of us slept a good deal and stayed alone with his thoughts. Certainly, I did, because when Maloney came to say that his wife invited us all to a special “tea” in her tent, he had to shake me awake before I realised that he was there at all.

During the day, which was filled with heavy, nonstop rain, we mostly stayed in our tents. Although there were hints of secret meetings among the three members of the Maloney family, I think most of us managed to sleep a fair amount and spent time alone with our thoughts. I definitely did, because when Maloney came to let me know that his wife was inviting us all to a special “tea” in her tent, he had to shake me awake before I even realized he was there.

And by supper-time we were more or less even-minded again, and almost jolly. I only noticed that there was an undercurrent of what is best described as “jumpiness,” and that the merest snapping of a twig, or plop of a fish in the lagoon, was sufficient to make us start and look over our shoulders. Pauses were rare in our talk, and the fire was never for one instant allowed to get low. The wind and rain had ceased, but the dripping of the branches still kept up an excellent imitation of a downpour. In particular, Maloney was vigilant and alert, telling us a series of tales in which the wholesome humorous element was especially strong. He lingered, too, behind with me after Sangree had gone to bed, and while I mixed myself a glass of hot Swedish punch, he did a thing I had never known him do before—he mixed one for himself, and then asked me to light him over to his tent. We said nothing on the way, but I felt that he was glad of my companionship.

And by dinner time, we were pretty much feeling normal again, and almost cheerful. I did notice a bit of what you’d call “jitters,” as even the slightest sound—a twig snapping or a fish splashing in the lagoon—was enough to make us jump and glance over our shoulders. There were hardly any pauses in our conversation, and we made sure the fire never dipped. The wind and rain had stopped, but the branches kept dripping like it was still pouring. Maloney was particularly watchful and engaged, sharing a bunch of stories that were filled with good humor. He even stayed behind with me after Sangree went to bed, and while I mixed myself a glass of hot Swedish punch, he did something I had never seen him do before—he made one for himself too, then asked me to light him to his tent. We didn’t say anything on the way, but I could tell he appreciated my company.

I returned alone to the stockade, and for a long time after that kept the fire blazing, and sat up smoking and thinking. I hardly knew why; but sleep was far from me for one thing, and for another, an idea was taking form in my mind that required the comfort of tobacco and a bright fire for its growth. I lay against a corner of the stockade seat, listening to the wind whispering and to the ceaseless drip-drip of the trees. The night, otherwise, was very still, and the sea quiet as a lake. I remember that I was conscious, peculiarly conscious, of this host of desolate islands crowding about us in the darkness, and that we were the one little spot of humanity in a rather wonderful kind of wilderness.

I went back to the stockade alone, and for a long time afterward, I kept the fire going while I sat there smoking and thinking. I wasn’t really sure why; for one thing, sleep was nowhere near me, and for another, an idea was forming in my mind that needed the comfort of tobacco and a bright fire to develop. I leaned against a corner of the stockade seat, listening to the wind whisper and the constant drip-drip of the trees. The night was otherwise very quiet, and the sea was calm like a lake. I remember feeling particularly aware of all the desolate islands surrounding us in the darkness and that we were the only small spot of humanity in a pretty amazing kind of wilderness.

But this, I think, was the only symptom that came to warn me of highly strung nerves, and it certainly was not sufficiently alarming to destroy my peace of mind. One thing, however, did come to disturb my peace, for just as I finally made ready to go, and had kicked the embers of the fire into a last effort, I fancied I saw, peering at me round the farther end of the stockade wall, a dark and shadowy mass that might have been—that strongly resembled, in fact—the body of a large animal. Two glowing eyes shone for an instant in the middle of it. But the next second I saw that it was merely a projecting mass of moss and lichen in the wall of our stockade, and the eyes were a couple of wandering sparks from the dying ashes I had kicked. It was easy enough, too, to imagine I saw an animal moving here and there between the trees, as I picked my way stealthily to my tent. Of course, the shadows tricked me.

But I think this was the only sign that warned me of my frayed nerves, and it definitely wasn’t alarming enough to ruin my peace of mind. However, one thing did disturb my calm: just as I was finally getting ready to leave and had stirred the embers of the fire for one last glow, I thought I saw, peeking at me from around the far end of the stockade wall, a dark and shadowy shape that looked like—actually resembled—a large animal. Two glowing eyes shone for a moment in the middle of it. But the next second, I realized it was just a clump of moss and lichen on the wall of our stockade, and the eyes were just a couple of flickering sparks from the dying ashes I had disturbed. It was also easy to imagine I saw an animal moving between the trees as I quietly made my way to my tent. Of course, the shadows fooled me.

And though it was after one o’clock, Maloney’s light was still burning, for I saw his tent shining white among the pines.

And even though it was after one o'clock, Maloney's light was still on, because I saw his tent glowing white among the pines.

It was, however, in the short space between consciousness and sleep—that time when the body is low and the voices of the submerged region tell sometimes true—that the idea which had been all this while maturing reached the point of an actual decision, and I suddenly realised that I had resolved to send word to Dr. Silence. For, with a sudden wonder that I had hitherto been so blind, the unwelcome conviction dawned upon me all at once that some dreadful thing was lurking about us on this island, and that the safety of at least one of us was threatened by something monstrous and unclean that was too horrible to contemplate. And, again remembering those last words of his as the train moved out of the platform, I understood that Dr. Silence would hold himself in readiness to come.

It was, however, in the brief moment between waking and sleeping—that time when the body is relaxed and the whispers of the subconscious sometimes reveal truths—that the idea I had been developing finally turned into a firm decision, and I suddenly realized I needed to get in touch with Dr. Silence. With a sudden realization that I had been blind to this situation until now, I became aware that something terrible was lurking around us on this island, and that at least one of us was in danger from something monstrous and filthy that was too horrific to think about. Remembering his last words as the train pulled away from the platform, I knew that Dr. Silence would be prepared to come.

“Unless you should send for me sooner,” he had said.

“Unless you call for me sooner,” he had said.


I found myself suddenly wide awake. It is impossible to say what woke me, but it was no gradual process, seeing that I jumped from deep sleep to absolute alertness in a single instant. I had evidently slept for an hour and more, for the night had cleared, stars crowded the sky, and a pallid half-moon just sinking into the sea threw a spectral light between the trees.

I suddenly woke up wide awake. I can’t say what startled me, but it wasn’t a gradual thing; I went from deep sleep to full alertness in an instant. I must have slept for over an hour because the night had cleared, stars filled the sky, and a pale half-moon, just sinking into the sea, cast an eerie light between the trees.

I went outside to sniff the air, and stood upright. A curious impression that something was astir in the Camp came over me, and when I glanced across at Sangree’s tent, some twenty feet away, I saw that it was moving. He too, then, was awake and restless, for I saw the canvas sides bulge this way and that as he moved within.

I stepped outside to take a breath of fresh air and stood up straight. I had a strange feeling that something was happening in the Camp, and when I looked over at Sangree’s tent, about twenty feet away, I noticed it was moving. He was awake and restless too, because I saw the canvas sides shifting as he moved around inside.

Then the flap pushed forward. He was coming out, like myself, to sniff the air; and I was not surprised, for its sweetness after the rain was intoxicating. And he came on all fours, just as I had done. I saw a head thrust round the edge of the tent.

Then the flap moved aside. He was coming out, like I was, to breathe in the fresh air; and I wasn’t surprised, because its sweetness after the rain was intoxicating. He crawled out on all fours, just like I had. I saw a head peeking around the edge of the tent.

And then I saw that it was not Sangree at all. It was an animal. And the same instant I realised something else too—it was the animal; and its whole presentment for some unaccountable reason was unutterably malefic.

And then I saw that it wasn’t Sangree at all. It was an animal. At that same moment, I realized something else too—it was the animal; and for some inexplicable reason, it radiated an overwhelming sense of evil.

A cry I was quite unable to suppress escaped me, and the creature turned on the instant and stared at me with baleful eyes. I could have dropped on the spot, for the strength all ran out of my body with a rush. Something about it touched in me the living terror that grips and paralyses. If the mind requires but the tenth of a second to form an impression, I must have stood there stockstill for several seconds while I seized the ropes for support and stared. Many and vivid impressions flashed through my mind, but not one of them resulted in action, because I was in instant dread that the beast any moment would leap in my direction and be upon me. Instead, however, after what seemed a vast period, it slowly turned its eyes from my face, uttered a low whining sound, and came out altogether into the open.

A cry I couldn’t hold back escaped me, and the creature immediately turned and stared at me with menacing eyes. I felt like I could collapse right then, as all the strength drained out of my body in an instant. Something about it triggered a deep terror in me that left me paralyzed. If the mind needs just a fraction of a second to process an impression, I must have stood frozen for several seconds, gripping the ropes for support and staring. Many vivid images flashed through my mind, but none led to action because I was terrified that the beast would leap toward me at any moment. Instead, after what felt like a long time, it slowly turned its eyes away from my face, made a low whining sound, and fully stepped out into the open.

Then, for the first time, I saw it in its entirety and noted two things: it was about the size of a large dog, but at the same time it was utterly unlike any animal that I had ever seen. Also, that the quality that had impressed me first as being malefic, was really only its singular and original strangeness. Foolish as it may sound, and impossible as it is for me to adduce proof, I can only say that the animal seemed to me then to be—not real.

Then, for the first time, I saw it in full and noticed two things: it was about the size of a large dog, but at the same time it was completely unlike any animal I had ever seen. Also, the quality that had initially struck me as malevolent was really just its unique and original oddness. As silly as it may sound, and impossible for me to provide evidence, I can only say that the creature seemed to me at that moment to be—not real.

But all this passed through my mind in a flash, almost subconsciously, and before I had time to check my impressions, or even properly verify them; I made an involuntary movement, catching the tight rope in my hand so that it twanged like a banjo string, and in that instant the creature turned the corner of Sangree’s tent and was gone into the darkness.

But all of this flashed through my mind in an instant, almost without thinking, and before I could even process my thoughts or fully confirm them; I made an impulsive move, grabbing the tight rope in my hand so that it twanged like a banjo string, and in that moment, the creature rounded the corner of Sangree’s tent and vanished into the darkness.

Then, of course, my senses in some measure returned to me, and I realised only one thing: it had been inside his tent!

Then, of course, my senses somewhat came back to me, and I realized only one thing: it had been inside his tent!

I dashed out, reached the door in half a dozen strides, and looked in. The Canadian, thank God! lay upon his bed of branches. His arm was stretched outside, across the blankets, the fist tightly clenched, and the body had an appearance of unusual rigidity that was alarming. On his face there was an expression of effort, almost of painful effort, so far as the uncertain light permitted me to see, and his sleep seemed to be very profound. He looked, I thought, so stiff, so unnaturally stiff, and in some indefinable way, too, he looked smaller—shrunken.

I rushed out, reached the door in six quick steps, and peered inside. The Canadian, thank goodness, was lying on his bed of branches. His arm was stretched out over the blankets, his fist tightly clenched, and his body had an unsettling rigidity that was concerning. His face showed an expression of strain, almost painful effort, as far as the dim light allowed me to see, and he seemed to be in a deep sleep. I thought he looked so stiff, so unnaturally rigid, and in some unexplainable way, he looked smaller—shrunken.

I called to him to wake, but called many times in vain. Then I decided to shake him, and had already moved forward to do so vigorously when there came a sound of footsteps padding softly behind me, and I felt a stream of hot breath burn my neck as I stooped. I turned sharply. The tent door was darkened and something silently swept in. I felt a rough and shaggy body push past me, and knew that the animal had returned. It seemed to leap forward between me and Sangree—in fact, to leap upon Sangree, for its dark body hid him momentarily from view, and in that moment my soul turned sick and coward with a horror that rose from the very dregs and depth of life, and gripped my existence at its central source.

I called out to him to wake up, but I called many times with no response. Then I decided to shake him and had already moved closer to do so forcefully when I heard soft footsteps approaching behind me, and I felt a rush of hot breath on my neck as I bent down. I turned quickly. The tent door was darkened and something slipped in silently. I felt a rough, shaggy body push past me, and I realized the animal had come back. It seemed to jump forward between me and Sangree—actually, to jump on Sangree, since its dark body blocked my view of him for a moment, and in that instant, I felt a wave of sickness and fear rise up from the very depths of life, gripping my existence at its core.

The creature seemed somehow to melt away into him, almost as though it belonged to him and were a part of himself, but in the same instant—that instant of extraordinary confusion and terror in my mind—it seemed to pass over and behind him, and, in some utterly unaccountable fashion, it was gone! And the Canadian woke and sat up with a start.

The creature seemed to dissolve into him, almost like it was part of him, but in that same moment—filled with confusion and terror in my mind—it seemed to move past him and, in an entirely inexplicable way, it vanished! Then the Canadian woke up and sat up suddenly.

“Quick! You fool!” I cried, in my excitement, “the beast has been in your tent, here at your very throat while you sleep like the dead. Up, man! Get your gun! Only this second it disappeared over there behind your head. Quick! or Joan——!”

“Quick! You idiot!” I shouted, caught up in my excitement, “the beast has been in your tent, right at your throat while you sleep like a log. Get up, man! Grab your gun! Just a second ago it vanished over there behind you. Hurry! or Joan——!”

And somehow the fact that he was there, wide-awake now, to corroborate me, brought the additional conviction to my own mind that this was no animal, but some perplexing and dreadful form of life that drew upon my deeper knowledge, that much reading had perhaps assented to, but that had never yet come within actual range of my senses.

And somehow the fact that he was there, fully awake now, to back me up, added to my own belief that this was no animal, but some confusing and terrifying form of life that tapped into my deeper understanding, something that all my reading had maybe suggested, but that had never really come within reach of my senses.

He was up in a flash, and out. He was trembling, and very white. We searched hurriedly, feverishly, but found only the traces of paw-marks passing from the door of his own tent across the moss to the women’s. And the sight of the tracks about Mrs. Maloney’s tent, where Joan now slept, set him in a perfect fury.

He was up in an instant and gone. He was shaking and extremely pale. We searched quickly and frantically but found only paw prints leading from the door of his tent across the moss to the women’s. The sight of the tracks around Mrs. Maloney’s tent, where Joan was now sleeping, drove him into a complete rage.

“Do you know what it is, Hubbard, this beast?” he hissed under his breath at me; “it’s a damned wolf, that’s what it is—a wolf lost among the islands, and starving to death—desperate. So help me God, I believe it’s that!”

“Do you know what this creature is, Hubbard?” he whispered to me. “It’s a damned wolf, that’s what it is—a wolf that’s lost among the islands, and starving—desperate. I swear to God, I think that’s what it is!”

He talked a lot of rubbish in his excitement. He declared he would sleep by day and sit up every night until he killed it. Again his rage touched my admiration; but I got him away before he made enough noise to wake the whole Camp.

He talked a lot of nonsense in his excitement. He declared he would sleep during the day and stay up all night until he killed it. Again, his anger impressed me; but I got him away before he made enough noise to wake up the whole Camp.

“I have a better plan than that,” I said, watching his face closely. “I don’t think this is anything we can deal with. I’m going to send for the only man I know who can help. We’ll go to Waxholm this very morning and get a telegram through.”

“I have a better plan than that,” I said, watching his face closely. “I don’t think this is something we can handle. I’m going to call in the only guy I know who can help. We’ll head to Waxholm this morning and send a telegram.”

Sangree stared at me with a curious expression as the fury died out of his face and a new look of alarm took its place.

Sangree looked at me with a puzzled expression as the anger faded from his face and was replaced by a new sense of alarm.

“John Silence,” I said, “will know——”

“John Silence,” I said, “will know——”

“You think it’s something—of that sort?” he stammered.

“You think it’s something like that?” he stammered.

“I am sure of it.”

"I'm sure of it."

There was a moment’s pause. “That’s worse, far worse than anything material,” he said, turning visibly paler. He looked from my face to the sky, and then added with sudden resolution, “Come; the wind’s rising. Let’s get off at once. From there you can telephone to Stockholm and get a telegram sent without delay.”

There was a brief pause. “That’s much worse, way worse than anything physical,” he said, turning visibly paler. He glanced from my face to the sky and then added with sudden determination, “Come on; the wind’s picking up. Let’s leave right away. From there, you can call Stockholm and send a telegram immediately.”

I sent him down to get the boat ready, and seized the opportunity myself to run and wake Maloney. He was sleeping very lightly, and sprang up the moment I put my head inside his tent. I told him briefly what I had seen, and he showed so little surprise that I caught myself wondering for the first time whether he himself had seen more going on than he had deemed wise to communicate to the rest of us.

I sent him to get the boat ready, and took the chance to go wake Maloney myself. He was sleeping lightly and jumped up as soon as I peeked into his tent. I quickly told him what I had seen, but he seemed so unfazed that I found myself wondering for the first time if he had noticed more than he felt was wise to share with the rest of us.

He agreed to my plan without a moment’s hesitation, and my last words to him were to let his wife and daughter think that the great psychic doctor was coming merely as a chance visitor, and not with any professional interest.

He agreed to my plan without any hesitation, and my last words to him were to let his wife and daughter believe that the great psychic doctor was just coming by as a casual visitor, not for any professional reason.

So, with frying-pan, provisions, and blankets aboard, Sangree and I sailed out of the lagoon fifteen minutes later, and headed with a good breeze for the direction of Waxholm and the borders of civilisation.

So, with the frying pan, supplies, and blankets on board, Sangree and I set sail out of the lagoon fifteen minutes later and headed with a nice breeze toward Waxholm and the edges of civilization.

IV

Although nothing John Silence did ever took me, properly speaking, by surprise, it was certainly unexpected to find a letter from Stockholm waiting for me. “I have finished my Hungary business,” he wrote, “and am here for ten days. Do not hesitate to send if you need me. If you telephone any morning from Waxholm I can catch the afternoon steamer.”

Although nothing John Silence did ever genuinely surprised me, it was certainly unexpected to find a letter from Stockholm waiting for me. “I’ve wrapped up my business in Hungary,” he wrote, “and I’ll be here for ten days. Don’t hesitate to reach out if you need me. If you call any morning from Waxholm, I can catch the afternoon steamer.”

My years of intercourse with him were full of “coincidences” of this description, and although he never sought to explain them by claiming any magical system of communication with my mind, I have never doubted that there actually existed some secret telepathic method by which he knew my circumstances and gauged the degree of my need. And that this power was independent of time in the sense that it saw into the future, always seemed to me equally apparent.

My years of interaction with him were filled with “coincidences” like this, and even though he never tried to explain them by saying he had some magical way of communicating with my mind, I have always believed that there was some secret telepathic method by which he understood my situation and measured how much I needed. It also seemed obvious to me that this ability was independent of time in the sense that it could see into the future.

Sangree was as much relieved as I was, and within an hour of sunset that very evening we met him on the arrival of the little coasting steamer, and carried him off in the dinghy to the camp we had prepared on a neighbouring island, meaning to start for home early next morning.

Sangree was just as relieved as I was, and within an hour of sunset that evening, we met him when the little coastal steamer arrived, and took him to the camp we had set up on a nearby island, planning to head home early the next morning.

“Now,” he said, when supper was over and we were smoking round the fire, “let me hear your story.” He glanced from one to the other, smiling.

"Now," he said, after dinner was done and we were smoking by the fire, "let me hear your story." He looked from one person to another, smiling.

“You tell it, Mr. Hubbard,” Sangree interrupted abruptly, and went off a little way to wash the dishes, yet not so far as to be out of earshot. And while he splashed with the hot water, and scraped the tin plates with sand and moss, my voice, unbroken by a single question from Dr. Silence, ran on for the next half-hour with the best account I could give of what had happened.

“You go ahead, Mr. Hubbard,” Sangree cut in suddenly, and stepped away just far enough to wash the dishes, but not so far that he couldn’t hear. While he splashed with hot water and scrubbed the tin plates with sand and moss, my voice, uninterrupted by a single question from Dr. Silence, continued for the next half-hour with the best explanation I could provide about what had happened.

My listener lay on the other side of the fire, his face half hidden by a big sombrero; sometimes he glanced up questioningly when a point needed elaboration, but he uttered no single word till I had reached the end, and his manner all through the recital was grave and attentive. Overhead, the wash of the wind in the pine branches filled in the pauses; the darkness settled down over the sea, and the stars came out in thousands, and by the time I finished the moon had risen to flood the scene with silver. Yet, by his face and eyes, I knew quite well that the doctor was listening to something he had expected to hear, even if he had not actually anticipated all the details.

My listener was across the fire, his face partially covered by a big sombrero; he occasionally looked up with a questioning expression when I needed to elaborate on something, but he didn’t say a word until I finished. Throughout the story, he was serious and focused. Above us, the wind rustled through the pine branches, filling the gaps in my narration; darkness settled over the sea, and the stars appeared in droves. By the time I wrapped up, the moon had risen, lighting up the scene with silver. Still, from his face and eyes, I could tell that the doctor was tuned in to something he expected to hear, even if he hadn’t predicted all the details.

“You did well to send for me,” he said very low, with a significant glance at me when I finished; “very well,”—and for one swift second his eye took in Sangree,—“for what we have to deal with here is nothing more than a werewolf—rare enough, I am glad to say, but often very sad, and sometimes very terrible.”

“You did well to call me,” he said quietly, giving me a meaningful look when I was done; “very well,”—and for a brief moment, his gaze shifted to Sangree,—“because what we’re dealing with here is simply a werewolf—uncommon enough, I’m glad to say, but often quite tragic, and sometimes really horrifying.”

I jumped as though I had been shot, but the next second was heartily ashamed of my want of control; for this brief remark, confirming as it did my own worst suspicions, did more to convince me of the gravity of the adventure than any number of questions or explanations. It seemed to draw close the circle about us, shutting a door somewhere that locked us in with the animal and the horror, and turning the key. Whatever it was had now to be faced and dealt with.

I flinched as if I had been shot, but the next moment I was deeply embarrassed by my lack of self-control; because this simple comment, which confirmed my worst fears, did more to make me realize how serious the situation was than any amount of questions or explanations. It felt like the circle around us tightened, closing a door somewhere that trapped us in with the creature and the terror, and turning the key. Whatever it was, we now had to confront and handle it.

“No one has been actually injured so far?” he asked aloud, but in a matter-of-fact tone that lent reality to grim possibilities.

“No one has actually been hurt so far?” he asked loudly, but in a straightforward tone that made the grim possibilities feel real.

“Good heavens, no!” cried the Canadian, throwing down his dish-cloths and coming forward into the circle of firelight. “Surely there can be no question of this poor starved beast injuring anybody, can there?”

“Good heavens, no!” exclaimed the Canadian, tossing aside his dishcloths and stepping into the circle of firelight. “Surely there’s no way this poor starving animal could hurt anyone, right?”

His hair straggled untidily over his forehead, and there was a gleam in his eyes that was not all reflection from the fire. His words made me turn sharply. We all laughed a little, short, forced laugh.

His hair was messy and fell over his forehead, and there was a shine in his eyes that wasn’t just from the fire. His words made me react suddenly. We all laughed a bit, a short, strained laugh.

“I trust not, indeed,” Dr. Silence said quietly. “But what makes you think the creature is starved?” He asked the question with his eyes straight on the other’s face. The prompt question explained to me why I had started, and I waited with just a tremor of excitement for the reply.

“I really don’t,” Dr. Silence said softly. “But why do you think the creature is starving?” He asked, looking directly into the other person's eyes. His immediate question made me realize why I had reacted, and I waited with a slight thrill of anticipation for the answer.

Sangree hesitated a moment, as though the question took him by surprise. But he met the doctor’s gaze unflinchingly across the fire, and with complete honesty.

Sangree paused for a moment, as if the question caught him off guard. But he met the doctor’s gaze steadily across the fire, being completely honest.

“Really,” he faltered, with a little shrug of the shoulders, “I can hardly tell you. The phrase seemed to come out of its own accord. I have felt from the beginning that it was in pain and—starved, though why I felt this never occurred to me till you asked.”

“Honestly,” he hesitated, giving a slight shrug, “I can barely explain it. The words just seemed to come out on their own. I’ve sensed from the start that it was in pain and—starved, but I never really thought about why until you asked.”

“You really know very little about it, then?” said the other, with a sudden gentleness in his voice.

“You really don’t know much about it, do you?” said the other, his voice suddenly softening.

“No more than that,” Sangree replied, looking at him with a puzzled expression that was unmistakably genuine. “In fact, nothing at all, really,” he added, by way of further explanation.

“No more than that,” Sangree replied, looking at him with a genuinely puzzled expression. “In fact, nothing at all, really,” he added for clarification.

“I am glad of that,” I heard the doctor murmur under his breath, but so low that I only just caught the words, and Sangree missed them altogether, as evidently he was meant to do.

“I’m glad to hear that,” I heard the doctor murmur quietly, so softly that I barely caught the words, and Sangree completely missed them, as it was clearly intended.

“And now,” he cried, getting on his feet and shaking himself with a characteristic gesture, as though to shake out the horror and the mystery, “let us leave the problem till to-morrow and enjoy this wind and sea and stars. I’ve been living lately in the atmosphere of many people, and feel that I want to wash and be clean. I propose a swim and then bed. Who’ll second me?” And two minutes later we were all diving from the boat into cool, deep water, that reflected a thousand moons as the waves broke away from us in countless ripples.

“And now,” he exclaimed, standing up and shaking himself with a familiar gesture, as if trying to rid himself of the horror and mystery, “let’s put the problem aside until tomorrow and enjoy this wind, sea, and stars. I’ve been surrounded by so many people lately, and I feel like I need to wash off and be refreshed. I suggest we go for a swim and then hit the hay. Who’s with me?” And two minutes later, we were all diving off the boat into the cool, deep water, which reflected a thousand moons as the waves broke away from us in countless ripples.

We slept in blankets under the open sky, Sangree and I taking the outside places, and were up before sunrise to catch the dawn wind. Helped by this early start we were half-way home by noon, and then the wind shifted to a few points behind us so that we fairly ran. In and out among a thousand islands, down narrow channels where we lost the wind, out into open spaces where we had to take in a reef, racing along under a hot and cloudless sky, we flew through the very heart of the bewildering and lonely scenery.

We slept under the open sky wrapped in blankets, with Sangree and me taking the outer spots, and we woke up before sunrise to catch the morning breeze. Thanks to this early start, we were halfway home by noon, and then the wind changed to a few degrees behind us, allowing us to really pick up speed. We navigated in and out of a thousand islands, through narrow channels where the wind faded, and into open areas where we had to reef the sails, racing along under a hot, clear sky, moving swiftly through the heart of the stunning and desolate landscape.

“A real wilderness,” cried Dr. Silence from his seat in the bows where he held the jib sheet. His hat was off, his hair tumbled in the wind, and his lean brown face gave him the touch of an Oriental. Presently he changed places with Sangree, and came down to talk with me by the tiller.

“A real wilderness,” shouted Dr. Silence from his spot at the front, where he was managing the jib sheet. His hat was off, hair blowing in the wind, and his tan, angular face gave him an exotic look. Soon, he switched places with Sangree and came down to chat with me by the tiller.

“A wonderful region, all this world of islands,” he said, waving his hand to the scenery rushing past us, “but doesn’t it strike you there’s something lacking?”

“Amazing area, all these islands,” he said, gesturing to the scenery zooming by us, “but doesn’t it seem like there’s something missing?”

“It’s—hard,” I answered, after a moment’s reflection. “It has a superficial, glittering prettiness, without——” I hesitated to find the word I wanted.

“It’s—hard,” I replied, after thinking for a moment. “It has a shallow, shiny beauty, without——” I paused to search for the word I needed.

John Silence nodded his head with approval.

John Silence nodded his head in agreement.

“Exactly,” he said. “The picturesqueness of stage scenery that is not real, not alive. It’s like a landscape by a clever painter, yet without true imagination. Soulless—that’s the word you wanted.”

“Exactly,” he said. “The charm of stage scenery that isn’t real, that isn’t alive. It’s like a landscape created by a skilled artist, but without genuine imagination. Soulless—that’s the word you were looking for.”

“Something like that,” I answered, watching the gusts of wind on the sails. “Not dead so much, as without soul. That’s it.”

“Something like that,” I replied, watching the wind whip through the sails. “Not dead exactly, more like soulless. That’s it.”

“Of course,” he went on, in a voice calculated, it seemed to me, not to reach our companion in the bows, “to live long in a place like this—long and alone—might bring about a strange result in some men.”

“Of course,” he continued, in a tone that felt like it was meant not to be heard by our friend in the front, “spending a long time in a place like this—long and alone—could lead to some unusual changes in certain people.”

I suddenly realised he was talking with a purpose and pricked up my ears.

I suddenly realized he was speaking intentionally and perked up my ears.

“There’s no life here. These islands are mere dead rocks pushed up from below the sea—not living land; and there’s nothing really alive on them. Even the sea, this tideless, brackish sea, neither salt water nor fresh, is dead. It’s all a pretty image of life without the real heart and soul of life. To a man with too strong desires who came here and lived close to nature, strange things might happen.”

“There’s no life here. These islands are just lifeless rocks that were pushed up from beneath the sea—not real land; and there’s nothing truly alive on them. Even the sea, this still, murky water, neither salty nor fresh, is lifeless. It all looks nice but lacks the true essence and spirit of life. To someone with intense desires who came here and lived close to nature, bizarre things might happen.”

“Let her out a bit,” I shouted to Sangree, who was coming aft. “The wind’s gusty and we’ve got hardly any ballast.”

“Let her out a bit,” I yelled to Sangree, who was walking toward the back. “The wind's strong and we barely have any ballast.”

He went back to the bows, and Dr. Silence continued—

He returned to the bows, and Dr. Silence went on—

“Here, I mean, a long sojourn would lead to deterioration, to degeneration. The place is utterly unsoftened by human influences, by any humanising associations of history, good or bad. This landscape has never awakened into life; it’s still dreaming in its primitive sleep.”

“Here, I mean, a long stay would lead to decline, to decay. The place is completely untouched by human influences, by any human connections to history, whether good or bad. This landscape has never come to life; it’s still dreaming in its original sleep.”

“In time,” I put in, “you mean a man living here might become brutal?”

“In time,” I added, “you mean a man living here could become brutal?”

“The passions would run wild, selfishness become supreme, the instincts coarsen and turn savage probably.”

“The passions would run wild, selfishness would take over, and the instincts would become rough and likely turn savage.”

“But——”

“But—”

“In other places just as wild, parts of Italy for instance, where there are other moderating influences, it could not happen. The character might grow wild, savage too in a sense, but with a human wildness one could understand and deal with. But here, in a hard place like this, it might be otherwise.” He spoke slowly, weighing his words carefully.

“In other wild places, like parts of Italy, where there are other calming influences, this couldn’t happen. The character might become wild, even savage in a way, but with a human wildness that one could understand and manage. But here, in a tough place like this, it might be different.” He spoke slowly, choosing his words carefully.

I looked at him with many questions in my eyes, and a precautionary cry to Sangree to stay in the fore part of the boat, out of earshot.

I looked at him with so many questions in my eyes and called out to Sangree to stay in the front of the boat, out of earshot.

“First of all there would come callousness to pain, and indifference to the rights of others. Then the soul would turn savage, not from passionate human causes, or with enthusiasm, but by deadening down into a kind of cold, primitive, emotionless savagery—by turning, like the landscape, soulless.”

“First, there would be a lack of empathy for pain and a disregard for the rights of others. Then the soul would become brutal, not out of passionate human reasons or with fervor, but by settling into a kind of cold, primitive, emotionless brutality—by becoming, like the landscape, soulless.”

“And a man with strong desires, you say, might change?”

“And a man with strong desires, you say, can change?”

“Without being aware of it, yes; he might turn savage, his instincts and desires turn animal. And if”—he lowered his voice and turned for a moment towards the bows, and then continued in his most weighty manner—“owing to delicate health or other predisposing causes, his Double—you know what I mean, of course—his etheric Body of Desire, or astral body, as some term it—that part in which the emotions, passions and desires reside—if this, I say, were for some constitutional reason loosely joined to his physical organism, there might well take place an occasional projection——”

“Without realizing it, yes; he could become brutal, his instincts and desires turning primal. And if”—he lowered his voice and glanced for a moment toward the front of the boat, then continued in his most serious tone—“due to fragile health or other underlying conditions, his Double—you know what I mean, of course—his etheric Body of Desire, or astral body, as some call it—that part where emotions, passions, and desires live—if this, I’m saying, were for some constitutional reason loosely connected to his physical body, there might very well be an occasional projection——”

Sangree came aft with a sudden rush, his face aflame, but whether with wind or sun, or with what he had heard, I cannot say. In my surprise I let the tiller slip and the cutter gave a great plunge as she came sharply into the wind and flung us all together in a heap on the bottom. Sangree said nothing, but while he scrambled up and made the jib sheet fast my companion found a moment to add to his unfinished sentence the words, too low for any ear but mine—

Sangree rushed back suddenly, his face red, but I couldn't tell if it was from the wind, the sun, or what he had heard. In my shock, I let go of the tiller, and the boat heaved as it turned sharply into the wind, sending us all crashing to the bottom. Sangree didn't say a word, but as he got up and secured the jib sheet, my companion took a moment to finish his unfinished sentence with words that were too soft for anyone but me to hear—

“Entirely unknown to himself, however.”

"Completely unaware of himself, though."

We righted the boat and laughed, and then Sangree produced the map and explained exactly where we were. Far away on the horizon, across an open stretch of water, lay a blue cluster of islands with our crescent-shaped home among them and the safe anchorage of the lagoon. An hour with this wind would get us there comfortably, and while Dr. Silence and Sangree fell into conversation, I sat and pondered over the strange suggestions that had just been put into my mind concerning the “Double,” and the possible form it might assume when dissociated temporarily from the physical body.

We righted the boat and laughed, and then Sangree brought out the map and explained exactly where we were. Far away on the horizon, across a stretch of open water, was a blue cluster of islands with our crescent-shaped home among them and the safe anchorage of the lagoon. With this wind, we could reach it comfortably in an hour, and while Dr. Silence and Sangree started chatting, I sat and thought about the strange ideas that had just been put into my mind concerning the “Double,” and what form it might take when temporarily separated from the physical body.

The whole way home these two chatted, and John Silence was as gentle and sympathetic as a woman. I did not hear much of their talk, for the wind grew occasionally to the force of a hurricane and the sails and tiller absorbed my attention; but I could see that Sangree was pleased and happy, and was pouring out intimate revelations to his companion in the way that most people did—when John Silence wished them to do so.

The entire journey home, these two talked, and John Silence was as kind and understanding as a woman. I didn’t catch much of their conversation, as the wind sometimes picked up to hurricane strength and the sails and tiller demanded my focus; but I could tell Sangree was content and joyful, sharing personal thoughts with his friend in the way most people did—when John Silence encouraged them to open up.

But it was quite suddenly, while I sat all intent upon wind and sails, that the true meaning of Sangree’s remark about the animal flared up in me with its full import. For his admission that he knew it was in pain and starved was in reality nothing more or less than a revelation of his deeper self. It was in the nature of a confession. He was speaking of something that he knew positively, something that was beyond question or argument, something that had to do directly with himself. “Poor starved beast” he had called it in words that had “come out of their own accord,” and there had not been the slightest evidence of any desire to conceal or explain away. He had spoken instinctively—from his heart, and as though about his own self.

But it was quite suddenly, while I was focused on the wind and sails, that the true meaning of Sangree’s remark about the animal hit me fully. His admission that he knew it was in pain and starving was really a revelation of his deeper self. It was like a confession. He was talking about something he knew for sure, something that couldn't be questioned or argued, something that was directly related to him. "Poor starving creature" he called it, in words that had “come out spontaneously,” and there wasn’t the slightest hint of wanting to hide or downplay it. He spoke instinctively—from his heart, as if he were talking about himself.

And half an hour before sunset we raced through the narrow opening of the lagoon and saw the smoke of the dinner-fire blowing here and there among the trees, and the figures of Joan and the Bo’sun’s Mate running down to meet us at the landing-stage.

And half an hour before sunset, we sped through the narrow entrance of the lagoon and saw the smoke from the dinner fire drifting around the trees, with Joan and the Bo’sun’s Mate running down to greet us at the landing stage.

V

Everything changed from the moment John Silence set foot on that island; it was like the effect produced by calling in some big doctor, some great arbiter of life and death, for consultation. The sense of gravity increased a hundredfold. Even inanimate objects took upon themselves a subtle alteration, for the setting of the adventure—this deserted bit of sea with its hundreds of uninhabited islands—somehow turned sombre. An element that was mysterious, and in a sense disheartening, crept unbidden into the severity of grey rock and dark pine forest and took the sparkle from the sunshine and the sea.

Everything changed the moment John Silence stepped onto that island; it felt like summoning a top-notch doctor, a major judge of life and death, for advice. The atmosphere felt a hundred times heavier. Even the lifeless things seemed to shift in a subtle way, as the backdrop of this adventure—this lonely stretch of ocean with its countless uninhabited islands—somehow became gloomy. A mysterious and somewhat discouraging element snuck into the harshness of the grey rock and dark pine forest, dulling the brightness of the sun and the sea.

I, at least, was keenly aware of the change, for my whole being shifted, as it were, a degree higher, becoming keyed up and alert. The figures from the background of the stage moved forward a little into the light—nearer to the inevitable action. In a word this man’s arrival intensified the whole affair.

I was definitely aware of the change because my entire being felt like it shifted up a notch, becoming more alert and energized. The figures in the background of the stage moved a bit closer into the light—nearer to the unavoidable action. In short, this man's arrival heightened the entire situation.

And, looking back down the years to the time when all this happened, it is clear to me that he had a pretty sharp idea of the meaning of it from the very beginning. How much he knew beforehand by his strange divining powers, it is impossible to say, but from the moment he came upon the scene and caught within himself the note of what was going on amongst us, he undoubtedly held the true solution of the puzzle and had no need to ask questions. And this certitude it was that set him in such an atmosphere of power and made us all look to him instinctively; for he took no tentative steps, made no false moves, and while the rest of us floundered he moved straight to the climax. He was indeed a true diviner of souls.

And looking back over the years to when all this occurred, I can see that he understood the situation pretty clearly from the start. It’s hard to tell how much he knew in advance through his unusual intuition, but from the moment he arrived and sensed what was happening among us, he clearly had the real answer to the puzzle and didn't need to ask any questions. It was this certainty that created an aura of power around him and made us all instinctively turn to him; he didn’t hesitate, didn’t make any wrong moves, and while the rest of us floundered, he went straight to the resolution. He was truly a master at understanding people.

I can now read into his behaviour a good deal that puzzled me at the time, for though I had dimly guessed the solution, I had no idea how he would deal with it. And the conversations I can reproduce almost verbatim, for, according to my invariable habit, I kept full notes of all he said.

I can now understand a lot about his behavior that confused me back then, because even though I had a vague idea of the answer, I had no clue how he would handle it. The conversations are almost perfectly stored in my memory, as I always made detailed notes of everything he said.

To Mrs. Maloney, foolish and dazed; to Joan, alarmed, yet plucky; and to the clergyman, moved by his daughter’s distress below his usual shallow emotions, he gave the best possible treatment in the best possible way, yet all so easily and simply as to make it appear naturally spontaneous. For he dominated the Bo’sun’s Mate, taking the measure of her ignorance with infinite patience; he keyed up Joan, stirring her courage and interest to the highest point for her own safety; and the Reverend Timothy he soothed and comforted, while obtaining his implicit obedience, by taking him into his confidence, and leading him gradually to a comprehension of the issue that was bound to follow.

To Mrs. Maloney, who seemed foolish and dazed; to Joan, who was alarmed but brave; and to the clergyman, moved by his daughter’s distress beyond his usual shallow feelings, he provided the best support in the best way, making everything seem natural and spontaneous. He took control of the Bo’sun’s Mate, showing infinite patience in dealing with her ignorance; he boosted Joan’s spirits, encouraging her courage and interest to the highest level for her own safety; and he comforted and reassured Reverend Timothy, gaining his full cooperation by involving him in the situation and guiding him to understand the inevitable outcome.

And Sangree—here his wisdom was most wisely calculated—he neglected outwardly because inwardly he was the object of his unceasing and most concentrated attention. Under the guise of apparent indifference his mind kept the Canadian under constant observation.

And Sangree—here his wisdom was most wisely calculated—he outwardly ignored because inwardly he was the focus of his relentless and intense attention. Under the cover of seeming indifference, his mind kept the Canadian under constant observation.

There was a restless feeling in the Camp that evening and none of us lingered round the fire after supper as usual. Sangree and I busied ourselves with patching up the torn tent for our guest and with finding heavy stones to hold the ropes, for Dr. Silence insisted on having it pitched on the highest point of the island ridge, just where it was most rocky and there was no earth for pegs. The place, moreover, was midway between the men’s and women’s tents, and, of course, commanded the most comprehensive view of the Camp.

There was a restless vibe in the Camp that evening, and none of us hung around the fire after dinner like we usually did. Sangree and I kept ourselves busy fixing up the torn tent for our guest and finding heavy stones to hold down the ropes, because Dr. Silence insisted on setting it up at the highest point of the island ridge, right where it was the rockiest and there was no ground for pegs. Plus, the spot was halfway between the men's and women's tents and, of course, offered the best view of the Camp.

“So that if your dog comes,” he said simply, “I may be able to catch him as he passes across.”

“So if your dog comes,” he said plainly, “I might be able to catch him as he goes by.”

The wind had gone down with the sun and an unusual warmth lay over the island that made sleep heavy, and in the morning we assembled at a late breakfast, rubbing our eyes and yawning. The cool north wind had given way to the warm southern air that sometimes came up with haze and moisture across the Baltic, bringing with it the relaxing sensations that produced enervation and listlessness.

The wind had calmed with the setting sun, and an unusual warmth settled over the island, making sleep feel heavy. In the morning, we gathered for a late breakfast, rubbing our eyes and yawning. The cool north wind had been replaced by the warm southern air, which sometimes drifted in with haze and moisture from the Baltic, bringing with it a relaxing sensation that led to fatigue and lethargy.

And this may have been the reason why at first I failed to notice that anything unusual was about, and why I was less alert than normally; for it was not till after breakfast that the silence of our little party struck me and I discovered that Joan had not yet put in an appearance. And then, in a flash, the last heaviness of sleep vanished and I saw that Maloney was white and troubled and his wife could not hold a plate without trembling.

And that might be why I didn’t notice anything off at first and why I was less attentive than usual; it wasn't until after breakfast that the silence in our small group hit me, and I realized that Joan hadn't shown up yet. Then, all of a sudden, the last remnants of sleep cleared from my mind, and I noticed that Maloney looked pale and stressed, while his wife couldn't hold a plate without shaking.

A desire to ask questions was stopped in me by a swift glance from Dr. Silence, and I suddenly understood in some vague way that they were waiting till Sangree should have gone. How this idea came to me I cannot determine, but the soundness of the intuition was soon proved, for the moment he moved off to his tent, Maloney looked up at me and began to speak in a low voice.

A quick look from Dr. Silence made me stop wanting to ask questions, and I suddenly got the sense that they were waiting for Sangree to leave. I can’t say how I figured this out, but it was soon confirmed because as soon as he headed to his tent, Maloney glanced at me and started to talk quietly.

“You slept through it all,” he half whispered.

“You slept through everything,” he said quietly.

“Through what?” I asked, suddenly thrilled with the knowledge that something dreadful had happened.

“Through what?” I asked, suddenly excited with the realization that something terrible had happened.

“We didn’t wake you for fear of getting the whole Camp up,” he went on, meaning, by the Camp, I supposed, Sangree. “It was just before dawn when the screams woke me.”

“We didn’t wake you because we were afraid of disturbing the whole Camp,” he continued, referring to Sangree, I guessed. “It was just before dawn when the screams woke me.”

“The dog again?” I asked, with a curious sinking of the heart.

“The dog again?” I asked, feeling a tight knot in my stomach.

“Got right into the tent,” he went on, speaking passionately but very low, “and woke my wife by scrambling all over her. Then she realised that Joan was struggling beside her. And, by God! the beast had torn her arm; scratched all down the arm she was, and bleeding.”

“Got right into the tent,” he continued, speaking passionately but very quietly, “and woke my wife by scrambling all over her. Then she realized that Joan was struggling next to her. And, my God! the beast had torn her arm; scratched all the way down her arm, and she was bleeding.”

“Joan injured?” I gasped.

"Joan hurt?" I gasped.

“Merely scratched—this time,” put in John Silence, speaking for the first time; “suffering more from shock and fright than actual wounds.”

“Just scratched—this time,” John Silence said, speaking for the first time; “experiencing more shock and fear than actual injuries.”

“Isn’t it a mercy the doctor was here,” said Mrs. Maloney, looking as if she would never know calmness again. “I think we should both have been killed.”

“Isn’t it a relief the doctor was here,” said Mrs. Maloney, looking like she would never feel calm again. “I think we both could have died.”

“It has been a most merciful escape,” Maloney said, his pulpit voice struggling with his emotion. “But, of course, we cannot risk another—we must strike Camp and get away at once——”

“It’s been a really lucky escape,” Maloney said, his strong voice wavering with emotion. “But, of course, we can’t risk another—we need to pack up and leave right away——”

“Only poor Mr. Sangree must not know what has happened. He is so attached to Joan and would be so terribly upset,” added the Bo’sun’s Mate distractedly, looking all about in her terror.

“Only poor Mr. Sangree must not know what has happened. He is so attached to Joan and would be so incredibly upset,” added the Bo’sun’s Mate, frantically looking around in her panic.

“It is perhaps advisable that Mr. Sangree should not know what has occurred,” Dr. Silence said with quiet authority, “but I think, for the safety of all concerned, it will be better not to leave the island just now.” He spoke with great decision and Maloney looked up and followed his words closely.

“It might be best if Mr. Sangree doesn’t find out what happened,” Dr. Silence said firmly, “but I believe, for everyone’s safety, it’s better not to leave the island at this time.” He spoke with strong conviction and Maloney looked up and listened intently.

“If you will agree to stay here a few days longer, I have no doubt we can put an end to the attentions of your strange visitor, and incidentally have the opportunity of observing a most singular and interesting phenomenon——”

“If you agree to stay here a few more days, I’m sure we can put a stop to the attention of your unusual visitor and, in the process, have the chance to observe a very unique and fascinating phenomenon——”

“What!” gasped Mrs. Maloney, “a phenomenon?—you mean that you know what it is?”

“What!” gasped Mrs. Maloney, “a phenomenon?—you mean you actually know what it is?”

“I am quite certain I know what it is,” he replied very low, for we heard the footsteps of Sangree approaching, “though I am not so certain yet as to the best means of dealing with it. But in any case it is not wise to leave precipitately——”

“I’m pretty sure I know what it is,” he answered quietly, since we heard Sangree’s footsteps coming closer, “but I’m not yet sure about the best way to handle it. Still, it’s not smart to leave in a hurry—”

“Oh, Timothy, does he think it’s a devil——?” cried the Bo’sun’s Mate in a voice that even the Canadian must have heard.

“Oh, Timothy, does he think it’s the devil——?” shouted the Bo’sun’s Mate in a voice that even the Canadian must have heard.

“In my opinion,” continued John Silence, looking across at me and the clergyman, “it is a case of modern lycanthropy with other complications that may——” He left the sentence unfinished, for Mrs. Maloney got up with a jump and fled to her tent fearful she might hear a worse thing, and at that moment Sangree turned the corner of the stockade and came into view.

“In my opinion,” continued John Silence, looking over at me and the clergyman, “it’s a case of modern lycanthropy with other complications that may——” He left the sentence hanging because Mrs. Maloney suddenly jumped up and ran to her tent, scared she might hear something worse, and just then, Sangree turned the corner of the stockade and appeared.

“There are footmarks all round the mouth of my tent,” he said with excitement. “The animal has been here again in the night. Dr. Silence, you really must come and see them for yourself. They’re as plain on the moss as tracks in snow.”

“There are footprints all around the entrance of my tent,” he said with excitement. “The animal has been here again during the night. Dr. Silence, you really need to come and see them for yourself. They’re as clear on the moss as tracks in snow.”

But later in the day, while Sangree went off in the canoe to fish the pools near the larger islands, and Joan still lay, bandaged and resting, in her tent, Dr. Silence called me and the tutor and proposed a walk to the granite slabs at the far end. Mrs. Maloney sat on a stump near her daughter, and busied herself energetically with alternate nursing and painting.

But later in the day, while Sangree took the canoe to fish the pools near the bigger islands, and Joan continued to lie, bandaged and resting, in her tent, Dr. Silence called me and the tutor and suggested a walk to the granite slabs at the far end. Mrs. Maloney sat on a stump near her daughter, keeping herself busy with alternating between nursing and painting.

“We’ll leave you in charge,” the doctor said with a smile that was meant to be encouraging, “and when you want us for lunch, or anything, the megaphone will always bring us back in time.”

“We’ll leave you in charge,” the doctor said with a smile that was meant to be encouraging, “and whenever you need us for lunch or anything else, the megaphone will always call us back in time.”

For, though the very air was charged with strange emotions, every one talked quietly and naturally as with a definite desire to counteract unnecessary excitement.

For, even though the air was filled with strange emotions, everyone spoke calmly and naturally, as if they wanted to avoid unnecessary excitement.

“I’ll keep watch,” said the plucky Bo’sun’s Mate, “and meanwhile I find comfort in my work.” She was busy with the sketch she had begun on the day after our arrival. “For even a tree,” she added proudly, pointing to her little easel, “is a symbol of the divine, and the thought makes me feel safer.” We glanced for a moment at a daub which was more like the symptom of a disease than a symbol of the divine—and then took the path round the lagoon.

“I’ll keep watch,” said the brave Bo’sun’s Mate, “and in the meantime, I find comfort in my work.” She was focused on the sketch she had started the day after we arrived. “Because even a tree,” she added proudly, pointing to her little easel, “is a symbol of the divine, and that thought makes me feel safer.” We looked for a moment at a painting that looked more like a sign of illness than a symbol of the divine—and then took the path around the lagoon.

At the far end we made a little fire and lay round it in the shadow of a big boulder. Maloney stopped his humming suddenly and turned to his companion.

At the far end, we started a small fire and lay around it in the shadow of a large boulder. Maloney suddenly stopped humming and turned to his friend.

“And what do you make of it all?” he asked abruptly.

“And what do you think about it all?” he asked suddenly.

“In the first place,” replied John Silence, making himself comfortable against the rock, “it is of human origin, this animal; it is undoubted lycanthropy.”

“In the first place,” said John Silence, settling in against the rock, “this animal is of human origin; it’s undoubtedly lycanthropy.”

His words had the effect precisely of a bombshell. Maloney listened as though he had been struck.

His words hit like a bombshell. Maloney listened as if he had been hit.

“You puzzle me utterly,” he said, sitting up closer and staring at him.

“You completely confuse me,” he said, sitting up closer and looking at him intently.

“Perhaps,” replied the other, “but if you’ll listen to me for a few moments you may be less puzzled at the end—or more. It depends how much you know. Let me go further and say that you have underestimated, or miscalculated, the effect of this primitive wild life upon all of you.”

“Maybe,” the other person replied, “but if you’ll listen to me for a few moments, you might find things less confusing in the end—or even more so. It depends on how much you know. Let me add that you’ve underestimated, or misjudged, the impact of this basic wild life on all of you.”

“In what way?” asked the clergyman, bristling a trifle.

“In what way?” asked the clergyman, slightly irritated.

“It is strong medicine for any town-dweller, and for some of you it has been too strong. One of you has gone wild.” He uttered these last words with great emphasis.

“It is powerful medicine for anyone living in the city, and for some of you, it’s been too much. One of you has gone crazy.” He emphasized these last words strongly.

“Gone savage,” he added, looking from one to the other.

“Gone wild,” he added, looking from one to the other.

Neither of us found anything to reply.

Neither of us found anything to say.

“To say that the brute has awakened in a man is not a mere metaphor always,” he went on presently.

“To say that the beast has come alive in a man isn’t just a metaphor all the time,” he continued after a moment.

“Of course not!”

"Definitely not!"

“But, in the sense I mean, may have a very literal and terrible significance,” pursued Dr. Silence. “Ancient instincts that no one dreamed of, least of all their possessor, may leap forth——”

“But, in the way I mean, it could have a very literal and horrifying significance,” continued Dr. Silence. “Ancient instincts that nobody imagined, least of all the person who has them, may come to the surface——”

“Atavism can hardly explain a roaming animal with teeth and claws and sanguinary instincts,” interrupted Maloney with impatience.

“Atavism can barely explain a wandering animal with teeth, claws, and bloodthirsty instincts,” Maloney interrupted impatiently.

“The term is of your own choice,” continued the doctor equably, “not mine, and it is a good example of a word that indicates a result while it conceals the process; but the explanation of this beast that haunts your island and attacks your daughter is of far deeper significance than mere atavistic tendencies, or throwing back to animal origin, which I suppose is the thought in your mind.”

“The term is up to you,” the doctor continued calmly, “not my choice, and it’s a good example of a word that shows a result while hiding the process; but the explanation for this creature that terrorizes your island and harms your daughter is much more significant than just primitive instincts, or reverting to animal origins, which I guess is what you’re thinking.”

“You spoke just now of lycanthropy,” said Maloney, looking bewildered and anxious to keep to plain facts evidently, “I think I have come across the word, but really—really—it can have no actual significance to-day, can it? These superstitions of mediæval times can hardly——”

“You just mentioned lycanthropy,” said Maloney, looking confused and clearly wanting to stick to the facts. “I think I've heard the term before, but honestly—honestly—it can't really mean anything today, right? These superstitions from medieval times can hardly——”

He looked round at me with his jolly red face, and the expression of astonishment and dismay on it would have made me shout with laughter at any other time. Laughter, however, was never farther from my mind than at this moment when I listened to Dr. Silence as he carefully suggested to the clergyman the very explanation that had gradually been forcing itself upon my own mind.

He glanced at me with his cheerful red face, and the look of surprise and shock on it would have made me burst out laughing at any other time. However, laughter was the last thing on my mind at that moment as I listened to Dr. Silence as he carefully proposed to the clergyman the exact explanation that had been slowly taking shape in my own thoughts.

“However mediæval ideas may have exaggerated the idea is not of much importance to us now,” he said quietly, “when we are face to face with a modern example of what, I take it, has always been a profound fact. For the moment let us leave the name of any one in particular out of the matter and consider certain possibilities.”

“However exaggerated medieval ideas may have been, that’s not very important to us now,” he said calmly, “when we are confronted with a modern example of what I believe has always been a deep truth. For now, let’s leave out the name of anyone specific and consider some possibilities.”

We all agreed with that at any rate. There was no need to speak of Sangree, or of any one else, until we knew a little more.

We all agreed on that for sure. There was no need to talk about Sangree or anyone else until we knew a bit more.

“The fundamental fact in this most curious case,” he went on, “is that the ‘Double’ of a man——”

“The main point in this really strange case,” he continued, “is that the ‘Double’ of a man——”

“You mean the astral body? I’ve heard of that, of course,” broke in Maloney with a snort of triumph.

“You're talking about the astral body? I've definitely heard of that,” interrupted Maloney with a triumphant snort.

“No doubt,” said the other, smiling, “no doubt you have;—that this Double, or fluidic body of a man, as I was saying, has the power under certain conditions of projecting itself and becoming visible to others. Certain training will accomplish this, and certain drugs likewise; illnesses, too, that ravage the body may produce temporarily the result that death produces permanently, and let loose this counterpart of a human being and render it visible to the sight of others.

“No doubt,” said the other, smiling, “you’re right; this double, or fluid body of a person, as I was saying, has the ability, under certain conditions, to project itself and become visible to others. Some training can achieve this, and certain drugs can too; also, illnesses that ravage the body may temporarily produce the effect that death creates permanently, allowing this counterpart of a human being to become visible to the sight of others.

“Every one, of course, knows this more or less to-day; but it is not so generally known, and probably believed by none who have not witnessed it, that this fluidic body can, under certain conditions, assume other forms than human, and that such other forms may be determined by the dominating thought and wish of the owner. For this Double, or astral body as you call it, is really the seat of the passions, emotions and desires in the psychical economy. It is the Passion Body; and, in projecting itself, it can often assume a form that gives expression to the overmastering desire that moulds it; for it is composed of such tenuous matter that it lends itself readily to the moulding by thought and wish.”

“Everyone knows this to some extent today; however, it's not so widely recognized, and probably not believed by anyone who hasn't seen it, that this fluidic body can, under certain conditions, take on forms other than human, and that these other forms can be shaped by the dominant thoughts and desires of the individual. This Double, or astral body as it’s called, is essentially the center of passions, emotions, and desires in our psychological makeup. It’s the Passion Body; and when it projects itself, it can often take on a form that reflects the overwhelming desire that shapes it; because it is made of such subtle matter that it can easily be molded by thought and desire.”

“I follow you perfectly,” said Maloney, looking as if he would much rather be chopping firewood elsewhere and singing.

“I understand you completely,” said Maloney, looking like he would rather be out chopping firewood and singing.

“And there are some persons so constituted,” the doctor went on with increasing seriousness, “that the fluid body in them is but loosely associated with the physical, persons of poor health as a rule, yet often of strong desires and passions; and in these persons it is easy for the Double to dissociate itself during deep sleep from their system, and, driven forth by some consuming desire, to assume an animal form and seek the fulfilment of that desire.”

“And there are some people who are built this way,” the doctor continued with growing seriousness, “that their spiritual body is only loosely linked to their physical one; usually, these are people in poor health, yet often they have intense desires and passions. For these individuals, it's easy for their spirit to separate from their body during deep sleep, and fueled by a powerful desire, it can take on an animal form and go after that desire.”

There, in broad daylight, I saw Maloney deliberately creep closer to the fire and heap the wood on. We gathered in to the heat, and to each other, and listened to Dr. Silence’s voice as it mingled with the swish and whirr of the wind about us, and the falling of the little waves.

There, in the bright daylight, I saw Maloney intentionally move closer to the fire and pile on more wood. We huddled together for warmth and listened to Dr. Silence’s voice blending with the rustling and rushing of the wind around us, and the sound of the small waves falling.

“For instance, to take a concrete example,” he resumed; “suppose some young man, with the delicate constitution I have spoken of, forms an overpowering attachment to a young woman, yet perceives that it is not welcomed, and is man enough to repress its outward manifestations. In such a case, supposing his Double be easily projected, the very repression of his love in the daytime would add to the intense force of his desire when released in deep sleep from the control of his will, and his fluidic body might issue forth in monstrous or animal shape and become actually visible to others. And, if his devotion were dog-like in its fidelity, yet concealing the fires of a fierce passion beneath, it might well assume the form of a creature that seemed to be half dog, half wolf——”

“For example,” he continued, “let’s say a young man, who has the delicate constitution I mentioned, becomes deeply attached to a young woman but realizes that his feelings aren’t reciprocated. Being mature enough to hide his emotions, he represses his outward signs of affection. In this situation, if his Double can be easily projected, the very act of suppressing his love during the day would intensify his longing when he falls into a deep sleep and is released from his rational control. His fluidic body might emerge in a monstrous or animal-like form and could even be seen by others. And if his devotion is as loyal as a dog’s, while hiding the flames of a fierce passion inside, it might take on the shape of a creature that looks like a mix between a dog and a wolf—”

“A werewolf, you mean?” cried Maloney, pale to the lips as he listened.

“A werewolf, you mean?” Maloney exclaimed, his lips pale as he listened.

John Silence held up a restraining hand. “A werewolf,” he said, “is a true psychical fact of profound significance, however absurdly it may have been exaggerated by the imaginations of a superstitious peasantry in the days of unenlightenment, for a werewolf is nothing but the savage, and possibly sanguinary, instincts of a passionate man scouring the world in his fluidic body, his passion body, his body of desire. As in the case at hand, he may not know it——”

John Silence raised a hand to stop him. “A werewolf,” he said, “is a real psychological phenomenon of great importance, no matter how much it’s been blown out of proportion by the imaginations of a superstitious rural population in times of ignorance, because a werewolf is just the primal, and potentially bloodthirsty, instincts of an intense person roaming the world in their fluid body, their body of emotion, their body of desire. In this situation, they might not even be aware of it—”

“It is not necessarily deliberate, then?” Maloney put in quickly, with relief.

“It’s not really intentional, then?” Maloney interjected quickly, feeling relieved.

“——It is hardly ever deliberate. It is the desires released in sleep from the control of the will finding a vent. In all savage races it has been recognised and dreaded, this phenomenon styled ‘Wehr Wolf,’ but to-day it is rare. And it is becoming rarer still, for the world grows tame and civilised, emotions have become refined, desires lukewarm, and few men have savagery enough left in them to generate impulses of such intense force, and certainly not to project them in animal form.”

“——It’s almost never intentional. It’s the desires that escape during sleep, free from the will’s control, finding an outlet. In all primitive cultures, this phenomenon, called ‘Wehr Wolf,’ has been recognized and feared, but today it’s rare. And it’s becoming even rarer, because the world is becoming tame and civilized, emotions have become refined, desires have cooled off, and few men have enough wildness left in them to create impulses of such intense power, and definitely not to project them in animal form.”

“By Gad!” exclaimed the clergyman breathlessly, and with increasing excitement, “then I feel I must tell you—what has been given to me in confidence—that Sangree has in him an admixture of savage blood—of Red Indian ancestry——”

“By God!” exclaimed the clergyman breathlessly, with growing excitement, “then I feel I must tell you—what has been shared with me in confidence—that Sangree has some savage blood in him—of Native American ancestry——”

“Let us stick to our supposition of a man as described,” the doctor stopped him calmly, “and let us imagine that he has in him this admixture of savage blood; and further, that he is wholly unaware of his dreadful physical and psychical infirmity; and that he suddenly finds himself leading the primitive life together with the object of his desires; with the result that the strain of the untamed wild-man in his blood——”

“Let’s stick to our idea of the man as we described,” the doctor calmly interrupted him, “and let’s imagine that he has this mix of savage blood; and furthermore, that he is completely unaware of his terrible physical and mental weakness; and that he suddenly finds himself living a primitive life alongside the object of his desires; resulting in the strain of the wild-man within him—”

“Red Indian, for instance,” from Maloney.

“Red Indian, for example,” from Maloney.

“Red Indian, perfectly,” agreed the doctor; “the result, I say, that this savage strain in him is awakened and leaps into passionate life. What then?”

“Red Indian, completely,” the doctor agreed; “I believe this savage instinct in him has been stirred and is bursting into intense life. So what?”

He looked hard at Timothy Maloney, and the clergyman looked hard at him.

He stared intently at Timothy Maloney, and the clergyman stared back at him.

“The wild life such as you lead it here on this island, for instance, might quickly awaken his savage instincts—his buried instincts—and with profoundly disquieting results.”

“The wild life you live here on this island, for example, could quickly trigger his primal instincts—his hidden instincts—and with deeply unsettling consequences.”

“You mean his Subtle Body, as you call it, might issue forth automatically in deep sleep and seek the object of its desire?” I said, coming to Maloney’s aid, who was finding it more and more difficult to get words.

“You mean his Subtle Body, as you call it, could automatically emerge during deep sleep and go after what it wants?” I said, helping Maloney, who was struggling more and more to find the right words.

“Precisely;—yet the desire of the man remaining utterly unmalefic—pure and wholesome in every sense——”

“Exactly;—yet the man's desire remains completely harmless—pure and good in every way——”

“Ah!” I heard the clergyman gasp.

“Ah!” I heard the clergyman exclaim.

“The lover’s desire for union run wild, run savage, tearing its way out in primitive, untamed fashion, I mean,” continued the doctor, striving to make himself clear to a mind bounded by conventional thought and knowledge; “for the desire to possess, remember, may easily become importunate, and, embodied in this animal form of the Subtle Body which acts as its vehicle, may go forth to tear in pieces all that obstructs, to reach to the very heart of the loved object and seize it. Au fond, it is nothing more than the aspiration for union, as I said—the splendid and perfectly clean desire to absorb utterly into itself——”

“The lover’s desire for union runs wild, runs savage, breaking free in a raw, untamed way, I mean,” continued the doctor, trying to clarify his point to a mind limited by conventional thought and knowledge; “because the desire to possess, remember, can easily become overwhelming, and, manifested in this animal form of the Subtle Body that acts as its vehicle, can go out to tear apart anything that stands in the way, reaching for the very heart of the loved one to claim it. Au fond, it’s nothing more than the yearning for union, as I said—the magnificent and completely pure desire to fully absorb itself into——”

He paused a moment and looked into Maloney’s eyes.

He paused for a moment and looked into Maloney's eyes.

“To bathe in the very heart’s blood of the one desired,” he added with grave emphasis.

“To bathe in the very heart’s blood of the one I want,” he added with serious emphasis.

The fire spurted and crackled and made me start, but Maloney found relief in a genuine shudder, and I saw him turn his head and look about him from the sea to the trees. The wind dropped just at that moment and the doctor’s words rang sharply through the stillness.

The fire flared and popped, making me jump, but Maloney felt a real sense of relief and I noticed him turn his head, scanning the area from the ocean to the trees. Just then, the wind died down and the doctor’s words cut through the quiet.

“Then it might even kill?” stammered the clergyman presently in a hushed voice, and with a little forced laugh by way of protest that sounded quite ghastly.

“Then it might even kill?” the clergyman stammered in a quiet voice, forcing a little laugh that came off rather ghastly.

“In the last resort it might kill,” repeated Dr. Silence. Then, after another pause, during which he was clearly debating how much or how little it was wise to give to his audience, he continued: “And if the Double does not succeed in getting back to its physical body, that physical body would wake an imbecile—an idiot—or perhaps never wake at all.”

“In the end, it could kill,” Dr. Silence repeated. After another pause, during which he clearly weighed how much to reveal to his audience, he continued: “And if the Double doesn’t manage to return to its physical body, that body would wake up as a moron—an idiot—or maybe never wake up at all.”

Maloney sat up and found his tongue.

Maloney sat up and found his voice.

“You mean that if this fluid animal thing, or whatever it is, should be prevented getting back, the man might never wake again?” he asked, with shaking voice.

“You mean that if this liquid creature, or whatever it is, is kept from getting back, the guy might never wake up again?” he asked, his voice trembling.

“He might be dead,” replied the other calmly. The tremor of a positive sensation shivered in the air about us.

“He might be dead,” the other replied calmly. A shiver of anticipation hung in the air around us.

“Then isn’t that the best way to cure the fool—the brute——?” thundered the clergyman, half rising to his feet.

“Then isn’t that the best way to cure the fool—the brute——?” thundered the clergyman, half rising to his feet.

“Certainly it would be an easy and undiscoverable form of murder,” was the stern reply, spoken as calmly as though it were a remark about the weather.

“Of course, it would be a simple and untraceable way to commit murder,” was the serious response, delivered as coolly as if it were just a comment about the weather.

Maloney collapsed visibly, and I gathered the wood over the fire and coaxed up a blaze.

Maloney collapsed noticeably, and I piled the wood onto the fire and got a flame going.

“The greater part of the man’s life—of his vital forces—goes out with this Double,” Dr. Silence resumed, after a moment’s consideration, “and a considerable portion of the actual material of his physical body. So the physical body that remains behind is depleted, not only of force, but of matter. You would see it small, shrunken, dropped together, just like the body of a materialising medium at a séance. Moreover, any mark or injury inflicted upon this Double will be found exactly reproduced by the phenomenon of repercussion upon the shrunken physical body lying in its trance——”

“The majority of a man's life—his vital energy—leaves with this Double,” Dr. Silence continued after a brief pause, “and a significant amount of the actual substance of his physical body. So the physical body that’s left behind is not just low on energy, but also on matter. You’d see it as small and shriveled, just like the body of a materializing medium at a séance. Furthermore, any mark or injury inflicted on this Double will be reflected exactly on the diminished physical body that’s lying in its trance——”

“An injury inflicted upon the one you say would be reproduced also on the other?” repeated Maloney, his excitement growing again.

“Are you saying that an injury done to the one you mentioned would also affect the other?” Maloney repeated, his excitement building once more.

“Undoubtedly,” replied the other quietly; “for there exists all the time a continuous connection between the physical body and the Double—a connection of matter, though of exceedingly attenuated, possibly of etheric, matter. The wound travels, so to speak, from one to the other, and if this connection were broken the result would be death.”

“Definitely,” the other person replied softly; “there’s always a constant link between the physical body and the Double—a connection of matter, although it’s very subtle, maybe even etheric matter. The wound travels, so to speak, from one to the other, and if this link were severed, it would result in death.”

“Death,” repeated Maloney to himself, “death!” He looked anxiously at our faces, his thoughts evidently beginning to clear.

“Death,” Maloney repeated to himself, “death!” He glanced nervously at our faces, his thoughts clearly starting to come into focus.

“And this solidity?” he asked presently, after a general pause; “this tearing of tents and flesh; this howling, and the marks of paws? You mean that the Double——?”

“And this solidity?” he asked after a brief silence, “this ripping of tents and flesh; this howling and the marks of paws? You mean that the Double——?”

“Has sufficient material drawn from the depleted body to produce physical results? Certainly!” the doctor took him up. “Although to explain at this moment such problems as the passage of matter through matter would be as difficult as to explain how the thought of a mother can actually break the bones of the child unborn.”

“Has enough material been taken from the empty body to create physical results? Absolutely!” the doctor interjected. “Although explaining issues like the transfer of matter through matter right now would be just as challenging as explaining how a mother's thoughts can actually break the bones of her unborn child.”

Dr. Silence pointed out to sea, and Maloney, looking wildly about him, turned with a violent start. I saw a canoe, with Sangree in the stern-seat, slowly coming into view round the farther point. His hat was off, and his tanned face for the first time appeared to me—to us all, I think—as though it were the face of some one else. He looked like a wild man. Then he stood up in the canoe to make a cast with the rod, and he looked for all the world like an Indian. I recalled the expression of his face as I had seen it once or twice, notably on that occasion of the evening prayer, and an involuntary shudder ran down my spine.

Dr. Silence pointed out to sea, and Maloney, looking around in a panic, spun around abruptly. I saw a canoe, with Sangree in the back seat, slowly appearing around the distant point. His hat was off, and for the first time, his tanned face struck me—as it did all of us, I think—as looking like someone completely different. He looked like a wild man. Then he stood up in the canoe to cast his line, and he looked just like an Indian. I remembered the expression on his face as I had seen it once or twice, especially during that evening prayer, and a shiver ran down my spine.

At that very instant he turned and saw us where we lay, and his face broke into a smile, so that his teeth showed white in the sun. He looked in his element, and exceedingly attractive. He called out something about his fish, and soon after passed out of sight into the lagoon.

At that moment, he turned and saw us lying there, and his face lit up with a smile, showing his white teeth in the sunlight. He looked right at home and really attractive. He shouted something about his fish, and shortly after, he disappeared from view into the lagoon.

For a time none of us said a word.

For a while, none of us spoke.

“And the cure?” ventured Maloney at length.

“And the cure?” asked Maloney after a moment.

“Is not to quench this savage force,” replied Dr. Silence, “but to steer it better, and to provide other outlets. This is the solution of all these problems of accumulated force, for this force is the raw material of usefulness, and should be increased and cherished, not by separating it from the body by death, but by raising it to higher channels. The best and quickest cure of all,” he went on, speaking very gently and with a hand upon the clergyman’s arm, “is to lead it towards its object, provided that object is not unalterably hostile—to let it find rest where——”

“It's not about putting an end to this wild energy,” Dr. Silence said, “but rather guiding it more effectively and creating new outlets. This is the key to all the issues surrounding accumulated energy, because this energy is the raw material of usefulness, and it should be nurtured and valued—not by separating it from life through death, but by channeling it into higher paths. The best and fastest way to resolve everything,” he continued softly, placing a hand on the clergyman's arm, “is to direct it towards its goal, as long as that goal isn't completely antagonistic—to allow it to find peace where——”

He stopped abruptly, and the eyes of the two men met in a single glance of comprehension.

He stopped suddenly, and the eyes of the two men locked in a moment of understanding.

“Joan?” Maloney exclaimed, under his breath.

“Joan?” Maloney muttered, low under his breath.

“Joan!” replied John Silence.

“Joan!” John Silence replied.


We all went to bed early. The day had been unusually warm, and after sunset a curious hush descended on the island. Nothing was audible but that faint, ghostly singing which is inseparable from a pine-wood even on the stillest day—a low, searching sound, as though the wind had hair and trailed it o’er the world.

We all went to bed early. The day had been unusually warm, and after sunset, a strange calm settled over the island. The only sound was that faint, eerie singing that comes with a pine forest even on the quietest day—a soft, probing sound, as if the wind had hair and was sweeping it across the earth.

With the sudden cooling of the atmosphere a sea fog began to form. It appeared in isolated patches over the water, and then these patches slid together and a white wall advanced upon us. Not a breath of air stirred; the firs stood like flat metal outlines; the sea became as oil. The whole scene lay as though held motionless by some huge weight in the air; and the flames from our fire—the largest we had ever made—rose upwards, straight as a church steeple.

As the temperature dropped suddenly, a sea fog started to form. It appeared in scattered patches over the water, and then these patches merged into a white wall that moved toward us. Not a breath of air stirred; the fir trees stood like flat, metallic silhouettes; the sea took on an oily sheen. The entire scene seemed frozen, as if held down by an enormous weight in the air; and the flames from our fire—the biggest we had ever built—rose straight up, like a church steeple.

As I followed the rest of our party tent-wards, having kicked the embers of the fire into safety, the advance guard of the fog was creeping slowly among the trees, like white arms feeling their way. Mingled with the smoke was the odour of moss and soil and bark, and the peculiar flavour of the Baltic, half salt, half brackish, like the smell of an estuary at low water.

As I headed toward the party's tents, after kicking the fire embers to safety, the fog slowly rolled in among the trees, like white arms searching around. Mixed with the smoke was the smell of moss, soil, and bark, along with the unique scent of the Baltic, half salty, half brackish, like the smell of an estuary at low tide.

It is difficult to say why it seemed to me that this deep stillness masked an intense activity; perhaps in every mood lies the suggestion of its opposite, so that I became aware of the contrast of furious energy, for it was like moving through the deep pause before a thunderstorm, and I trod gently lest by breaking a twig or moving a stone I might set the whole scene into some sort of tumultuous movement. Actually, no doubt, it was nothing more than a result of overstrung nerves.

It’s hard to explain why this deep silence felt like it was hiding a lot of energy; maybe every mood has a hint of its opposite, which made me aware of the contrast with wild energy. It was like being in the stillness right before a thunderstorm, and I walked softly, afraid that stepping on a twig or shifting a stone might trigger chaos. In reality, it was probably just a result of my frazzled nerves.

There was no more question of undressing and going to bed than there was of undressing and going to bathe. Some sense in me was alert and expectant. I sat in my tent and waited. And at the end of half an hour or so my waiting was justified, for the canvas suddenly shivered, and some one tripped over the ropes that held it to the earth. John Silence came in.

There was no question of getting undressed and going to bed any more than there was of taking off my clothes to go for a swim. Some part of me was alert and waiting. I sat in my tent and waited. After about half an hour, my wait paid off, as the canvas suddenly shook, and someone tripped over the ropes that secured it to the ground. John Silence came in.

The effect of his quiet entry was singular and prophetic: it was just as though the energy lying behind all this stillness had pressed forward to the edge of action. This, no doubt, was merely the quickening of my own mind, and had no other justification; for the presence of John Silence always suggested the near possibility of vigorous action, and, as a matter of fact, he came in with nothing more than a nod and a significant gesture.

The impact of his silent arrival was unique and foretelling: it felt like the energy hidden beneath all that stillness was about to burst into action. Of course, this was probably just my own mind getting carried away and didn't have any real basis; because whenever John Silence showed up, it always hinted at the potential for intense action. In reality, he walked in with nothing more than a nod and a meaningful gesture.

He sat down on a corner of my ground-sheet, and I pushed the blanket over so that he could cover his legs. He drew the flap of the tent after him and settled down, but hardly had he done so when the canvas shook a second time, and in blundered Maloney.

He sat down on a corner of my ground sheet, and I moved the blanket over so he could cover his legs. He pulled the tent flap closed behind him and got comfortable, but just as he did that, the canvas shook again, and Maloney stumbled in.

“Sitting in the dark?” he said self-consciously, pushing his head inside, and hanging up his lantern on the ridge-pole nail. “I just looked in for a smoke. I suppose——”

“Sitting in the dark?” he asked awkwardly, leaning in and hanging his lantern on the nail in the roof. “I just came in for a smoke. I guess——”

He glanced round, caught the eye of Dr. Silence, and stopped. He put his pipe back into his pocket and began to hum softly—that under-breath humming of a nondescript melody I knew so well and had come to hate.

He looked around, made eye contact with Dr. Silence, and paused. He put his pipe back in his pocket and started to hum softly—that low humming of a vague tune I recognized and had come to dislike.

Dr. Silence leaned forward, opened the lantern and blew the light out. “Speak low,” he said, “and don’t strike matches. Listen for sounds and movements about the Camp, and be ready to follow me at a moment’s notice.” There was light enough to distinguish our faces easily, and I saw Maloney glance again hurriedly at both of us.

Dr. Silence leaned forward, opened the lantern, and blew the light out. “Speak quietly,” he said, “and don’t strike matches. Listen for sounds and movements around the Camp, and be ready to follow me at a moment’s notice.” There was enough light to easily make out our faces, and I saw Maloney glance hurriedly at both of us again.

“Is the Camp asleep?” the doctor asked presently, whispering.

“Is the camp asleep?” the doctor asked quietly.

“Sangree is,” replied the clergyman, in a voice equally low. “I can’t answer for the women; I think they’re sitting up.”

“Sangree is,” replied the clergyman, in a voice just as quiet. “I can’t speak for the women; I think they’re still awake.”

“That’s for the best.” And then he added: “I wish the fog would thin a bit and let the moon through; later—we may want it.”

“That's for the best.” Then he added, “I wish the fog would clear a bit and let the moon shine through; later—we might need it.”

“It is lifting now, I think,” Maloney whispered back. “It’s over the tops of the trees already.”

“It’s lifting now, I think,” Maloney whispered back. “It’s already above the tops of the trees.”

I cannot say what it was in this commonplace exchange of remarks that thrilled. Probably Maloney’s swift acquiescence in the doctor’s mood had something to do with it; for his quick obedience certainly impressed me a good deal. But, even without that slight evidence, it was clear that each recognised the gravity of the occasion, and understood that sleep was impossible and sentry duty was the order of the night.

I can't pinpoint what it was about this ordinary exchange of comments that excited me. It might have been Maloney's quick acceptance of the doctor's mood; his prompt obedience really stood out to me. But even without that small detail, it was obvious that both of them recognized the seriousness of the situation and understood that sleep was out of the question while they were on guard duty for the night.

“Report to me,” repeated John Silence once again, “the least sound, and do nothing precipitately.”

“Report to me,” John Silence said again, “at the slightest sound, and don’t act too quickly.”

He shifted across to the mouth of the tent and raised the flap, fastening it against the pole so that he could see out. Maloney stopped humming and began to force the breath through his teeth with a kind of faint hissing, treating us to a medley of church hymns and popular songs of the day.

He moved to the entrance of the tent and lifted the flap, securing it against the pole so he could see outside. Maloney stopped humming and started exhaling softly through his teeth, giving us a mix of church hymns and popular songs of the time.

Then the tent trembled as though some one had touched it.

Then the tent shook as if someone had touched it.

“That’s the wind rising,” whispered the clergyman, and pulled the flap open as far as it would go. A waft of cold damp air entered and made us shiver, and with it came a sound of the sea as the first wave washed its way softly along the shores.

“That's the wind picking up,” the clergyman whispered as he opened the flap as wide as it would go. A rush of cold, damp air came in, making us shiver, and with it came the sound of the sea as the first wave gently rolled in along the shore.

“It’s got round to the north,” he added, and following his voice came a long-drawn whisper that rose from the whole island as the trees sent forth a sighing response. “The fog’ll move a bit now. I can make out a lane across the sea already.”

“It’s turned to the north,” he said, and with his voice came a long, drawn-out whisper that rose from the entire island as the trees gave a sighing reply. “The fog will shift a little now. I can already see a path across the sea.”

“Hush!” said Dr. Silence, for Maloney’s voice had risen above a whisper, and we settled down again to another long period of watching and waiting, broken only by the occasional rubbing of shoulders against the canvas as we shifted our positions, and the increasing noise of waves on the outer coast-line of the island. And over all whirred the murmur of wind sweeping the tops of the trees like a great harp, and the faint tapping on the tent as drops fell from the branches with a sharp pinging sound.

“Hush!” said Dr. Silence, because Maloney’s voice had gotten louder than a whisper, and we settled back into a long stretch of watching and waiting, interrupted only by the occasional rubbing of shoulders against the canvas as we shifted our positions, and the growing sound of waves crashing on the outer coastline of the island. And above it all was the soft murmur of the wind sweeping through the tops of the trees like a giant harp, along with the faint tapping on the tent as drops fell from the branches with a sharp pinging sound.

We had sat for something over an hour in this way, and Maloney and I were finding it increasingly hard to keep awake, when suddenly Dr. Silence rose to his feet and peered out. The next minute he was gone.

We had been sitting like this for over an hour, and Maloney and I were struggling to stay awake when suddenly Dr. Silence stood up and looked outside. A moment later, he was gone.

Relieved of the dominating presence, the clergyman thrust his face close into mine. “I don’t much care for this waiting game,” he whispered, “but Silence wouldn’t hear of my sitting up with the others; he said it would prevent anything happening if I did.”

Relieved of the overwhelming presence, the clergyman leaned in close to me. “I’m not a fan of this waiting game,” he whispered, “but Silence wouldn’t let me stay up with the others; he said it would stop anything from happening if I did.”

“He knows,” I answered shortly.

“He knows,” I replied tersely.

“No doubt in the world about that,” he whispered back; “it’s this ‘Double’ business, as he calls it, or else it’s obsession as the Bible describes it. But it’s bad, whichever it is, and I’ve got my Winchester outside ready cocked, and I brought this too.” He shoved a pocket Bible under my nose. At one time in his life it had been his inseparable companion.

“No doubt about it,” he whispered back; “it’s this ‘Double’ thing, as he calls it, or it’s just obsession like the Bible talks about. But it’s bad, no matter what it is, and I’ve got my Winchester outside, ready to go, and I brought this too.” He shoved a pocket Bible in front of me. At one point in his life, it had been his constant companion.

“One’s useless and the other’s dangerous,” I replied under my breath, conscious of a keen desire to laugh, and leaving him to choose. “Safety lies in following our leader——”

“One’s useless and the other’s dangerous,” I replied quietly, feeling a strong urge to laugh and letting him make his choice. “Safety lies in following our leader——”

“I’m not thinking of myself,” he interrupted sharply; “only, if anything happens to Joan to-night I’m going to shoot first—and pray afterwards!”

“I’m not thinking about myself,” he interrupted sharply. “I’m just saying that if anything happens to Joan tonight, I’m going to shoot first—and pray later!”

Maloney put the book back into his hip-pocket, and peered out of the doorway. “What is he up to now, in the devil’s name, I wonder!” he added; “going round Sangree’s tent and making gestures. How weird he looks disappearing in and out of the fog.”

Maloney put the book back in his back pocket and looked out the door. “What’s he up to now, for crying out loud?” he said. “He’s circling Sangree’s tent and making weird gestures. He looks so strange disappearing into and out of the fog.”

“Just trust him and wait,” I said quickly, for the doctor was already on his way back. “Remember, he has the knowledge, and knows what he’s about. I’ve been with him through worse cases than this.”

“Just trust him and wait,” I said quickly, as the doctor was already on his way back. “Remember, he has the expertise and knows what he’s doing. I’ve been with him through tougher cases than this.”

Maloney moved back as Dr. Silence darkened the doorway and stooped to enter.

Maloney stepped back as Dr. Silence filled the doorway and bent down to come in.

“His sleep is very deep,” he whispered, seating himself by the door again. “He’s in a cataleptic condition, and the Double may be released any minute now. But I’ve taken steps to imprison it in the tent, and it can’t get out till I permit it. Be on the watch for signs of movement.” Then he looked hard at Maloney. “But no violence, or shooting, remember, Mr. Maloney, unless you want a murder on your hands. Anything done to the Double acts by repercussion upon the physical body. You had better take out the cartridges at once.”

“His sleep is really deep,” he whispered as he sat down by the door again. “He’s in a cataleptic state, and the Double could come out at any moment. But I’ve taken measures to keep it locked in the tent, and it can’t escape until I allow it. Keep an eye out for any signs of movement.” Then he stared intently at Maloney. “But no violence or shooting, remember, Mr. Maloney, unless you want a murder on your hands. Anything done to the Double has repercussions on the physical body. You should take out the bullets right away.”

His voice was stern. The clergyman went out, and I heard him emptying the magazine of his rifle. When he returned he sat nearer the door than before, and from that moment until we left the tent he never once took his eyes from the figure of Dr. Silence, silhouetted there against sky and canvas.

His voice was serious. The clergyman went outside, and I heard him unload the magazine of his rifle. When he came back, he sat closer to the door than before, and from that point until we left the tent, he never took his eyes off Dr. Silence, who was standing there silhouetted against the sky and canvas.

And, meanwhile, the wind came steadily over the sea and opened the mist into lanes and clearings, driving it about like a living thing.

And, in the meantime, the wind blew consistently across the sea, parting the mist into paths and clearings, moving it around like it was alive.

It must have been well after midnight when a low booming sound drew my attention; but at first the sense of hearing was so strained that it was impossible exactly to locate it, and I imagined it was the thunder of big guns far out at sea carried to us by the rising wind. Then Maloney, catching hold of my arm and leaning forward, somehow brought the true relation, and I realised the next second that it was only a few feet away.

It must have been well after midnight when a low booming sound caught my attention; but at first, my hearing was so strained that I couldn't pinpoint it exactly, and I thought it was the thunder of big guns far out at sea carried to us by the rising wind. Then Maloney grabbed my arm and leaned forward, somehow clarifying the situation, and I realized the next moment that it was only a few feet away.

“Sangree’s tent,” he exclaimed in a loud and startled whisper.

“Sangree’s tent,” he said in a loud and shocked whisper.

I craned my head round the corner, but at first the effect of the fog was so confusing that every patch of white driving about before the wind looked like a moving tent and it was some seconds before I discovered the one patch that held steady. Then I saw that it was shaking all over, and the sides, flapping as much as the tightness of the ropes allowed, were the cause of the booming sound we had heard. Something alive was tearing frantically about inside, banging against the stretched canvas in a way that made me think of a great moth dashing against the walls and ceiling of a room. The tent bulged and rocked.

I leaned my head around the corner, but at first, the fog was so disorienting that every white patch swirling in the wind looked like a moving tent, and it took me a few seconds to identify the one spot that stayed still. Then I noticed it was shaking all over, and the sides were flapping as much as the ropes would allow, which was causing the booming sound we had heard. Something alive was thrashing wildly inside, banging against the stretched canvas in a way that reminded me of a giant moth slamming into the walls and ceiling of a room. The tent bulged and swayed.

“It’s trying to get out, by Jupiter!” muttered the clergyman, rising to his feet and turning to the side where the unloaded rifle lay. I sprang up too, hardly knowing what purpose was in my mind, but anxious to be prepared for anything. John Silence, however, was before us both, and his figure slipped past and blocked the doorway of the tent. And there was some quality in his voice next minute when he began to speak that brought our minds instantly to a state of calm obedience.

“It’s trying to get out, by Jupiter!” muttered the clergyman, getting to his feet and turning toward the side where the unloaded rifle lay. I jumped up too, hardly knowing what I was planning, but eager to be ready for anything. John Silence, however, was ahead of us both, and he slipped past and stood in the doorway of the tent. There was something in his voice the next moment when he started to speak that instantly calmed us and made us obedient.

“First—the women’s tent,” he said low, looking sharply at Maloney, “and if I need your help, I’ll call.”

“First—the women’s tent,” he said quietly, staring intensely at Maloney, “and if I need your help, I’ll let you know.”

The clergyman needed no second bidding. He dived past me and was out in a moment. He was labouring evidently under intense excitement. I watched him picking his way silently over the slippery ground, giving the moving tent a wide berth, and presently disappearing among the floating shapes of fog.

The clergyman didn't need to be asked twice. He rushed past me and was gone in an instant. He was clearly filled with intense excitement. I watched him carefully navigate the slippery ground, avoiding the shifting tent, and soon he faded away into the misty shapes of fog.

Dr. Silence turned to me. “You heard those footsteps about half an hour ago?” he asked significantly.

Dr. Silence turned to me. “Did you hear those footsteps about half an hour ago?” he asked seriously.

“I heard nothing.”

"I didn't hear anything."

“They were extraordinarily soft—almost the soundless tread of a wild creature. But now, follow me closely,” he added, “for we must waste no time if I am to save this poor man from his affliction and lead his werewolf Double to its rest. And, unless I am much mistaken”—he peered at me through the darkness, whispering with the utmost distinctness—“Joan and Sangree are absolutely made for one another. And I think she knows it too—just as well as he does.”

“They were incredibly quiet—almost like the soundless footsteps of a wild animal. But now, pay attention closely,” he added, “because we can’t waste any time if I’m going to save this poor man from his curse and help his werewolf Double find peace. And, unless I’m completely wrong”—he looked at me through the darkness, whispering clearly—“Joan and Sangree are totally meant for each other. And I think she knows it too—just as much as he does.”

My head swam a little as I listened, but at the same time something cleared in my brain and I saw that he was right. Yet it was all so weird and incredible, so remote from the commonplace facts of life as commonplace people know them; and more than once it flashed upon me that the whole scene—people, words, tents, and all the rest of it—were delusions created by the intense excitement of my own mind somehow, and that suddenly the sea-fog would clear off and the world become normal again.

My head felt a bit dizzy as I listened, but at the same time, something clicked in my mind, and I realized he was right. Yet it all felt so strange and unbelievable, so far removed from the ordinary facts of life as regular people understand them. More than once, it hit me that the entire scene—people, words, tents, and everything else—was just a delusion created by the intense excitement of my own mind somehow, and that suddenly the sea fog would lift, and the world would return to normal.

The cold air from the sea stung our cheeks sharply as we left the close atmosphere of the little crowded tent. The sighing of the trees, the waves breaking below on the rocks, and the lines and patches of mist driving about us seemed to create the momentary illusion that the whole island had broken loose and was floating out to sea like a mighty raft.

The cold sea air sharply stung our cheeks as we stepped out from the cramped atmosphere of the little crowded tent. The rustling of the trees, the waves crashing on the rocks below, and the wisps and patches of mist swirling around us created a fleeting illusion that the entire island had detached and was floating away like a massive raft.

The doctor moved just ahead of me, quickly and silently; he was making straight for the Canadian’s tent where the sides still boomed and shook as the creature of sinister life raced and tore about impatiently within. A little distance from the door he paused and held up a hand to stop me. We were, perhaps, a dozen feet away.

The doctor moved ahead of me, quickly and quietly; he was heading straight for the Canadian’s tent, where the sides were still vibrating with the creature of dark energy racing inside. A short distance from the door, he stopped and raised his hand to signal me to wait. We were maybe about ten feet away.

“Before I release it, you shall see for yourself,” he said, “that the reality of the werewolf is beyond all question. The matter of which it is composed is, of course, exceedingly attenuated, but you are partially clairvoyant—and even if it is not dense enough for normal sight you will see something.”

“Before I let it go, you’ll see for yourself,” he said, “that the existence of the werewolf is beyond all doubt. The substance it is made of is, of course, extremely thin, but you have some clairvoyant ability—and even if it isn’t solid enough for normal vision, you will perceive something.”

He added a little more I could not catch. The fact was that the curiously strong vibrating atmosphere surrounding his person somewhat confused my senses. It was the result, of course, of his intense concentration of mind and forces, and pervaded the entire Camp and all the persons in it. And as I watched the canvas shake and heard it boom and flap I heartily welcomed it. For it was also protective.

He added a bit more that I couldn't quite catch. The truth was that the strangely strong vibrating energy around him kind of confused my senses. This was, of course, a result of his intense focus and energy, and it filled the whole Camp and everyone in it. As I watched the canvas shake and heard it thump and flap, I genuinely welcomed it. Because it was also protective.

At the back of Sangree’s tent stood a thin group of pine trees, but in front and at the sides the ground was comparatively clear. The flap was wide open and any ordinary animal would have been out and away without the least trouble. Dr. Silence led me up to within a few feet, evidently careful not to advance beyond a certain limit, and then stooped down and signalled to me to do the same. And looking over his shoulder I saw the interior lit faintly by the spectral light reflected from the fog, and the dim blot upon the balsam boughs and blankets signifying Sangree; while over him, and round him, and up and down him, flew the dark mass of “something” on four legs, with pointed muzzle and sharp ears plainly visible against the tent sides, and the occasional gleam of fiery eyes and white fangs.

At the back of Sangree’s tent stood a sparse group of pine trees, but in front and on the sides, the ground was fairly clear. The flap was wide open, and any ordinary animal could have slipped out easily. Dr. Silence led me within a few feet, clearly careful not to go too far, and then he crouched down and signaled for me to do the same. Looking over his shoulder, I saw the inside dimly lit by a ghostly light reflecting off the fog, and the faint shape on the balsam boughs and blankets indicating Sangree; while around him, and above him, and below him, moved a dark mass of “something” on four legs, with a pointed snout and sharp ears clearly visible against the tent walls, along with the occasional flash of fiery eyes and white fangs.

I held my breath and kept utterly still, inwardly and outwardly, for fear, I suppose, that the creature would become conscious of my presence; but the distress I felt went far deeper than the mere sense of personal safety, or the fact of watching something so incredibly active and real. I became keenly aware of the dreadful psychic calamity it involved. The realisation that Sangree lay confined in that narrow space with this species of monstrous projection of himself—that he was wrapped there in the cataleptic sleep, all unconscious that this thing was masquerading with his own life and energies—added a distressing touch of horror to the scene. In all the cases of John Silence—and they were many and often terrible—no other psychic affliction has ever, before or since, impressed me so convincingly with the pathetic impermanence of the human personality, with its fluid nature, and with the alarming possibilities of its transformations.

I held my breath and stayed completely still, both inside and out, fearing that the creature might sense my presence; but the distress I felt went much deeper than just a sense of personal safety or the fact that I was watching something so incredibly active and real. I became acutely aware of the terrible psychic disaster it entailed. The realization that Sangree was trapped in that narrow space with this monstrous projection of himself—that he was there in a cataleptic sleep, completely unaware that this thing was acting out his own life and energy—added a horrifying touch to the scene. In all the cases of John Silence—and there were many, often terrifying—no other psychic affliction has ever impressed me so strongly with the sad impermanence of the human personality, its fluid nature, and the alarming possibilities of its transformations.

“Come,” he whispered, after we had watched for some minutes the frantic efforts to escape from the circle of thought and will that held it prisoner, “come a little farther away while I release it.”

“Come,” he whispered, after we had watched for a few minutes the frantic attempts to break free from the circle of thought and will that kept it trapped, “come a little farther away while I set it free.”

We moved back a dozen yards or so. It was like a scene in some impossible play, or in some ghastly and oppressive nightmare from which I should presently awake to find the blankets all heaped up upon my chest.

We stepped back about twelve yards. It was like a scene from some surreal play, or a disturbing and heavy nightmare from which I would soon wake up to find the blankets all piled on my chest.

By some method undoubtedly mental, but which, in my confusion and excitement, I failed to understand, the doctor accomplished his purpose, and the next minute I heard him say sharply under his breath, “It’s out! Now, watch!”

By some method that was definitely mental, but which I couldn’t grasp in my confusion and excitement, the doctor achieved his goal, and the next moment I heard him say quietly to himself, “It’s out! Now, watch!”

At this very moment a sudden gust from the sea blew aside the mist, so that a lane opened to the sky, and the moon, ghastly and unnatural as the effect of stage limelight, dropped down in a momentary gleam upon the door of Sangree’s tent, and I perceived that something had moved forward from the interior darkness and stood clearly defined upon the threshold. And, at the same moment, the tent ceased its shuddering and held still.

At that very moment, a sudden gust from the sea swept away the mist, creating a pathway to the sky, and the moon, pale and eerie like stage lighting, cast a brief glow on Sangree’s tent door. I noticed that something had stepped out from the darkness inside and was clearly outlined on the threshold. At the same time, the tent stopped shaking and became still.

There, in the doorway, stood an animal, with neck and muzzle thrust forward, its head poking into the night, its whole body poised in that attitude of intense rigidity that precedes the spring into freedom, the running leap of attack. It seemed to be about the size of a calf, leaner than a mastiff, yet more squat than a wolf, and I can swear that I saw the fur ridged sharply upon its back. Then its upper lip slowly lifted, and I saw the whiteness of its teeth.

There, in the doorway, stood an animal, with its neck and snout thrust forward, its head poking into the night, its whole body in that tense pose that comes just before it springs into action, ready to run or attack. It looked to be about the size of a calf, leaner than a mastiff but stockier than a wolf, and I swear I saw the fur standing up sharply along its back. Then its upper lip slowly lifted, and I saw the whiteness of its teeth.

Surely no human being ever stared as hard as I did in those next few minutes. Yet, the harder I stared the clearer appeared the amazing and monstrous apparition. For, after all, it was Sangree—and yet it was not Sangree. It was the head and face of an animal, and yet it was the face of Sangree: the face of a wild dog, a wolf, and yet his face. The eyes were sharper, narrower, more fiery, yet they were his eyes—his eyes run wild; the teeth were longer, whiter, more pointed—yet they were his teeth, his teeth grown cruel; the expression was flaming, terrible, exultant—yet it was his expression carried to the border of savagery—his expression as I had already surprised it more than once, only dominant now, fully released from human constraint, with the mad yearning of a hungry and importunate soul. It was the soul of Sangree, the long suppressed, deeply loving Sangree, expressed in its single and intense desire—pure utterly and utterly wonderful.

Surely no one ever stared as hard as I did in those next few minutes. Yet, the harder I stared, the clearer the amazing and monstrous vision became. For, after all, it was Sangree—and yet it wasn’t Sangree. It was the head and face of an animal, and yet it was the face of Sangree: the face of a wild dog, a wolf, and yet it was his face. The eyes were sharper, narrower, more fiery, yet they were his eyes—his eyes gone wild; the teeth were longer, whiter, more pointed—yet they were his teeth, his teeth turned cruel; the expression was fiery, terrifying, triumphant—yet it was his expression pushed to the edge of savagery—his expression that I had already seen more than once, only dominant now, completely freed from human restraint, reflecting the desperate longing of a hungry and insistent soul. It was the soul of Sangree, the long suppressed, deeply loving Sangree, shown in its single and intense desire—pure and utterly wonderful.

Yet, at the same time, came the feeling that it was all an illusion. I suddenly remembered the extraordinary changes the human face can undergo in circular insanity, when it changes from melancholia to elation; and I recalled the effect of hascheesh, which shows the human countenance in the form of the bird or animal to which in character it most approximates; and for a moment I attributed this mingling of Sangree’s face with a wolf to some kind of similar delusion of the senses. I was mad, deluded, dreaming! The excitement of the day, and this dim light of stars and bewildering mist combined to trick me. I had been amazingly imposed upon by some false wizardry of the senses. It was all absurd and fantastic; it would pass.

Yet, at the same time, I felt like it was all just a trick of the mind. I suddenly remembered the incredible transformations the human face can go through in moments of madness, shifting from sadness to joy; and I recalled how hasheesh can reveal a person’s face in the likeness of the animal or bird they resemble in character. For a moment, I thought the mix of Sangree’s face with a wolf was some sort of similar sensory illusion. I was losing my mind, fooled, dreaming! The day’s excitement, along with the dim starlight and confusing mist, had combined to deceive me. I had been utterly misled by some kind of false magic of perception. It was all ridiculous and surreal; it would eventually fade away.

And then, sounding across this sea of mental confusion like a bell through a fog, came the voice of John Silence bringing me back to a consciousness of the reality of it all—

And then, cutting through this sea of mental chaos like a bell in a fog, came John Silence's voice pulling me back to the reality of it all—

“Sangree—in his Double!”

“Sangree—in his Double Master!”

And when I looked again more calmly, I plainly saw that it was indeed the face of the Canadian, but his face turned animal, yet mingled with the brute expression a curiously pathetic look like the soul seen sometimes in the yearning eyes of a dog,—the face of an animal shot with vivid streaks of the human.

And when I looked again more calmly, I clearly saw that it was indeed the face of the Canadian, but his face had taken on a more animalistic quality. Yet mixed in with that wild expression was a strangely sad look, similar to the soulful gaze seen in the longing eyes of a dog—the face of an animal that still showed flashes of humanity.

The doctor called to him softly under his breath—

The doctor called to him quietly and softly—

“Sangree! Sangree, you poor afflicted creature! Do you know me? Can you understand what it is you’re doing in your ‘Body of Desire’?”

“Sangree! Sangree, you poor suffering being! Do you know who I am? Can you understand what you’re doing in your ‘Body of Desire’?”

For the first time since its appearance the creature moved. Its ears twitched and it shifted the weight of its body on to the hind legs. Then, lifting its head and muzzle to the sky, it opened its long jaws and gave vent to a dismal and prolonged howling.

For the first time since it appeared, the creature moved. Its ears twitched, and it shifted its weight onto its hind legs. Then, raising its head and snout to the sky, it opened its long jaws and let out a sad and lengthy howl.

But, when I heard that howling rise to heaven, the breath caught and strangled in my throat and it seemed that my heart missed a beat; for, though the sound was entirely animal, it was at the same time entirely human. But, more than that, it was the cry I had so often heard in the Western States of America where the Indians still fight and hunt and struggle—it was the cry of the Redskin!

But when I heard that howling reach the sky, my breath caught in my throat, and it felt like my heart skipped a beat; because, even though the sound was completely animalistic, it was also completely human. More than that, it was the cry I had often heard in the Western States of America, where the Native Americans still fight, hunt, and struggle—it was the cry of the Native!

“The Indian blood!” whispered John Silence, when I caught his arm for support; “the ancestral cry.”

“The Indian blood!” whispered John Silence when I grabbed his arm for support; “the ancestral cry.”

And that poignant, beseeching cry, that broken human voice, mingling with the savage howl of the brute beast, pierced straight to my very heart and touched there something that no music, no voice, passionate or tender, of man, woman or child has ever stirred before or since for one second into life. It echoed away among the fog and the trees and lost itself somewhere out over the hidden sea. And some part of myself—something that was far more than the mere act of intense listening—went out with it, and for several minutes I lost consciousness of my surroundings and felt utterly absorbed in the pain of another stricken fellow-creature.

And that heartbreaking, pleading cry, that shattered human voice, mixing with the wild howl of the beast, cut straight to my heart and awakened something there that no music, no voice—whether passionate or gentle—of any person, man, woman, or child has ever stirred before or since, even for a moment. It faded away among the fog and the trees, losing itself somewhere over the hidden sea. And a part of me—something that was much more than just the act of listening intently—went with it, and for several minutes I was completely unaware of my surroundings, feeling utterly absorbed in the suffering of another wounded soul.

Again the voice of John Silence recalled me to myself.

Again, John Silence's voice brought me back to reality.

“Hark!” he said aloud. “Hark!”

"Listen!" he said aloud. "Listen!"

His tone galvanised me afresh. We stood listening side by side.

His tone motivated me once again. We stood listening next to each other.

Far across the island, faintly sounding through the trees and brushwood, came a similar, answering cry. Shrill, yet wonderfully musical, shaking the heart with a singular wild sweetness that defies description, we heard it rise and fall upon the night air.

Far across the island, we heard a similar, echoing cry drifting through the trees and underbrush. It was sharp yet beautifully melodic, stirring our hearts with a unique wild sweetness that’s hard to describe, as we listened to it rise and fall in the night air.

“It’s across the lagoon,” Dr. Silence cried, but this time in full tones that paid no tribute to caution. “It’s Joan! She’s answering him!”

“It’s across the lagoon,” Dr. Silence shouted, but this time with full volume that showed no regard for caution. “It’s Joan! She’s responding to him!”

Again the wonderful cry rose and fell, and that same instant the animal lowered its head, and, muzzle to earth, set off on a swift easy canter that took it off into the mist and out of our sight like a thing of wind and vision.

Again the amazing cry rose and fell, and at that same moment, the animal lowered its head and, with its nose to the ground, started a quick, easy canter that carried it into the mist and out of our view like something out of wind and sight.

The doctor made a quick dash to the door of Sangree’s tent, and, following close at his heels, I peered in and caught a momentary glimpse of the small, shrunken body lying upon the branches but half covered by the blankets—the cage from which most of the life, and not a little of the actual corporeal substance, had escaped into that other form of life and energy, the body of passion and desire.

The doctor rushed to the door of Sangree’s tent, and, closely behind him, I looked inside and caught a brief view of the small, withered body lying on the branches, partially covered by blankets—the shell from which much of the life, and quite a bit of the physical substance, had moved into that different kind of existence and energy, the body of passion and desire.

By another of those swift, incalculable processes which at this stage of my apprenticeship I failed often to grasp, Dr. Silence reclosed the circle about the tent and body.

By another one of those quick, unpredictable processes that I often failed to understand at this point in my training, Dr. Silence closed the circle around the tent and the body again.

“Now it cannot return till I permit it,” he said, and the next second was off at full speed into the woods, with myself close behind him. I had already had some experience of my companion’s ability to run swiftly through a dense wood, and I now had the further proof of his power almost to see in the dark. For, once we left the open space about the tents, the trees seemed to absorb all the remaining vestiges of light, and I understood that special sensibility that is said to develop in the blind—the sense of obstacles.

“Now it can't come back until I allow it,” he said, and the next moment he was off at full speed into the woods, with me right behind him. I had already experienced my companion's ability to run quickly through thick woods, and now I had more evidence of his almost night-vision. Once we left the open area around the tents, the trees seemed to swallow up the last bits of light, and I realized the unique sensitivity that is said to develop in the blind—the ability to sense obstacles.

And twice as we ran we heard the sound of that dismal howling drawing nearer and nearer to the answering faint cry from the point of the island whither we were going.

And twice as we ran, we heard the sound of that gloomy howling getting closer and closer to the faint answering cry from the spot on the island where we were headed.

Then, suddenly, the trees fell away, and we emerged, hot and breathless, upon the rocky point where the granite slabs ran bare into the sea. It was like passing into the clearness of open day. And there, sharply defined against sea and sky, stood the figure of a human being. It was Joan.

Then, all of a sudden, the trees cleared away, and we stepped out, hot and out of breath, onto the rocky point where the granite slabs stretched bare into the sea. It felt like moving into the bright light of day. And there, clearly outlined against the sea and sky, stood the figure of a person. It was Joan.

I at once saw that there was something about her appearance that was singular and unusual, but it was only when we had moved quite close that I recognised what caused it. For while the lips wore a smile that lit the whole face with a happiness I had never seen there before, the eyes themselves were fixed in a steady, sightless stare as though they were lifeless and made of glass.

I immediately noticed there was something unique and strange about her looks, but it wasn't until we got much closer that I figured out what it was. While her lips had a smile that brightened her entire face with a happiness I had never seen before, her eyes were locked in a steady, blank stare as if they were lifeless and made of glass.

I made an impulsive forward movement, but Dr. Silence instantly dragged me back.

I lunged forward impulsively, but Dr. Silence quickly pulled me back.

“No,” he cried, “don’t wake her!”

“No,” he shouted, “don't wake her!”

“What do you mean?” I replied aloud, struggling in his grasp.

“What do you mean?” I said out loud, struggling in his hold.

“She’s asleep. It’s somnambulistic. The shock might injure her permanently.”

"She's asleep. It's like sleepwalking. The shock could hurt her permanently."

I turned and peered closely into his face. He was absolutely calm. I began to understand a little more, catching, I suppose, something of his strong thinking.

I turned and looked closely at his face. He was completely calm. I started to understand a bit more, picking up, I guess, on his strong way of thinking.

“Walking in her sleep, you mean?”

"Are you saying she's sleepwalking?"

He nodded. “She’s on her way to meet him. From the very beginning he must have drawn her—irresistibly.”

He nodded. “She’s on her way to meet him. From the start, he must have attracted her—uncontrollably.”

“But the torn tent and the wounded flesh?”

“But the ripped tent and the injured skin?”

“When she did not sleep deep enough to enter the somnambulistic trance he missed her—he went instinctively and in all innocence to seek her out—with the result, of course, that she woke and was terrified——”

“When she didn’t sleep deeply enough to fall into a sleepwalking state, he missed her—he naturally and innocently went to look for her—which, of course, resulted in her waking up and feeling scared—”

“Then in their heart of hearts they love?” I asked finally.

“Do they really love in their heart of hearts?” I finally asked.

John Silence smiled his inscrutable smile: “Profoundly,” he answered, “and as simply as only primitive souls can love. If only they both come to realise it in their normal waking states his Double will cease these nocturnal excursions. He will be cured, and at rest.”

John Silence smiled his mysterious smile: “Deeply,” he replied, “and as simply as only basic souls can love. If they both come to understand it in their everyday lives, his Double will stop these nighttime journeys. He will be healed and at peace.”

The words had hardly left his lips when there was a sound of rustling branches on our left, and the very next instant the dense brushwood parted where it was darkest and out rushed the swift form of an animal at full gallop. The noise of feet was scarcely audible, but in that utter stillness I heard the heavy panting breath and caught the swish of the low bushes against its sides. It went straight towards Joan—and as it went the girl lifted her head and turned to meet it. And the same instant a canoe that had been creeping silently and unobserved round the inner shore of the lagoon, emerged from the shadows and defined itself upon the water with a figure at the middle thwart. It was Maloney.

The words had barely left his lips when we heard the rustling of branches to our left, and in the next moment, the thick brush opened up where it was darkest, and a quick animal burst out at full speed. The sound of its feet was almost inaudible, but in the complete silence, I could hear its heavy panting and the swish of the low bushes brushing against its sides. It headed straight for Joan—and as it approached, the girl lifted her head to greet it. At the same moment, a canoe that had been silently edging around the inner shore of the lagoon emerged from the shadows and became visible on the water, with a figure at the middle thwart. It was Maloney.

It was only afterwards I realised that we were invisible to him where we stood against the dark background of trees; the figures of Joan and the animal he saw plainly, but not Dr. Silence and myself standing just beyond them. He stood up in the canoe and pointed with his right arm. I saw something gleam in his hand.

It was only later that I realized we were invisible to him where we stood against the dark backdrop of trees; he clearly saw Joan and the animal, but not Dr. Silence and me standing just behind them. He stood up in the canoe and pointed with his right arm. I noticed something shining in his hand.

“Stand aside, Joan girl, or you’ll get hit,” he shouted, his voice ringing horribly through the deep stillness, and the same instant a pistol-shot cracked out with a burst of flame and smoke, and the figure of the animal, with one tremendous leap into the air, fell back in the shadows and disappeared like a shape of night and fog. Instantly, then, Joan opened her eyes, looked in a dazed fashion about her, and pressing both hands against her heart, fell with a sharp cry into my arms that were just in time to catch her.

“Step aside, Joan, or you’ll get hit,” he yelled, his voice echoing uncomfortably in the stillness. At that moment, a gunshot rang out with a flash of flame and smoke, and the animal leaped into the air before collapsing back into the shadows, vanishing like a figure made of night and fog. In an instant, Joan opened her eyes, looked around in a daze, and pressed both hands against her heart before collapsing with a sharp cry into my arms, which were just in time to catch her.

And an answering cry sounded across the lagoon—thin, wailing, piteous. It came from Sangree’s tent.

And a responding cry echoed across the lagoon—sharp, mournful, heartbreaking. It came from Sangree’s tent.

“Fool!” cried Dr. Silence, “you’ve wounded him!” and before we could move or realise quite what it meant, he was in the canoe and half-way across the lagoon.

“Fool!” shouted Dr. Silence, “you’ve hurt him!” and before we could react or fully understand what was happening, he was in the canoe and halfway across the lagoon.

Some kind of similar abuse came in a torrent from my lips too—though I cannot remember the actual words—as I cursed the man for his disobedience and tried to make the girl comfortable on the ground. But the clergyman was more practical. He was spreading his coat over her and dashing water on her face.

Some similar harsh words spilled from my lips as well—though I can't recall the exact phrases—as I scolded the man for not listening and tried to help the girl feel better on the ground. But the clergyman was more practical. He was spreading his coat over her and splashing water on her face.

“It’s not Joan I’ve killed at any rate,” I heard him mutter as she turned and opened her eyes and smiled faintly up in his face. “I swear the bullet went straight.”

“It’s not Joan I’ve killed anyway,” I heard him mutter as she turned, opened her eyes, and smiled faintly up at him. “I swear the bullet went straight.”

Joan stared at him; she was still dazed and bewildered, and still imagined herself with the companion of her trance. The strange lucidity of the somnambulist still hung over her brain and mind, though outwardly she appeared troubled and confused.

Joan stared at him; she was still dazed and confused, and still pictured herself with the companion from her trance. The unusual clarity of the somnambulist still lingered in her thoughts, even though on the outside she looked troubled and perplexed.

“Where has he gone to? He disappeared so suddenly, crying that he was hurt,” she asked, looking at her father as though she did not recognise him. “And if they’ve done anything to him—they have done it to me too—for he is more to me than——”

“Where has he gone? He vanished so suddenly, saying he was hurt,” she asked, looking at her father like she didn’t recognize him. “And if they’ve done anything to him—they’ve done it to me too—because he means more to me than——”

Her words grew vaguer and vaguer as she returned slowly to her normal waking state, and now she stopped altogether, as though suddenly aware that she had been surprised into telling secrets. But all the way back, as we carried her carefully through the trees, the girl smiled and murmured Sangree’s name and asked if he was injured, until it finally became clear to me that the wild soul of the one had called to the wild soul of the other and in the secret depths of their beings the call had been heard and understood. John Silence was right. In the abyss of her heart, too deep at first for recognition, the girl loved him, and had loved him from the very beginning. Once her normal waking consciousness recognised the fact they would leap together like twin flames, and his affliction would be at an end; his intense desire would be satisfied; he would be cured.

Her words became more and more unclear as she slowly returned to her normal waking state, and then she stopped speaking altogether, as if suddenly realizing she had been caught revealing secrets. But all the way back, as we carefully carried her through the trees, the girl smiled and whispered Sangree’s name and asked if he was hurt, until it finally dawned on me that the wild spirit of one had called to the wild spirit of the other, and in the secret depths of their beings, the call had been heard and understood. John Silence was right. Deep in her heart, too deep at first to recognize, the girl loved him and had loved him from the very start. Once her normal waking consciousness acknowledged this fact, they would ignite together like twin flames, and his suffering would come to an end; his intense longing would be fulfilled; he would be healed.

And in Sangree’s tent Dr. Silence and I sat up for the remainder of the night—this wonderful and haunted night that had shown us such strange glimpses of a new heaven and a new hell—for the Canadian tossed upon his balsam boughs with high fever in his blood, and upon each cheek a dark and curious contusion showed, throbbing with severe pain although the skin was not broken and there was no outward and visible sign of blood.

And in Sangree’s tent, Dr. Silence and I stayed up for the rest of the night—this amazing and eerie night that had revealed such strange glimpses of a new heaven and a new hell. The Canadian lay on his balsam branches with a high fever coursing through his blood, and each cheek had a dark and unusual bruise that throbbed with intense pain, even though the skin wasn’t broken and there was no visible sign of blood.

“Maloney shot straight, you see,” whispered Dr. Silence to me after the clergyman had gone to his tent, and had put Joan to sleep beside her mother, who, by the way, had never once awakened. “The bullet must have passed clean through the face, for both cheeks are stained. He’ll wear these marks all his life—smaller, but always there. They’re the most curious scars in the world, these scars transferred by repercussion from an injured Double. They’ll remain visible until just before his death, and then with the withdrawal of the subtle body they will disappear finally.”

“Maloney shot straight, you see,” whispered Dr. Silence to me after the clergyman had gone to his tent and put Joan to sleep beside her mother, who, by the way, had never once woken up. “The bullet must have passed clean through the face, because both cheeks are stained. He’ll carry these marks for life—smaller, but always there. They’re the most curious scars in the world, these scars transferred by reverberation from an injured Double. They’ll stay visible until just before his death, and then, with the departure of the subtle body, they will finally disappear.”

His words mingled in my dazed mind with the sighs of the troubled sleeper and the crying of the wind about the tent. Nothing seemed to paralyse my powers of realisation so much as these twin stains of mysterious significance upon the face before me.

His words blended in my confused mind with the sighs of the restless sleeper and the howling wind around the tent. Nothing seemed to freeze my ability to comprehend quite like these two marks of mysterious importance on the face in front of me.

It was odd, too, how speedily and easily the Camp resigned itself again to sleep and quietness, as though a stage curtain had suddenly dropped down upon the action and concealed it; and nothing contributed so vividly to the feeling that I had been a spectator of some kind of visionary drama as the dramatic nature of the change in the girl’s attitude.

It was strange how quickly and effortlessly the Camp returned to sleep and silence, as if a stage curtain had suddenly fallen, hiding everything; and nothing reinforced the sense that I had witnessed some kind of surreal play more than the dramatic shift in the girl’s demeanor.

Yet, as a matter of fact, the change had not been so sudden and revolutionary as appeared. Underneath, in those remoter regions of consciousness where the emotions, unknown to their owners, do secretly mature, and owe thence their abrupt revelation to some abrupt psychological climax, there can be no doubt that Joan’s love for the Canadian had been growing steadily and irresistibly all the time. It had now rushed to the surface so that she recognised it; that was all.

Yet, the change hadn't been as sudden and revolutionary as it seemed. Deep down, in those more hidden areas of consciousness where emotions unknowingly develop and later reveal themselves in a sudden psychological peak, it's clear that Joan’s love for the Canadian had been steadily and powerfully growing all along. It had now bubbled to the surface, and she simply recognized it; that was all.

And it has always seemed to me that the presence of John Silence, so potent, so quietly efficacious, produced an effect, if one may say so, of a psychic forcing-house, and hastened incalculably the bringing together of these two “wild” lovers. In that sudden awakening had occurred the very psychological climax required to reveal the passionate emotion accumulated below. The deeper knowledge had leaped across and transferred itself to her ordinary consciousness, and in that shock the collision of the personalities had shaken them to the depths and shown her the truth beyond all possibility of doubt.

And I've always felt that John Silence's presence, so powerful and quietly effective, created an atmosphere that sped up the connection between these two "wild" lovers. In that sudden awakening, the psychological climax that was needed to reveal all the passionate feelings built up inside happened. The deeper understanding jumped across and became part of her everyday awareness, and in that moment of shock, the clash of their personalities shook them to their core and showed her the undeniable truth.

“He’s sleeping quietly now,” the doctor said, interrupting my reflections. “If you will watch alone for a bit I’ll go to Maloney’s tent and help him to arrange his thoughts.” He smiled in anticipation of that “arrangement.” “He’ll never quite understand how a wound on the Double can transfer itself to the physical body, but at least I can persuade him that the less he talks and ‘explains’ tomorrow, the sooner the forces will run their natural course now to peace and quietness.”

“He's sleeping peacefully now,” the doctor said, breaking into my thoughts. “If you can keep watch for a while, I'll head over to Maloney’s tent and help him sort out his thoughts.” He smiled at the thought of that “sorting.” “He'll never fully grasp how a wound on the Double can affect the physical body, but at least I can convince him that the less he talks and 'explains' tomorrow, the sooner everything will settle down and find peace.”

He went away softly, and with the removal of his presence Sangree, sleeping heavily, turned over and groaned with the pain of his broken head.

He walked away quietly, and once he was gone, Sangree, sleeping heavily, rolled over and groaned from the pain of his broken head.

And it was in the still hour just before the dawn, when all the islands were hushed, the wind and sea still dreaming, and the stars visible through clearing mists, that a figure crept silently over the ridge and reached the door of the tent where I dozed beside the sufferer, before I was aware of its presence. The flap was cautiously lifted a few inches and in looked—Joan.

And it was in the quiet hour just before dawn, when all the islands were calm, the wind and sea still dreaming, and the stars visible through the parting mist, that a figure quietly crept over the ridge and arrived at the door of the tent where I dozed beside the sick person, before I even realized it was there. The flap was carefully lifted a few inches and in looked—Joan.

That same instant Sangree woke and sat up on his bed of branches. He recognised her before I could say a word, and uttered a low cry. It was pain and joy mingled, and this time all human. And the girl too was no longer walking in her sleep, but fully aware of what she was doing. I was only just able to prevent him springing from his blankets.

That same moment, Sangree woke up and sat up on his bed of branches. He recognized her before I could even say anything and let out a soft cry. It was a mix of pain and joy, completely human. And the girl was no longer sleepwalking; she was fully aware of what she was doing. I barely managed to stop him from jumping out of his blankets.

“Joan, Joan!” he cried, and in a flash she answered him, “I’m here—I’m with you always now,” and had pushed past me into the tent and flung herself upon his breast.

“Joan, Joan!” he shouted, and in an instant she responded, “I’m here—I’m with you always now,” and had pushed past me into the tent and flung herself onto his chest.

“I knew you would come to me in the end,” I heard him whisper.

“I knew you would come to me eventually,” I heard him whisper.

“It was all too big for me to understand at first,” she murmured, “and for a long time I was frightened——”

"It was all too overwhelming for me to get at first," she whispered, "and for a long time, I was scared——"

“But not now!” he cried louder; “you don’t feel afraid now of—of anything that’s in me——”

“But not now!” he shouted louder; “you aren’t scared now of—of anything that’s within me——”

“I fear nothing,” she cried, “nothing, nothing!”

“I fear nothing,” she shouted, “nothing, nothing!”

I led her outside again. She looked steadily into my face with eyes shining and her whole being transformed. In some intuitive way, surviving probably from the somnambulism, she knew or guessed as much as I knew.

I led her outside again. She looked steadily into my face with shining eyes, her whole demeanor transformed. In some intuitive way, likely stemming from the trance, she knew or guessed as much as I did.

“You must talk tomorrow with John Silence,” I said gently, leading her towards her own tent. “He understands everything.”

“You need to talk to John Silence tomorrow,” I said softly, guiding her toward her tent. “He gets it all.”

I left her at the door, and as I went back softly to take up my place of sentry again with the Canadian, I saw the first streaks of dawn lighting up the far rim of the sea behind the distant islands.

I left her at the door, and as I quietly returned to my spot as a guard with the Canadian, I noticed the first rays of dawn brightening the edge of the sea beyond the distant islands.

And, as though to emphasise the eternal closeness of comedy to tragedy, two small details rose out of the scene and impressed me so vividly that I remember them to this very day. For in the tent where I had just left Joan, all aquiver with her new happiness, there rose plainly to my ears the grotesque sounds of the Bo’sun’s Mate heavily snoring, oblivious of all things in heaven or hell; and from Maloney’s tent, so still was the night, where I looked across and saw the lantern’s glow, there came to me, through the trees, the monotonous rising and falling of a human voice that was beyond question the sound of a man praying to his God.

And, as if to highlight how closely comedy is linked to tragedy, two small details jumped out at me from the scene and stuck with me ever since. In the tent where I had just left Joan, all excited with her new happiness, I could clearly hear the bizarre sounds of the Bo’sun’s Mate snoring loudly, completely unaware of anything in heaven or hell; and from Maloney’s tent, the night was so quiet that, as I glanced over at the lantern’s glow, I could hear through the trees the steady rise and fall of a human voice that was unmistakably the sound of a man praying to his God.


Printed by Morrison & Gibb Limited Edinburgh

Printed by Morrison & Gibb Limited Edinburgh


Transcriber’s Note:

Transcription Note:

Punctuation has been standardised. Hyphenation and spelling have been retained as appears in the original publication except as follows:

Punctuation has been standardized. Hyphenation and spelling have been retained as they appear in the original publication, except for the following:

  • Page 51
    available chink and crannie changed to
    available chink and cranny
  • Page 56
    looking persuasivly from one changed to
    looking persuasively from one
  • Page 280
    yet at the same time so strangly changed to
    yet at the same time so strangely

Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!